OIl?f i. 1. HtU iCibrary 5Jnrtb (Earolina BXslU (TolUap SD425 B87 J^orf A (Sarolina This book may be kept out TWO WEEKS ONLY, and is subject to a fine of FIVE CENTS a day thereafter. It is due on the day indicated below: OCT 2 6 1984 NOV 10 1965 JAN 1 2 19(56 lUL 27 1956 DEC 2 BE 7 FORESTS AND MOISTURE; EFFECTS OF FORESTS HUMIDITY OF CLIMATE. COMPILED BY JOHN CROUMBIE BROWN, LL.D, Formerly Government Botanist at the Cape of Good Hope and Professor of Botany in the South African College, Capetown, Fellow of the Royal Geographical Society, Fellow of the Linnean Society, and Honorary Vice-President of the African Institute of Paris, etc. EDINBURGH: OLIVER AND BOYD, TWEEDDALE COURT. liONDON: SIMPKIN, MARSHALL AND CO. 187 7, Kirkcaldy : John Crawford, Printer. [All rights of Translation and Reproduction are reserved.'] CONTENTS AND ARGUMENT, FAOE. Index to Authorities Cited, - - - - xi Preface, - - - - - - - xiii States circumstances in which the voliune is published. Introduction, . . . _ . i States subjects to be discussed as being more particularly the effect of forests on the humidity of the climate, including the rainfall ; but treating this only as accessary to other effects, and these such as may be produced by every blade of herbage according to its measure. PART I. — Phenomena op Vegetation on which the Meteor- ological Effects of Forests affecting the Humidity OF Climate depend, - - - - - 3 Chapter I. — Primary Phenomena of Vegetation, - - 3 Primary phenomena of vegetation are expounded as seen in the Red Snow, the Yeast plant, Confervje, and Algse (p. 3), and thus is illustrated the absorption of moisture by endosmose (p. 5), which process is more fully detailed (p. 6). The liquid absorbel is traced from the rootlets to the leaves (p. 10;; the rise of the sap is ex- plained in accordance with the supposition of its being attributable to endosmosic action (p. 12). The differeace between this and capillary attraction is explained (p. 13), and the difference between this and what is called vis a tergo (p. 15). The structure of the leaf is described (p. 17), and the process of the evaporation of the moiBtnre by the stomates of the leaves is illustrated (p. 19). Chapter II. — On the Quantity of Moisture Evaporated through the Stomates of the Leaves, - - - - 21 Facts illustrative of the quantity of moisture evaporated through the stomates of leaves are cited from Marsh and others, embracing observations on the Oik by Marshal Vaillant (p. 21), and on the maple and the birch in Am?rici (p. 22). Chapter III. — Disputed and Secondary Phenomena of Vege- tation, - - - - - - 25 Section I. — On the Absorption of Moisture by Leaves, - 25 It is alleged that there is a lack of evidence of moisture being absorbed by leaves in great quantity (p. 25). Section II. — On the Production of Water by Plants, - - 26 A reference is made to quantities of water found in the KaflSr iron- wood (p. 26), the pitcher plant and the teazle (p. 27), to water secreted by ants (p. 28) and by the cuckoo-spit (p. 29) ; and it is intimated that it is not unreasonable to suppose that water may be secreted by vegetables (p. 31). Section III. — On the Dropping of Water from the Leaves of certain Trees, - - - - - -31 Eeference is made to observations on a cehbrated laurel in Fervo (p. 31), and it is su^gest>-d that the dropping of water fiora its leaves may be attributable to a c ipiims deposit of dew (p. 32), and this is again relerred to in explanation of similar phenomena ob- served in Madeira (p. 35) and in Europe (p. 37). PART II. — Effects op Forests on the Humidity of the Climate, - - - - - - 38 Chapter I. — Immediate Effects of Forests on the Humidity of the Atmosphere, - - - - - 38 Keference is made to controverted views on this subject, and these are discussed (p. 38). Section I. — On the Humidity of Atmosphere in the vicinity of Trees, indicated by the dampness of houses overshadowed by Trees, or situated in close proximity to a Wood, - 39 This is attributed to the moisture evaporated throujjh the stomatea of the leaves being absorbed or retained by the walls (p. 39). Section II. — On Clouds occasionally seen surmounting Woods while the Atmosphere around is comparatively clear, - 40 There is discussed a statement by Marsh in favour of the popular ▼iew that mountains attract clouds (p. 46) ; and phenomena seen OONTSNTS, Vtt on Table Mountain, at the Cape of Good Hope, are adduced to show that these, like the alleged attraction of clouds by forests, are attributable to a reduction in the temperature of the air (p. 48). Chapter II — Effects of Forests on the Humidity of the Ground, 51 Section I. — O71 the Wetness of Roads where these are over- shadowed hy Trees, - - - - - 51 While the profuse evaporation from the trees through the stomates of the leaves is net overlooked, the wetness of roads is traced to the effect of the shadow occasioned by the trees preventing evaporation from the overshadowed portion of the road (p. 51); in illustration of which effect of shade are adduced experiments and observations made at the Cape of Good Hope (p. 52), and observations on the effdct of shade on ponds in England (p, 55). Section II. — On the Desiccation of Ground by Drying Winds being prevented by the Shelter afforded by clumps of Trees, 55 Illustrations are given of the effect of shelter in arresting evapora- tion, and of the extent to which even bush may aci as a wind- brake (p. 56). Section III. — On the General Phenomena of Evaporation from Forests, - - - - - - 57 There are given indications of evaporation being retarded by forests (p. 59), observations on the quantity of rain arrested by leaves made by Marshall Vaillant (p. 61) and by M. Mathieu (p. 62), observations by the latter on the different quantities of water evaporated in woods and in adjacent open land (p. 63), and notices ' of corresponding observations made by Risler(p. 61), with the con- clusion from the whole that under the same measure of rainfall the soil of the forest retains notably more water than does uncovered ground (p. 65). Section IV. — On the Moisture being attracted from the Atmos- phere, or otherwise retained in the Ground by Vegetable Moidd, - - - - - - 65 It is stated how it may be seen that there is a greater quantity of moisture in the soil of a forest than in the soil of open country (p. 65) ; illustrations are given of the process whereby such mois- ture is absorbed (p. 65); the difference between this and the deposit of dew is pointed out (p. 66) ; the property is stated to be possessed in a high degree by clay and by vegetable mould (p. 67); the latter is shown to be a product of forests, and a mode of deter- mining the quantity of it in the soil is described (p. 70), and the humus is shown to be liable to decomposition when exposed to the rays of sun, unshaded by herbage and trees (p. 71). fiii CONTENTS. Chapter III. — Effects of Forests on Marshes, - - 73 Section I. — On the Brying-up of Marshes on the Growth of Trees, - - - - - - 73 It is stated that what is evaporated through the stomates of the leaves is derived from the ground (p. 73). and Ihit the quantity often exceeds many times that of the rainfall (p. 74); that to a great extent what the atmosphere thus gains the earh loses (p 79); and an illustration of the effect in drying up wet ground is given (p. 80). Section II. — On the occcasional appearance of 3farshes on the destruction of Forests, - - - - - 81 Cases of the appearance of marshes on the destruction of forests are cited, which are attributed to the interruption of the withdrawal of excess of moisture from the soil by the trees (p. 81). Section III. — On the occasional Destruction of Forests by the Creation of Marshes, - - - - - 83 The destruction of forests by marshes is attributed to the damming- up of water outle's at a lower level (p. H3), and illustrative cases are given from Russia (p. 83), Canada (p. 85), and the United States of America (p. 88). Section IV. — On the Desiccating Effects produced on Marshes hy Forests in prolonged periods, - - - 90 The gradual conversion of marshes into habitable and arable land is discussed (p. 90), and Ireland and Denmark are referred to in illustration (p. 91). Chapter IV. — On the Effects of Forests on the Moisture of a wide expanse of Country, - - - - 93 Section I. — Cases in which the extensive destruction of Forests does not appear to have perceptibly affected the quantity of the Rainfall over a wide expanse of Country, - - 94 The difference between moisture and rainfall is pointed out (p. 94) ; and illustrations of little eff ct having been produced on the quantity of rain falling over a wide expanse of country having been produced by an extensive destruction of forests are given from France (p. 95), and from the United States of North America (p. 98). Section II. — Cases in which the extensive destruction of Forests appears to have been followed by a marked desiccation of Land and aridity of Climate, - - - 99 It is stated that the extensive destruction of grass and herbage and trees in South Africa has been followed by drought (p 104); and there are cited statements in regard to corresponding observations CONTENTS, IX elsewhere by Marsh (p. 106); by Hooker (p. 108); by Schleidea and Fries (p. 108); Fraas (p. 109); Becqaerel (p. 110); Laurent, &c. (p. Ill); Humboldt (p. 112); Boussingault (p. 113) ; and Hough (p. lis;. Section III, — Cases in which the Destruction of Trees have been followed by desiccation ; and the planting of Trees has been followed by the restoration of humidity, - - 117 St. Helena fp. 117) and the Mauritius (p. 124) are adduced as cases in which the destruction of trees has been followed by desiccation ; and the replanting of trees with restoration of humidity. The Island of Ascension is brought forward as a case, in which the •absence of trees was accompanied by aridity, and the planting of trees was followed by humidity (p. 128) ; the measures adopted are detailed (p. 134) ; and the successful results are reported (p. 141). Section IV. — Cases illustrative of Effects of Forests on Humidity corresponding to such as have been adduced, - 144 Accounts are given of climatal changes on the Island of Madeira (p. 144) ; and reference is made to alleged changes in Alexandria and in Egypt fp. 146^; South Africa Cp. 148); South America, &c. (p. 149). Chapter V. — Local Effects of Forests o7i the Rainfall and on Rivers, - - - - - - 150 Section I. — On the production of Rain, - . . 151 The production of rain is traced to the deposit of moisture in excess of what can be retained at a reduced temperature by air by which it had been absorbed ; and in view of this there is detailed the rise of the Trade Winds (p. 151), the course of currents of air from the polar to the equatorial regions, and their return thither deposit- ing moisture absorbed while proceeding toward the equator (p. 152). Reference is made to the quantity which must have been so absorbed (p. 153). The production of clouds by eddies and whirlwinds is described (p. 156) ; and the production of rain as detailed by Sir John Herschel (p. 158). Section II. — The Effects of Forests on the quantity of the Local Rainfall, - - - - - - 159 There are brought forward the views of Boussingault and Becquerjl that forests increase the local rainfall (p, 159), Observations by Mr Draper are again brought forward, but with them an illustration of the effect of forests by Coultas (p. 160) ; and statements of the views of Marsh and the observations of Mat hieu in accordance with the views of Boussingault (p. 161); with remarks on the same by M. C6zanne (p. 162). X CONTENTS. Sectiox hi. — Effects of Forests and of the Destruction of Forests on Rivers and Streams, - - - 165 Cases are cited from America North aad South i^p. 166), I'roui France (p. 167;, from Germanyand from the Cape of Good Hope (p. 172) ; illustrative of the flow of streams and rivers varying with the exist- ence and destruction of forests. A resume is given of a treatise by Herr Wex on the diminution of water in springs and rivers, with augmentation of floods (p. 175) ; with reports on the sarne by the Academy of Science of Vienna (p. 199), and by the Academy of Science of St. Petersburg (p. 203) ; and a resume of observations reported by Dr Ernst Ebermayer (p. 204). Section IV. — Immediate Effects of Trees in Arresting the Flow and Escape of Rainfall, - - - - 212 There are cited objections to the views of M. Becquerel in regard to the effects of trees advanced by Marshal Vaillant (p. 212); but with these, observations reported by M. Coute-Grand Champs, and M. d'Arboise de Jubainiville (p. 214), by Mr Marsh and by M. Jules Clave (p. 216), showing that trees have the effect of arresting the flow and escape of the rainfall ; observations by Mr Marschand on the increased hydroscopicity, capillarity, and permeability of soil occasioned by the growth of trees (p. 2 17); and additional illustrations of the same supplied by C6zanne (p. 221), by d'Hericourt, and by Marsh (p. 223). Section V. — Secondary Effects of Trees in Arresting t\e Flow and Escape of the Rainfall, and thus Equalising to some extent the Flotv of Rivers, . . _ . 225 The secondary effects of trees in arresting the flow and escape of the rainfall, and thus equalising to some extent the flow of rivers, are illustrated by reference to the effect of floo>ls in washing away earth, and sometimes covering fertile land with infertile earth, in connection with which are cited statements by Marsh in regard to these effects (p. 226) ; and statements by Surell in regard to the prevention of them by the growth of trees (p. 237) ; statements by Cezanne in regard to natural arrest of torrents by forests (p. 242) ; and by Costa de Bastelica on the effect of trees in increasing the humidity of the soil and consequent drainage of water to subter- ranean reservoirs (p. 244) ; of Marchand on the occasion of storms in the Alps (p. 249) ; with a historical narration of the application of reboisem.ent to arrest and prevent the effects of such storms (p. 251). Chapter VI. — On, the correspondence between the distribution of the Rainfall and of Forests, - ~ . . 255 There is stated the course to be followed in this discussion (p. 255). OONTEKTS. Si SectiOiST I. — On the Measure of Correspondence between the Distribution of the Rainfall and that of Forests, - 256 This is illustrated from statements by Dr Brandis in regard to India (p. 256), by Mr Maclaren in regard to America (p. 259), by a com- parison of report on the rainfall in North America, issued by the Smithsonian Institution (p. 262), with the account of the forests of North America given by M. Marny (p. 261); and a statement in regard to the destruction of forests in South Africa (p. 269). Section II. — On the Distribution of the Rainfall dependent on Geographical Position, being determined by the Contour of a Country, - - - - - - 271 An illustration of the distribution of the rainfall being affected by the altitude of a country is given in the effects of a wind- wave which passed over Europe in September 1866 (p. 272) ; with an illustra- tion of the same operation in the production of a " mackerel sky" ; and of the Table Cloth on Table Mountain (p. 273). Which are followed by an exposition by Cezanne of his doctrine that it is determined in a great measure by the rapidity wit;h which the atmospheric current rises (p. 271) ; and illustrations of this being the Case supplied by Kaulin (p. 280). Section III. — On the Distribution of Forests Affected by the Distribution of the Rainfall, - . - . 283 There is cited a statement by Marsh relative to a tendercy manifested by ligneous vegetables to secure the universal occupancy of land (p. 283). The operation of laws regulating the dispersion of vegetables is illustrated (p. 286) ; and the operation of those on the dispersion of trees is seen to depend in part upon the rainfall (p. 289). Section IV. — On the Local Effects of Forests on the Distribu- tion of the Rainfall ivithin the Forest District, - - 293 The general effect of forests is shown to be to retard the flow of the rain-water precipitated (293), and so in prehistoric times to have converted torrents into peaceful streams (29i), while the same effect is shown to be produced by them still (p. 295). There are cited observations adduced to prove that appaiently they influence some- what the quantity of the rainfall and the local distribut'on of it over the year (p. 299) ; and the reconciliation of conflicting observations and opinions (p. 302) is shown to be possible (p. 303). Conclusion, ...--. 307 INDEX TO AUTHORITIES CITED. Academy of Science of St. Petersburg, 203. Academy of Science of Vienna, 199, 299. Baines, 69. Balfour, 4. Barnard, 129. Barrington, 128. Becquerel, 110, 212. Belgrand, 29i. Bell, 137. Berghaus, 176, 180, l9i. Blanqui, 120, 148. Bloget, 301. Blore, 52. Boussingault, ll3, 148, 159. Biandis, 256. Breton, 248. Brown, 142. Bryand, 150. Burnet, 129. Cantegril, 174. Cezanne, 21, 59, 65, 68, 94, 147, 157, 162, 221, 242, 274, 293, 303, 305. Chapman, 26. Chouseul-Graffier, 213. Clav6, 216, Chavery, 215. Conte-Grandchamps, 214. Costa de Bastelica, 244, 251. Coile, 96. Coultas, 160. D'Arboise de Jubainville, 214. Dallinger, 18. D'Hericourt, 223, Draper, 100, 111, 160. Drysdale, 18. DupoDchel, 232. Dutrochet, 6. Ebermayer, 204. Emerson, 23. Emsraan, 117. Espy, 304. Faber, 236. Fraas, 109. Fries, 108. Frisi, 231. Gosse, 25. Graham, 35, 145. Gras, 248. Gray, 5, 9, 59. Grehanau, 177, 184. Guglielmini, 23 1. Hagen, 177, 178, 183. Hales, 15. Hayes, 155. Henry, 98, 115, 262. Her- Echel, 32, 34, 49, 158, 282, 303. Home, 56, 145. Marker, 108, 112, 128. Hough, 100, 148. Humboldt, 34. Hummel, 169. Huxley, 18. Irving, 154. Jamieson, 300, Janisch, 118. Job, 10. Johnstone, 37, 55. Johnstrus, 225. Kieser, 4. Labuissiere, 295. Laurent, 111. Lemoine, 221. Lenneps, 32. Leslie, 41, 43. Livingstone, 28. Lombardini, 233. Maas, 177, 179. Max Graham, 113. Maclaren, 159. Macvicar, 71. Marschand, 167, 217, 249. Mardigny, 232. Marny, 264. Marsh, 21, 22, 45, 46, 57, 64, 74, 88, 90, 106, 115, 125, 144, 148, 161, 167, 171, 216, 223, 226, 283. Mathieu, 62, 64, 161. Maury, 156. Meguscher, 33. Meldrum, 134. Mitchell, 43. Moffat, 104, 173. Mohl, 19. Orlebar, 55. Perrot, 192. Pfaff, 2l, 25. Piper, 169. Pkyfair, 124. Renou, 302. Rogers, 126. Raulin, 95, 97, 279. St. John, 127. Saussure, 34. Scbeubler, 92. Schleiden, 21, 25. Scoresby, 163. Shott, 100. Siemni, 169. Steinmitz, 152. Surell, 174, 230, 237. Symons, 300. Tennant, 30. Thf^mas, 164. Thomson, 272. Thornton, 124. Thurmann, 67. Vaillant, 21, 61, 75, 212. Valles, 252. Van Eeenan, 172. Vampell, 90, 291. Wells, 32. Wex, 175. Williams, 23. Wiseman, 204. Wisner, 175. PREFACE. This volume is one of a series. In the first of the series — a volume published last year, entitled '• Hydrology of South Africa ■ or, Details of the former Hydrographic condition of the Cape of Good Hope, and of causes of its present Aridity, with suggestions of appropriate remedies for this Aridity," — it is stated that the desiccation of the country is attributable, primarily and mainly to the upheaval of the land and the consequent rapid draining oflf of the water with which it was covered and of the subsequent rainfall; and secondarily, to rapid evaporation occasioned by the temperature and latterly promoted by the destruction of forests and herbage and grass. There are adduced facts and testimony indicative of this having been the case ; and in view of these the appropriate remedies for the prevailing aridity are stated to be — the erection of dams to prevent the escape of a portion of the rainfall to the sea, — the abandonment or restriction of the burning of the veldt, — the conservation and extension of existing forests, — and the adoption of measures similar to the reboisement and gazonnement carried out in France, with a view to prevent the formation of torrents and destruction of property occasioned by them. There is now in the press, and shortly will be published, a continuation of that volume on the " Hydrology of South Africa,'' supplying illustrations of the practicability of applying the first of these remedies being a report on the water supply of South Africa : its sources, its quantity, the difficulties (physical and other) in the way of works of extensive irrigation being carried out at the Cape, and the means of accomplishing these which are at command, with notices of what has been done in connection with the storage of water and irrigation in other lands. This volume, on the efifects of forests on the humidity of the atmosphere and of the ground, follows in the series, supplying illustrations of the reasonableness of the suggestion made in regard to the conservation and extension of forests, as a subordinate means of arresting and counteracting the desiccation and aridity of the country. And early in the present year was published a volume entitled " Eeboisement in France : or, Kecords of the replanting of the Alps, the C^vennes, and the Pyrenees with trees, herbage, and bush, with a view to arresting and preventing the destructive consequence and effects of torrents." Should encouragement offer, the publication of this volume will be followed by the publication of a volume on the effects of forests on the temperature of a country, and the correlation of humidity and temperature in meteorological phenomena ; a volume on the chemistry of vegetation, and the effects thereby produced on the salubrity of a climate ; and a compilation of official docu- ments, showing what arguments for the conservation and exten- sion of forests have been submitted to the consideration of legislative and S(;if>ntific bodies in different countries, in view of the meteorological effects of forests, — and what measures have been adopted in view of these to secure more extensively for the benefit of man the meteorological benefits which may be thus produced. Haddington, December 1876. EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON THE HUMIDITY OF THE CLIMATE. INTRODUCTION. The following treatise ou Meteorological Eflfects of Forests relates mainly to the effects of these on the humidity of the atmosphere and of the soil. Besides these there are effects produced by forests on the temperature and the salubrity of a country, and all of these are cor- related — each of them affecting the others, and the others, each. It is a matter of common observation that houses in the .close proximity of trees are often damp ; it is also frequently observed that both in summer and winter the temperature in a wood is different from what it is in the open country ; and it is becoming generally known that vegetation so affects the constitution of the atmosphere as to keep the air fit for the support of man and beast. Phenomena connected with each of these effects, and different phases of these, will incidentally come under our notice ; and their correlation may be attended to ; but the discussion of these does not come within the scope of this treatise. No eflPects are attributed by me to forests which are not produced, or might not be produced, by any and every blade of herbage or of grass according to its measure. The difference is considered to be only a question of degree. As the hue of a single hair, or a thread of spun glass, may be imperceptible to many observers to whom the hue of a mass of the same hair or glass may be apparent at once, so the meteorological eflfect of a tiny leaf or a tiny moss, scarcely percep- tible by a hurried glance, or those of a single tree, may be inappre- ciable because infinitesimally small, but the effects produced by a forest with its countless trees, boughs, and leaves be most manifest ; and then, with these eflfects known, we may with advantage proceed D. H. HILL LIBRARY 2 INTRODUCTION. to the closer study of any one of them, or of phenomena connected with them in such of the less complicated vegetable structures as supply facilities for the study of these phenomena free from compli- cations which are met with in such masses of vegetation as are met with in forests ; and by reasoning from the lesser to the greater, as well as from the greater to the less, we may attain to what are at once clearer and more compi'ehensive views of the truth on the subject. This'is what I propose to do in the sequel. To prevent misapprehension I may call attention to the circum- stance that in treating of humidity it is not the rainfall alone of which I speak. I attribute not a little of the prevalent popular opinions in regard to the effects of forests, and controversies in regard to these to the difference between these being overlooked. PART I. Phenomena op Vegetation on which Meteorological Effects OF Forests Depend. Chap. I. — Primary Phenomena of Vegetation. The study of the phenomena of vegetation, on which meteorological effects of forests depend, may advantageously be begun by the con- sideration of what takes place in some of the more simple forms of vegetables. The simplest form of vegetable appears to be what is called Red Snow. In Alpine and Arctic regions, there are occasionally seen on the rock or on the snow patches of red-coloured matter, not unlike dust. When this matter is examined microscopically it is found that each particle of the dust-like substance is a small cell, or bladder-like body ; it is not a crystal ; it does not appear to be an animal ; it seems to be a plant — and a plant of simpler structure it would be difficult to conceive. It is known to botanists as the Protococcus Nivalis. A plant similar to this, but somewhat more complex in structure — if the term complex can be employed with propriety in speaking of a structure so very simple — is seen in the Yeast Plant. With a stick or a spoon there may be drawn from yeast in active fermentation thread-like bodies which, when examined microscopi- cally, appear like a string of beads, each bead being a cell, not unlike the Red Snow in structure, but colourless. This is the Yeast Plant, and if the thread be broken each cell may be developed into a thread- like plant similar to that from which it has been dissevered. In Confervce, and in many confervoid plants found in streams and fresh water pools, we find a similar structure, but this is enclosed in an investing skin, and the cells are drawn out from a globular into a more or less elongated cylindrical form. And in the lai-ger Algce, or sea weeds — some of which there are which are 1000 feet in length — when they are examined microscopically we find, and find only, a mass of such cells less regularly arranged, enclosed in an investing skin of similar cellular structure. 4 CELLULAR GROWTH. The growth of all such bodies — as it is of many others, but it is of these I speak at present — is effected by the multiplication of the cells of which they are composed. The process of cell growth and cell production has been studied in numerous structures, both vegetable and animal, with similar results ; and it may be described in general terms thus : — In many cells, when examined microscopically, there may be seen at one place a thickening of the cell wall ; in some may be seen, in the cell contents, floating bodies, two, four, or more in number, from which there is being developed a fine transparent membrane, with an appearance like that presented by the glass on a watch ; this gradually expands and is distended with liquid, until, in process of time, the mother cell is ruptured by their distension, and they continue to expand as independent cells, giving birth to others, and in like manner giving place to these in their turn. It is not necessary to my present purpose that I should discuss the question of how this process is originated and maintained. It is with the process and what follows from it with which I have to do. To prevent misapprehension, I may state that I do not know of the process having been in any case observed continuously from its commence- ment to its completion ; but different cells have been seen and studied In all the stages of growth and reproduction to which I have referred. The increase of bulk in each cell may be too minute and too slow to be noted, but with the process going on simultaneously in a long line of cells the effect may be perceived. I have seen the extremity of a conferva, held fast at the other end, advance across the field of vision in a microscope with which I was examining it. Nor will this be astounding if it be considered with what rapidity the process of cell production, growth, and reproduction must sometimes go on. Large tracts of snow in Arctic regions, and in Alpine districts, are some- times quite suddenly reddened by the production of the Red Snow plant, to which reference has been made, the consequence of the development of innumerable cells. One form of fungus, the Phallus impudiens, has been observed to shoot up three inches in the space of twenty-five minutes. Another, Bovista Gigantea, the giant puffball, " has grown," says Balfour, "in a single night in damp weather from the size of a mere point to that of an enormous gourd. From an approximate calculation it is found that in this plant not less than 20,000 new cells are formed every minute. Kieser estimated that the tissue of some fungi augmented at the rate of 60,000 cells per minute." In South Africa I have frequently observed a marked difference in ABSORPTION. O the altitude of the flowering stem of the American Aloe, Agave Americana, as I returned to my home in the evening from what it had been in the morning as I passed on my way to Capetown. Dr Asa Gray, wi'iting on the cell increase in this gigantic peduncle, says, — " After waiting many years, or even for a century, to gather strength and materials for the effort. Century Plants which grow in our con- servatories send up a flowering stalk which grows, day after day, at the rate of a foot in twenty-four hours, and becomes about six inches in diameter. This, supposing the cells to average l-300th of an inch in diameter, requires the formation of over twenty thoicsand millions of cells in a day ! " It is by such cell production, development, and multiplication that the growth of all plants, from the Snow Plant to the monarch of the wood, is effected ; nor is it without consideration that I make use of the term multiplication in speaking of the increase of their number, for it is the case that it is by such metrical progression that the increase is effected. Not only may each cell be studied as in itself a complete oi'ganism, an integer, and consequently an integral part of the more comprehensive structure into which it enters — as a man is in himself complete, an integei', and, consequently, an integral part of the nation to which he belongs, and as such may be made the subject of study apart from the other men of whom, along with him, the nation is composed, — but, in the Red Snow, we have a single cell constituting a complete plant ; and in this we may study more conveniently some of the phenomena of vegetation on which some of the alleged meteorological effects of forests depend as consequences. The absorption of moisture appears to be an invariable concomitant of cell growth and, consequently, of cell development and cell increase. We may afterwards enquire what function the moisture fulfils in the vegetable economy, at present it is only the fact and the mode of its accomplishment which are brought under consideration. A cell is too minute for ocular demonstration of the mode of absorption of moisture through the cell wall to be given by it. The cells vary in different plants, from about the thirtieth to the thousandth of an inch in diameter ; an ordinary size is from 1-3 00th to l-500th of an inch, so that there are generally from 27 to 125 millions of cells in the compass of a cubic inch of vegetable cellular structure. In cells so minute occular demonstration of the modus operandi is not to be expected. But they have been spoken of as ENDOSMOSE bladder-like bodies ; and with a bladder may be shown on a large scale what is done by them on a small. If a bladder be partially filled with water holding salt or sugar in solution, have the orifice closed tight, and be put into a basin of water, it will be found after a time that the bladder will become filled and distended ; water has been absorbed through the tissue. While it is thus with the bladder, if the remaining water in the basin be examined it may be found to have acquired the peculiar taste of the salt or the sugar of which a solution was introduced into the bladder before its immersion ; or if the taste be not perceptible, an appli- cation of appropriate chemical tests will show that there is such salt or sugar there in solution. Apparently there must have been a transference of water from the outside into the inside of the bladder, and a transference of a lesser portion of the solution of salt or sugar from within to the water without in the basin ; apparently this can only have taken place through the tissue of the bladder ; and all that is known of the process goes to prove that it is not only so to appearance but that it is so in fact. To these two distinct operations the designations Endosmose and Exosmose have been given by Dutrochet, a French physiologist ; and these designations have come into general use in treatises on the subject in our own and other languages, Endosmose being applied to the passage of pure water, or of weaker solution, or a solution of other matters, from without, and exosmose to the passage of the water with matter in solution from within. Reasoning from a widely extended analogy, it is thus that the moisture is imbibed, absorbed, or, to speak more guardedly, trans- ferred from without into the interior of the cell. In consideration of this process being the initiative of phenomena of vegetation on which the alleged meteorological efi'ects of forests depend, it may be well to ascertain, as satisfactorily as we can, how it is that what takes place is effected, that we may carry with us a definite conception of this radical operation in our subsequent con- sideration of subsequent operations to which attention must be given. Without entering on the question how matter is held together, I may call attention to three manifestations of the attractive force : that of cohesion, whereby particles of the same substance are held together, as in a piece of wood, a drop of quicksilver, or a drop of water; adhesion, whereby particles of one substance adhere to another substance, as water, treacle, or tar adheres to the finger AND EXOSMOSE. 7 dipped into it, while quicksilver does not ; and chemical afl&nity, whereby particles of one substance attract and enter into combina- tion with particles of another substance with which they may be combined, as in a solution of soda-water powders the tartaric acid attracts the soda from the carbonate of soda and combines with it, leaving the carbonic acid with which it was combined disengaged and free to escape as it does in the effervescence which it occasions. A clear conception of the differences thus indicated will make the process of endosmose and exosmose more intelligible. In the illustra- tions of adhesion which I have given, the attraction of adhesion between the finger and the quicksilver was of less force than the attraction of cohesion by which the particles of matter of which the finger is composed, and than the attraction of cohesion by which the particles of quicksilver are held together, and the finger could be withdrawn unbroken leaving the quicksilver entire. But in the other cases mentioned the attraction of adhesion, though less in force than the cohesion betwixt the particles of matter of which the finger is composed, was greater than that by which the particles composing the water, the treacle, or the tar were held together, and this giving way a portion adhered to the finger. In the endosmose taking place in the case adduced for illustration the adhesion to the bladder of the water in the basin must have been greater in force than the attraction of cohesion by which the particles of water were held together, and the chemical affinity of the saline solution within the bladder for the water greater in force than the attraction of adhesion by which it was held by the bladder. From the moistened tissue of the bladder, water by which it was moistened was attracted by and combined with the saline solution ; this was replaced by more from the basin, which in like manner was with- drawn, and the process went on continuously, producing the pheno- menon of endosmose. The process of exosmose was similarly produced : the force of adhesion between the saline solution and the inside of the bladder was greater than the force of cohesion by which the particles of that solution were held together ; but the chemical affinity of the water in which the bladder was immersed for that saline solution was still greater in force than that adhesion, and thus a portion of the saline solution was withdrawn and combined with the water in the basin. This is not given as a full explanation of all the phenomena of endosmose and exosmose, but as an explanation of the more striking phenomena produced, which is all that is required for the object in 8 RATIONALE OP view. I may add that the explanation given does not render necessary the supposition of two distinct cun-ents flowing in opposite directions and crossing each other, one flowing in unbroken continuity from without inwards, and the other flowing in unbroken continuity from within outwards, either in the same or in different channels. More probable is it that the transference is going on continuously, simultaneously in both directions — a process which may perhaps be made more intelligible by an explanation of what takes place in the decomposition of water by galvanic influence. If a plate of zinc and a plate of copper connected by a wire be kept apart and introduced so into a vessel of water, the water will be decomposed, one of its elements, oxygen, will be disengaged in connection with one of these plates, and hydrogen, the other constituent element, will be dis- engaged at the other ; but there is no appearance of decomposition taking place at any one or more points, and of the elements flowing thence to their respective issues, — and what is actually seen, may be explained by supposing that in immediate contact with one plate, or with each, a particle of water is decomposed by the liberation of one of the constituents which escapes, and the other is transferred from particle to particle, only becoming visible when it escapes in contact with the other plate. The process may be illustrated mechanically by means of a six- inch parallel rule, thus : let the one scale represent oxygen and the other hydrogen ; let perpendicular lines divide them into six equal spaces, which conjointly may represent particles of water composed of oxygen and hydrogen ; let these be numbered, the first couple each marked 1, the second couple 2, and so on ; let the two scales of the ruler next be drawn in opposite dii-ections, and if the spaces marked on them be equal to the distance which each projects beyond the other, you will have again spaces appropriately representing particles of water ; but you will have oxygen No. 1 above hydrogen No. 2, oxygen No. 2 above hydrogen No. 3, and so on ; hydrogen No. 1 and oxygen No. 6 representing what seems to take place in the decomposition of water by that simple galvanic apparatus. As in the decomposition of water by galvanism thus illusti'ated, the escape of the hydrogen of water in contact with one plate, and that of the oxygen of water in contact with the other plate, seem to result from a transference of hydrogen from particle to particle, and simultaneously with this a transference in the opposite direction of oxygen from particle to particle, through the whole line of particles of water intervening between the two plates, — so in the exosmosic ENDOSMOSE. 9 and endosmosic action may the tranference be going on from particle to particle, through the whole tissue of the bladder, without the formation of any distinct currents of the two fluids as they exist. It may be mentioned that the eflfect would be similar if the pure water were put into the bladder, and the solution of salt or sugar into the basin in which the bladder is immersed ; but in this case, in accordance with what has been stated, the exosmose would be in excess of the endosmose, more water would be withdrawn than would be replaced. The difference in the quantity passed by endosmose and exosmose may in both cases be attributed to the difference between the force of the chemical affinity of the saline solution, or the salt in it, for water, and the force of the attraction of adhesion, by which the water is kept attached to the bladder, being greater than the difterence between the force of the chemical affinity of the piu'e water for the saline solution, and the attraction of adhesion by which that solution is attached to the bladder. If the chemical affinity of the saline solution for water be equivalent to 8, and the attraction of adhesion of this solution to the bladder be equivalent to 6, the difference between these is 2. If the adhesion of water to the bladder be equivalent to 1, and the chemical affinity of the pure water for the salt in the solution be equivalent to 1, the difference between these is 1 ; and the endosmose would be to the exosmose as 2 is to 1. Dr Asa Gray, Professor of Natural History in Harvard University, Cambridge, Massachusets, in writing of endosmose and exosmose with a solution of sugar as the subject of experiment remarks, in accordance with what I have stated, — " At the same time, the water in the vessel will become slightly sweet j showing that a small quantity of syrup has passed through the pores of the membrane into the water without, while a much larger portion of water has entered. The water will continue to enter, and a small portion of syrup to leave it, until the solution is reduced to the same strength as the liquid without. If a solution of gum salt, or any other substance, be employed instead of sugar the same result will take place. If the same solution be employed both in the vessel and in the [bladder] no transference or change will be observed. But if either be stronger than the other a circulation will be established, and the stronger solution will increase in quantity until the two obtain the same density. If two different solutions be employed, as, for instance, 10 MOISTURE ABSORBED IN sugar or gum within [the bladder] and potash or soda without, a circulation will in like manner take place, the preponderance being totvards the denser fluid, and in a degree proportionate to the diff"erence in density. Instead of animal membranes, any vegetable matter with fine pores, such as a thin piece of wood, or even a porous mineral substance may be substituted with the same result." All this is in accordance with observations made by Mateucci, an Italian physiologist, who gave very careful consideration and study to the phenomena as produced by experiments with various substances, transferred by endosmose and exosmose through various media, embracing the analogues, or homologues of almost every action of the kind observed in animal physiology ; and many, if not all similar actions observed in vegetable physiology may be accounted for as being thus produced. Thus, apparently, is the moisture absorbed by uni-cellular plants like the Red Snow, and by the cells of which such plants as the Yeast Plant, the Confervse, and the sea-weeds are composed, and by the cells entering into the structure of such plants as grass, and herbs, and bushes, and trees. With the knowledge thus attained, attention may be given to the absorption of water as a concomitant of vegetation. " There is hope of a tree if it be cut down that it will sprout again and that the tender branch thereof will not cease. Though the root thei-eof wax old in the earth, and the stock thereof die in the ground ; yet through the scent of water it will bud and bring forth boughs like a plant." Thus wrote the author of the Book of Job more than three thousand years ago — more than fifteen hundred years before the coming of Christ ! On the other hand, drought is, I shall not say destructive, but, interruptive to vegetation. We need not yet enquire into the function of the moisture in the cell development, we have only to do at present with the two facts adverted to, that the scent of water promotes and revives vegetation, while drought interrupts it. In the case of the most of the lower forms of vegetation which have been cited, the absorption is supposed to take place over all parts of their surface, and in the case of all of these, excepting the Red Snow, they are found growing surrounded with moisture ; and thus the growth of the gigantic sea-weeds is continued by the absorption of moisture by the myriads of cells of which exclusively their covering is composed. But forests consist of trees and not of sea-weeds. And trees are THE PROCESS OF VEGETATION. 11 not algee and confervse, but gigantic plants growing on dry land — land hard and dry as the mountain brow. And to another phase of vegetation promoted by the absorption of moisture attention may now be given. As with algse so with grasses and herbs, and shrubs and trees, their whole structure is built up of cells, some of which may have been elongated into vessels, or otherwise metamorphosed; and the dry dead cell walls of these constitute the pith and the woody fibre of which trees seem chiefly composed. Of some of the vessels through which the milk sap flows it may be that they have been formed otherwise ; but the principal difference between the gigantic tree and the gigantic sea-weed in the source of growth is only this, that while the latter absorbs nutriment over the whole of its surface the former does it mainly by the roots, and almost exclusively by the cells at the extremities of the rootlets, where are masses of them, which have, in reference to this function, received the designation spongioles, or little sponges, resembhng these as they do, not in their structure, indeed, but in their power of absorption. They are often represented in cuts as rounded elongated expansions, but they are not always to be so seen by the enquiring learner; examined micro- scopically, they appear as numerous unprotected living cells at the extremities of the rootlets, of which those furthest from the root to which they belong continue to increase and multiply with rapidity in appropriate soil, while those behind, and nearer to the stem, seem to have lost in a great measure this power of reproduction. It may seem that the absorbing surface bears but a very small pro- portion to the entire bulk of the plant, and I am not concerned to dispute the correctness of the conclusion that proportionally it is small, but what is proportionally small may be absolutely great. Count the rootlets of an onion, or of a leek, or of a stalk of wheat, and estimate if you cannot measure the superficial extent of the spongioles ; calculate if you cannot count, and estimate if you cannot even calculate, the hair-like fibrillaj of the roots and ramified rootlets of a shrub or a tree, and by reasoning try to form some idea of the vastness of the superficies of the spongioles there, and you may find that it is not to be despised. Bear in mind that much of the mass of a growing tree is fixed and stable, — that a small streamlet may have filled and may keep filled an extensive lake, provided only the out- flow do not exceed the supply, — that a very small orifice or mouth, and that used only occasionally for the purpose, may suffice and does suffice for the feeding of a man or other animal, — and any prejudice 12 RISE OF SAP hindering the ready acceptance of the doctrine, that the absorption of moisture by the spongioles of a tree is the homologue of the absorp- tion of moisture by the whole surface of the confervse of the streamlet and of the algse of the sea, will be removed. I have oftener than once made use of the term absorption, but as may have been seen, from the explanation of esosmose and endos- mose which has been given, it is scarcely applicable with propriety to such a process ; but with this caveat I may be allowed to make use of it in lack of some term less exceptionable. It is solely in reference to that process that I here employ it. The water thus absorbed by the several cells composing the spongioles of the root is by a similar process absorbed from them by cells behind them ; and by continuous repetition of it by those beyond the moisture absorbed from the soil is passed on and on, from the extremities of the rootlets to the extremities of the smallest twigs, and to the furthest and the loftiest extremities of the branches of the trunk. There, through the leaves, a part, and that a large portion of it, is given off into the atmosphere, while a part, comparatively a small portion, is returned by the same duplex process of exosmose and endosmose by the same cells, and others, their progeny, towards the root. By the way is deposited, by exosmose, nutriment for the tree, the leaf, the flower, and the fruit; and the residuum is in part deposited by the same process in the leaves, the bark, or the root, and passed off into the soil by the exosmosic action of the cells composing the spongioles of the root. It may now be seen how vegetation may have some effect in increasing the humidity of the atmosphere ; but, as a 'preliminary to the consideration of this, some further attention may be given to the phenomenon of the rising of the sap. The rise of the sap in trees is to many a phenomenon or fact for which they cannot account satisfactorily to themselves ; or, if this they can do, or think they can, they cannot do so in such a way as to cover all the phenomena to the satisfaction of others. The pressure of the atmosphere will not account for what is seen. Capillary attraction has been thought of, but this does not account for a down- ward flow of the sap, which is a part of the phenomenon, and it is a downward as well as an upward flow which has to be accounted for. Experiments have been made with a view to account for the upward flow, the results of which, and perhaps some others, could be BY ENDOSMOSE. 13 accounted for by what was called a vis a tergo, a power or pressure from behind ; but this, like the older aphorism that Nature abhors a vacuum, will not stand examination ; and the elasticity and tension of the wood accounts for all that was seen in the experiment which suggested the phrase vis a tergo, or pressure from behind, though not for all the phenomena connected with the rising of the sap. But in endosmose there may be found a satisfactory mode of accounting for all that is known to take place in connection with the flow of the sap. I do not know a more simple illustration of exosmose and endosmose than that which I have given, but to illustrate more fully the pheno- mena, with a view to the explanation of the rising of the sap, I may give the following : Let a piece of bladder be stretched over the mouth of a funnel and tightly fastened there, and let a tube, if one of glass so much the better, be attached to the orifice of the funnel ; let this funnel, half-filled with a solution of salt, be immersed in water with the tube projecting upwards. The water in the vessel will become slightly saline through the escape, by exosmose through the organic tissue, of a small portion of the solution of salt, but this will be replaced by a much greater quantity of water entering by endos- mose, and so increasing the quantity of water within the funnel and tube, that this will be seen to rise in the tube, until — through the dilution of this, and the loss, by exosmose, of a portion of the substance held in solution — an equilibrium be established between the strength of the solution on the one side and on the other of the separating membrane. But should the tube be insufficient to contain such a quantity as this would render necessary, the surface of the solution will rise till the solution overflows, and it will continue to flow until the equilibrium spoken of be established. This experiment, with its results, makes manifest the difference between endosmose and capillary attraction, depending, as they do, on different actions; and it seems to indicate that the process of endosmose may supply a satisfactory explanation of the rise of the sap in lofty trees, though capillary attraction fails to do so. The phrase capillary attraction is employed to account for the rise of liquids to a considerable height in tubes of small diameter, and through interstices of similar size in solid bodies. If several tubes of different diameters of bore have their lower extremities immersed in water and be held erect, the water will rise in them to different heights and be sustained so elevated. The smaller the bore is the greater will be the height to which the water will rise and at which it will be sustained, hence the derivation of a name from capilla, a 14 CAPILLARY ATTRACTION. hair. In such phenomena the attraction of adhesion may be inferior in force to the attraction of cohesion, or equivalent thereto, but it ia so great as to overcome the attraction of gravitation and to elevate the contained column of water above the level of the mass to which the attraction of gravitation would lower it but for the conteracting influence thus exercised upon it. The quantity of water thus raised is proportional to the area of the surface of adhesion, and to this the attraction is confined ; and thus it comes to pass that capillary attraction cannot raise water till it overflow, as it does in the experi- ment on endosmosic action which has been spoken of, and for which the different action by which endosmose is effected enables us to account. That action has already been explained. If a worsted thread six inches long have two inches at the one end immersed in water filling a basin to within half an inch of the top, and the other end be allowed to hang down outside the vessel, the water may rise in it and after a time begin to drop from the pendant extremity, which it will do more readily if it be thoroughly moistened immediately before ; and this may seem at variance with what I have just said. If, however, we distingnish things which differ, we may see that it is not so. The water may be raised in the capillary interstices of the worsted thread in opposition to the attrac- tion of gravitation to the level of the basin, and it may be onward beyond it ; it may have been attracted a little v?ay on its descent out- side by the same force, but here there came into operation along with this the attractive force of gravitation; as the water was drawn onwards and downwards by capillary attraction, the co-operating force of gravitation would be inci-eased ; and at length the worsted thread without ceasing to act by capillary attraction would become a verit- able syphon, in which the gravity of the water in the longer limb, and the pressure of the atmosphere on the surface of the water in the basin would occasion a continuous flow. I have not said all that might be said in regard to this ; but I have said enough to show that this is diff'erent from the overflow at its upper extremity of a tube filled by endosmose from below, and, con- versely that this is diff'erent from that, leaving it free to indicate that endosmosic action may, as has been said, supply an explanation of the rise of sap in lofty ti'ees, though capillary attraction fails to do so. I have referred to an opinion that the rise of the sap may be attributable to a vis a tergo, and some of my readers may think that in endosmose he has found this vis a tergo, or, at least, a vis a tergo which will explain all ; and to this I would next attend. VIS A. TERGO. 15 The indication of tlie existence of what is called a vis a tergo, and the illustration of its power usually given, is one supplied by an experi- ment devised by Hales to measure, as he thought, the force with which sap ascends in a stem. A tube, bent so as to ascend, descend, and ascend again, had a quantity of mercury introduced into the curvature between the descending and re-ascending portion, and was attached firmly to a stem, the top of which had been cut off. It was fastened on the stem by means of a copper cap which was secured by a lute, and this was covered with a piece of bladder firmly bound above and below the upper and the lower extremities of the cap ; the level of the mercury at the commencement of the experiment was noted, and as the sap rose in the stem, and through the stem into the ascending limb of the tube, which it did, the pressure caused the mercury to sink in the descending limb and rise in the ascending one ; and thus could the pressui*e occasioned by the ascending sap be measured. Brucke, experimenting with such an apparatus, found that in a vine the spring sap, having a specific gravity of TOOOS, raised a column of mercury to the height of 4| inches, and therefore must have created a pressure equal to that of a column of water 195 inches high. In another experiment, sap of specific gravity 1-0009 raised mercury to the height of 17| inches. The force of the pressure in one experiment which was tried was found to be equal to 38 inches of mercury, which Hales states is nearly five times greater than the force of the blood in the crural artery of a horse, and seven times greater than the force of the blood in the same artery of a dog. These statements I accept unhesitatingly. I know not what precautions were adopted against error, and I cannot divest my mind of the impression that the force of the pressure may have been due in some measure to the elasticity of the stem released of the pressure of the portion of the tree cut off. Knowing of no vis a tergo but that of endosmose, I accept the facts as an approximate measurement of that action, and an indication of the rapidity with which it is carried on ; but I do so only provisionally. The impression to which I have referred remains. I have oftener than once cut down a banana plant in vigorous growth, and in a few minutes seen the inner portion half an inch or more above and beyond tlie entire integument, which may have been occasioned by rapid growth ; but in the one case as in the other, in the absence of certain knowledge, I cannot divest myself of the impression that the phenomena may have been to some extent 16 EVAPORATION FROM LEAVES. the result of the elasticity of the stem released of the pressure of the portion cut off; and I claim only to have shown, as yet, how water is taken up by trees from the soil, and that endosmose may supply an explanation of the rising of the sap to the highest twigs, and to the extreme ramifications of the most distended boughs. Exosmose and endosmose are found to take place freely through two tissues, the surfaces of which are contiguous to each other, the double tissue acting much as a homogeneous tissue, thicker than either of them would do ; and in the knowledge of this — the know- ledge of the fact that sap does rise from the rootlet to the stem, the knowledge that capillary attraction cannot explain all the phenomena of the case, the knowledge of the fact that no other vis a tergo has been discovered, and the fact that by endosmose and exosmose all the phenomena of the case are explicable, — it seems not unreasonable to conclude that thus it is that the rise of the sap may be effected. At this stage of our consideration of these phenomena the determi- nation of this is of importance, mainly, in satisfying us that we have not lost sight of the moisture in tracing, or endeavouring to trace, its course from the rootlets to the leaves. It will subsequently again demand our attention. It is the absorption of moisture from the soil and the emission of a large portion of this into the atmosphere with which we have chiefly to do in studying the meteorological effects of forests on the humidity of a climate. It is by the spongioles that it is absorbed, and by the leaves that it is emitted. The transmission of that moisture from the spongioles to the root is, in so far as our present study is concerned, not unimportant, but its importance is only secondary in view of the absorption and emission ; and to the means whereby this passage of moisture from plants by their leaves is effected would I next direct attention. The passage of moisture from plants by their leaves is effected by means of what may be described, in mechanical phrase, as a beautifully simple selfregulating ventilating-evaporating apparatus. The operation of this I would illustrate thus : In the oxalis as in the clover we have a leaf composed of three leaflets. In an oxalis brought from Guatemala the whole leaf is almost transparent, and it is said that six sets of vessels can be distinctly traced — three pairs, one pair proceeding from each leaflet; and it is conjectured that in other plants a similar arrangement exists ; but in most plants it is difficult to separate and distinguish the different sets of vessels. These vessels, with less or more of cellular matter, constitute the STRUCTURE OP STOMATBS. 17 mid-rib and leaf-stalk, and go to form the twig, branch and stem, or triink and root. When the leaf itself is broken across, or cut, it may appear to be as homogeneous as a sheet of paper of the same thickness, with scarcely space sufficient for any more complicated structures; but when examined with a microscope of considerable power it is seen to be composed of a great number of cells piled loosely together, six or eight or even more it may be in depth, with large spaces intervening, and framed by a layer of similar cells, compactly arranged like a brick floor, forming the back of the leaf, and a double or triple layer of cells, similarly compactly arranged like brick-work, two bricks or three bricks thick, forming the face of the leaf. These are compact enough, but those constituting the body of the leaf, filled with sap, are so loosely grouped, apparently without any very determined or strongly marked arrangement, that they only touch each other on parts of their surface, and the air may play freely almost entirely round each and through amongst them all. A simpler arrangement for thorough ventilation perhaps man could scarcely imagine. In the back of the leaf are numerous stomates, or mouths. The structure of these differs in different plants, but what may be con- sidered the typical structure is two elongated cells, resembling a microscopic black pudding or thick sausage, so built into the struc- ture of the skin of the leaf that this will not admit of their being further elongated ; each of these is, along one side, attached to that skin, but on the sides along which they are in contact they are free. When moisture is in excess they become distended, but the structure of the skin of the leaves is such that they cannot be elongated, and they bulge away from each other, leaving a wide opening between them through which the vapour with which the air surrounding the cells in the interior of the leaf is charged finds an open exit. When the pressure is relieved they, having lost some of the moisture or water with which they were filled and distended, collapse to such an extent as to diminish the opening ; and in this way, exactly to the degree required, they vary and regulate that aperture — varying it, it may be, I shall not say twenty times in the day, but, if necessary, twenty times in the minute ; and if drought become such as to render it desirable that every drop of moisture in the plant should be preserved, under the influence of that drought they become flaccid and com- pletely close the aperture. Such is the arrangement, in these galleries of the laboratoj-ies of the 18 SIZE OF CELLS. tree, for carrying off by evaporation all naoisture which may escape from the cells, which may ooze out, or may be passed by exosmosic action j and a little further consideration may lead to the conclusion that the arrangement has been made, not to get rid of accidental leakage, but of all moisture in excess of what is actually required after the sap has been so elaborated as to fit it to minister to the nutriment of the tree. Be this as it may, it is not unreasonable, but the reverse, to suppose that, however compact the tissue or structure of the cell wall may be, there may be, or that there must be, interstices between the molecules of which it is composed. A drop of water falling upon a heap of fine dust, or of powdered rosin, immediately draws around it a water- proof covering of the material amongst which it has fallen, which, though waterproof, is not airproof, and the enclosed waters may be evaporated through the interstices of the investing covering. So may it be with these, though on a scale infiuitesimally reduced. Professor Huxley, in a paper " On the Border Territory between the Animal and Vegetable Kingdoms," which appeared in Macmillan's Magazine for February 1876, citing some remarkable observations on certain monads by Messrs Dalliuger and Drysdale, which were embodied in two papers in the Monthly Microscopical Journal for 1873, speaking of certain granules, living embryos, remarks, — "The authors whom I quote say that they cannot express the excessive minuteness of the granules in question, and they estimate their diameter at less than l-200^000th of an inch. Under the highest powers of the microscope at present applicable such specks are hardly discernible. Nevertheless, particles of this size are massive when compared to physical molecules ; whence there is no reason to doubt that each, small as it is, may have a molecular structure sufficiently complex to give rise to the phenomena of life." Compared with such embryos, cells such as those of which the substance of a leaf is com- pose are giants. In a cubic inch of a leaf of the carnation there are said to be upwards of three millions of cells ; in some of the cucumber tribe, and in the pith of aquatic plants, what are reckoned larger cells are found — they are from l-50th to l-30th of an inch in diameter ; but cells are frequently seen only l-300th, l-500th, and 1-lOOOth of an inch in diameter. It would be difiitiult for many to conceive of the size of a cell 1-lOOOth of an inch in diameter ; but these granules, were not the two hundredth part of that in diameter, and one of these smallest cells, could contain sis millions of the granules in question ! To one conversant with structures so aiinute there is nothing NUMBER OP STOMATES. 19 astonishing in the supposition that molecules of moisture should pass through interstices between the molecules of which the cell walls are constructed ; and, with what is known of endosmosic and exosmosic action, it seems to be not unreasonable to suppose that any moisture passing through the cell wall from within outwards might, by the increased density following the evaporation of a portion of it, deter- mine a current to follow it which would flow continuously. To the consideration of what function of the leaf is thus subserved we shall afterwards return : it is with the arrangement for the passage into the atmosphere of moisture taken up by the spongioles with which alone we are at present concerned. Of the extent of the provision made for this evaporation some idea may be formed from a consideration of the number of the stomata or sto mates to be found in the leaves of plants, often symmetrically disposed. The number varies in different plants, for which variation a reason may be found in the different conditions of growth to which they are subjected in their several natural habitats. In the back of the leaf of the apple tree there are about twenty-four thousand stomates to the square inch. In the leaf of the lilac there are a hundred and sixty thousand of them to the square inch. Sixty thousand have been reckoned in a square inch of the under surface of the white lily and three thousand in a square inch of the upper surface. In the leaves of the cherry-laurel there are none on the upper surface of the leaf, but ninety thousand have been counted on the lower surface of the leaf. In the true lilies they are so large that they may be seen with the aid of a simple lens of an inch focus. In the water lilies, and other plants having leaves which float upon water, all the stomates are on the upper surface, where alone evaporation can take place. Leaves of plants which grow entirely under water, where there can be no evaporation, have none. The mechanism of the opening and shutting of stomates has been carefully investigated by Mohl, a distinguished German botanist, the results are given in the Botanische Zeitung for 1866, p. 697 ; and it appears that, while the general action is such as I have described, other processes co-operate to ensure the result. It is partly controlled by the effects of light, though depending mainly upon endosmose. Mohl has shown that while the cells of the stomate themselves act so as to open the stomate in moist weather and close it in dry, the 20 PHENOMENA OP VEGETATION. adjacent cells of the epidermis, or skin enveloping the leaf, in swelling when moist, tend to close the stomate, and their contraction when dry to open it ; so that the actual state of the stomate at any one time is the resultant of nicely adjusted opposing forces, and thus is secured a self-regulation of the apparatus far more efficient than could be secured in any laboratory of man, though an attendant were stationed, hydrometer in hand, ready to close partially or entirely, or to reverse such action in the ventilators of the evaporating chambers exactly in regard to time and extent as the ever-varying state of the process of evaporation in the chamber and state of the atmosphere might render desirable. But furthei-, it is possible that in some cases, under peculiar conditions or circumstances, it might happen that more moisture might be evaporated than was conducive to the vigorous vitality of the plant — in other words, the process of evaporation might go too far — and we find that provision against this exists in many leaves, in the existence of hairs which by endusmosic action can imbibe additional moisture. These hairs are always more numerous on the back of the leaf than on the face, which in some plants is entirely devoid of them, though the back be densely covered with them ; and they may be found in 8ome plants to be always at the junction of veins in the back of the leaf, as if designed only to act when it should become manifest that sui'plus water which might happen to be retained in one of these would not suffice to counteract a deficiency in the other. Such is the beautifully-simple self-regulating ventilatiug-evaporating apparatus in the leaf of a plant. In the absorption of moisture by the spongioles of the rootlets, the ascent of the sap, and the evaporation of excess of moisture after the elaboration of the milk sap, we see some of the principal phenomena of vegetation on which meteorological effects of forests depend. CHAPTEU II. On the Quantity of Moisture Evaporated through the Stomates OP Leaves. On results obtained by observation and calculation in regard to the quantity of moisture evaporated through the stomates of leaves a considerable difference of opinion exists. Eemarking on the results arrived at by observations of Schleiden, Pfaff, and others, Marsh says, — " Allowing two hundred days for the period of forest vital action, the wood must, according to Schleiden's position, exhale a quantity of moisture equal to an inch and one-fifth of precipitation per day ; and it is hardly conceivable that so large a volume of aqueous vapour, in addition to the supply from other sources, could be diffused through the ambient atmosphere without manifesting its presence by ordinary hygrometrical tests much more energetically than it has been proved to do ; and in fact the observa- tions recorded by Ebermeyer show that though the relative humidity of the atmosphere is considerably greater in the cooler atmosphere of the wood, its absolute humidity does not sensibly differ from that of the air in open ground. The daily discharge of a quantity of aqueous vapour corresponding to a rainfall of one inch and a fifth into the cool air of the forest would produce a perpetual shower, or at least a drizzle, unless, indeed, we suppose a rapidity of absorption and condensation by the ground, and of transmission through the soil to the rootlets and through them and the vessels of the tree to the leaves, greater than have beea shown by direct observation." Cezanne, also, writing in regard to the action of vegetables as "veritable alembics, which distil into the air a certain quantity of water which their roots have drawn up from the soil," says, — " The Marshal Vaillaut put a branch of an oak like a bouquet into a vase full of water ; he measured the water lost through its leaves and he considered himself enabled to conclude that the tree from which this branch had been detached would be emitting into the atmosphere in twenty-four hours upwards of two thousand kilogrammes of water.* * " Revue des Eaux et Forets," July 1865 and June 1867. 22 PHENOMENA OF VEGETATION. But this experiment has not satisfied all others. First of all, the branch thus treated died in three days ; and then, even if it had lived longer, it might have been said that the vegetable cut off from the nourishing sap may have been able to absorb more than its usual ration of clear water. It was in the situation of an animal deprived of substantial aliment, which availed itself of pots of weak bouillon, and yet died of hunger. And, moreover, the experiment has been repeated not with a branch but with a young tree deprived of its roots, and the evaporation proved to be very insignificant." But whatever may be said of such experiments, and of calculations founded on them, we have other means of testing the quantities of water passing through trees in the process of their growth ; and we find they must be far from inconsiderable. I have cited one state- ment by Marsh, with this I cite also the following : — "The amount of sap which can be withdrawn from living trees furnishes, not, indeed, a measure of the quantity of water sucked up by the roots from the ground — for we cannot extract from a ti-ee its whole moisture — but it supplies numerical data which may aid the imagination to form a genei-al notion of the powerful action of the forest as an absorbent of humidity from the earth. " The only forest tree, known to Europe and North America, the sap of which is largely enough applied to economical uses to have made the amount of its flow a matter of practical importance and popular observation, is the sugar maple, -4cer saccharinum of Anglo- American Provinces and States. In the course of a single * sugar season,' which lasts ordinarily from twenty-five to thirty days, a sugar maple, two feet in diameter, will yield not less than twenty gallons of sap, and sometimes much more. This, however, is but a trifling proportion of the water abstracted from the earth by the roots during this season ; for all the fluid runs from two or three incisions or augur holes, so narrow as to intercept the current of circulation of comparatively few of the sap vessels, and, besides, experience shows that large as is the quantity withdrawn from the circulation, it is relatively too small to afi'ect very sensibly the growth of the tree. The number of large maple trees on an acre is frequently not less than fifty, and, of course, the quantity of moisture abstracted from the soil is measured by thousands of gallons to the acre. The sugar orchards, as they are called, contain also many young maples too small for tapping, and numerous other trees — two of which, at least, the Black Birch, Betula lenta, and Yellow Birch, Betula exeelsa, both very common in the same climate and far more abundant in sap than the EVAPORATION. 55^ maple — are scattered among the sugar trees ; for the North American native forests are remarkable for the mixture of their crops. " The sap of the maple and of other trees with deciduous leaves, which grow in the same climate, flows more freely in the early spring, and especially in clear weather, when the nights are frosty and the days warm ; for it is then that the melting snows supply the earth with moisture in the justest proportion, and that the absorbent power of the roots is stimulated to its highest activity." In foot notes he adds : — " Emersou (iu his Trees of Massachicssets, p. 493), mentions a maple, six feet in diameter, as having yielded a barrel, or 31| gallons of sap in 24 hours, and another, the dimensions of which are not stated, as having yielded one hundred and seventy- five gallons in the course of the season. Tbe Cultivator, an American Agricultural Journal, for June 1842, states that twenty gallons of sap were drained in eighteen hours from a single maple, two and a-half feet in diameter, in the town of Warner, New Hampshire ; and the truth of this account has been verified by personal enquiry made on my behalf. This tree was of the original forest growth, and had been left standing when the ground around it was cleared. It was tapped only every other year, and then with six or eight incisions. Dr Williams (History of Vermont, p. 91), says, — * A man much employed in making maple sugar, found that, for twenty-one days together, a maple tree discharged 7|^ gallons per day.' " An intelligent correspondent, of much experience in the manufac- ture of maple sugar, writes me that a second growth maple, of about two feet in diameter, standing in open ground, tapped with four incisions, has for several seasons generally run eight gallons per day in fair weather. He speaks of a very large tree from which sixty gallons were drawn in the course of a season, and of another, some- what more than three feet through, which made 42R) of wet sugar, and must have yielded not less than 150 gallons. " The same correspondent informs me that a Black Birch, tapped about noon with two incisions, was found the next morning to have yielded sixteen gallons. Dr Williams (History of Vermont, I. p. 91) says, — * A large birch, tapped in the spring, ran at the rate of five gallons an hour when first tapped. Eight or nine days after, it was found to run at the rate of about two and a-half gallons an hour, and at the end of fifteen days the discharge continued iu nearly the same quantity. The sap continued to flow for four or five weeks, and it was the opinion of the observers that it must have yielded as much as sixty barrels [1890 gallons]." 24 PHENOMENA OP VEGETATION. These observations may give some idea of the quantity of moistnre taken up by the rootlets of trees. Such is a report of facts ascertained in regard to the maple. It does not follow that an equal quantity of moisture is raised by every kind of tree ; but it may be said a corresponding quantity is, by every one, or a quantity which may be spoken of as something like an approximation to this. And though the ftict has not, so far as I know, been tested by exact observation, it is probable that the greater portion of the moisture thus raised from the ground by plants, whether arborescent or herbaceous, is by many of them passed into the attrosphere by the stomates of the leaves— succulent plants with few Btomates being the exception — and that a portion, and it may be a large portion, of the remainder passes into the soil by the process of exosmose by which the circulation of sap in the plant is effected, but returns to the soil only to be again taken up by the rootlets of the same, or of some other plant, when it has been relieved of some of the residuary matter with which it returned charged, and has taken up a return load of nutriment ; but the probability that the quantity thus returned to the soil bears but a small proportion to the quantity passed into the atmosphere may be demonstrated by an observation of the process referred to. To some one charged with the watering of flowers, and who finds the charge a burden, it may have occurred that he seemed to have to supply far more water than could be employed in the structure of the plant, that some, such as the balsam, seemed to require a fresh supply morning, noon and night to keep them growing, and that to planted cuttings and transplanted plants he could scarcely give too copious a supply, and unless he had trimmed them by removing some of the leaves scarcely would what he gave have sufficed : now perhaps it may be understood why all this was necessaiy, and how the diminu- tion of the foliage helped the growth of the plant when the supply of moisture might otherwise have been inadequate to its maintenance in life. CHAPTER III. Disputed and Secondary Phenomena op Vegetation. Besides the phenomena of vegetation which have been detailed there are other alleged phenomena, the import of which is more open to question : amongst these may be reckoned the absorption of mois- ture by the leaves of plants, the production of water by the plants themselves, and the dropping of water from the leaves of certain trees. Sect. I. — On the Absorption of Moisture by the Leaves of Plants. It is a prevalent opinion that moisture is absorbed by plants by their leaves. I scarcely open a popular treatise on the subject in which I do not meet with it ; but I have met with no evidence that this is a normal action of leaves, excepting to a very limited and easily defined extent. Abnormal action of leaves absorbing moisture would prove as little as the abnormal absorption of moisture and nutriment into the human frame by enemas and baths; and the absorp- tion of moisture by gigantic algae over the whole surface of their stalks and their fronds proves as little. But this cannot be said of experi- ments which have been made on the growth of epiphytes and of mundane plants, which have grown and flourished when freed of all soil; or of trees growing naturally and at the same time luxuriantly on narrow ridges, on steep declivities, on partially decayed stumps many feet above the ground, on walls of high buildings, and on rocks, in situations where the earth within reach of their roots could not possibly, it is alleged, contain the tenth part of the water which, according to Schleiden and Pfaff, they evaporate in a day. There are, too, forests of great extent on high bluffs and well-drained table- lands where, it is said, " there can exist neither in the subsoil nor in infiltration from neighbouring regions an adequate source of supply for such consumption," These are facts established beyond all question; but in regard to what seems to.be the natural conclusion, that in such cases the mois- 26 PHENOMENA OF VEGETATION. ture must have beeu absorbed by the leaves, I may remark that this appears to me to be a non-sequitur ; aod the burden of proof rests on those by whom it is advanced. In regard to the general opinion that moisture is absorbed by the leaves of trees I may state that I believe this to be the case where leaves are covered more or less densly with hairs, which are highly hygroscopic, and which appear to be organs well fitted for the accom- plishment of such a function, and are often placed as if such were their function in given conditions ; and furthex', that to some extent moisture may have been absorbed by endosmose where a deposit of what may be called a secretion on the surface of the leaf gives some- thing like an indication of this having occurred, but that the effect of this must be small. I have no testimony to the alleged absorption of moisture to an appreciable extent by leaves having been observed ; and on the other hand I have testimony on which I can rely that in South Africa there are fig trees growing on rocks, over which the roots spread like solidified molten lava or rosin, dipping down into every crevice and spreading onward to the earth beyond ; and in the absence of evidence of extensive absorption by leaves I consider it more probable that the moisture is absorbed by such roots than by the leaves of the tree, and the conclusion justified in such cases suggests the conclusion that so may it be in others. Sect. II. — On the Frodicdion of Water by Plants, Amongst trees brought under my consideration in Africa by the late Mr James Chapman — a man of cai'eful observation who travelled extensively throughout the whole region from Walfish Bay to the Victoria Falls of the Zambesi and thither from Natal, traversing in various directions the country intermediate between the region thus indicated and Table Bay at the Cape of Good Hope — was the Kusch6, a large tree with a smooth dark grey-coloured bark and dark-coloured oblong leaves, in the heart of the trunk of many of which is found a large reservoir of water. From the description given to me, the tree appeared to be the Millettia Caffra, known elsewhere in South Africa as the Oomzambeete, or Kaffir Iron wood. Mr Chapman first saw this tree when he and his companions were suffering from thirst. Observing one of his native servants placing forked boughs against a tree and preparing to climb, he asked what he was going to do. " Look for water," was the reply. The man APPARENT PRODUCTION OF WATER. 27 having mounted, cried " Here it is." The hard -wood had decayed, leaving a very deep hole, which was almost closed at the top, apparently by the spreading arch of subsequently formed bark. One of the companions of the man cutting then a twig or shoot from the root, cut through the bark of this at two places two feet or thirty inches apart, treated this as boys in Europe treat branches of alder, of which they wish to make whistles, beating and pressing it ; and drawing out the wood, like drawing a sword fi'om its sheath, he handed up the bark to the man aloft, who, using this as a suction- pipe, soon quenched his thirst, and made way for the others iu succession to do the same. Frequently did Mr Chapman while travelling avail himself of the supply of water thus retained. Between the Victoria Falls of the Zambesi and Daka these trees are found in clusters, sometimes 10 feet in circumference, and of a much greater height than the other trees of the forest-country around. They generally grow in clumps, in the higher portions of the country. Similar supplies of water are found in the Pitcher Plant, and several other herbaceous plants of somewhat similar structure ; and in the Teazel, the Dipsacus fullonum, a quantity of water is often found in the cup-like receptacle formed by the opposite leaves embracing the stem. In more than one of these cases the water may possibly be only rain-water collected and retained, and in the other cases it may be elaborated sap, the water of which was derived from the soil ; but even were such cases thus disposed of, the question has been raised and awaits' an answer — May not water be a secretion of plants themselves ? I have intimated or stated explicitly what are my views in regard to the source of the great bulk of the moisture passed into the atmos- phere by the stomates in the leaves of vegetable production ; but I know of nothing incompatible with the supposition of a portion being added from the combination of oxygen and hydrogen, meetino- in a nascent condition in the process of chemical changes accompanying vegetation. Water is a product of the combustion of wood, and of coal, of oil of tallow, and of gas ; it is a product of respiration in man and many other animals, and may be obtained deposited by their breath ; and there are lower forms of animals by which it is produced, and that 28 PHENOMENA OP VEGETATION. in proportion to their size, much more abundantly. The question, Whence is this obtained 1 has been raised oftener than once. Dr Livingstone, in describing a severe and long-continued drough:| at Kolobeng (the mission station occupied by him before he entered on his journeyings in the interior), a drought during which " needles lying out of doors for months did not rust, and a mixture of sulphuric acid and water, used in a galvanic battery, parted with all its water to the air instead of imbibing more from it, as it would have done in England," says, — " The leaves of indigenous trees were all drooping, soft and shrivelled, though not dead; and those of the Mimosse were closed at mid-day, the same as they are at night. In the midst of this dreary drought, it was wonderful to see those tiny creatures the ants running about with their accustomed vivacity. I put the bulb of a thermometer 3 inches under the soil in the sun at mid-day, and found the mercury to stand at 132'^ and 134°; and if certain kinds of beetles were placed on the surface they ran about a few seconds and then expired ; but this boiling heat only augmented the activity of the long-legged black ants." And having raised the question, "Where do these ants get their moisture?" he proceeds, — "Our house was built on a hard ferruginous conglomerate, in order to be out of the way of the white ant, but they came in despite the precaution ; and not only were they, in this sultry weather, able individually to moisten soil to the consistency of matter for the formation of galleries, which in their way of working is done by night (so that they are screened from the observation of birds by day in passing and repassing towards any vegetable matter they may wish to devour), but when their inner chambers were laid open these were also surprisingly humid ; yet there was no dew, and the house being placed on a rock they could have no subterranean passage to the bed of the river, which ran about 300 yards below the brow of the hill. Can it be that they have the power of combining the oxygen and hydrogen of their vegetable food by vital force so as to form water f A still more remarkable case is mentioned by Dr Livingstone. Writing from Golungo Alto Angola, on the west coast, lat. 91° S., he says, — " Before leaving I had an opportunity of observing a curious insect which inhabits trees of the fig family (Ficusj, upwards of twenty species of which are found here. Seven or eight of them cluster round a spot on one of the smaller branches and there keep up a constant distillation of a clear fluid, which, dropping to the ground, forms a little puddle below. If a vessel is placed under them in the evening it contains three or four pints of fluid in the APPARENT PRODUCTION OP WATER, 29 morning. . . To the question, Whence is this fluid derived ? the people reply that the insects suck it out of the tree, and our ovm naturalists give the same answer. I have never seen an orifice, and it is scarcely possible that the tree can yield so much. A similar, but much smaller homopterist insect, of the family Cercojndce, is known in England as the frog-hopper (Aphrophora spmnaria) when full- grown and furnished with wings ; but while yet in the pupa state it is called ' Cuckoo-spit,' from the mass of froth in which it envelopes itself. The circulation of sap in our climate, especially in the GraminacesB, is not quick enough to yield much moisture. The African species is five or six times the size of the English. In the case of branches of the fig-tree, the point the insects congregate on is soon marked by a number of incipient roots, such as are thown out when a cutting is inserted in the ground for the purpose of starting another tree. I believe that both the English and African insects belong to the same family and differ only in size, and that the chief part of the moisture is derived from the atmosphere. I leave it for naturalists to explain how those little creatures distil, both by night and day, as much water as they please, and are more independent than Her Majesty's steam- ships, with their apparatus for condensing steam, for without coal their abundant supplies of sea water are of no avail. I tried the following experiment : — Finding a colony of these insects busily distilling on a branch of the Ricimis communis, or castor-oil plant, I denuded about 20 inches of the bark, on the tree side of the insects, and scraped away the inner bark so as to destroy all the ascending vessels. I also cut a hole in the side of the branch, reaching to the middle, and then cut out the pith and internal vessels. The distillation was then going on at the rate of one drop each 67 seconds, or about 2 ounces 5| drams in 24 hours. Next morning the distillation, so far from being affected by the attempt to stop the supplies, supposing they had come up through the branch from the tree, was increased to a drop every 5 seconds, or 12 drops per minute, making one pint (16 ounces) in every 24 hours. I then cut the branch so much that during the day it broke ; but they still went on at the rate of a drop every five seconds, while another colony on a branch of the same tree gave a drop every 17 seconds only, or at the rate of about 10 ounces 44 drams in 24 hours. " I finally cut off the branch ; but this was too much for their patience, for they immediately decamped, as insects will do from either a dead branch or a dead animal, which Indian hunters soon know when they sit down on a recently killed bear. The presence 30 PHBXOMEN& OP VEGETATION, of greater moisture in the air increased the power of these distillers ; the period of greatest activity was in the morning, when the air and everything else was charged with dew. " Having but one day left for experiment I found again that another colony on a branch denuded in the same way yielded a drop every two seconds, or 4 pints 10 ounces every 24 hours, while a colony on a branch untouched yielded a drop every 11 seconds, or 16 ounces 2~^ drams in 24 hours. I regretted somewhat the want of time to institute another experiment, namely, to cut a branch and place it in water, so as to keep it in life, and then observe if there were any diminution of the quantity of water in the vessel. This alone was wanting to make it certain that they draw water from the atmos- phere. I imagine that they have some power of which we are not aware besides that nervous influence which causes constant motion to our own involuntary muscles, the power of life-long action witliout fatigue. The reader will remember, in connection with this insect, the case of the ants already mentioned." The same question is taken up by Sir J. E, Tennant, in writing of what he had observed at Ceylon. " Entomologists," says he, " have raised the intei-esting question. Where do the termites, or so called white ants — though of another genus than the common ant — where do they derive the large sup- plies of moisture with which they not only temper the clay for the construction of their long-covered ways above ground, but for keeping their passages uniformly damp and cool below the surface ? Yet their habits in this particular are unvarying — in the seasons of drought as well as after rain, in the dryest and least promising positions, in situations inaccessible to drainage from above, and cut off by rocks and impervious strata from the springs below. Dr Livingstone, struck with this phenomena in Southern Africa, asks — Can the white ants possess the power of combining the oxygen and hydrogen of their vegetable food so as to form water] And he describes at Angola an insect resembling the Aphrophora spumaria, seven or eight individuals of which distil several pints of water every night. It is highly probable that the termites are endowed with some such fiiculty. Nor is it more remarkable that an insect should combine the gases of its food to produce water, than that a fish should decompose water to provide itself with gas. Fourcroix found the contents of the air-bladder in a carp to be ^)?«re nitrogen ; and the aquatic larvse of the dragon-fly extracts air for its respiration, from the water in which it is submerged. A similar mystery per- DROPPING f ROM LEAVES. 31 yades the enquiry — ^Whence plants, under peculiar circumstances, derive the water essential to vegetation V The constituents of water are oxygen and hydrogen ; the con") *stituent8 of ammonia are hydrogen and nitrogen ; the constituents of carbonic acid are carbon and oxygen ; and the principal constituent of atmospheric air are nitrogen and oxygen ; with these is combined or intermixed carbonic acid ; carbonic acid and ammonia are likely to be absorbed largely by water, and so carried into the plant ; carbon is fixed, being the principal constituent of wood, and thus oxygen is set free; a smaller quantity of nitrogen is fixed, but enough to indicate a decomposition of ammonia to have taken place ; and it is not un- reasonable to suppose that all the ammonia taken up by the plant may have been decomposed, the nitrogen combining with oxygen, set free by the decomposition of the carbonic acid yielding material for the woody structure, and appearing as atmospheric air, and the hydrogen combining with oxygen and forming water. With legard to the second statement by Dr Livingstone, I would require to be in possession of much more information than I am to enable me to form an opinion on the subject ; but I may state that I find nothing in the narrative incompatible with the supposition of the moisture in this case having been obtained from the tree ; and I avail myself of the interest which such a narrative may have excited to direct attention to the similar copious supplies of moisture flowing from leaves and from incisions in the trunks of trees. Sect. III. — On the Dropping of Water from the Leaves of certain Trees. Qi the dropping of water from trees there are numerous instances ; but while in some of the more remarkable cases the popular opinion is in favour of the supposition that this was one of the primary phenomena of their growth, the consideration of the conditions under which it occurs leads to the conclusion that it is one of the secondary effects of vegetation. I have spoken of some of the more remarkable cases. In an old work, entitled Historia de la Conqicista de las siete islas de Gran Canaria de Juan de Abreu Gal indi, published in 1832, at page 47, mention is made of a celebrated laurel, in Ferro, which is said to have furnished drinkable water to the inhabitants of the island. According to the statement, every morning the sea breeze drove a cloud towards the wonderful tree, which attracted it to its huge top, 32 PHENOMENA OF VEGETATION. and the water flowing from its foliage uninterruptedly, drop by drop, was collected in cisterns. I have met with a similar account of a tree to the east of Tocat in Asia-Minor, visited by the Rev. Mr Van Lennep, and described by him. Mr Lennep is said to be well-known as a competent observer, ' In the case mentioned first there is the explicit statement that " Every morning the sea breeze drove a cloud towards the wonderful tree." And there is nothing in any of the statements I have seen relative to these phenomena inconsistent with the supposition that they may have been produced by the deposition of moisture on the surface of the leaves, irrespective of the source whence the moisture was obtained. Dr Wells, in an essay on Dew, — a little work which, according to Sir John Herschel, deserves to be considered as a model of experi- mental enquiry, — was the iirst to place in a clear light the nature of the process of dew formation. According to his views, as epitomised by Sir John Herschel, " The chief facts to be accounted for are these : 1. Dew (as distinguished from small rain or moisture produced by visible fog) is never deposited except on a surface colder than the aii". 2. It is never deposited in cloudy weather ; and so strict is its con- nection with a clear sky that its deposition is immediately suspended whenever any considerable cloud passes the zenith of the place of observation. 3. It is never copiously deposited in a place screened or sheltered from a clear vieio of the sky, even if the screen be of very thin material, such as muslin or paper suspended over it. 4. It is most copiously deposited on all such leaves as are good radiants and had conductors of heat, such as grass, paper, glass, wood, &c., but little or not at all on had radiants, such as polished metals, which are also good conductors. And lastly, it is never deposited if there is much wind. All these circumstances, as Dr Wells has shown, point to the escape of heat from the bodies exposed by radiatio7i out into space, or into the upper and colder regions of the air, faster than it can be restored by counter-radiation, or by conduction, from contact with the warm air — or with solid substances — the wind acting in this respect with great efficiency by continually removing the air in con- tact. Hoar frost differs only from dew by being frozen in the moment of deposition, and therefore accreting in crystalline spiculse." It may have been observed that tufts of grass and other herbage are often covered with dew-drops in the early morning, or with hoar frost if it be winter, though the ground be not so ; and it may have been observed that heavy drops of water fall from a tree in a fog DROPPING FROM LEAVES, 33 though not a drop of rain may be seen to fall beyond it. The phenomena may be similai'. The temperature of the humau body, as ascertained by a thermo- meter with its bulb placed in the shoulder-pit or under the tongue, is within a very limited range — when the man is in a state of health^ the same in the Arctic regions and in the tropics, and the degree known as blood-heat is as stable as is the boiling point of water. Scarcely less stable is the fi'eezing point of water or the freezing point of mercury. It is something similar with trees. According to experiments made by Meguscher, in Lombardy, and results of these recorded in Memoria sicr Boschi della Lomhardia, and cited by Marsh, trees maintain at all seasons a constant mean temperature of 54° Fahr. Observations which have been recorded by others have made it appear questionable whether a tree does resist the cooling process induced by external cold, but I know not of any question having been raised in regard to its counteracting the effects of external heat of a higher temperature than its own. This seems to be generally admitted. In the animal this resistance is effected by evaporation; in the vegetable it is probable it is effected by the same means, or by evaporation and radiation combined. The subject will again come under consideration, when it may be discussed at greater length. I have called attention to the dew and hoar-frost being seen on the grass and herbage at early morn. In hygrometry mention is frequently made of the dew-point : this is the temperature at which the air is exactly saturated with the quantity of moisture it contains, any fall from which would occasion a deposit of all that was in excess of what exactly saturates the air at the lower temperature. In accordance with observation, and with reasoning on the subject, the dew-point is frequently the same as the lowest temperature of the night j and the lower temperature of the grass and herbage, con- sequent on radiation from their surface, occasions a deposit of dew- drops in the same way as a glass of cold water, by lowering the temperature of the air adjacent to it, is in like manner bedewed. According to the observations of Meguscher, whenever the temper, ature of the air is above 67° degrees Fahr., the temperature of the tree will be, to the extent of the excess, lower. If the temperature of the atmosphere be 90°, and the dew-point 75°, there will be a copious deposit of dew ; and if the lower temperature be the consequence of radiation the deposit may be expected to take place over the whole of the upper sui-face of the leaves, these in the aggregate, according to 34 PHENOMENA OF VEGETATION. the statement of Humboldt, measuring several thousand times the area of the ground they cover. And there should be as little to startle one in finding dew-drops falling from a tree while the sky is cloudless and serene, as in finding melted hoar-frost dropping when the sun has arisen upon the tree in winter. But in the case of the laurel at Ferro it is expressly stated, " every morning the sea breeze drove a cloud towards the wonderful tree, which attracted it to its huge top." Such were the phenomena, and the explanation which suggests itself is more simple. In regard to fog or mist — and a cloud is only a form of this — Sir John Herscheh in the treatise from which I have already quoted, says, — " The form in which the moisture so precipitated first appears will necessarily be that of very minutely-divided particles, which, however, having the refractive power of water, reflect and refract light as such, and appear therefore as a mist, fog, or cloud of greater or less density and opacity, according to the amount precipitated in a given volume. It is a favourite dogma with many meteorologists that the particles so pre- cipitated assume the form, not of drops, but of hollow spheres or bubbles. De Saussure states that he has seen such, floating before his eyes in clouds and fogs on the Alps, and the dusty appearance of the vapour floating over a cup of cofi'ee in the sunshine is adduced in illustration. The strongest argument adduced in their favour, however (for there is great room for optical illusion in such matters), is that adduced by Kratzenstein, that the sun striking on a cloud or fog produced no rainbow, which it ought to do were the water collected in spherical drops. This argument does not admit of a ready answer ; but the difficulty, on the other hand, of conceiving any possible mode in which such bubbles can be formed disposes us to believe that the extreme minuteness of the globules may be found to afford one, their diameter being of an order comparable with the breadth of the luminiferous undulation." Thus wrote Herschel in the article in the Encyclopaedia. To the second edition of the article, published as a volume in 1861, he added in one foot-note that he had never himself seen such a phenomenon as was spoken of by Saussure, and that he had questioned Alpine excursion- ists of far more extensive experience than his own, with a like negative reply. And in a second foot-note he says, — " On the Newtonian doctrine of fits of easy transmission and reflection, or (which comes to the same thing) on the hypothesis of light consisting in rotating cor- puscles with attractive and repulsive poles, there would be no difficulty of the kind [mentioned in the text]. A globule, or a particle of water DROPPING FROM LEAVES. 35 of any other form, whose greatest linear diameter did not exceed the thickness of that central spot in a soap bubble which reflects no light, would be equally non-reflective, and therefore incapable of forming a rainbow. In the undulating theoiy, however, it is the parallelism of the surfaces of the film of which that central spot consists which renders it non-reflective. I suspect, however, that in the case con- templated in the text that theory, carefully re-examined, would render a somewhat difi'erent account of the singular abruptness of transition from the most brilliant reflexion to an almost absolute extinction of the reflected ray, and of the uniformity over large areas of a thin film of the still remaining fraction of the incident light which it does reflect, than that usually given." Of the undulatory theory of light I shall have occasion, in a sub- sequent part, to treat at some length. Whatever may be the form of the cloud particles, be they drops or bubbles, they are in the cloud or mist so far apart — and are kept apart by conflicting attractions, exercised by all upon each and by each upon all — that it is long before multitudes coalesce to form rain- drops, and a slight rise of temperature may lead to their being again absorbed by the air without their falling to the ground; but the particles deposited on the leaves, brought into closer proximity, and in many cases contact, rush into each other like drops of quick-silver, and the attraction towards the earth becoming greater than the attraction of adhesion they fall from the leaf to the ground. And thus may the dropping reported have been occasioned. In passing through a fog the moisture collects like dew-drops on the hair, the whiskers, the eye-brows, and even on the eye-lashes, and on every projecting filament of wool in the clothes ; and so is it also with the cloud or mist surrounding a tree, or borne through the interstices of its twigs by the wind, the minute drops collect upon its leaves. And I presume the fact has only to be mentioned to recall to some of my readers that in a mist they have seen heavy drops falling from foliage while there was no rain. I find some pertinent observations on this point in a work entitled "The Climate and Resources of Madeira," by Dr Graham, a work- which I shall afterwards again have occasion to quote. The author remarks, — "The power of trees upon mist is very great. Where there are no trees, the cloud drives along, depositing little or no moisture. But trees largely intercept mist ; and the small component vesicles of water coalesce upon the leaves and branches, and fall in drops of water upon the earth. The mists form, whether there be 36 PHENOMENA OF VEGETATION. trees or not ; but the water is strained out and saved by the forest foliage." He says, " I have watched with much interest for the com- mencement of dripping, in reference to the pre-eminence of certain kinds of foliage in powers of condensation. The pine trees invariably begin first, the rough brush-like clusters of leaves being well adapted to intercept the smallest particles of moisture. The yield of water from this source is very great. The laurels extract water plentifully from mists which are more sensibly damp." Dr Graham further states that, — " In one of the Canary Islands, the people show the place where, at the head of a deep valley, stood a fine solitary til tree, which daily used to strain a large quantity of water from the humid mist, conveyed inland by the sea breeze. The tree is mentioned by Cordeyro and subsequent writers. But both the spring of water and the tree are now gone ; and the mists, though they still remain, pass over unstrained of their moisture." The difference noted by Dr Graham in the effect of different kinds of trees may be attributed in some cases — in others if not in those mentioned by him — in some measure. First, to differences in the number of stomates through which the evaporation from the leaves of the tree itself is effected. These vary in different plants from a few to 160,000 or more in the square inch of surface. The number in the leaves of the cherry-laurel is 90,000 in every square inch on the back of the leaf. In such state of atmosphere as is specified by Dr Graham, every stomate would probably be distended, an atmos- phere of dense moisture would surround the tree and this precipitated by a fall of temperature might in part create the supply. The difference may be attributable, in some measure, Secondly, to diff'erences in the extent of the radiating surface, supplied by the leaves, whereby the temperature might be effected. This is much greater in the foliage of a pine tree than in the herbage of a laurel. And the difference between the eff"ect produced by the laurel and other trees may be attributable, in some measure, to diff'erence in the attraction of adhesion between water and the leaf. From the glossy surface of the laurel leaf the moisture deposited might run off" quickly, while to the leaves of other trees it might cleave, as if loathe to shake itself free, and adhere till again evaporated, or till it fell in drops undistinguishable from the rain, when this began to drizzle. In all such cases as have been mentioned, whether fog be visible or it be otherwise, the precipitation and consequent dripping is attributable to the temperature of the atmosphere surrounding the tree being below the dew-point, and the moisture contained in it DEOPPING FROM LEAVES. 37 there being in excess of what saturates it, in accordance with the elements by which that dew-point is determined. These are ascer- tained by observation of the difference of temperature indicated by a wet and a dry bulbed thermometer, of the barometric pressure, and of the elastic force of the vapour at the temperatures, and under such pressure. The elements are numerous, but the formula of calculation simple, and copious tables for facilitating this have been published. In regard to the eflfects of different trees, I find it stated by a writer on the subject, in " The Farmers' Magazine," Mr Cuthbert W. Johnstone, that " the dew under some large oak trees, by the side of his bowling green, at Croydon, is always considerable of an evening ; but that under a witch-elm growing by Iheir side the dew ia almost always absent." In Europe, generally, it has been found that the most copious humidity or moisture has been produced by the elm, and, in decreasing order, by the poplar and horse-chestnut, while the least effect is produced by firs. PART II. Effects op Forests on the Humidity of the Climate. Chap. I. — Immediate Effects of Forests on the Humidity of the Atmosphere. There is a wide-spread opinion that forests attract clouds and rain, and a similar effect is attributed to mountains. The facts which have been adduced may enable us satisfactorily to account for the pheno- mena upon which the former opinion is founded ; and with the explanation thus supplied we may be enabled also satisfactorily to account for the latter. The phenomena referred to may be stated generally to be these : forests and mountains are frequently seen surmounted by clouds, stationary or passing over them, when few or none are seen elsewhere in the heavens ; and, though it may be an unwai'rantable conclusion that they have been attracted thither, it does not excite surprise that this conclusion has been drawn from the phenomena observed. In the case of forests we know, however, of no kind of attraction exercised by them which could produce this effect ; the effect can be accounted for satisfactorily in accordance with the phenomena of vegetation which have been under consider- ation ; and in these circumstances it is reasonable to conclude that these supply the correct rationale of what is seen. Of this a simple exposition can be given, and one not less simple can be given of the similar phenomena in the case of the mountains ; and the exposition of the former supplies at the same time the means of accounting for the proverbial dampness of houses overshadowed by trees, or situated in close proximity to woods. The meteorological effects of trees and forests may be apparently paradoxical, and accounts of them conflicting and contradictoiy ; but if instead of acting on the principle of cutting the knot we act on the principle of unloosing it we may find that all facts observed and reported are consistent with each other, and that many of them can be accounted for satisfactorily in accordance with what is known of operations patent to all. If, instead of attempting the reconciliation DAMPNESS NEAR WOODS. 39 «f conflicting theories, we study the facts separately and apart^ we may find that, when all is done, there are no conflicting views to reconcile ; and this I shall endeavour to do, stopping at any point when lack of information renders further advance hazardous. Shot. I. — On the H^imidity of the Atmosphere in the Vicinity of Trees, indicated by the Dampness of Houses overshadotved by Trees, or situated in close proximity to a Wood. It is matter of common observation that houses closely surrounded with trees are damp. Oftener than once have I heard a sufierer from rheumatism told. You must get your husband to cut down that tree overshadowing the house, or you will never be well. There may be nothing injurious in damp itself, but in evaporation damp induces cold, and cold may be injurious to the human frame ; damp, moreover, is conducive to the decomposition of dead organic matter; the products of vegetable decay or decomposition tend to produce ague, intermittent fever, rheumatism, neuralgia, and tooth- ache ; and in the absence of appliances for determining the hygro- metric condition of the atmosphere, the frequent occurrence of such maladies may be considered indicative of the existence of the moisture to which reference is made. With the information which has been produced, one need not be surprised at the dampness of houses so situated. With evaporation going on continuously, from stomates so numerous in every one of such a multiplicity of leaves, the quantity of moisture in the air must be much greater than it is in an open space ; and though the temperature may be such as to keep it suspended in solution, an affinity for moisture in the material of which the house is built will attract it thence and keep the walls, and the apartment within, damp, or at least less dry than otherwise they would have been. The quantity of moisture which clay, bricks, and granite, and other forms of stone can retain in their structure, while to touch and to si»ht they appear to be dry, has been ascertained, and it has been found to be great ; and some of them not only retain moisture, but |absorb moisture from the atmosphere. I know a noble mansion uninhabit- able in consequence of the dampness produced by this property of the stone of which it is built. I have known a wall to be kept constantly damp through the attraction of moisture from the atmosphere by the sand employed in the manufacture of the mortar; and I do not recollect of ever seeing a house, built of unburnt brick, perfectly dry, 40 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON HUMIDITY. — and I hare seen hundreds,— the clay having this property in a pre- eminent degree. The walls of houses built of such materials, standing in an atmoS' phere kept humid by over-shadowing trees, or trees growing in close proximity, or even in a proximity not very close, absorb moisture ■with which the atmosphei'e is charged. The moistui'e transmitted or permeating it to the inner surface may be evaporated by the heat of the apartment within, but only to be followed by more and more, keeping the interior of the house constantly humid. Many have sufifered for years in consequence of taking up their abode in a newly built house not thoroughly dried. In the case of such a house as I have referred to, it is never thoroughly dried, the drying process will go on continuously, or be continuously renewed, for a hundred years and more, if the house stand as long. Not a little of the dampness may be attributed to the shade and the shelter of the trees, and the consequent want of ventilation ; all which will afterwards come under consideration. "What is brought under consideration at present is the humidity of atmosphere consequent on the copious evaporation of moisture by the leaves of trees. Keference has been made to the hydroscopicity of the walls of houses simply to show that the damp is not produced, but only transmitted by them; and it must be apparent that, in like manner, the damp experienced in connection with want of ventilation with shade and shelter, is damp not produced but only retained by them. The dampness of houses overshadowed by trees, or situated in close proximity to a wood, is indicative of humidity of atmosphere ; and this humidity of atmosphere is occasioned, in part at least, by the copious evaporation proceeding from the leaves of the trees. Sect. II. — On Clotich occasionally seen sii^rmounting Woods, while the Atmosphere around is cormparatively Clear. The clouds occasionally seen over woods, while the atmosphere around is comparatively clear, are consequent on the condensation of the humidity occasioned by the evapoi'ation from the leaves. There is always moisture existing in the atmosphere ; it is reckoned one of its constant constituents, but it vai-ies in quantity. The quantity is minute compared with that of the oxygen and nitrogen of the air ; but it is never absent. There it is, on the highest mountain and in CLOUDS SURMOUNTING POBESTS. 41 the deepest mine ; on the ocean's surface and on the dry land a thousand miles away. But, as has been mentioned, while moisture may be found in the atmosphere everywhere, it is not always present in the same quantity in the same space. In almost any circumstances, but more especially where there is an unlimited supply of moisture, the quantity varies with the temperature, and varies with the temperature to a very great degree. According to Sir John Leslie, it doubles with every rise of twenty-seven degrees of temperature; and, according to subsequent observers, it varies to a still greater extent, the doubling taking place at different intervals, which increase slowly with the temperature — the mean being 23° 4' — from the freezing point to 100° Fahrenheit. According to Leslie's calculation, the air at a temperature of 59° or 60° will hold twice as much as at 32°, or the freezing point ; and at 86° it will hold twice as much again. And, according to later observers, at 121° it will hold twice as much again, or sixteen times as much as at 32°, eight times as much as at 53°, or four times as much as at 75". It is customary to speak of this as the solvent power of the atmos- phere, as if the moisture were dissolved in the air as sugar may be dissolved in water ; but it is more in accordance with fact to consider that as water requires a certain amount of heat to keep it from passing into a state of ice, so it requires a certain amount of heat to keep it in a state of vapour and prevent it from passing into a state of water. In accordance with this, it happens that if air of a higher temper- ature, having as much moisture in it as can be sustained in a state of vapour, be cooled down some degrees, a quantity of moisture, which can no longer be maintained in a state of vapour, will assume the form of water in minute drops, and appear as fog, or cloud, or mist ; but let the temperature be again raised to the same elevation as before, and this water will again assume the state of vapour, and the air become transparent, the fog or cloud having melted away. In illustration of this fact, I may i-efer to what is seen in the laying of the cloth on Table Mountain when the south-east wind blows. The temperature on the top of Table Mountain is lower than that of the wind blowing over its summit, and the mountain cooling down the air, a quantity of the vapour intermixed with it is deposited in the form of a cloud which is blown over the face of the mountain, and falls, threatening to bury the city below ; but before it can reach 42 EFFECTS OP FORESTS ON HUMIDITY. Cape Town it must pass through an intermediate stratum of air of a higher temperature than that to which it has been reduced. By this it has its temperature again raised, and the cloud evaporates and disappears, followed by continuous masses of cloud, which on reaching the same level vanish into thin air, leaving no trace behind. The quantity of moisture passing into the atmosphere from the leaves of a forest in active vegetation must be considerable. Cal- culate the number of stomata, or stomates, on a leaf, multiply this by the number of leaves on a branch, the product by the number of such branches on a tree, and the product of this by the total number of trees in the clump, or the total number of trees in the forest, and the final product will indicate the provision made for evaporation from the forest. There are similar stomates on every verdant plant on the dry land ; but the evaporating surface supplied by the leaves, rising tier above tier, far exceeds in extent that supplied by the herbage and the grass growing elsewhere ; and in many places these may be found growing as luxuriantly on the soil of the forest as in the fields beyond, or perhaps more so, and adding their quota of evaporation to the evaporation from the trees. Of the moisture thus raised by the tree, and no longer required when the sap has been elaborated in the leaf, the air will only take up what quantity it can, at the temperature at that time and place, dissolve and hold in solution ; and cases have been cited in which the excess is so great that the leaves seem to act as alembics, distilling water which falls in great drops to the ground. Where this does not take place, what the air dissolves it will hold in solution so long as the temperature is maintained at the same or a higher point ; but if the temperature fall below the point at which it can do this, what it cannot sustain as invisible vapour will be deposited or suspended in the form of mist, or cloud ; and such a reduction, may follow the setting of the sun, or even the decline of it in the afternoon and towards nightfall ; or if there come over the trees a wind in any degree colder than the air in which they are enveloped, the air is thereby cooled down, and a quantity of the moisture which it held in solution may be deposited in the form of fog, or of dew, or of rain. But this is not all ; we shall afterwards have occasion to consider more fully the effect of vegetation on temperature, but here it may be remarked that it will generally be found that the temperature, both of the earth and of the atmosphere, is lower amidst abundant CLOUDS SUEMOUNTING FORESTS. 43 vegetation than in a barren, sterile, stony district, probably by heat being absorbed and retained in a latent form by the process of vegetation in the one case, while in the other it is reflected unchanged. In consequence of this, if a wind in any degree hotter blow over the district covered with trees, this wind is cooled down ; its power of holding water in a state of vapour is thereby diminished, in a geometrical ratio, with every fall of temperature, and a large deposit of moisture may follow in the form of dew, of mist, or of rain. The deposit may be much greater than may seem to be pro- portionate to the fall of temperature, but a reference to the observation of Sir John Leslie, and others, that a fall of temperature from 121* to 86®, which is not impossible in a semi-tropical country, occasions a deposit of half of the whole of the moisture held in solution, which is sixteen times as much as could be held in solution by air at 32°, eight times as much as could be held at 53°, and four times as much as could be held at 70°. In illustration of what deposit of moisture might take place on such a fall of temperature if the air were nearly saturated, and the quantity of air so saturated great, I may quote the following descrip= tive account of one of those storms which frequently relieve the heat of Bengal, given by Mrs Murray Mitchell, in a volume, entitled " Indian Sketches of Life and Travel," lately published. The oppressiveness of the heat is described as such that one's hands " have a boiled feeling, like a washerwoman's who has been all day manipulating in the tub." Outside, the sun floods everything with one white blaze. " Nature is perfectly still, as if awed ; the leaves hang limp and parched ; the grass crumples up and disappears ; the poor birds hide themselves away in any corner where there is a bit of shade ; there is not even a fly abroad ; all life seems frightened into quiescence, and mankind — at least the native portion — is asleep." At such a moment the storm suddenly descends. It is thus described : — " Last week we arranged a nice little garden entertainment for our native friends, and invited some people to meet them. The green was set with numbers of small tables, covered with cakes, and tea, and ices, and flowers. Seats of all sorts and bits of carpet were put down everywhere. Some of our friends had come, and our garden- party promised to be both pretty and pleasant, when, lo ! Mr Don said quietly, ' Look there ! ' and truly enough a cloud like a man's hand had risen in the west, and we knew what would follow. Con- sternation seized us; we all jumped to our feet; each one snatched up something — chair, table, cups, fruit, everything — and rushed pell- 44 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON HUMIDITY. mell into the house. Not a moment too soon. The heavens grew black as ink ; the birds flew in terror to some cover, filling the air with their screams ; the wind swept past with a low portentous sigh : and we had hardly our goods and ourselves uuder shelter, and the doors and windows secured, when the storm was upon us, and raging in mad tumult without. " The air becomes thick with sand, and lurid, like the yellowest of London fogs ; the wind rises into fury, and the dust is driven hither and thither as by a whirlwind. The sun seems blotted out, and in the appalling darkness you see the lightning play and dart, and zig- zag from heaven to earth, without one moment's intermission. The thunder comes, not in distinct explosions, and then a pause, but in one continuous roll of terrific reverberating noise, while the rain descends with an abandon quite in keeping with the other forces of the storm. It generally comes in horizontal sheets of water instead of drops, and is driven by the mighty wind as you have seen seaspray driven from the wave-tops in showers of foam. A storm like this is a magnificent spectacle, and its effects are delicious. In a wonder- fully short time the conflict ceases — the thunder rolls away into the distance, the wind is hushed, the sun shines out, and Nature, though tearful, looks happy and refreshed. Everything Hterally rejoices on every side ; the air feels cool and light, and for some days there is pleasure in existence. " Our little fete was spoiled ; but when the war without ceased, we made up by doing what we could for the pleasure of our guests within, and all is well that ends well." I design not to convey the idea that the moisture thus precipitated had been passed into the atmosphei-e by the foliage of a forest ; I find no indication that a forest was there — it is the precipitation occasioned by the reduction of temperature alone which I seek to illustrate. Previous to such a downpour of rain the heavens were perfectly clear, without a cloud to be seen ; yet there, it may be, the whole of that moisture was suspended, dissolved in the air. The rain-cloud may have appeared to proceed from beyond the horizon, and to come thence, advancing onwards with resistless force, borne forwards by the gust of wind, more like a tornado than aught else ; but there are reasons, and these satisfactory ones, to warrant the conclusion that the cloud had not been blown thither by the blast, but had been formed at the various points of its advance, by the wind suddenly cooling down the air below a temperature at which it could hold the CLOUDS SURMOUNTING FORESTS. 45 moisture in solution : very mucli as is the case with the sand and dust filling the air immediately before the falling of the rain ; what- ever proportion of these may have been brought'from a distance more or less remote, most of it may have been seen raised from the ground on the spot as the mighty rushing wind passed on in its course ; and the little lapse of time between the appearance of this precursor and the precipitation of the rain was only such as was required, or at least such as was occupied, in the aggregation of the rain particles into the larger drops which fell, and the precipitation of these by gravitation and by the blast, aided, it may be, by the co-operation of electric force, the process being essentially the same whether the blast have come on like an onward moving cold wave, or have advanced as an advancing whirlwind which raised the air through which it passed to an elevation at which, it may be in consequence of sudden expansion, the temperature was too low to retain all the moisture in solution. With the copious evapoi-ation going on fx-om the leaves of a forest there is nothing, in view of such a rainfall, surprising in any change of wind producing a cloud or mist above a forest, where formerly the air had been perfectly transparent ; and everything known in regard to such phenomena makes it probable that in general, if not invariably, the cloud is produced there, and not attracted thither by the forest. In connection with this, there is an observation, made by Mr Marsh, which demands attention : — " There is one fact," says he, " which I have nowhere seen noticed, but which seems to me to have one important bearing on the question, Whether forests tend to maintain an equilibrium between the various causes of hygroscopic action, and, consequently, to keep the air within their precincts to an approxi- mately constant condition, so far as this meteorological element is concerned. I refer to the absence of fog or visible vapour in thick woods in full leaf, even when the air of the neighbouring open ground is so heavily charged with condensed vapour as completely to obscure the sun. The temperature of the atmosphere of the forest is not subject to so sudden variations as that of cleared ground, but, at the same time, it is far from constant, and so large a supply of vapour as is poured out by the foliage of the trees could not fail to be condensed into fog by the same causes as in the case of the adjacent meadows, which are often covered with a dense mist while the forest air remains clear, were there not some potent counteracting influence 46 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON HUMIDITY. always in action. This influence, I believe, is to be found in the equalization of the temperature of the forest, and partly in the balance of the humidity exhaled by the trees, and that absorbed and condensed invisibly by the earth." I accept the statement with all confidence in the correctness of the observation by Mr Marsh. The fact was previously unknown to me. By the faU of leaves and their decay, and in other ways, the soil in which trees grow becomes rich with humus, by which means its power of attracting moisture from the earth is increased. In a forest the temperature is more equable than in the open country ; to both of these facts Mr Marsh refers, and I may add, what is also held by him, that there is heat evolved as well as heat absorbed in vegetation, a point which will afterwards be discussed more fully. In virtue of this and of the shelter of a forest, it may in certain conditions continue for a time, more or less protracted, protected from a change of temperature, producing a fog in the open country around. Without ampler information, or personal observation of the fact with opportunity of noting the circumstances, I am not in a position to say more. Sect. III. — On Clouds occasionally seen surmounting Mountains while the Atmosphere is otherwise Clear. With regard to the phenomena of clouds apparently attracted by mountains, Mr Marsh, in his treatise " On the Earth as Modified by Human Action," writes, — " In discussing the influence of mountains on precipitation, meteorologists have generally treated the popular belief that mountains attract to them clouds floating within a certain distance from them as an ignorant prejudice, and they ascribe the appearance of clouds about high peaks solely to the condensation of the humidity of the air, carried by atmospheric currents up the slopes of the mountains to a colder temperature ; but if mountains do not draw clouds and invisible vapour to them, they are an exception to the universal law of attraction. The attraction of the small Mount Shehallien was found suflBcient to deflect from the perpendicular, by a measiu-able quantity, a plummet weighing but a few ounces. Why, then, should not greater masses attract thence volumes of vapour weighing many tons, and floating freely in the atmosphere within moderate distances of the mountains 1" As stated thus, the popular belief assumes a form in which it can be dealt with more satisfactorily than in the vaguer form in which it CLOUDS SURMOUNTING MOUNTAINS. 47 is generally met with. The answer I would give to the question is, However plausible the supposition may be, I desiderate evidence that gravitation can occasion a deposit of moisture suspended in a state of solution in the atmosphere, operating on it otherwise than it does upon the other constituents of the air; and the phenomena seen can be accounted for satisfactorily otherwise. All that was done by Mount Shehallien was to cause a deflection of the plummet ; the preponderating attraction was towards the earth's centre. The phenomenon under consideration is not a deflection from the perpendicular, but the appearance of clouds on the moun- tains alone. We cannot get rid of the idea that the earth by gravitation exerts an attractive force upon clouds, but they do not fall precipitately upon the earth. Solid matter, so comminuted as to appear as dust, floats in the atmosphere for a length of time, rising even with aerial currents in despite of gravitation ; so is it with the molecules of water in a fog. With regard to invisible vapour, it appears to be subject to the law of gaseous diflfusion, in which, though still held by gravitation within the atmosphere, it is free within the limits of this to go any whither. True, moisture can be withdrawn from the atmosphere, and it is so withdrawn, but this is not attributable to gravitation ; it is attributable to chemical affinity, whatever that may be, and it varies with the composition of the soil and the chemical affinity of its con- stituents for moisture. In lack of evidence that the attraction of gravitation exercised by the earth abstracts moisture dissolved in the atmosphere from the air, I see no reason to conclude that by gravitation has moisture been abstracted from the air on the mountain top when there the cloud is formed. While I desiderate evidence that gravitation can occasion a deposit of moisture suspended in a state of solution in the atmosphere, operating on it otherwise than it does upon the other constituents of the air, and evidence that the gravitation occasioned by mountains difiors in its nature from the more powerful gravitation exercised by the earth, I see no evidence of their attracting clouds ; and all the phenomena connected with the appearance of clouds surmounting mountains may be accounted for in accordance with the way in which the appearance of clouds surmounting forest has been accounted for, that is by a fall of temperature below that at which the vapour there suspended in the atmosphere could be sustained by it in solution. It is in defence of that view that the subject comes under consider* 48 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON HUMIDITY. ation, and what has first to be established is the possible production of clouds in a transparent sky. The case of a Bengal storm has been cited ; but as evidence of the case in question it may be considered insufficient, I therefore supplement it with more explicit testimony. At the Cape of Good Hope, again and again, I have seen the heavens gather blackness where shortly before the sky was cloudless, the first manifestation of a change being the appearance of clouds the size of a man's hand, not blown thither, but there appearing as if formed there, and the progress and completion of the change resemb- ling somewhat the dissolving view represented by a magic lantern. The clouds were neither blown thither bodily nor attracted, but were formed there, apparently by an intermixture of currents of air of diflferent temperatures. And again, the whole cloudland structure — bold in its outline as the smoke belching forth from the cannon's mouth at the moment of discharge, and magnificent as a realization of Fancy's dream of Ossa piled on Pyleon, and Pyleon-like mountains on Ossa again — passed away like the deposition of vapour breathed upon the polished steel, passed away as if it had never been, leaving not a wreck behind. And the corresponding phenomenon I have seen when according to the local phrase, the Devil lays his table-cloth on Table Mountain. To this I have already had occasion to refer. At these times the summit of the mountain is covered with a dense mass of beautiful white fleecy cloud in constant flow over the precipice and pouring down the almost vertical front of the mountain facing Table Bay as if threatening to bury in an avalanche the capital of the colony at its base ; but long ere it reaches the town, notwithstanding the continuous flow, it stops ; to that line it flows on continuously, but beyond it, not : there the cloud in unceasing flow terminates, the spectator sees not why. The beautiful and interesting phenomenon is occasioned by a south- east wind, which, up to the Table Mountain range, was undimmed. The wind was strong, but the sky blue and serene, though the wind was loaded with vapour — vapour dissolved and invisible. But passing over Table Mountain the elevation of this is such that the decrease of temperature, consequent on expansion under diminished pressure bringing this below the dew-point, the moisture is deposited by the air in the form of cloud, which, as it reaches at lower level to leeward, a locality with a higher temperature, the moisture is again absorbed and the air loaded with it is again trans- parent, as is all the air around, and as it was itself before passing over Table Mouutwu in its course. CLOUDS SURMOUNTING MOUNTAINS. 4^ From Claremont, or Wynberg, or the Flats, or any place to the back of Table Mountain, it may be seen that the cloud is not blown to the mountain, but there it first appears ; and if some few cloudlets, formed over the crests of hilla belonging to the range situated to windward, be seen sailing towards it, it is evident that they are *' A sailing, a sailing with the wind," and not attracted only, for none are seen floating towards the Table-Cloth in other direction than that in which the wind blows. Of this phenomenon Sir John Herschel writes, " That the mere self- expansion of the ascending air is sufficient to cause precipitation of vapour, when abundant, is rendered matter of ocular demonstration in that very striking phenomenon so common at the Cape of Good Hope, where the south or south-easterly wiud which sweeps over the Southern Ocean, impinging on the long range of rocks which ter- minate in the Table Mountain, is thrown up by them, makes a clean sweep over the flat table-land which forms the summit of that mountain (about 3850 feet high), and thence plunges down with the violence of a cataract, clinging close to the mural precipices that form a kind of background to Capetown, which it fills with dust and uproar. A perfectly cloudless sky meanwhile prevails over the town, the sea and the level country, but the mountain is covered with a dense white cloud, reaching to no great height above its summit, and quite level, which, though evidently swept along by the wind, and hurried furiously over the edge of the precipice, dissolves and completely disappears on a definite level, suggesting the idea (whence it derives its name) of a * table-cloth.' Occasionally, when the wind is very violent, a ripple is formed on the aerial current, which, by a sort of rebound in the hollow of the amphitheatre in which Capetown stands, is again thrown vip, just over the edge of the sea, vertically over the jetty — where we have stood for hours watching a small white cloud in the zenith, a few acres in extent, in violent internal agitation (from the hurricanes of wind blowing through it), yet immovable as if fixed by some spell, the material ever changing, the form and aspect unvarying. The ' table-cloth ' is formed also at the commeocement of a ' north-wester,' but its fringes then descend on the opposite side of the mountain, which is no less precipitous." I mean not to affirm that in every case the clouds capping mountains and mountain ranges have been formed in the same way. All that 1 affirm is that thus it is there in the circumstances stated, and thus it may be elsewhere oftimes when clouds are seen covering a mo untain brow, and that, whether these mountains be wooded or bare. 60 EFECTS OF FORESTS ON HUMIDITT. When the mountains are covered with forests of deciduous trees, the great quantity of moisture passed into the atmosphere by the stomates of the leaves may render the air more readily indicative of any fall oC temperature, but that is all. The phenomenon in question comes under consideration here solely because this and the phenomenon of clouds surinountiug woods are generally referred to as indicative of an attractive power over clouds beino- exercised by the one and by the other ; and it may be satis- factory to some student of the meteorological eSfects of forests to see that neither in the one case nor in the other is there any necessity to call in the aid of some unknown, and consequently mysterious, power of attraction to enable us to account for the phenomena observed. CHAPTER II. Effects of Forests on the Humidity of the Grouitd. It may be considered a departure from the professed subject of thi» treatise to speak here of the effects of forests on the humidity of tha ground ; but the subjects are correlated. Practically it is humidity of goil which is what is desired, and the coaservatioa of m )istLira iu tha soil has a direct influence, in different ways, on the moisture iu tho atmosphere, so important as to justify, if not to require, soma attention, being given to it in treating of the meteorological effects of forests. The subjects coming under consideration here are the following : The wetness of roads when overshadowed by trees ; the shelter afforded by trees against drying winds ; and the attraction and retention of moisture by vegetable mould ; and to this might be added the effect of trees in arresting the flow and escape of the rainfall— but a better opportunity for bringing these under consideration will afterwards present itself. Sect. I. — On. ths Wetness of Roccls where these are Ooershadowsd hy Trees, We have had under consideration the dampness of houses over- shadowed by trees, or situated in close proximity to woods. Not less noticeable than this is the wetness of roads where these are over- shadowed by trees. This may frequently be observed while elsewhere the road is dry, and it may be supposed that in this we have only an exaggerated effect of what occasions the dampness of such houses ; but there is more in the phenomenon than this would imply. While much of the rain which falls upon the earth, and much that falls in the form of snow and hail, flows away to the sea — the tiniest streamlet and the mightiest river or flood being alike the product of such flow— and while a portion is absorbed by the earth, a great deal is evaporated and absorbed by the air. The higher the temperature of 52 EFFECTS OF FOBESTS ON HUMroiTT. the ground the more rapid is this evaporation. The effect may be seen in the steaming of the streets after a short shower in summer : there is then more evaporated from the hot stone than the super- incumbent air can sustain in solution, and the surplus is temporarily deposited in a visible form. And in the wetness of the I'oads under the condition stated we see, in addition to effect of the trees iu increasing the humidity of the atmosphere by evaporation through the stomates of the leaves, the effect which they bear in checking or preventing such evaporation from the ground. The quantity of moisture held suspended in solution in air, or which may be so held, increases with the temperature, and when the sun's rays fall unimpeded upon the road this raises the temperature of the earth and stones ; and these by contact and radiation raise the temperature of the incumbent air, which in its turn takes up the moisture with which they were co veered : the moisture being evaporated in t!ie same way as is a drop of water falling on a hot stove, or as the moisture on a wet handkerchief when this is held to the fire, but less rapidly, as the temperature is not so high. The same difference as is seen on the exposed and shaded part of the road may be seen in the ground on the sunny and shaded sides of a house, only less marked because the shade is less complete. I have stated in another volume that, to test the correctness of some statements, I had had occasion to make at the Cape of Good Hope, on the effect on the destruction of herbage by fire on the desiccation of the country, Mr W. Blore, M.L.A., Fellow of the Meteorological Society of London, and Secretary of the South African Meteorological Society, made some experiments with the following result : — He sunk two cylindrical jars, of the same size, in the ground to the depth of 4 inches, leaving them projecting an inch above the surface, as a precaution against sand and other matters being blown into them, and covering each with wire gauze to keep out fl.ies, &o. The one was placed where it was partially protected, but not covered by bush, the other was sunk in a newly cleared plot of ground, measuring about 60 feet in diameter, surrounded by sugar bushes, Protea melUfera Thhg, of a considerable height, and otherwise pro- tected from the prevailing wind by a belt of pine trees, about 120 feet distant. Into each of these jars was put 20 oz. of water on January 31st, at 10 A.M. On Feliruary 5th, at 5 p.m., the water remaining iu each was carefully measured, and the evaporation was calculated, when EXPERIMENTS ON EVAPORATION. 53 it was found that the evaporatioa from the jar sunk in the cleared ground had been more than double the evaporation from that which was partially protected, though not covered by the bush ; the former being 1-854 in.; the latter -863 in.; giving an excess of "991 in. The experiment was repeated with similar results. In reporting these results Mf Blore remarked that had the experi- ment been made in a more arid district, the evaporation would have been greater ; and that had it been made in the open country, the difference would have been marked. But, taking the results obtained as the basis of calculation, he arrived, by the following process, at a conclusion for which, probauly, few who have not given attention to the subject are prepared. The excess of evaporation from the more exposed jar above that from the jar partially shaded, but not covered, beiug one inch, more strictly speaking upwards of ^f^J of an inch of water, and more than doable that of the latter. " An inch in six days," says he, " will give for 102 days, the ordinary duration of the hot windy and dry season in the district, 17 inches. This is equal to about three hundred and eighty-four thousand (384,000) gallons per acre, and supposing 1,000 acres to be burned, blackened, and di-ied — what with sunlight, fire, heat, and wind, the evaporation would be an excess of three hundred and eighty.four millions of gallons of water above what would have been evaporated if the bush or grass had been left unbnrued." In the prosecution of his researches, Mr Blore ascertained by experiment that on Wynberg hill, while the deposit of dew on a green surface amounted to 4-75, that on a white surface amounted only to 2, showing that the deposit of dew upon a green surface is more than double that upon a white ; and he further ascertained that, while the difference of temperature in the water in the two jars employed in the former experiment was only a few degrees, the difference of temperature between black ground and ground shaded by bush was about 25°, which would occasion a vastly greater difference in the amount of evaporation than that which occurred in his experiment. In a letter on planting trees by water-courses, appended to Report of Colonial Botanist for 1863, it is stated: — "In the course of my tour I have found that in some places an opinion prevails that trees growing by the side of a stream, steal away the water. And in support of this opinion, my attention was directed to the 64 EFFECTS or F0BEKT8 ON HrMIDlTY. fact that under trees or plants the moisture spreads for several inches, eighteen or twenty it may be, over and through the banks towards the tree, while at exposed places between the trees the moisture spreads not above one or two inches from the surface of the water. Bat this, so far from proving what was alleged, may be adduced as evidence of the correctness of my view of tho matter. The A\ater spreads from the stream by what is called capillary attraction, and spreads in all probability quite as far in the exposed as iu the covered spots, but where it is exposed it is con- tinuoasly evaporated by the heat of the sun's rays, so that, excepting during the night and early in the morning it never becomes visible in the darkened hue of the soil, while uuder the shade of the trees it has been protected from evaporatiou. There tho water which has spread so far is retained with very little loss. But at the exposed parts of the bank there is a constant drain throughout the day. Water evaporates ; more rises to supply its place ; but this is carried oflf in like manner, till the setting of the sun suspends for a time thia wasteful process. So far from the tree stealing the water, it takes up no more than it retains in the structure of its sap, wood, flowers, fruit, and green leaves ; the heat is the thief, if thieving there be. The tree has not stolen away the water which occasions the moisture seen under its shade. The soil did that, and it did the same all along the water-course ; and the tree, like the faithful dog, has Watched over and protected that portiou from the heat of the direct rays of the sun, by wliich it would otherwise have been conveyed away and transported by the air to regions, it may be, far remote." While I adhere to the statement thus made, I may add that in the remark which called it forth there is — as there often is in popular remarks — a mixture of truth and error ; it was neither absolutely correct nor absolutely erroneous : the tree had actually withdrawn moisture from the streamlet, for thence it was that the moisture re- tained in its structure and the moisture evaporated by its leaves had mainly been obtained ; but the blackness and dampness of the soil between the streamlet and the ti ee to which it was that my attention was called had not thus been produced, — that moisture had not been occasioned by the vegetation of the tree but by the capillary attrac- tion of the soil. The shade of the tree had prevented the direct rays of the sun falling upon this as they did upon the ground around ; thus an evaporation, such as had dried the ground beyond, bad been prevented ; and in the same way is the desiccation of a road retarded where it is overbbadowed by trees. SHELTER TO PONDS. 55 In the Journal of the Royal Agricultural Society, N.S,, vol. ii., p. 110, there is a statement, by Mr R. Orlebar, of Williogborough, oq the advantage of planting treps around ponds, in which he says, " It is astonishing what effect a little shade has in checking evaporation. A pond that is well shaded will hold water for weeks after one of equal dimensions, but lacking shade, will become dry. The best shade is that given by fir trees, or other evergreens, for they give it all the year round. The yew, perhaps, would be even better for shade than the fir, but for its poisonous qualities. After the fir, I doubt whether there is, on the whole, any better plant for shade than the hawthorn bush. Its leaves sprout early, and fall late ; and it possesses, besides, the great advantage that it forms its own fence." And the writer tenders the counsel, suitable for Europe and countries in the northern hemisphere, "Always, if possible, have the rrouth of your pond on the north side, and the shade on the south side." A suggestion which commends itself. While the writer speaks only of shade, it may be that the eflfect mentioned by him was to some extent due to shelter afforded to the pond from wind. I find it stated, in reference to the suggestion of Mr Orlebar, by a writer. On the Dew of Heaven and the Influence of Forests, in the Farmer's Magazine, Mr Cuthbert W. Johnstone, that in some parts of England they are careful to have the oak planted around their ponds ; and he mentions, as bearing upon this point, a fact to which I have alreadj' referred, that the dew under some large oak trees by the side of his bowling-green, at Croydon, is always considerable of an evening ; but that under a witch-elm, growing by their side, the dew is almost always absent. Observation will show whether this difference is attribu- table to the difference in the shade afforded, or to a difference in the quantity of moisture evaporated through the stomates of the leaves, in accordance with what has previously been stated with regard to the dropping from trees (ante p. 35), Sect. II. — On the Desiccation of Ground hy Drying Winds being Prevented hy the Shelter afforded hy CL%i.mps of Trees. In the case of a tree by the side of a stream with the ground between the stream and its trunk moist, while all beyond was dry, we had an indication of the effect of a tree in preventing evaporation by protecting the moist ground from the sun's rays, and it may be, in part, by reflecting or confining vapour rising from the soil ; but not less important is the influence exerted by a clump of trees in 56 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON HUMIDITY, preventing evaporation, by protecting moist ground from the desiccating effect of wind. We often hear of a drying wind ; and many may have remarked that a clear wind does more to dry the roads in spring than does even bright sunshine. Every clear wind is a drying wind ; it is composed of air not surcharged with moisture ; up to the measure of saturation eveiy particle of this air can take up and dissolve additional moisture, and it will do so by simple contact therewith. Were the air stagnant, evaporation might go on slowly, the air in contact with the moisture taking up a portion of it and slowly transferring this to the stratum above, to be in like manner trans- ferred to the strata beyond ; but moved on, as every particle of the air is, by and with, and in the wind, it imbibes a portion and passes off loaded to let more follow to do the same ; and we see the effect in the rapid drying of ground over which the wind has free course ; while we see the effect of shelter in the continued humidity of the ground wherever it is protected from the wind by a wall, a house, a hedge, or a clump of trees. To this effect of wind, and the modification of it produced by shelter, reference is made in the before mentioned experiments and observations made by Mr Blore. It is stated by Mr Milne Home, chairman of the Council of the Scottish Meteorological Society, in a paper containing suggestioais for increasing the supply of spring-water at M;ilta, and improving the climate of the island, to which I shall afterwards have occasion to refer at greater length, " Halley found that, when water is kept in a room, to which neither sun nor wind had access, the evaporation amounted to 8 inches in a year ; but when exposed to sun and wind, even in the cloudy atmosphere of Loudon, it amounted to 48 inches yearly. More recent and accurate observations make the natural evaporation from soil kept moist not quite so much. Howard of London gives, as the mean of eight years' observations, 30 inches. Dobson of Liverpool found, after four years' observations, a mean annual loss by evaporation of 37 inches ; — the least evaporation being in December, when the temperature was 44°, the greatest in July, when the temperature was 70°. D.dton of Manchester found that evaporation there was at the rate of 30 inches ;^the lowest being 101 inches, in Djjember, the highest 40-9, in July. " An instructive table was framed by Dalton, showing the number of graius of water evaporated, from a given surface and during a SHELTER TO WINDWARD. 17 given period, at different temperatures, and with different velocities of wind. Tlie following extracts are made from this table : — Temp. Fahr. Light Wind. Strong Wind. 50° 150 2 36 60° 2-10 3 33 75" 3 40 5 34 80" 4-0 6--^9 85" 4-68 746 The shelter from drying winds, and the consequent protection against rapid desiccation of ground, afforded by a wood, extends far beyond the shade of the trees ; and thus the prevention of evapora- tion by the wind becomes, in most cases, of more importance than the prevention of evaporation by sunshine. Of the extent of such protection there are illustrations given by Mr Marsh, in his treatise on the " Earth as Modified by Human Action" (pp. 162-166). They are adduced by him in illustration of the effects of forests on climatal temperature ; but tlje subjects are correlated, and the statement by Mr Marsh will be afterwards given. It is not only to leeward that the beneficial action of a forest in giving direction to the wind is felt ; in some respects the calm it secures to windward may be equal in importance to that which it ensures beyond. Some years since a stage coach from the head of Loch Long to Oban was usually driven by a coachman whose jests, and jibes, and pleasantries, and humours, often kept the occupant of the seat beside him, and the occupants of the seat immediately behind in roars of laughter foi miles. It is said that on one cold windy day he had as occupant of the box-seat a Scottish Judge, one of the Lords of Session, who remarked in many places sheep crouchino- on the windward side of whin bushes, and after a time, calling the atten- tion of the coachman to the circumstance, he asked him why they did so, " To keep them from the wind, my lord," was the respectful reply. This oallei forth the unhappy remark. " If I were a sheep I would lie down on the other side of the bush." When forth came without a moment's warning the rejoinder, " Ah ! but, my lord, if you were a sheep ye wud hae mair sense !" The sheep and the coachman were right. The beautiful curve of a snow-wreath shows what was the course taken by the wind in its formation and indicates the course usually taken by it in surmounting a barrier : a long sweep on the 68 EFFECTS OF FORESTS OS HUMIDITY. windward side, a comparatively precipitous fall to leeward. The observatory erected by Sir Jolaii Hersohel with a view to securing calm for the immense tube of his telescope was erected in relation to prevalent winds to windward, not to leeward, of Table Mountain. And a calm prevails at Herschel and Bishop's Court while the wind is blowing strongly on the Fiats, and pouring over the front of Table Mountain lilie an avalanche. To some to whom the fact may be new, it may prove coiToborative of what has been stated if I call attention to another fact, which has been observed by others. In walking along the edge of a sea-clifF facing the wind it has been found, when the breeze was slight or moderate, that it was felt in full force up to the edge of the preci- pice ; but when the breeze was strong, there was a breadth of perfect calm along the edge of the clitf, while a little way inward the blast was felt in all its fury, — the width of the calm being proportionate to the force of the wiud^ the upward concave curve of the leeward current passing into a convex curve carrying it over the head of the observer. It is in connection with my advocacy of the conservation and extension of forests at the Cape of Good Hope as a remedial measure against the rfl-idity — and progressing aridity — of the soil and climate, that I have brought this subject under consideration. I am quite aware that an argument in favour of the cutting down of forests, woods, and trees, as well as an argument for the conservation and extension of them by plantation, may be founded on the fact to which I am calling attention. It is the case that there are places in which the one operation may be as advisable as the other may be in others : there are countries, in which woods and moisture are both in excess, the clearing away of forests to a certain extent is advocated on the very ground that their effects are such as I am endeavouring to show that they are. But this only goes to strengthen my argument and establish the fact which I am endeavouring to ex- pound, irrespective of the practical application of it which may be made by myself or others : that fact is, that belts of wood, and fences, and forests, in their several degrees, acting as windbrakes, retard both to leeward and to windward the desiccation of ground by the evaporation promoted by drying winds. Sect. III. — On the General Phenomena of Evaporation from Forests. It appears to be unquestionable that by the shade which they occasion, and by the shelter against drying winds which they afford, PREVALENCE OF EVAPORATION. B9 forests exercise a considerable influence in diminishing the evapora- tion of moisture from the soil ; but, in connection with the con= sideration of this, there should be taken into consideration the general phenomena of evaporation from forests. . M. Cezanne in his Suite to Etude sur les Torrents des Hantes Alpes, by M. Surell, i-emarks that "evaporation is for modern physical science a phenomenon comparatively simple and well understood. It is known, for each degree of ten)perature, what is the tension and what is the measure of saturation of tlie air. But looked at from a meteorological point of view the phenomenon is one of the most obscure ; and the limited number of observations which have been made cannot admit of their being compared together. " What, in a given place, is the depth of water which is carried off in one hour by evaporation"? Tliis varies according as the evaporating surface specified may be drenched or only damp, be stagnant or running water, be in the sunshine or shade, according as it may be summer or winter, according as the air may be saturated or not, or be more or less saturated, and according as the air may be at the time windy or calm. " Two adjacent basins, placed in the same meteorological circum= stances, evaporate unequal quantities of water if they be larger or smaller, if their sides be more or less elevated, if they be sheltered from the wind or not, etc. " When it is said that the annual evaporation at Rome is 2*462 millimetres, at Marseilles 2-289, at Paris 0698, at London 0754, at Toulouse 0-649, at Copenhagen 0209,* all that is meant to be said is that in the circumstances in which the observers were placed they have determined these results. But the mean annual evaporationg furnished for each place are far from having the same scientific value as the mean annual rainfalls, which present on the contrary a specific character. It may always be aflSrmed with certainty that evaporation goes on decreasing from the equator to the pole, where, however, it is far from being nil, even in the greatest frost ;t that it is more feeble near the coast than in the interior of a country ; aud more feeble also under the equatorial wind from the south-east than under the polar * Vallfes : Inondations, p. 23. t Hayes : La Mer Uhre du Pule, p. 224. Wet linen, exposed to the air, dried at the lowest tinjj^eiatuies ; and a eheet of ice, t-oBpended by a thread, evaporated away by little and little. 60 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON HUMIDITY. wind from the north-east — the former being saturated with moisture, while the latter has been deprived of it."* And having stated what the eflFect of this is on the flow and delivery of rivers, he goes on to say, — " If such be the important part played by evaporation, it is evident that forests exercise an appreciable influence on water-courses, according as they promote or retard, to whatever degree it may be, evaporation. Bat in what do they exercise this action 1 On this point the whole world seems to be at sixes and sevens. " Throughout all time the poets have sung of the cool shade — the moist shade of extensive woods. A nave of verdure thrown over a road keeps it moist, and as a consequence protects it or injures it, according to the climate or the seasons. Tn every page of works on forestry may be met allusions to the humidity, which is favourable to the seedlings, and which the shade maintains. " If any one entertain a doubt, let him follow in the suite of a forest-guard the day after a storm of rain ; when, although the open country and a fortiori the roads are already dry, he may procure for himself a cold bath in penetrating into the clumps of copse-wood. At his feet the tall herbs are little better than a stream, and on his head every shaken branch will pour down a douche, which will make itself be felt." And in explanation he adds in a foot-note, — " Any one may observe that on the leaves of certain vegetables, but not of all, the rain-drops take a spheroidal form ; in this state they resist evaporation energetically, as one may see globular drops run about on red-hot iron without ebullition. The foliage of other plants has been dried for a long time, while these pearls sparkle still on the herbs which bear them. Certain species preserve thus the rainfall until the agitation of the leaves cause these spheroidal drops to fall." And he goes on to say, " It seems then natural to believe that forests oppose themselves to evaporation, and, consequently, acquire for the ground the product of the rain. But objections are not awanting. " Attention is called to the circumstance that the foliage of trees arrests a notable portion of the water falling as rain. When a light rain-storm follows some days of dry weather, it may be seen that each tree casts a dry shadow, which on the wet ground of the road is marked out by a dust-covered patch. The water arrested by the leaves is lost to the ground underneath ; the tree or the air will absorb it, and the importance of this is such as is not to be overlooked. * Schmit : Qrundriss der Meteorologie, EXPERIMENTS ON EVAPORATION. 6^; "The Mardchal Vaillaut has frequently drawn publio attention to forest hydrology. He instituted experiments to measure the quantity of rain which is arrested by the foliage of trees ; and the following are some of the results he obtained ; the observations were made in the forest of Fontainebleau, during the year 1866 : — *_ QUANTITY OP RAINFALL. Months. In open air. Sfo'lar&th. P-PO'^on, millimetres. mm. mm. January, 35 24.5 or -70 February...... 78-5 63 -81 March, 808 582 -72 April, 67 50.9 -76 May, 46-2 31-5 -68 June, 66 32 -48 July, 105 8 53-8 -50 August, 117 60 -51 September, 1235 65 -51 October, 31 142 -45 November, 47-5 29 ..,-62 December, 61-2 435 -70 859-5 524-7 0-60 " From this it is seen that the leaves arrested in winter 30 %, in summer 50%, and, on an average, throughout the year 40% of the rain which fell. " Under the Epicdas [Picea excelsa, Linh'\ of 35 years' growth, probably in dense clumps, the pluviom^tre received only 21% of the years' rain-fall : the tree arrested 79 %. In a forest adjacent to Versailles, the pluviom^tre, placed under a leafy wood, received 80% of the year's rain : the foliage arrested only 20%. Under a timber forest of oaks, of from 70 to 100 years of age, the instrument received 85% of the year's rain. " Perhaps there may be ground for some little discussion in regard to these experiments : the position in which the pluviometre mi'>ht have a marked influence on the results. Two instruments placed under an umbiella, one towards the centre, the other at the circum- ference, under the droppings of the ribs, would give a bad measure- ment of the mean fall of water on the soil. * jRewte des Eaux et Fonts. 1867. P. 161. 62 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON HUMtDlTT. **M. Mathieu, sub-director of the Forest School, has uniertaksa a series of experiments under vsry favourable conditious. Of these the foUowia^ is one wbioh is pirtioularly intorostia^, and one, the results obtained by which scarcely agree with those of Mirshal Vaillaut. Two udom^tres were placed at the forest statiou of Ouiq-TranchSes, the one in the open wood, under a patch of beeches and hornbeims, of average denseness, and of the age of 42 years ; the other, at a little distauce, iu the middle of an opea space many hectares ia extent. It may be well to note tliat the forest udom^tre is of special construction; that the receiver embraces the stem of one of the perches of the clump, and presents a surface quite equal to the projectioa of the top of the tree ; tliat by this means the indications of the instrument are quite exact, and represent well, without exaggeration or diminution, the depth of tlie sheet of water received by the wooded ground ; and that this water, dropping from leaf to leaf, passes through them, or flows down the trunk. " Under these conditions the udomHregave, in 1853, the following quantities of rain : — MEASUREMENT OF RAIN. Monthg. Under wood. Outside wood. Proportion. miliim^tres. mm. mm. January, 68 73 0-931 February, 37 36 1-025 March, 50 50 1 April, 69 73 -945 May, 8 8 1 June, 48 52 -923 July, 31 34 -911 August, 26..... 37 -702 September, 59 61 -962 October, 118 122 -967 November, 26 28 -928 December, 163 174 -936 Total, 703 749 -939 " It may be astonishing to see in the table that during the months of February, March, and May the sheltered pluviomfetre received as much or more rain than the pluviomatre in the open space ; it is necessary to consider that, either through some caprice of the rain, or by some such effect of the trees, there fell more water in the wood than in the adjacent open space. This result, moreover, might PROPORTION OF EVAPORATION, 63 explain itself quite naturally, and without calling in any special action of vegetation, if the open space were less accessible to the rainy wind than was the wooded clump. " It is worthy of remark that the mean proportion between the two instruments, which was 0-939 far 1868, had been 0-938 for 1867, and 0'952 for 1866 ; that is to say, that the proportion varied very little." Along with the allowance, which it may be deemed necessary to make for the quantity of rain which may be arrested by the foliage and evaporated thence v^ithout reaching the ground, in a rough estimate of the benefit which trees may bring to the soil by preventing evaporation thence, it may be deemed necessary to make some allowance in certain circumstances for the evaporation, through the stomates of the leaves, of moisture which is dissipated in the atmosphere, if this be in excess of the difference between what is evaporated from the soil under the shade and shelter of the wood and what is evaporated from adjacent open country. I am disposed to question whether such a case be of frequent occurrence, or if it be likely to occur at all, but the possibility of its occurrence must not be ignored. I cannot do more than refer to it to show that it is not ignored by me. In a preceding section I have referred to the observations of Mr Blore on evaporation, under shade and shelter, and in open ground, at the Cape of Good Hope ; and in connection with a notice of these observations I had occasion to cite some experiments on evaporation made by M. Mathieu. A report of these was published by the French Government in the " Atlas Meteorologique de V Ohservatoire Imperial, 1867," from which it appears that, during the seven months comprised between April and October in that year, whilst the quantity of water evaporated from forest leaves was 3.23 inches, the quantity evaporated from land clear of forest was 16.29 inches, or about five times as much. In April, bafore the development of leaves, if 1,000 represented the evaporation from the open country, 623 represented the evaporation from woodland ; but after the trees became clothed with foliage the amount of evaporation from the woodland was only 130, as against 1,000 of open country evaporation. In October the woodland evapora- tion was to the open country evaporation as 90 to 100. The experiments were continued in 1868. 64 EFFECTS OP FORESTS ON HUMIDITY. At the station of Belle-Fontaine, M. Mathieu measui'ed the evapora- tion by means of vessels exactly comparable placed outside of a wood, and under a leafy wood. During the months of January and February no observations could be made on account of the frost. Bat in the subsequent months the following results were obtained : — WATER EVAPORATED. Months. Outside tlie wood. Under the wood. Proportion, miUimUres. mm. mm. March, 33 9 3.66 April, 50 19 .2.63 May, 105 23 4.56 June, 107 19 5.63 July, 95 10 9.50 August, 75 8 9.37 September, 55 11 5. October, 12 3 4. November, 2 9. December, 8 4 2. Totals, 542 106 5-11 From this it is seen that during ten months in 1868 the evapora- tion was more than five times greater in the open space than it was in the forest, which consists of high perches, dense and close, of horn- beams, beeches, oaks, and ashes of sixty-two years' growth. There are cited by Marsh some valuable observations by Risler on the evaporation from cultivated soils and the exhalation and exuda- tion of humidity by field plants and forest trees, given in the Archives des Sciences ( JbiUiotheque universdLe de Geneve) for Sept. 15, 1869 ; March 25, 1870; and Nov. 15, 1871, which seem to lead to this general conclusion, that forests evaporate less than an equal extent of pasturage, and that if we suppose a mean precipitation of two and a half millimetres per day, of which two millimetres penetrate into the soil, the forest takes up less than one half of this supply, the re- mainder descending into the sub-soil and percolating through earth and rock until it issues in the form of springs. He found an evapora- tion of one aud one tenth millimetre per day to be the maximum from a forest of firs under exceptionally favourable conditions of a fertile and humid soil and abundance of sunlight. Risler, in the experiments referred to found that in 1867, not ftir from Geneva, no water escaped from a parcel of ground thoroughly MOISTURE ATTRACTED BY MOULD, 65 underdrained at the depth of 1"^ ,20, iu the mouths of July, August, September, November and December, and but a very trifling quantity in June and October ; in 1868, very little in May and September and none in June, July and August, In 1867 the total precipitation was 1066.84 millimetres ; the evaporation, as measured by the difference between rain-fall and drainage, 733.44 millimetres ; in 1868, these quantities were 1032.86 and 755,74 millimetres respectively. M. C6zanne remarks in regard to all the observations cited by him, — " In conclusion, and with every allowance for the small quantity of water which is retained by the leaves, the foregoing observations strengthen the conclusion that, under the same measure of rain-fall, the soil of the forest receives and retains notably more water than does uncovered ground. Sect, IV, — On Moisture being Attracted from the Atmosphere, or other- ivise retained in the Ground hy Vegetable Mould. The meteorological effects of forests are, as has been intimated, somewhat complicated, and the student of these availing himself of my guidance may be beginning to perceive something of the compli- cation in which they are involved ; but thus far the unravelling of different strands has been found to be practicable, and this operation may be carried a little further without difficulty. A distinction has been drawn between the effects produced on the ground by the shade from sunshine, and by the shelter from drying winds afforded by trees and forests. It is necessary, further, to distinguish between the effects produced by shade and by vegetable mould, which exists always, in greater or less quantity, in forest soil, in consequence of the decay and decomposition of fallen leaves and and fallen twigs, and broken or decaying rootlets. In the soil of a forest there generally exists more moisture than can be attributed to shade, or to shade and shelter combined ; and much of this is attributable to the attraction of moisture manifested by this vegetable mould. By a series of simple experiments this fact may be demonstrated, the quantity of moisture determined, and the proportion attributable to each of the effects mentioned approximately ascertained. Take the weight of a hundred grains or of a hundred drams, or the weight of a hundred shot of uniform size, of the apparently dry soil 68 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON HUMmWY. of ft forest, sheltered and shaded by the trees, and expose it for some hours to the bright sunshine ; after this weigh it, and most probably it will be found to have lost weight. This loss will have been occasioned by the sunshine and open air having caused an evapora- tion of moisture from the soil, though it appeared to be dry, and the quantity of moisture so evaporated may be determined by the weight lost. Take again the same weight of such forest soil, so dried in the air and sunshine, and of such dry gravelly sandy soil as you may find on the road, similarly exposed to the drying influences of the air and sun- shine ; expose them together on papers for an hour in an oven heated to such a degree that the papers will be browned, but not burned ; weigh them again, and probably both will be found to have lost weight, but the loss of weight sustained by the soil taken from the forest will probably greatly exceed the loss of weight sustained by the soil taken from the open field. The loss of weight is occasioned in this experiment, as in the first, by loss of moisture contained in the soil, notwithstanding that this was sun-baked and apparently dry. Had the papers been burned there might also have been burned organic, vegetable, or animal remains in the soil, occasioning a loss of weight in addition to that occasioned solely by the loss of moisture, for which allowance must have been made ;■ but this has been avoided by the precaution adopted. And the heat prescribed was to be such as would brown the paper without burning it, to secure as great a heat as possible short of what would have done more than merely drive off the moisture contained in the soil. And if the loss of weight sustained by the soil from the forest so exposed be in excess of that sustained by the soil taken from the road, this indicates that it, when apparently dry, contained more moisture than did that other, which excess was attributable to moisture held fast by products of vegetable decomposition in the soil. But this is not all. If equal portions of the two parcels of thoroughly desiccated soil be spread out on glass, and exposed for a day or two to the atmosphere, protected from rain or dew (within doors or without, in a dry room or in a cellar), and these be then again weighed, they will be found to have gained weight, but in different degrees, much more having been gained by the forest soil than by the sandy gravelly soil of the road. This will be done by their imbibing moisture from the atmosphere, dry as that atmosphere seemed to be ; and the proof is forthcoming : expose them again in an oven as before, and the weight gained will again be lost. PHENOUBNA OF DBLIQUESOBNOS. 67 In this eflfect of vegetable mould we see how forests may exercise a third influence, over and above and distinct from both shade and shelter, in maintaining a humidity of soil. This matter may deserve a little further consideration. In treating of Rehoisement in France, I had occasion (p. 95) to cite certain experiments made by Thurmann, made with a view to ascertain to what extent different minerals could absorb and retain moisture, and to state results obtained by him showing that cubes of diflFerent minerals thoroughly dried, weighing each 100 grammes, immersed in water for five minutes, varied in the quantities absoi-bed by them from half-a-gramme to from 10 to 30 grammes. These results have been considered indicative of the absorption of water being proportional to the state of molecular sub-division of the material comprising the rock, and they have been resolved into dis- tinct phenomena — hydroscopicity and capillarity : the former, the power of each molecule of the rock to retain around it a layer of moisture difficult to withdraw ; the latter, the power of structures of molecules of earth to retain in interstices by which they are separated small globules of water. And thus may the results obtained by the first-mentioned experiments be accounted for. They indicate greater hydroscopicity and capillarity to be possessed by the soil of the forest than is possessed by gravelly and sandy soil of the road — this being, as may afterwards be proved, an eflfect or consequence of forest pro- ducts embodied in that soil. But besides substances which manifest capillarity and hydroscopicity there are substances which attract and abstract moisture from the air, some of them doing so to such an extent that they deliquesce or dissolve in their own brine ; and unless the air be kept excluded from them, or they be kept in a warm place, where the heat will either keep the air comparatively diy, or evaporate the moisture attracted and absorbed by them, you cannot keep them dry. This is signally the case with the carbonate of potash — the potash of commerce ; it is manifestly the case with chloride of sodium, or table salt ; it is also the case, though less manifestly so, with clay ; and to a very marked degree is it the case with humus, the product of the decay and decomposition of vegetable matter, and une which abounds in forest soil from the fall of leaves and twigs. To this humus mainly may be attributed the great attraction of the forest soil for moisture, indicated by the gain of weight when, after being thoroughly desiccated, it is exposed to a dry atmosphere ; 68 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON HUMIDITY. and to the great quantity of humus in that soil, the excess of the quantity of moisture absorbed from the atmosphere over the quantity absorbed by the dry gravelly sandy soil taken from the road. The quantities of humus and the quantities of clay, which exercise similar power, though not to the same degree, in each of the parcels, can easily be determined. It may be noted that what is now spoken of is not the deposit of dew, which depends on a reduction of temperature. Wherever the difference of temperature between day and night is great, and the atmosphere is heavily charged with moisture, the deposit of dew is considerable. In England, Luke Howard, with a well-constructed rain gauge, found the deposit of dew in one night towards the end of September equal to "Ol inch of water; and in the last six days of October he obtained •!! of an inch from copious dews and mists. In Algeria, at the stations on the coast, writes Steinmitz, in a little volume entitled " Sunshine and Showers," after the driest and hottest days, immediately the sun has set, the soldiers' uniforms become wet with dew, and in a single night the blades of knives in the pocket become rusted. But apart from this deposit of dew, moisture is absorbed from the atmosphere by the soil. The driest soils contain 13% of moisture. It has been determined by experiments by Schubler that when a soil, which weighs about 1000 tons per acre, is pulverised so as to be freely permeable by the atmosphere, and is exposed to the air after being thoroughly dried, it will absorb in twenty-four hours, if a sandy clay, what is equal to 26 tons of water; if a loamy-clay, 30 ; if a stiff clay, 36 ; if garden mould, 45. Cezanne states that, '•' In the Roussillon, rain is a rarity ; the in- habitants can recall periods extending over a year without notable rain; and that the littoral hillocks behind the buttresses of the Pyrenees are of a very permeable limestone, but the vine flourishes in this region, the leaves cover the rocks with verdure, and the grapes swell with a savoury juice, while along the dusty roads the grasshopper follows the traveller with its cry, the emblem of aridity and drought. "It is certainly not from the soil devoid of humidity that the vine driuks its supply, it is from the atmosphere ; and the vine-growers do not deceive themselves — it is not for rain that they look, they know that hope of this would be vain — they cry for the sea breeze, which will perfectly satisfy them. MEASURE OP MOISTURE IN SOIL. 69 " On the other hand, in the palus of Bordeaux, the vine is seen growing, so to speak, with its feet in the water. " It is then probable that vegetables, or at least some of them, are endowed with an eclectic power ; they take water where they find it, they distil away subterranean water when it is in excess, and they know also how to condense and absorb water from the atmosphere." I accept the facts, but demur to the reasoning. I think all can be otherwise accounted for. M. Cezanne cites in a foot-note, in illustration, the description given by Mr Thomas Baiues of the Markivhoe, a large watery root, measuring in its greatest circumference 40 inches and in its smallest 30, with the statement of Mr Baines that when he and his party, travelling in an arid district of South Africa, felt thirsty the Bushmen would pull up some of those roots, and by eating of them they would quench their thirst. I have heard of several different kinds of such juicy plants growing in the most arid districts of South Africa ; but never have I heard anything in regard to their natural history, or their structure, which would warrant the conjecture advanced ; while the proved afl&nity of soil for moisture supplies a satisfactory explanation of all the phenomena referred to. From experiment and observation it has been deduced that pure sand has little affinity for moisture ; but that such afiinity is manifested both by clay and by humus in a high degree, and to these conjointly may be attributed the attractive affinity of the soils for moisture, indicated by the gain of weight in the second set of experiments, when the desiccated soils were exposed for a long time to the air. To this affinity of soil for moisture attention is given in analyses of soil in agricultural chemistry. It is in generaV inversely propor- tionate to the proportion of sand, and directly proportionate to the quantity of clay in the composition of soil taken from the open country, in which these constituents greatly preponderate ; but it is also proportionate in a much higher ration to the quantity of humus in the soil, and the quantity of this can easily be determined. If the two parcels of earth last referred to as subjects of experiment be raised to a red heat in iron spoons, and after all appearance of brighter incandesence in portions of the mass has ceased, they be weighed, care being taken to remove all scales of iron or of iron rust, they will again be found to have sustained a loss of weight ; this is attributable to the combustion of organic matter, most of which was humus, or capable of becoming humus, and the loss sustained by the forest soil will be found much greater than the loss sustained by the 70 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON HUMIDITT. other. In the case supposed, the affinity for moisture will be found to be proportionate to the different results ; but it may be modified by the proportions of clay, if in either this be greatly in excess — and this also can easily be determined. If the two parcels of soil be next drenched with hot water, and this poured off when discoloured with the muddy matter suspended in it, and the process be repeated until the water comes off limpid, upon their being again desiccated in an oven, as before, and weighed, the loss they have sustained in weight will indicate the quantity of clay which was in their composition, together with free soluble salts, the quantity of which may be little or may be much. Thus will have been re- moved all the materials manifesting a marked affinity for atmospheric moisture; and in few cases, if any, the results greatly modify the con- clusion arrived at by the removal of the humus and its constituents. I prescribe not these proceedings as certain to give precise results, in absolute accordance with the actual constitution of the soils made the subject of expei'iment, but as rough and ready experiments which may be made by the inexperienced, the results of which will indicate, and to some extent measure, the property of forest soil not only to retain moisture, but to attract moisture from the atmosphere in a superior degree to that in which such property is possessed by the gravelly and sandy soil taken from the highway. Should any one desire more accurate results, the following course of procedure may be followed : — 1. Ascertain the quantity of moisture in the apparently dry soil by the mode of desiccation described, weighing the soil before and after the operation. 2. Ascertain the affinity for moisture by lengthened exposure of the desiccated soil to the air anywhere, and subsequently weighing it to learn what it has gained. 3. Ascertain the quantity of organic matter in the soil by heating it to incandescence as directed, but doing this in a plantinum crucible, previou&ly desiccating it as before, and weighing it before and after this third operation. 4. Drench it with spirit of salt, muriatic acid, or hydrochloric acid, as it is now generally designated, adding soft water, and continuing the operation till all effervescence has ceased. Drench it then with water ; let it settle ; pour ofi" the water when limpid ; desiccate as at first, and weigh : and the loss of weight will then indicate the quantity of lime which was in the soil. DECOMPOSITION OF HUMUS. 71 6. Ascertain the quantity of clay by the operation described. 6. By sifting the residuum through a piece of fine muslin, the sand may be separated from the gravel, and the quantity of each deter- mined by weighing them apart. A comparison of the results will show the difference in the com- position of the two soils — and in none of the constituents will the difference be more marked than in the organic constituents and in the sand and gravel ; the former, composed mainly of humus or the constituents of humus, having a great affinity for moisture, being greatly in excess in the forest soil, and the latter, having little or no affinity for moisture, being almost awanting. This humus is a product of vegetation, inasmuch as it is a result of the decay and decomposition of vegetable products ; and it is not only not decreased but it is constantly being increased by vegetation. Under no crop is this more manifestly the case than under a crop of deciduous trees. For this the annual fall of the leaves enables us without difficulty to account. The shelter afforded by a wood pre- vents both the fallen leaves, and the dust to which they may be reduced, from being borne away by the wind, and the shade prevents the humus from being so decomposed as to be carried off by the air. With the smaller quantity of humus in the soil not protected by shelter and shade, it is otherwise. What there occurs is thus stated in a paper I had occasion to cite in treating of the effect of de- nudation of the country on the hydroscopicity of the soil,* a paper on the philosophy of arboriculture, by the Rev. Dr Macvicar, of Moffat, who was the iirst editor of the Quarterly Journal of Agri- cidture, issued by the Highland and Agricultui-al Society of Scotland, and who subsequently resided in Ceylon, where he had opportunities for prosecuting researches upon which he had previously entered. The writer remarks, in regard to effects following the destruction of forests, — " The soil when stript of the clothing which the forest afforded, and exposed naked to the heat of the sunbeam, changes very rapidly from the rich mould which the long-continued fall of the leaf in the forest had made it, and becomes very unproductive. Had occasional trees in the forest been left to give shade during part of the day, the destination of the carbon in the mould would have been to have been slowly converted into carbonic acid, and so to supply food to the successive crops growing on the soil, as they required it. But when the sunbeam is left to break in its fall force on the soil all • " Hydrology of South Africa " (p. 213). 72 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON nUMIDITY. day long, it burns the carbon in the soil with great rapidity into carbonic acid ; and this gas, unless there be in the soil some oxide having an affinity to it to retain it, goes off in gas, injuring the salubrity of the air perhaps, and at all events wholly impoverishing the soil, — for carbonic acid is the principal food of all plants. The same course of things it might be shown happens with regard to ammonia ; and thus, both as itself the immediate food of plants and as that which by oxidation yields nitre, ammonia is lost. Thus the indiscriminate destruction of forest over any great breadth of country, if that country has plenty of sunshine, is a great evil." In correspondence with Dr Macvicar on the subject, he wrote to me, — " As to the point to which you refer — the rapid generation in the soil, and the vaporization from it of ammonia and carbonic acid, under the impact of the tropical sunbeams and breezes — I do not remember to have seen it dwelt upon by any writer, though both in the writings of Boussingault and of Liebig it is implied ; and it is an inevitable consequence of the eremacausis, or the slow combustion of organic matter. It is familiarly verified by the process of bleaching. Even with such sunshine as we have in this country the organic matter which imparts colour to tissues is carried off much more rapidly in the sunshine than out of it ; and it can only be carried off as carbonic acid and ammonia : that is, it is not merely changed from coloured to colourless, as is proved by the loss of weight which the web has sustained when it is bleached. In this country we have generally less sunshine than we require, and, except in fallows, the surface of the soil is never left bare. Hence the effect of the impact of the sunbeam has been but little considered. But from what I have observed in the tropics, I am persuaded that its power of affecting plant food in the neighbourhood, by the destruction of the fertility of every surface that is left bare, is very great. It intensifies to a wonderful extent that action of the incumbent atmosphere by which the carbon and hydrogen in the soil unite with the oxygen and nitrogen of the air, and give moisture, carbonic acid, and ammonia almost immediately after, if they be not utilized on the spot where they are generated, dispersing all but that quantum which the soil can retain at a temperature of perhaps 140° or 150° F., which is not much." CHAPTER III. Effects of Forests on Marshes. In studying the effects of forests on marshes there come uuder con- sideration the drying up of marshes by the growth of forests, the occasonal appearance of marshes on the destruction of forests, and also the occasional destruction of forests by the ci'eation of marshes. The combined consideration of all of these phenomena may be necessary to a satisfactory view of the first ; but this is susceptible of satisfactory explanation by itself, and the second may be con- sidered to be confirmatory of the first, and the third not otherwise than accordant therewith. And by the consideration of these several phases of the correlation of forests and marshes, we may be prepared for the consideration of the effect of forests, in drying up marshes upon a grand scale through protracted ages, in rendering what was a marshy land so dry as to be- come a fit habitation for man, of which Denmark supplies an illus- tration. Sect. I. — On the Drying up of Marshes on the Growth of Trees. We have latterly been considering the effect of arborescent vegeta- tion in preserving the humidity of the soil ; but we had previously been considering the effects of forests in increasing the humidity of the atmosphere ; and previously to that we had under consideration the phenomena of vegetation on which meteorological effects of forests affecting humidity of soil and atmosphere depend : moisture being withdrawn from the soil by the spongioles of the root, trausmitted by the trunk to the branches and passed off into the atmosphere by the stomates of the leaves. It may seem paradoxical to speak of forests both drying up marshes and keeping the soil moist ; but it is not more so than to speak of a man blowing both hot and cold. There is a great difference between moist soil and marsh. All moisture in excess of what can be retained by shelter and shade and humus in the soil is free to be otherwise 74 EFFECTS OP FORESTS ON MARSHES. disposed of, and the effect of forests in drying up marshes, viewed ai an isolated fact, may be proved as satisfactorily as any of the eflfects of forests which have been under consideration. I have already alluded to this effect in stating that the allegation of the South African farmer, that the trees stole the water from the water leadings, by the sides of which they were planted, was not altogether without foundation, though the phenomenon on which his opinion was founded was one which did not prove this, but proved something very different. We have had under consideration the fact that very extensive pro- vision has been made for the evaporation of water from the leaves of trees : in the case of one tree, the Lilac, so many as 160 thousand stomates being found on every square inch of the under surface of the leaf. Whence is the moisture to be so evaporated obtained] Mainly and almost exclusively, if not entirely so, from the ground. It seems to follow that what the atmosphere thus gains the earth must first lose, even though a portion of it may be subsequently restored. And the quantity thus raised from the ground and given forth to the atmosphere is very great. Mr Marsh, whom I have already quoted elsewhere, states : — " The present estimates of some eminent vegetable physiologists in regard to the quantity of aqueous vapour exhaled by trees and taken up by the atmosphere are much greater than those of former inquirers. Direct and satisfactory experiments on this point are wanting, and it is not easy to imagine how they could be made on a sufficiently extensive and comprehensive scale. Our conclusions must therefore be drawn from observations on small plants, or separate branches of trees, and of course are subject to much uncertainty. Nevertheless, Schleiden, arguing from such analogies, comes to the surprising result that a wood evaporates ten times as much water as it receives from atmospheric precipitation. In the Northern and Eastern States of the Union [America] the mean precipitation during the period of forest growth — that is, from the swelling of the buds in spring to the ripening of the fruit, the hardening of the young shrubs, and the full perfection of the other annual products of the tree — exceeds, on the average, 24 inches. Taking this estimate, the evaporation from the forest would be equal to a precipitation of 240 inches, or very nearly 150 standard gallons, to the square foot of surface." Startled by this, he questions the correctness of the conclusion at which Schleiden had arrived ; but he states in a foot-note : — " Pfaff, too, experimenting on branches of a living oak, weighed immediately EXHALATION OP MOISTURE. 75 after being cut from the tree, and again after an exposure after three minutes, and computing the superficial measure of all the leaves of the tree, concludes that an oak tree evaporates, during the season of growth, eight and a-half times the mean amount of rainfall on an area equal to that shaded by the tree." Corresponding observations made by others are not awanting. Marshal Vaillant writes : — " Even the most humble plants, such as chickweeds and meadow grasses, evaporate considerable quantities of water. Independently of all the other actions, which ought not to be overlooked, this is the chief cause why the abundant summer rains make so little impression on our rivers. This is why the gardener uses the hoe so carefully, and why he removes all weeds which would exhaust the moisture of the soil. " The intelligent gardener is not deceived, he knows that if any weed has long numerous roots, like the triticum repens (couch grass), they do more harm than others, because by spreading to a distance they deprive a larger extent of ground of its share of moisture. This is why a paillis, although on account of its dark colour it becomes sooner warm than turf or other grass plants, does so much good to cultivated vegetables, by not depriving their roots of moisture. " The quantity of water exuded by rapidly-growing plants is far greater than could be supposed possible by people who have not made direct experiments ; it is especially plants of soft texture with hollow stems that excite our surprise. A branch of helianthns annuus (a sunflower), placed in a caraffe full of water, and exposed to the sun, exhausts the water very rapidly; thus this plant, with its far- spreading roots, is a very dangerous neighbour to others, and we may be thankful that the passage of water into the roots does not go on so quickly as the evaporation by its leaves, otherwise the exhaustion caused would be much greater than it really is. It is this difference between the quantity of water transmitted from the soil to the roots, and from the leaves to the air, that causes the latter to wither in warm weather. Rain does not penetrate the leaves, but only diminishes their evaporation, so that an equilibrium is re-established. " If from herbaceous plants or modest shrubs we turn to our large forest trees, we may expect that, compared with the weeds of which we have just spoken, they will transpire a great quantity of water, which is probably in proportion to the number of leaves and their extent of surface ; and it is our belief that this summer function of the leaves is carried on by the trunk and branches during the whole 76 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MARSHES. year. Of the energy and rapidity with which water ascends through the trunk of a tree, the operation called houcherie, for the preservation of timber, aifords a remarkable example. In a very short time a poisonous liquid is transmitted from the base of the trunk to the ex- tremity of the branches. "From whence comes the water so rapidly transpired by the foliage 1 Certainly from the soil ; and as the roots of these vegetable giants penetrate far — as some say, in some cases, to the same extent as the branches — it is easy to understand how the ground becomes dried up and incapable of supplying nourishment to plants of smaller growth. " It is therefore impossible for anything to thrive close to, or even at a considerable distance from, the root of a tree. It is not only the shade and the want of rain that hinders growth : indeed, plants at some distance from a large tree are as much shaded as are those close beside it, and the rain, which seldoms descends vertically, always moistens such plants more or less, they are also refreshed by the dew, and, nevertheless, they die or languish. It is because they grow in a soil which is always dry and deprived of nourishing power. Certainly the invitation addressed by the oak to the reed in the fable bespeaks a good disposition ; but had it been accepted the poor reed would soon have died of thirst. Its tall and powerful protector would soon have dried up the damp borders of the kingdom of the wind, which nature has appointed as the habitation of reeds. " Whoever has uprooted old trees must have remarked to what a great depth the earth around the roots is exhausted and dried up. This state of things can be easily acounted for, after the particulars of the following experiment may have been read. " We placed in a large jug of water, as tightly closed up as possible so as to hinder the effect of natural evaporation, the end of an oak brancii, 1™ 40 centimetres [nearly 5 feet] long, and 4 centimetres [nearly 2 inches] in circumference at its lower extremity. The branch was cut off from a tree about 25^" [upwards of 80 feet] high, add 2™ 63 centimetres [about 9 feet] in circumference at 1°^ [40 inches] from the ground After tvrenty-four hours' exposure in the open air at a temperature of 15° 7" [60° Fahr.] at the minimum, and 25° 7' [77° Fahr.] at the maximum, the water in the vase diminished 510 grammes [18 oz.]. The sun was shining brightly. In forty-eight hours from the be- ginning of the experiment the water in the jug had again lost 300 grammes [10| oz.] of its weight. The sun had been very warm, the EXHALATION FROM LEAVES. 77 thermometer having risen to a maximum of 27° 7" [82° Fahr,], the minimum having been only 10° 7* [57° Fahr.] ; the wind on this day and the preceding had been from the north or north-east. Seventy- two hoin*s after the introduction of the oak branch into the water the vase had again lost 140 grammes [5 oz.] of its weight. The weather had been as lovely as the day before, the minimum of the temperature having been at 12° 5" [54°] and the maximum 25'' [77°]. Thus the ■weight of water evaporated by the branch was, at the end of the first day, 510 grammes, at the the end of the second, 810, and at the end of the third, 950 [30 ounces]. The experiment was not cai-ried further. In the first place, because several of the leaves were withered and incapable of performing their functions ; secondly, because the water in the jug was beginning to be affected by being mixed with the sub- stances which always are deposited by plants when placed in water. " If we believe that all the leafy parts of a tree will act, as regards the faculty of transpiration, like the leaves of the above-mentioned branch : in other words, if we suppose that the quantities of water expired by the entire tree were in like proportion, we arrive at the astounding result that an oak like the one described will, in a summer day, cause the evaporation of more than 2000 killogrammes of water, more than two cubic metres, [or 440 gallons]. " We are not decided in regard to the value of our experiment, and we see very weU that our deductions are not free from objections ; but it must be allowed that supposing that every one-half or one-quarter of the estimated quantity be omitted, the quantity must greatly exceed what might have been expected " A forest should produce on the soil which it covers the effect of a large umbrella pierced in many places, it may be, but, nevertheless, arresting and imbibing a certain quantity of rain, of which it deprives the neighbouring soil. So long as the leaves are imperfectly soaked, no moisture reaches the ground ; and it can be easily imagined that a moderate continuous rain would be entirely absorbed by natural evaporation, and in effect the humidity of the air, even in damp weather, never reaches the maximum of the hygrometer in the lower atmospherical strata, and evaporation is never entirely suspended. " If we further add to these causes of exhaustion that there is little dew deposited under trees, it can be believed that the ground of a forest is less favoured as regards the quantity of moisture received from the heavens than that which is exposed to the open sky. " And, nevertheless, it is an accepted fact, and that not without good reason, that the neighbourhood of forests is cold and damp. 78 EFFECTS OF F0BREST3 ON MABSHE8. This is far from astonisbing when one thinks of the enormous volume of water transformed by forests into vapour, and the quantity of heat absorbed in this transformation. This heat must have been obtained somewhere — perhaps from the soil of the forest and that of the neighbourhood. ** In the same way, there should be great damp in the neighbour- hood of forests, especially when the temperature is high, and it cannot be otherwise on account of the enormous amount of water in the form of vapour which is discharged by forests into the adjacent atmosphere. " This vapour is emitted in much greater abundance during the day than during the night. Towards night, a little after sunset, when the general temperature begins to fall, the transpiration not yet having had time to slacken, and ascending into a colder air, changes into visible fog, like our own breath in like circumstances and this fog in its turn becomes a cloud on the following morning, when the sun warms its particles ; but whether clouds or fogs they will be cai-ried away by the first breeze, to descend in showers far from the place of their birth. " It is evident that the rain of these showers, pumped up, in the first place, by the tree-roots from the forest soil, if it be sometimes restored to this soil it is only in part ; so that even in this respect we can assert that, with regard to water, forests place the soil in a much worse position than a crop of cereals. " If these details as to the formation of forest-fogs be correct, such fogs should be more frequent in calm weather, when the air is naturally more moist, and especially when the contrast is greatest between the cool of the evening and the heat of the day. The test of conditions for the formation of thick forest-fogs is especially com- plete, at least in our climate, towards the end of summer and the first half of autumn ; and it is during this period that the phenomenon is most frequent and noticeable. " If the transpiration carried on by the leaves were coloured and perceptible, it would be a grand sight to see great columns of vapour ascending majestically into the air, diminishing by their height the distance between the tops of the trees and the stormy clouds ; and as this vapour facilitates the passage of electricity, by inci'easing the moisture of the air with which it mingles, the frequency with which isolated trees are struck with lightning can be accounted for. Per- haps, also, if attention were turned to this point, the reason would be discovered why so many people, taking shelter under trees, are struck EXHALATION FROM LEAVES. 79 by lightning. It is difficult to refuse to believe that these people were not more exposed to danger in such a situation than if they had remained in the open field." These statements I give as the views advanced by Marshal Vaillant. There are points on which my own views are somewhat different; but with regard to the grand fact, that the emission of moisture by the leaves of the forest is very great, we are at one. With what is known of the affinity of humus and of clay for mois- ture, it may be considered probable that not a little of the moisture evaporated by the stomates may be re-absorbed by the soil, though never precipitated as rain. But even supposing that this should have happened, not once, but times innumerable in the course of a specified period — and thus much of the moisture evaporated should be sub- stantially the same moisture, passing again and again and again through the circuit, evaporated, passed through the stomates, ab- sorbed by the air, thence absorbed by the soil, and thence absorbed by the rootlets to be passed on by endosmosic action again to the leaves, to go through the same round again and yet again — it is not unreasonable to suppose that a large portion, a very large portion, must be taken from the soil. The experiments founded on by Pfaff, like that of Marshal Vaillant's, give the result of evaporation which could not have been sustained in this way, for the branch was severed from the tree. I have no means of verifying his calculation resulting in the conclusion that the quantity of moisture passing out by the stomates in the time specified must have been equal in quantity to eight and a-half times the whole quantity of rain which fell on the spot in the course of the period specified ; but with what I happen to know of vegetable physiology his conclusion in no way startles me. By Dr Asa Gray it is remarked : — " The quantity of water exhaled from the leaves during active vegetation is very great. In one of the well-known experiments of Hales, a sunflower three and a-half feet high, with a surface of 5,616 square inches exposed to the air, was found to perspire at the rate of twenty or thirty ounces avordupois every twelve hours, or seventeen times more than a man. A. vine, with twelve square feet of foliage, exhaled at the rate of five or six ounces a-day ; and a seedling apple tree, with eleven square feet of foliage, lost nine ounces a-day. The amount varies with the degree of warmth and dryness of the air, and of exposure to light ; and is also very different in different species, some exhaling more copiously 80 EFFECTS OP FORESTS ON MARSHES. even than the sunflower. But when we consider the vast perspiring surface presented by a large tree in full leaf, it is evident that the quantity of watery vapour it exhales must be immense." Of the moisture thus evaporated and passed into the atmosphere a very great quantity must have been withdrawn from the soil and dissipated, and thus even a marsh might in course of time be dried up. Of this effect let me give one illustration, one which was communi- cated to me by a distinguished agriculturist in Berwickshire, not less distinguished for his knowledge of the science and literature of agricul- ture than he is for the practical application he has made of the know- ledge he possesses. On the farm in his possession, and which has been long in the hands of himself and his family, there is a rising ground at the base of which there was a piece of waste land, which, though not a bog, was characterised by its large and luxuriant crop of rushes, and into which sunk the feet of horses, if not of men, when they got upon it, leaving footprints wet, if not filled with water, and there was adjoining this a corner of enclosed cultivated land which it was attempted to make dry by drains, but the attempt was vain. Shortly after 1820 the top of the rising ground was planted with firs and larch. The plantation covered a space of 20 acres. From this time both the swampy waste land and the enclosed drained but damp land became more dry, and at length became perfectly so. Some forty years after the planting of these trees a furious gale pro- duced great devastation in the plantation, uprooting or breaking over most of the trees and leaving standing only here and there one. The scene was unsightly, and ultimately the whole were felled and the land cleared ; but immediately the low-lying ground became swampy as before, and this was its condition when I visited the locality some eight years thereafter. The phenomena were accounted for by my friend and informant by the supposition that there must have been a fissure in the rising ground, from which the water oozed out, formerly and now ; but that the rootlets of the trees, during the growth of these, absorbed the moisture, and though their doing so may have increased the humidity of the atmosphere enveloping the trees, it prevented the percolation of the moisture into the ground below, which was previously so wet ; but the removal of the trees allowed it, in oozing out, to descend to the lower-lying soil as before. To this explanation I offer no objection — an examination of the rock alone would enable me to test the correctness of it. At the MAPSHES APPEARIKO IN FORESTS. 81 same time, another explanation of the cause of the phenomena suggested itself to me when the details were given, namely : that before the rising ground was planted much of the moisture falling as rain upon the upper part of it spread under the surface, being pre- vented by rock or clay from sinking, and oozed out at the lower level; but after the plantation was formed less of the rain-fall reached this impervious layer. But in either case all may be accounted for without prejudice to the doctrine now under consideration. The planting of the trees was followed by the desiccation of the swamp ; the destruction of the trees, by its restoration. Sect, II. — On the Occasional Ajyjyearance of Marshes on the Destruction of Forests. In the case of the disappearance of a swamp on the planting of an adjacent rising ground with trees, and the reappearance of the swamp on the destruction of the trees, the one phenomenon may be con- sidered the counterpart to the other, and both of them in accordance with the exposition which has been given of the absorption of moisture from the soil by the roots, and its emission into the atmosphere by the leaves. Other cases of the destruction of woods having been followed by the appearance of swamps have been brought under my notice. In Russia, some yeai-s ago, in the course of conversation on the state of the forests with an intelligent lady, the niece of a forest official, I learned that there, as elsewhere, when ground is cleared of firs and pines, as it often is by extensive fires, it often happens, so often that in some districts it may be said that generally, there spring up birches in great abundance ; and, she added, that in some cases the clearing away of a wood converts the groiind on which it grew into a morass, which, when it is replanted, is commonly replanted with willows. I accept the statement as made. I pass at present the growth of birches where previously grew the pine and the fir, but with the intention of reverting to it afterwards. I call attention to the morass, and suggest the enquiry, How came it to pass that there was no morass there before ? I consider there was none before, most probably because all the water which went to the subsequent creation and maintenance of the morass which subsequently appeared was raised by the trees and passed into the atmosphere, in accordance with what has been 82 EFFECT OF FORESTS ON MARSHES. advanced ; and that this was the case I have no doubt. But along with this there may have been combined another operation, more simple, mechanical, and intelligible, which must not be overlooked. I have never heard particulars of a case which seemed to run counter to the exposition which I have given, of which I have not been able to show that it was compatible, or consistent, with the supposition that the operation was such as I have supposed. But there is another operation, noticed by Becquerel, to which Marsh considers that sufficient importance has not, until very recently, been generally ascribed, namely, the mechanical action of roots as con- ductors of the superfluous humidity of the superficial earth to lower strata. " The roots of trees," says he, " often penetrate through sub-soil almost impervious to water, and in such cases the moisture, which would otherwise remain above the sub-soil, and convert the surface earth into a bog, follows the root downwards and escapes into moi'e porous strata, or is received by subterranean canals or reservoirs. When the forest is felled, the roots perish and decay, the orifices opened by them are soon obstructed, and the water, after having saturated the vegetable earth, stagnates on the surface and transforms it into ponds and morasses. Thus, in La Brenue, a tract of 200,000 acres resting on an impermeable sub-soil of argillaceous earth, which ten centuries ago was covered with forests, interspersed with fertile and salubrious meadows, has been converted by the destruction of the woods into a vast expanse of pestilential pools and marshes. In Sologne the same cause has withdrawn from cultivation and human habitation not less than 1,100,000 acres of ground, once well-wooded, well-drained, and productive." It is with the fact that such results have followed such proceedings that we have to do. From the facts alone we may leai'n wisdom, though we should be baffled in attempting to trace the process by which the results have been produced, and explanations offered by others may appear to us unsatisfactory. We have learned that food invigorates us and sleep refreshes, and we act upon the knowledge of the facts, though we may be unable to explain how it is that these results are produced. And we find that thus the knowledge of these facts has been utilised in Russia, where a morass appearing on the destruction of a forest is replanted with willows. Pines and firs grew there before ; but pines and firs would not grow now, and thus is brought before us another view of the subject : not only has the destruction of FORESTS DESTROYED BY MARSHES. 83 forests given rise to the appearance, on the spot or near it, of a morass, but a morass otherwise produced has brought about a destruction of forests. Sect. III.— -On the Occasional Destruction of Forests hy the Creation of Marshes. The cases of forests having been destroyed by the creation of marshes are numerous. There is nothing in this which is otherwise than in accordance with the views of the meteorological effects of forests which have been advanced ; but it may be well that this should be shown, and it may be not improper that in doing so the phenomena should be brought under consideration in more than one of the phases which they present, 1 have, in the pi-eceding section of this chapter, given my explana- tion of the fact communicated to me that in some cases in Russia the clearing of the portion of a forest by a forest fire, or by a hurri- cane, has been followed by the conversion into a morass of the ground on which it grew ; and I have brought forward other facts suggestive of how it may be that the results followed. But these exhaust not the means by which morasses are produced in forest land. In forests we meet with swamps which appear to have destroyed trees growing on the spot, but which may have been themselves pro- duced by the destruction of other trees through a process in no respect similar to any which have been noticed. I submitted the account I have given of the facts communicated to me by my friend in Russia to an intelligent English engineer who had resided much in the interior of the country, who was a man of careful observation, one who reasoned on what he saw, and one from whom I had received much information in regard to forests in Russia. He returned my statement with the following annotation : — " In the interior there occasionally occur great hurricanes, tearing all before them and blowing down large spaces of the forests, laying the trees with their roots attached to tiiem in all directions, and being in many cases far from towns or villages the blown down trees are never taken away, but decay where they have fallen, as I have seen. When the ground is level, the little river is, from the fallen trees, raised in its bed, or, as is often the case, is changed in its course. There is thus always more of the space kept longer under water in the spring than formerly, and during the summer a rank vegetation springs up, 84 EFFECTS OP FORESTS o!J MARSHES. which tends also to keep the ground damp and watery. This, along with the decaying wood, soon gets into a complete marsh, and will eventually become what is called in Britain a peat moss. ** In cases where these hurricanes have destroyed the forest near to inhabitated districts, and the land is low-lying, the space is cleared and turned often into meadow, which is what the Russians like — good meadow land. Their method of getting the hay from the soft and marshy land is to put it up into ricks in some raised part of the meadow, inclose it round with a wicker fence, and when the winter sets in they take it home in their sledges, in the same way as their wood is all taken to its destination, advantage being taken then of sledges on the snow, where there are often no roads in summer ; and also in the winter time, the peasant farmers having nothing do on their land are thus able to get their rye, etc., conveyed to the nearest market ; and having then plenty of time, some of them go to the large towns and factories, and work there during the winter, returning home in the spring, generally about the Easter holidays." I have given the annotation entire, because to me it speaks throughout of the abundance of moisture existing when the forests have been destroyed. The allusions to what is done in leading rye and leading wood speak of the abundance of water in the ground kept comparatively dry by the forest, but accumulating when superficial drainage is prevented. My correspondent assumes, and not without reason, that in the cases alleged the water level may have been raised by the damming up of an outlet ; and I accept the explanation as one given by an intelligent observer, living in the country and ftimiliar with the facts. His statement is suggestive of much which might illustrate the operation of trees in drying marshy land, utilizing and dispersing the excess of moisture, and fitting the land, otherwise compai'atively use- less to man, for bringing forth herbs meet for them by whom it is dressed. But at present we have to do with the one fact that thus also morasses may be produced, along with the effects referred to ; and of this other illustrations may be given. In the Northern States of America, and in the Dominion of Canada, we meet occasionally with extensive patches of weird-like trees, standing leafless and dead in a shallow waste of waters, miles in extent, produced by the accidental or designed damming up of some streamlet it may be by which it had previously been drained. It may have occurred through some such accident as my friend in THE BOIS BRULE. 85 Russia has suggested ; it may have occurred iu connection with some endeavour to divert into another channel the waters of the same or some other water-course ; it may have occurred in consequence of the damming up of some outlet from a lake which it was sought to enlarge as a reservoir for the supply of a canal, or a mill-lade, or some other purpose ; or it may have been the effect of the woi'k of a beaver, for cases of all such occvirrences can be cited. But, however produced, the consequence to that portion of the forest which is laid under water, though only to the depth of one or two feet, is the same — the trees are killed as if girdled by fire, or by the woodman's axe, and, most probably, by a similar operation, through the decay and destruction of the bark and sapwood at the water-line, or between wind and water, promoted by alternate exposure to each by the ripple, and the consequent severance of the communication between rootlet and leaf, or it may be by such a severance being occasioned by the rupture and decay of vessels through which that communication was maintained. A graphic sketch of the destruction thus wrought occurs in an account given by Gosse of a forenoon's excursion, which he made in Canada to the Bois Brule, a large tract of land which lay at no great distance from his residence, but was so hidden in the recesses of the woods, and so out of the way of any travelled road, that it was not often visited except by the trapper. The first quarter of a mile lay through what he calls a very rough slash. " Such a labyrinth of fallen timber we had to penetrate," says he, " climbing over the trunks, and scrambling through the dry branches of the prostrate trees, often falling through ; and, to make the matter worse, these were concealed by the tall Indian wickup, epilohkcjn latefoUum, with which the ground was absolutely covered, and, as the long seed-pods were just bursting, our every movement dispersed clouds of the light downy cotton, which, getting into our mouths and nostrils, caused us considerable inconvenience. Presently we descended the steep bank, and walked, or rather scrambled, up the rocky bed of the stream, by means of the stones which were above water, though, as they were wet and slimy, we occasionally wetted our feet. Thus we went on sometimes in the stream, sometimes among the alders and underwood of the banks, for about a mile and a-half. We were much surprised in going up this brook, about a mile up, at coming upon a ruined building, which had been erected over the stream at a craggy fall, the timbers of which had fallen down, and some of them had been carried a considerable distance down by the freshets, I supposed it Ob EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MARSHES. must have been a mill, but wondered at its situation, so far from any road. I have since been informed that it was a saw-mill, and that there was a good road to it, but this road being now overrun with bushes and young trees, escaped our notice. The mill has been disused nearly twenty years. On the borders of the brook I met with seed- vessels of the touch-me-not, impatiens nolli tangere, the handsome sub-conic scarlet fruit of the white and the red death, trillium picium and T. foetidum, the large umbelled bright blue berries of smilacina horecdis, and many others. In pressing through the bush we got our clothes bedaubed with a nasty substance, which we discovered to proceed from thousands of the aphis lanata (?) which we had crushed ; they were so thickly clustered round the branches of the alders as to make a solid mass half-an-inch thick, covered with ragged filaments of white down. We were getting tired of the ruggedness of our path, when we suddenly came upon a new and very good bridge across the brook, made of round, that is, unhewn logs, which connected a good broad path, from which the fallen trees and encumbrances had been cleared away, and which had evidently been used for drawing out mill-logs in winter with sleds. This we followed. The sides of the road were lined with the stumps of large spruces and hemlocks, which had been felled the previous winter ; and the road itself was strewn with the chips of the axe-men. The course lying through a cedar swamp, the ground was mossy, and in some places wet ; here the scarlet stone- berry was abundant, as well as the berries mentioned before. The iovmer, framria canadensis, is a low and pretty plant, having a white flower, resembling that of a strawberry, and four large oval green leaves on the ground ; at present they were crowned with the little cluster of bright red berries, which were ripe, and we ate many — they were farinaceous and agreeable. This plant is common in Newfoundland. We continued to follow this path till it appeared almost interminable, though its tedious uniformity made it seem longer tlian it really was, as I suppose we did not walk more than a mile and a-half on it when I perceived by the increasing light among the trees that we were approaching a large opening. " We now pi'essed eagerly on, and found that we had reached the borders of the Bride, which was not a clearing, as I had expected, but was covered with a stunted and ragged gi'owth of moss-grown spruce, from eight to twelve feet in height, exactly resembling the small woods of Newfoundland. On the borders of the large marshes I found also the same plants that inhabit such situations in that THE B0I8 BRULE. 87 country, and which I now saw for the first time in Canada. I also recognised numbers of another old acquaintance, an exceedingly curious plant, the Indian cup or pitcher-plant, sarracenia purptirea." Some of the plants he describes, and then goes on to say, " The road by which we had approached did not enter the Brule, but merely touching its edge, went straight on, entering the tall woods on the other side. We penetrated a few roods into the Brule, to see if there were any clearing, but could perceive no change in the ugly, dead, half-burnt spruce, and therefore returned. This singular piece of ground contains some thousands of acres, and is said to owe its origin to the beavers, which were formerly numerous, damming up the streams, which, overflowing and spreading over the flat-lands, killed the growing timber. It is a resort of wolves, bears, and other wild animals, though we perceived no sign of life in the stillness which pervaded the solitude ; nor, indeed, in the whole journey, with the exception of one or two little birds, which were not near enough to be identified, and a few insignificant insects in the forest. Having satisfied our curiosity we began to return as we came, until we arrived at the bridge, when, instead of retracing the course of the stream, we crossed the bridge and continued to pursue the road, which, for some distance, led us through towering spruces and hemlocks, as before. On a sudden the character of the woods changed : we found the sides lined with young maple, birch, beech, &c., which met overhead at the height of about twelve feet, forming a very perfect and regular continued Gothic arch, or rather a long series of arches. This long avenue was the most pleasant part of our walk, and the more so because it was quite unexpected. We presently opened into a large field, which had been just mown, and here we were rather laughably bewildered : the place was a ten^a incognita ; we had never before seen it, nor could we i-ecognise any object, so as to guess at our whereabouts. There appeared to be no outlet through the woods by which the field was environed. In one part was the skeleton of an old log-house without a roof, and a portion of the field was planted with potatoes. We at length saw a path through to these potatoes, on which we walked till we came to the brow of a hill from whence we perceived familiar objects. It commanded an extensive view : the beautiful and winding Coatacook was at our feet with its bridge. Smith's mills and all that neighbour- hood ; beyond a broad belt of the forest was visible Tilden's Tavern and the road leading from Hatley to Stsrbrooke, and the forest again behind all. We now left the path, taking a short cut over the hill, 88 EFFECTS OP FOBESTS ON MARSHES. coming down by Bradley's mill, and so home, much pleased, notwith- standing the little disagreeables, with our little excursion." In regard to the effects of the work of the beaver, it is remarked by Marsh, " I am disposed to think that more bogs in the Northern States owe their origin to beavers than to accidental obstructions of rivulets by wind-fallen or naturally decayed trees ; for there are few swan^ps in those States, at the outlets of which we may not, by careful search, find the remains of a beaver dam. The beaver some- times inhabits natural lakelets and even large rivers like the Mississippi, when the current is not too rapid, but he prefers to owe his pond to his own ingenuity and toil. The reservoir once con- structed, its inhabitants rapidly multiply so long as the trees, and the harvests of pond lilies and other aquatic plants, on which this quadruped feeds in winter, suffices for the supply of the growing population. " But the extension of the water causes the death of the neighbouring trees, and the annual growth of those which could be reached by canals and floated to the pond soon becomes insuificient for the wants of the community, and the beaver metropolis now sends out expeditions of discovery and colonization. The pond gradually fills up, by the operation of the same causes as when it owes its existence to an accidental obstruction, and when, at last, the original settle- ment is converted into a bog by the usual processes of vegetable life, the remaining inhabitants abandon it and build on some virgin brook- let a new city of the waters." And he adds in a foot note : — " I find confirmation of my own observation on this point (published in 1863) in the ' North West Passage by Land,' of Milton and Cheadle, London, 1865. These travellers observed • A long chain of marshes formed by the damming up of a stream which had now ceased to exist,' chap. x. In chap. xii. they state that ' Nearly every stream between the Pembina and the Attrabasca — except the large river M'Leod — appeared to have been destroyed by the agency of the beaver,' and they question whether the vast extent of swampy ground in that region ' Has not been brought to this condition by the work of beavers, who have thus destroyed, by their own labour, the streams necessary to their own existence. " But even hero nature pi'ovides a remedy, for when the process of consolidation shall have been completed, and the forest re-established upon the marshes, the water now diffused through them will be MARSITES OCCASIONED BY LEAVES. 89' collected in the lower or more yielding portions, cut new channels for their flow, become running brooks, and thus restore the ancient aspect of the surface. " The authors add the curious observation that the beavers of the present day seem to be a degenerate race, as they neither fell large trees nor construct great dams, while their progenitors cut down trees two feet in diameter and dammed up rivers a hundred feet in width. The change in the habits of the beaver is probably due to the diminu- tion of their numbers since the introduction of fire-arms, and to the foot that their hydraulic operations are more frequently interrupted by the encroachments of man. " In the valley of the Yellowstone, which has but lately been much visited by the white man, Hayden saw stumps of trees thirty inches in diameter which had been cut down by beavers. * " The American beaver closely resembles his European congener, and I believe most naturalists now regard them as identical. A difference of species had been inferred from a difference in their modes of life, the European animal being solitary and not a builder, the American gregarious and constructive. But late careful researches in Germany have shown the foi^mer existence of numerous beaver- dams in that country, though the animal, having become too rare to form colonies, has of course ceased to attempt works which require the co-operation of numerous individuals, t " On the question of identity, and all others relating to this interest- ing animal, see L. H. Morgan's important monograph, " The American Beaver and his Works," Philadelphia, 1868. Among the many new facts observed by the investigator is the construction of canals by the beaver to float trunks and branches of trees to his pond. These canals are sometimes 600 or 700 feet long, with a width of two or three feet, and a depth of one to one and a-half." It may be considered by some of my readers that the natural history of beavers can scarcely be considered the meteorological effects of forests. The same may be alleged of all that is being advanced in this chapter relating to the effects of forests on the humidity of the ground. I deem it proper to treat the subject thus freely, partly with a view to anticipating and obviating objections which may suggest themselves to conclusions drawn, and partly * " Geological Survey of Wyoming" (p. 135). t Schleiden : " Fur Baim und Walcl'' Leipzig, 1870 (p. 68). 90 EFFECTS OP FORESTS ON MARSHES. because it is the effect on the soil of the meteorological effects of forests which chiefly concerns us at present in the discussion of these. Sect. IV. — On the Desiccating Effects produced on Marshes hy Forests in Prolonged Periods. Reference is made by Marsh to a recuperative operation, whereby even the bog produced by the destruction of a forest regains, after a time, its former aspect, and in this the desiccating effect of vegetation comes again into play, pi'omotes the work, and expedites the result. In Denmark we see what may thus be accomplished. We there meet with a land, which, at one or more periods of its existence as land, must have been over a great extent of its surface covered by morasses and marshes, and peat bogs, but which is now so dry as to be habitable, and cultivated by man, giving him in return for his labours fields of increase ; and the peat bogs supply extensive indications that forests must have played an important part in producing the change. From Bogens Indrandring i de BansJce Skove, by Chr. Vaupell, we learn that a careful examination of the peat mosses in North Sjselland, which are so abundant in fossil wood that within thirty years they have yielded above a million of trees, shows that these trees have generally fallen from age and not from wind. They are found in depressions on the declivities of which they grew, and they lie with the top lowest, always falling towards the bottom of the valley. The origin of these bogs dates from pre-historic times ; but the origin of other bogs has been studied, and the result has been given in part in the preceding section. Marsh, in his valuable treatise on " The Earth as Modified by Human Action," which I have already cited, says, " Bogs generally originate in the checking of water-courses by the falling of timber or of earth and rocks, or by artificial obstructions across their channels. If the impediment is sufficient to retain a permanent accumulation of water behind it, the trees whose roots are overflowed soon perish, and then by their fall increase the obstruction, and, of course, occasion a still wider spread of the stagnating stream. This process goes on until the water finds a new outlet, at a higher level, not liable to similar interruption. The fallen trees not completely covered by water are soon overgrown with mosses ; aquatic and semi-aquatic plants propagate themselves and spread till they more or less com- DRYING UP OP BOGS. 91 pletely fill up the space occupied by the water, and the surface is gradually converted from a pond to a quaking morass. The morass is slowly solidified by vegetable production and deposit, then very often restored to the forest condition by the growth of black ashes, cedars, or, in southern latitudes, cypresses and other trees suited to such a soil, and thus the interrupted harmony of Nature is at last re-established." In continuation of the passage I have cited, Mr Marsh goes on to say, " In counti-ies somewhat further advanced in civilization than those occupied by the North American Indians, as in mediaeval Ireland, the formation of bogs may be commenced by the neglect of man to remove from the natural channels of superficial drainage the tops and branches of trees felled for the various purposes to which wood is applicable in his rude industry ; and when the flow of water is then checked, nature goes on with the processes I have already described. In such half-civilised regions, too, wind-falls are more frequent than in those where the forest is unbroken, because when openings have been made in it for agricultural and other purposes the entrance thus afforded to the wind occasions the sudden over- throw of hundreds of trees which might otherwise have stood for generations, and have fallen to the ground only one by one, as natural decay brought them down. Besides this, the flocks bred by man in the pastoral state keep down the incipient growth of trees on the half-dried bogs and prevent them from recovering their primitive condition." Denmark supplies many illustrations of the effect of vegetation, herbaceous and arborescent, in filling up and drying up marshes in prolonged periods extending back into pre-historic times. By numerous successive growths of aquatic and semi-aquatic plants, herbs, and trees, bogs have there been filled up and dried up in the course of ages, and at length rendered, as now, so dry as to be fit habitation for man. And simultaneously with what has been efibcted by the abstraction of water by the spongioles, and emission of it by the stomates, an influence modifying the process of desiccation otherwise produced, intensifying or moderating it, may have been going on. Marsh, citing as his authority a work by Wilhelm, entitled " Ber Boden tond das Wasser" a work published in Vienna in 1861, and a work by Krecke, entitled " Ilet Klit)iai van Nedeiia7id," sajs : — The relative evaporating action of earth and water is a very complicated 92 EFFECTS OF F0REf>r8 OX MARSHES. problem^ aai the results of observation oa the subject are con- flicting. Schuebler found that at Geneva, the evaporation from bare loose earth in the months of Dscember, January and February, was from two and a-half to nearly sis times as great as from a like surface of water. In the other months, the evaporation from water was from about one and a-half to six times as great as from the earth. Taking the whole year together the evaporation from the two surfaces was 199^^ lines from earth, and 536j-V lines from water. Experiments by Van der Steer, at the Holder, in the years 1861 and 1862, showed for the former year, an evaporation of 602'9 millimetres from water, 1399-6 millimetres from grounds covered with clovers and other grasses ; in 1862 the evaporation from water was 584-5 millimetres; from grass-ground 875-5." It is these latter observations with which we have to do, and these indicate that from the bog evaporation would proceed more rapidly than it would from a lake of the same extent similarly situated. Such seem, then, the effects of forests on swamps and of swamps on forests. The moisture withdrawn from the ground and passed into the atmosphere by the trees, if in excess of what is supplied from a higher level, and of what also falls on the spot, as rain, snow, or dew, must render them dry, and to the same extent produce the meteorological effect of increasing the humidity of the air ; but at the same time, by shade, and by shelter, and by covering the ground with fallen trees, and broken twigs, and by the humus produced from the decay of these, the forests prevent extreme desiccation. And the occasional appearance of marshes on the destruction of forests, even when attributable to the stoppage of an outlet, may indicate what they have thus accomplished. CHAPTER IV. On the Effects of Forests on the Moisture over a Wide ExPxVNSE OF Country. The observatious which we have had under consideration show that forests, in common w4th other products of vegetation, withdraw moisture from the ground, and that they do so to such an extent as to carry off the water of swamps and to prevent the formation of these increasing the atmospheric moisture in their immediate vicinity to such a degree that it may be felt, making houses damp, even iu their innermost chambers, and that it may be seen in clouds and fogs and drizzling rain ; and yet, that they keep the soil moist compared with the soil beyond their shade and shelter, wherever that shade and shelter fall ; while the ground is at the same time enriched with vegetable mould, the product of the fallen leaves and other dehris. But when we extend our study to the effects of forests on the humidity of soil and climate over a wide expanse of country, we find that observations have been made which seem to show that in some cases the extensive destruction of forests, over a great expanse of country has not perceptibly affected the quantity of the rain and dew, and hail and snow, which has there fallen from heaven ; while, on the other hand, there are lands which were once populous and fertile, but are now arid and sterile — the aridity of which is alleged to be the cause of their sterility, and to be a consequence of the destruction of forests. On thus extending our field of observation we meet with additional facts, which, if all the circumstances and conditions of each were known, might be easily reconciled, notwithstanding apparently an- tagonistic conclusions to which they sometimes seem to lead. I shall cite some of the individual or separate facts which are known, illustrative of the general facts now stated ; and either as I advance or subsequently, as may appear at the time most important, 1 shall advert to the modus operandi of the means whereby the results observed may have been brought about. 9i EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE Sect. I. — Gases in which the Extensive Destruction of Forests does not appear to have Perceptibly Affected the Quantity of the Rainfall over a Wide Expanse of Country. The subject of this chapter is the effect of forests ou the moisture over a wide expanse of country, that of this sectiou is only the apparently negative effect, in certain cases of the extensive destruc- tion of forests, on the rainfall. Attention is called to the difference, that it may be noted. The rainfall is treated neither as the source nor as the measure of the moisture, but solely as one of the indications of the humidity of the atmosphere, it being the indication of this to which most importance is generally attached, and that which is most generally referred to in popular discussions on the meteorological effects of forests. Both Europe and America supply illustrations of apparently little effect having been produced upon the deposit of moisture in the form of rain over a wide expanse of country by the extensive destruction of forests. There are many indications of Europe having been formerly covered much more extensively and densely with forests than now. In France, the destruction of these forests within the last two hundred years as well as before has been considerable, yet there does not appear to have been within that time any very great diminution of the rainfall over some extensive districts in which observations on the rainfall have been made. This point has been discussed at considerable length by M. Cezanne, in h\.^Se(j[uel to Etude sur les Torrents des Ilautes Alpes, par Alexandre Surell. It is mentioned by him that some writers on the subject, to whom he afterwards refers more particularly, in endeavouring to demon- strate the action of forests on the rainfall, have adduced as proof that the destruction of forests, and the extensive plantation of these, have both of them affected the regime of the rainfall in France; some, that the rainfall has increased at Viviers contemporaneously with the de- hoisement or destruction of forests on the mountains of the Cevennes j others, that it has increased at Bourdeaux contemporaneously with the rehoisement, or replanting of forests, on the Laudes : facts, if facts they be, which, though not incompatible with each other, point to different conclusions. In reference to these observations, M. Cezanne writes : — " If facts of this kind were clearly established, they would be unanswerable ; but before admitting them wc must OVER A WTPF. EXPANSE, 95 betake ourselves to the records of the rainfall and enquire whether either of these two conflicting assertions have any value. " In France, the earliest series of pkiviometric observations is that of r Observatoire. It was begun in 1689 by Phillippe de la Hire, in accordance with an express order given by Colbert to the Academy, in view of the requirements of the hydraulic works at Versailles, to ascertain what quantity of water the rain falling on the plains around could supply to the projected reservoirs. " It has been repeatedly interrupted, and again resumed. And a summary of the record is given in the following table, taken from a valuable collection of pluviometric observations publi shed by M. Raulin, Professor of Geology in the Faculty of Sciences at Bourdeaux : — * TABLE OF MEAN ANNUAL RAINFALLS IN DECADES, ACCORDING TO THE rLUVIOMETRB ON THE TERRACE OF THE OBSERVATORY AT PARIS. Periods. Number of Years. Rainfall. Difference. Names of the Observers. 1688-1700 10 517- ) 1701-1710 10 480-6- 36-4 V Lahire, 1688 to 1718. 1711-1720 10 464-9- 15-7 j 1721-1730 10 378-3- 86-6),, ia- n a- a t? u 1731-1740 10 411- + 327lM^rald,^ran^J7.^,d/F^^^^ 1741-1750 10 425-5+ 11-5 j 1709 to 1.54. 1773-1780 8 537-6 + 114-1). * ai t> ^ ittq i^oi ^'•ar\ in nnr n qo t ' Jeaurat, Alex. Bouvard, 1773- u81-l<90 10 506-9- 32-/ V ' ,^^,0 1791-1798 8 413-7- 93-2 j ^''^^• 1804-1810 7 518-3 + 104-6] 1811-1820 10 496-5- 21-8 | 1821-1830 10 498-6+ 2-1 | ^^ , , t ^r • 1831-1840 10 509-3+ 10-7 Bouvard, Arago, Le Verrier. 1841-1850 10 529-3+ 20- 1851-1860 10 520-3- 9- J " The column of difference shows that the variation followed no law of continuity. The long-continued series of observations presents us with three separate periods, and these give respectively for the annual mean, during 65 years, 1688 to 1754, 448-6 millimetres; 26 years, 1773 to 1798, 489-6; 57 years, 1803 to 1860, 512-0. " Many authors have appealed to these numbers to prove that the rainfall in Paris is now [not less, but] greater than formerly; but this has been met by the following considerations : In pluviometric observa- * Bourdeaux, Chaumas. 1864. 96 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. tions all eirors made are errors of deficiency, arising from the escape of water by evaporation, by infiltration, by spilling, and from neglect, etc. ; and doubtless the first observers did not attach any great im- portance to those measures "which, in the absence of other correspond- ing observations made elsewhere, could not lead to any generalization. "Thus Father Cotte, quoted by M. Raulin, writes in 1804: — 'I may observe that the udomfetre used at the Observatory of Paris has been found to be so defective that they have been obliged to give up the use of it for some years ; they have now set up a new one, which is much more exact. The water is received and measured on the platform of the building, 27 metres [90 feet] above the ground, instead of measuring it, as formerly, in one of the apartments on the first storey, so that it ran through a pipe 63 feet long from the platform where it was received to the reservoir, which necessarily occasioned a loss.' " From these diflferent causes it is impossible to compare satis- factorily the series of observations from 1688 to 1754 with the series made from 1803 to 1860. It is possible that if the two series of observations had been made with the same instrument, and with the same precision, the latter might have shown a diminished instead of an augmented mean. "Arago said, on this subject, in 1853*: — ' There is no reason to suppose that the climate of Paris is either more or less rainy than it was 150 years ago. The small augmentation presented by the numbers in the later groups do not in fact exceed variations observ- able in the earlier periods.' '* It is known that in 1817 a second udometre was placed on the ground of the court, and that ever since it has constantly received quantities of water a Httle in excess of what was received by that on the terrace, as may be seen from the following numbers : — Measurement of Water Annually Period. Received Proportion. On the Terrace. On the Ground. a b a-b. miUimt'tres. mm. mm. 1821-1830 498-6 551-9 MO 1831-1840 509-3 584-8 1-14 1841-1850 529-3 627-8 MS 1851-1860 620-3 577-1 1-40 * Arago : " CEuvres completes Melanges (p. 420j. OVER A WIDE EXP ANSE IN FRANCE. 97 " It was long believed that this difference was owing to this — ^that the drops of rain increased in bulk by aggregation during their fall ; it is agreed now that the relatively lesser amount collected in the pluviometre on the terrace is attributable to atmospheric eddies. But, if it be so, the topographical modifications to which the vicinity and approaches to the Observatoire have been subjected since 1688 may suffice perhaps to explain the augmentation of the actual means. This idea natm-ally suggests itself when astronomers are heard com- plaining that, in consequence of the multiplication of street carriages and other conveyances, of gas lights and of hells, certain researches have become impossible in the Observatoire of Paris, so that it is necessary to remove it to the country, and it is imperatively necessary to decentralize the study of astronomy. " In short, it may be admitted in regard to Paris, that if the rainfall be different from what it was during the last century, the variation is so inconsidei*able that doubts are entertained as to what the character of the variation is." Similar comments are made on observations made at Bourdeaux. " The observations which we possess for the city of Bourdeaux are summarised in the following table, the numbers given in which are taken, in like manner, from the valuable collection of M. Raulin : — TABLE OF MEAN ANNUAL RAIN-FALLS AT BOURDEAUX, IN DECADES. Periods. Number of Years. Rain-fall. Difference. Names of the Obserrers. 1714-1720 7 659-1 ] 1721-1730 10 737-5+ 78-4 | 1731-1740 10 735-1- 2-4 I ^^ - ,, 1741-1750 10 693-6- 41-5 \ ^'^'"^^^^^^ ^'^^^^^ ^^^ s^"' 1751-1760 10 670-0- 23-6 | 1761-1770 10 647-8- 22-2 J 1842-1850 8 .849-2 + 207-3 ) 1851-1860 10 795-2 - 54-8 / 1776-1786 10 641-9- 5-9 Guyot and De la Mothe. Abria. 1851-1860 10 820 Petit-Laffitte. General average, 719 millimetres. " The column of differences here shows still that the variations do not follow a law of continuity. For the first series of 67 years the annual mean is 684-7 millimetres, while for the new series, 1842-1860, this mean rises to 820, an augmentation of 20%. H 98 THE EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE "AqcI it is remarkable in this table that for the years 1851- 1850, two different observers obtained quantities of water notably differe nt." The work of M. Raulin presents other examples of such anomalies. To these I shall afterwards have occasion to refer in the further pro- secution of the study of the subject ; but from the recorded observa- tions, the destruction of forests in the districts I named does not appear to have greatly affected the deposit of moisture throughout the districts referred to. Corresponding results have been yielded by a study of the records of observations made in the United States of America. In North America we have a country which within comparatively recent times was extensively covered with forests in regions which have now been in a great measure cleared of them. To observations which may indicate any changes upon the rainfall over extensive districts which may thus have been produced attention has been given, and is being given, by fhe Smithsonian Institution, under the direction of the Secretary, Professor Joseph Henry, at Washington. Under his direction there are being collected, collated, tabulated, and otherwise utilised, meteorological observations made throughout the United States, observations made at sea, and collected at the United States Naval Observatory, observations made by Arctic and Ant- artic explorers, and observations made at several hundred stations in other parts of the world. Observations on the winds of North America have been tabulated and published, and have been largely made use of by the English Board of Trade in constructing wind charts of the Northern Ocean. In 1872 Professor Coffin was engaged in the tabulation of observa- tions in parallel zones of latitude 5^^ in breadth, the whole world over, from the North Pole to the South. And at that time it was reported by Professor Henry : — " The temperature observations ai*e still in progress of reduction, two computers being engaged upon the work. The progress of their labours has, however, frequently been interrupted by calls from different portions of the country for reports on the climate of different districts. " The following is an account of the present condition of this part of the general reductions : " The collection and tabulation, in the form of monthly and annual means, of all accessible observations of the atmospheric tern- OVER A WIDE EXPANSE. 99 perature of the American continent and adjacent islands, have been completed to the close of the year 1870, and extensive tables representing the daily extremes, or the maximum and the minimum at the regular observing hours, have been prepared. " An exhaustive discussion of all the observations available for the investigation of the daily fluctuations of the temperature has been made, and this part of the work is now ready for the printer. " The discussion of the annual fluctuations of the temperature has been commenced and carried as far as the present state of other parts of the discussion would permit. " The construction of a consolidated table giving the mean results, from a series of years, for each month, season, and the year, at all of the stations, which will probably exceed 2,500 in number, has been begun and completed for that part of the continent lying north of the United States, and also for several of the States. This is perhaps the most laborious, as it is one of the most important parts of the dis- cussion. In many of the large cities there are numerous series, made by various observers, at different hours, all of which have to be brought together, corrected for daily variation, and combined to obtain the final mean. To give some adequate idea of the time and labour involved in the preparation of these tables, it may be mentioned that, in the State of New York alone, there are about three hundred series, which are derived from nearly two million individual observations. " The principal sources from which the general collection of results has been derived, may be enumerated as follows : — " 1. The registers of the Smithsonian Institution, embracing upward of three hundred large folio volumes. " 2. The publications of the Institution, Patent-Office, Department of Agriculture, and public documents. " 3. All the published and unpublished records of the United States Army, United States Lake Survey, and United States Coast Survey. " 4. The large volume compiled by Dr Hough, from the observa- tions made in connection with the New York University System, the records made in connection with the Franklin Institute, and those obtained from numerous observatories and other scientific institutions, •' 5. The immense collection of printed slips, pamphlets, manu- scripts, (fee, in the possession of the Smithsonian Institution. " The work Las been somewhat retarded by the collection and 100 EFFECTS OP FORESTS ON MOISTURE tabulation of the rain-fall, to the end of 1870, for the Smithsonian stations, and to the end of 1871 for the United States military posts, ** Beside the discussion of the observations on temperature, rain, and wind, there remain those relative to the pressure of the atmos- phere, and its humidity ; also those which are classed under the head of casual phenomena, such as thunder-storms, tornadoes, auroras, meteors, early and late frosts, progress of vegetation, opening and closing of rivers, &c. These will be put in hand as soon as the funds of the Institution which can be devoted to meteorology will permit the requisite expenditure." From this statement some idea may be formed of the magnitude of the work, of the extent of the resources provided for the prosecution of it, and of the energy with which it was being carried out. The documents by Dr Hough, referred to, were published in two large volumes, the first entitled '' Eesults of a Series of Meteorological Observations, made in obedience to instructions from Regents of the University of the State of New York, from 1826 to 1850 inclusive," and the second entitled " Second Series of Meteorological Observa- tions, embracing Observations from 1850 to 1863, with Records of Rainfall, and other Phenomena, to 1867 inclusive." In 1872 were published " Tables and Results of the Precipitation in Rain and Snow in the United States, and at some Stations in Adjacent Parts of North America, and in Central and South America," collected by the Institution, and discussed under the direction of Professor Henry by Mr Charles A. Schott. And, in an examination of these, I fail to discover any intimation of any change in the quantities of rain falling having followed the clearing of any district from which observations w^ere collected, and the stations were 790 in number. Simultaneously with the collecting of these observations by the agents of the Smithsonian Institution, special attention was being given by Mr Draper, Director of the Meteorological Observatory in the Central Park of New York, to the alleged effects of forests and of the destruction of these on the rain-fall. And in his report to the Board of Commissioners of the Department of Public Parks for the same year, 1871, he makes the following statement, in reply to the question. Does the clearing of land increase or diminish the fall of rain : — " Much solicitude is publicly felt as regards the supposed di- minished quantity of water which fell last year, a point of the highest concern. There is a general impression that this alleged OVER A WIDE EXPANSE IN AMERICA. 101 deficiency was to such an amount as to endanger a due supply to the city for the current year. And not only this, it has also been asserted that, for several years past, there has been a steadily occurring diminution in the rainfall. Whilst the quantity of water has thus been becoming less and less, the demand has been becoming greater. Not only has the population of the city increased, but also that of the suburban districts, which derive their supplies from the same water-gathering grounds that we do. " I therefore supposed, since our registering rain-gauge furnishes very reliable measures, that it would be useful to examine this sub- ject critically. But since we have had these gauges in operation only about three years, and as the investigation proved to be full of interest, I was led to draw upon other additional sources of informa- tion, selecting such as seemed to be of the most trustworthy kind. By the aid of these, the examination has been extended as far back as 1836, and with the following results: — " 1st. As respects the indications given by our own instruments, which may be thoroughly relied on for the years 1869, 1870, 1871. " For the first of these years, 1869, the total rainfall was 46-82 inches, distributed as follows : During the first quarter, 15-06 inches; second quarter, 10-24 3 third quarter, 7-72; fourth quarter, 13-80 — total, 46-82. " For 1870, the total rainfall was 42-32 inches, distributed as follows: During the first quarter, 12-86 inches; second quarter, 10-29; third quarter, 9-39; fourth quarter; 9-78 — total, 42-32. For 1871, the total rainfall was 52-06 inches, distributed as follows: During the first quarter, 10-33 inches; second quarter, 14-12 ; third quarter, 14-21 ; fourth quarter, 13-40— total, 52-06. " So far as these years are concerned there does not appear any evidence of a decrease. On the contrary, in the last there is a very considerable excess over either of the others. " Extending our examination to preceding years as far back as the beginning of 1836, and grouping those years into three periods each of ten, and one of six years, the statement comes to this : First period, from 1835 to 1846, 39-5 inches ; second period, from 1845 to 1856, 47-0; third period, from 1855 to 1866, 52-0; fourth period, from 1865 to 1872, 52-0. This would make the annual rainfall throughout these 36 years, 47-62 inches. That of the last three years 47-06. "These numbers being substantially the same, it may be con- cluded that, though there are large variations from year to year, aa 102 EFFECTS OF FOHESTS ON MOISTURE shown by a synoptic table, these, on the whole, will neutralize one another when very long periods of time are considered. " In the foregoing tables the numbers from 1836 to 1854, inclusive, are derived from the observations made by the Military Officers at Fort Columbus, New York Harbour ; those for the next twelve years are from the records of Prof. Morris, in New York City ; and the remainder are from the registers of this observatory. It is of course assumed that the i-ainfall at Fort Columbus, that in New York City, and that in the Central Park are the same, an assumption which is, I suppose, under the circumstances, admissible. " The amount of rainfall not only influences in a predominant manner the growth of plants, and, therefore, agricultural pursuits determining the profitable cultivation of many different crops, but it also exerts an influence on several manufacturing operations. If, therefore, the above statement be correct, no apprehension need be entertained .of a permanent disturbance in these particulars. Al- though in the last thirty-six years great changes have been made in all those portions of the United States intervening between the Mississippi and the Atlantic Ocean, large surfaces having been cleared of the primeval forests and brought under cultivation, their physical character and aspect having therefore been essentially altered, no corresponding diminution can nevertheless be traced in the mean amount of water that has fallen. On the contrary, as seen in the table given and in the synoptic chart, there has been an actual increase. It appears, therefore, that the wide-spread public impression that the clearing of land diminishes the volume of rain is not founded on fact, and in truth this is no more than might have been expected from a correct consideration of the meteorological circumstances under which rain is produced. "It is the belief of European Meteorologists that the mean rainfall on the western portion of that continent varies little, if at all, when periods of many years are considered. In England there are rainfall records reaching back to 1677. Since 1725 these records are un- broken ; at present there are more than 1,500 rain-gauge stations in that country. The Scotch observations extend to 1731, the Irish to 1791. " A discussion of the observations made at the Royal Observatory at Greenwich, in 1859, led to the conclusion that the annual fall of rain, as compared with that previous to 1815, was becoming smaller; but more extended observations, taken from gauges at stations widely separated, led to the opposite conclusion, viz., that there was a per- OVER A WIDE EXPANSE, 103 feet compensation, the decrease at one place being compensated by the increase at another. "This conclusion was strikingly illustrated by the Continental observatories. The rainfall at Paris was found not to have altered in 130 years, and though the observations of fifty years at Marseilles gave a decrease, those for fifty-four years at Milan gave an increase. " Even in the same locality this principle of compensation may be noticed. Thus the rainfall in England, in the ten years from 1850 to 1859, was found by Mr Symons to be five per cent, less than during the previous forty years, but during the following six years it was five per cent, above the mean of the preceding ten. " It may, however, be supposed that conclusions which apply to the old-settled countries of Europe, in which but few important topo- graphical changes, through agricultural or other operations, have taken place for many years, will scarcely apply to America, wherein the clearing of land and agriculture surface-changes have been occur- ring on a very extensive scale. The foregoing conclusions, however, show us how insignificant is the meteorological result which these variations produce." The observations are cited as evidence that there are cases in which the extensive destruction of forests does not appear to have perceptibly affected the quantity of the rainfall over a wide expanse of country ; and these observations are brought forward as observations not less necessary to be taken into account, in considering the effects of forests on the humidity of the climate, than are those which have previously engaged our attention. SacT. II. — Cases in which the Extensive Destruction of Forests appear to have heenfolloioedhy a marked Desiccation of Land and Aridity of Climate. Lawyers have been credited with the hon mot that the case being altered that alters the case, but the principle holds true in science as well as in law ; and it seems to be a truth of universal application. Along with the recorded observations which have been cited as cases in which the extensive destruction of forests does not appear to have perceptibly aflFected the quantity of rain falling over a widely- extended country, there are other cases in which the extensive destruction of forests appears to have been followed by a marked desiccation of land and aridity of climate ; and these are so 104 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. numerous as almost to justify the declaration that, in times past, wherever civilised man has gone, what he found a wilderness he has left a desert, dried up and desolate, through the reckless destruction of the forests and the bush. In treating of the hydrology of South Africa, of the former hydi'O- graphic condition of the Cape of Good Hope, and of the causes of its present aridity, I have given copious details in regard to the destruc- tion of herbage and trees which has been going on in South Africa from the time when it was first visited by Europeans to the present (pp. 167-170), with details of the condition to which forests have been reduced by reckless felling of timber trees (pp. 171-175), with details of the extensive destruction of forests by fire (pp. 175-194), and with details of the consequence of the destruction of herbage and trees on the desiccation or diminution of the water supply in thfi basin of the Orange River, given by Mr J. Fox Wilson in a paper read befoi-e the Royal Geographical Society, with remarks on the same by Dr Living- stone, Sir Roderick Murchison, Dr Kirk, Mr Galton, Colonel Balfour, and Lord Stratford de RedchfFe (pp. 197-207), and corresponding testimony by Dr Rubige, and others, at the Cape of Good Hope. Of the extreme aridity of South Africa, beyond the colonized portion of it, I have given illustrations in accounts given by Dr Livingstone of his experience at Kolobeng, in accounts given of the great suff'eriDgs of Mr Helmore and his family in travelling in the interior, under which the whole of them succumbed and perished, and in accounts given by Mr M'Kenzie of his experience in travelling to Shooseng (pp. 216-223), and in accounts given by Dr Moffat of his experience in a journey to Griqua Town (pp. 253-256) ; and of the aridity of soil and climate within the colony I have given corre- sponding illustrations in the same volume (p. 8 and p. 227). In bringing forward these facts thus detailed I made obvious my belief that though only the sequence of desiccation to the destruction of forests and herbage and grass could be proved, they were connected as cause and effect. Such was also the opinion of, I believe, all whose testimony I thus adduced. To establish this point was the object of the paper prepared for the Geographical Society by Mr Fox Wilson ; and thus has Dr Moffat borne testimony to the fact : he relates that on his settlement at Latakoo, " The natives were wont to tell of the floods of ancient times, the incessant showers which clothed the very rocks with verdure, and the giant trees and forests which once studded the brows of the Hamhana hills and neighbour- ing plains. They boasted of the Kurun^an and other rivers, with PBSICCATION OF SOUTH AFRICA. 105 their impassable torrents, in which the hippopotami played, while the lowing herds walked to their necks in grass, filling their mdkukas (milk sacks) with milk, making every heart to sing for joy." And he mentions that, " Independent of this fact being handed down by their forefathers, they had before their eyes the fragments of more fruitful years in the immense number of stumps and roots of enormous trunks of acacia giraffce, where now scarcely one is to be seen raising its stately head above the shrubs ; while the sloping sides of hills and the ancient beds of rivers, plainly evinced that they were denuded of the herbage which once clothed their surface. Indeed, the whole country north of the Orange River lying east of the Kalagari desert, presented to the eye of a European something like an old neglected garden or field." Dr Mofi'at found no difl&culty in accounting for this, " The Bechuanas, especially the Batlapis, and the neighbouring tribes," says he, " are a nation of levellers ; not reducing hills to comparative plains, for the sake of building their towns, but cutting down every species of timber, without regard to scenery or economy. Houses are chiefly composed of small timber, and their fences of branches and shrubs. Thus, when they fix on a site for a town, their first consideration is to be as near a thicket as possible. The whole is presently levelled, leaving only a few trees, one in each great man's fold, to afford shelter from the heat, and under which the men work and recline. '* The ground to be occupied for cultivation is the next object of attention. The large trees being too hard for their iron axes, they burn them down by keeping up a fire at the root. These supply them with branches for fences, while the sparrows, so destructive to their grain, are thus deprived of an asylum. These fences, as well as those in towns, require constant repairs, and, indeed, the former must be renewed every year ; and by this means the country for many miles around becomes entirely cleared of timber ; while in the most sequestered spots, where they have their outposts, the same work of destruction goes on. Thus, of whole forests, where the giraffe and elephant were wont to seek their daily food, nothing remains. " When the natives remove from that district, which may be after only a few years, the minor species of the acacia soon grows, but the acacia giraffce requires an age to become a tree, and many ages must pass before they attain the dimensions of their predecessors. In the course of my journeys I have met with trunks of enormous size, which, if the time were calculated necessary for their growth, as well I 106 EFFECTS OP FORESTS ON MOISTUEB. as their decay, one might be led to conclude that they sprung up immediately after the Flood, if not before it. The natives have also the yearly custom of burning the dry gi-ass, which on some occasions destroys shrubs and trees even on the very summit of the mountains. To this system of extermination maybe attributed the long succession of dry seasons." " To the same cause," says he, " may be traced the diminution of fountains, and the entire failure of some which formerly afforded a copious supply, such as Griqua Town, Campbell, and a great number of others which might be mentioned. It has been remarked that since the accidental destruction of whole plains of the Olea similis (wild olive) by fire, near Griqua Town, as well as the diminishing of large shrubs on the neighbouring heights, a gradual decrease of rain has succeeded in that region." In treating of these, the secondary causes of the desiccation of South Africa, I had occasion to quote, from Marsh's treatise on " The Earth as Modified by Human Action," the following statement, which I followed up with the remarks and quotations from the same and other authors, which follow : — " ' Whenever a tract of country, once inhabited and cultivated by man, is abandoned by him and domestic animals, and surrendered to the undisturbed influences of spontaneous nature, its soil sooner or later clothes itself with herbaceous and arborescent plants, and at no long interval with a dense forest growth. Indeed, upon surfaces of a certain stability, and not absolutely precipitous inclination, the special conditions required for the spontaneous propagation of trees may all be negatively expressed, and reduced to these three : — exemption from defect or excess of moisture, from perpetual frost, and from the depredations of men and browsing quadrupeds. When these requisites are secured, the hardest rock is as certain to be over- grown with wood as the most fertile plain, though for drier seasons the process is slower in the former than in the latter case. Lichens and mosses first prepare the way for a more highly organized vege- tation. They retain the moisture of rains and dews, and bring it to act, in combination with the gases evolved by their organic processes, in decomposing the surface of the rock they cover ; they arrest and confine the dust which the wind scatters over them, and their final decay adds new material to the soil already half-formed beneath and upon them. A very thin stratum of mould is sufficient for the germination of seeds of the hardy evergreens and the birches, the roots of which are often found in immediate contact with the rock, EFFECTS OF DESTRUCTION OF FORESTS. 107 supplying their trees with nourishment from a soil deepened and enriched from the decomposition of their foliage, or sending out long rootlets into the surrounding earth in search of juices to feed them.' " But with all the provisions which have been made for the produc- tion of forests, and for the restoration of small portions which have been destroyed, it is possible for man to counteract these ; and he has done so. But what have been some of the consequences which have followed ? " According to a summary of some of these given by Marsh, ' With the extirpation of the forest all is changed. At one season the earth parts with its warmth by radiation to an open sky ; receives, at another, an immoderate heat from the unobstructed rays of the sun. Hence the climate becomes excessive, and the soil is alternately parched by the fervours of summer, and seared by the rigours of winter. Bleak winds sweep unresisted over its surface, drift away the snow that sheltered it from the frost, and dry up its scanty moisture. The precipitation becomes as irregular as the tempera- ture ; the melting snows and varied rains, no longer absorbed by a loose and bibular vegetable mould, rush over the frozen surface, and pour down the valleys seawards, instead of filling a retentive bed of absorbent earth, and storing up a supply of moisture to feed perennial springs. The soil is bared of its covering of leaves, broken and loosened by the plough, deprived of the fibrous rootlets which held it together, dried and pulverized by sun and wind, and at last exhausted by new combinations. The face of the earth is no longer a sponge, but a dust heap ; and the floods which the waters of the sky poured over it hurry swiftly along its slopes, carrying in suspen- sion vast quantities of earthy particles, which increase the abrading power and mechanical force of the current, and, augmented by the sand and gravel of falling banks, fill the beds of the streams, divert them into new channels, and obstruct their outlets. The rivulets, wanting their former regularity of supply, and deprived of the protecting shade of the woods, are heated, evaporated, and thus reduced in their former currents, — but swollen to raging torrents in autumn and in spring. " * From these causes there is a constant degradation of uplands, and a consequent elevation of the beds of water-courses, and of lakes, by the deposition of the mineral and vegetable matter carried down by the waters. The channels of great rivers become unnavigable, their estuaries are choked up, and harbours which once sheltered large navies are shoaled by dangerous sand-bars.' 108 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. " The earth stript of its vegetable glebe grows less and less productive, and consequently less able to protect itself by weaving a new net-work of roots to bind its particles together, a new carpeting of turf to shield it from wind and sun and scouring rain. Gradually it becomes altogether barren. The washing of the soil from the mountains leaves bare ridges of sterile rock, and the rich organic mould which covered them, now swept down into the dai-k low grounds, promotes a luxuriance of aquatic vegetation that breeds fever and more insidious forms of mortal disease by its decay, and thus the earth is rendered no longer fit for the habitation of man. . . " The efi"ect of the destruction of forests upon the climate has been questioned, but the facts remain. And so has it been seen again and again in the history of the nations. The term savage, from its etymo- logical derivation, speaks of a sylvan life ; and from the sylvan or savage life to that of the civilized or city life, the progress of man may be traced, to some extent, by the destruction of forests. The one has, until attention was given to consequences which have followed the destruction of forests, been the accompaniment or com- plement of the other, operating sometimes as a cause, manifesting itself sometimes as a consequence — if both be not con-sequences of a common cause. But it is possible that the destruction of forests may be carried too far. According to the testimony of Dr Hooker, cited in the preface, ' In the estimation of an average Briton forests are of infinitely less imjJortauce than the game they shelter, and it is not long since the wanton destruction of a fine young tree was considered a venial ofi'ence compared with the snaring of a pheasant or x'abbit. Wherever the English rule extends, with the single exception of India, the same apathy or inaction prevails. ... In Demerara the useful timber trees have all been removed from accessible regions, and no care or thought of planting others ; from Trinidad we have the same story ; in New Zealand there is not now a good Kami pine to be found near the coast ; and I believe that the annals of almost every English colony would repeat the tale of wanton waste and improvidjgnce.' " In view of this waste, Schleiden, to whom I have already referred, writes, if not in the words, yet following in the train of thought of one of the noblest veterans of our science, the venerable Elias Fries, of Lund : ' A broad band of waste land follows gradually in the steps of cultivation. If it expands, its centre and cradle dies, and on the outer borders only do we find green shoots. But it is not impossible it is only difficult, for man, without renouncing the advantage of SPREAD OF DEVASTATION. 109 culture itself, one day to make reparation for the injury which he has inflicted : he is appointed lord of creation. True it is that thorns and thistles, ill-favoured and poisonous plants, well named by botanists ' rubbish plants,' mark the tract which man has proudly traversed through the earth. Before him lay original nature in her wild but sublime beauty. Behind him he leaves the desert, a deformed and ruined land ; for childish desire of destruction, or thoughtless squandering of vegetable treasures, have destroyed the character of nature ; and man himself flies terrified from the arena of his actions, leaving the impoverished earth to bai'barous races or animals, so long as yet another spot in virgin beauty smiles before him. Here again, in selfish pursuit of profit, consciously or unconsciously, he begins anew the work of destruction. Thus did cultivation, driven out, leave the East, and the deserts pei'haps previously I'obbed of their coverings ; like the wild hordes of old over beautiful Greece, thus rolls this conquest with fearful rapidity from east to west through America, and the planter often now leaves the already exhausted land, the eastern climate become infei'tile through the demolition of the forests, to introduce a similar revolution into the far west. But we see, too, that the nobler races, or truly cultivated men, even now raise their warning voices, put their small hand to the mighty work of restoring to nature her strength and fulness in yet a higher stage than that of wild nature ; one dependent on the law of purpose given by man, arranged according to plans which are copied from the development of manhood itself. All this, indeed^ remains at present but a powerless, and for the whole, an insignificantly small enterprise, but it preserves the faith in the vocation of man and his power to fulfil it. In future times he will and must, when he rules, leads, and protects the whole, free nature from the tyrannous slavery to which he now abases her, and in which he can only keep her by restless giant struggles against the eternally resisting. We see in the gray cloudy distance of the future a realm of peace and beauty on the earth and in nature, but to reach it must man long study in the school of nature, and, before all, free himself from the bonds of that exclusive selfishness by which he is actuated." ' In 1847 was published Klima ttiid Plantzen Welt in der Zeit, by C. Fraas. It was published at Landshut. In this work the writer endeavoured to show, by the history of vegetation in Greece, not merely that clearing and cultivation have affected the climate, but that change of climate had essentially modified the character of vegetable life. 110 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MARSHES, In the same year, 1847, Becquerel published a work, entitled Elements de Physique Terrestre et de Mineralogie, and six years later, in 1853, he published another work, entitled Des Climats et de Vinjliience qu exercent les sols Boises et non-hoissees, and in a paper addressed to the Academy of Sciences he examines the subject of forests both as to their commei'cial importance, and as to their influence on climate. In this paper he casts a rapid glance at the effects produced by the destruction of forests from the remotest ages to our time. Forests, he shows, existed on the globe long befoi'e the appearance of man, a fact proved by the immense coal deposits which are to be found in every part of it, even in the polar regions. These deposits consist of Equisetacea, Sigillaria, &c., particularly also of ferns of the size of trees, instances of which are now only to be met with under the tropics. In most parts of the old continent, the primitive life of man was, as he shows, passed in forests, and increase of population was the cause of the first attacks upon them ; but the greatest devastations only date from the period when great conquerors cut down and burnt the forests in which the peoples they wanted to subdue had taken refuge. From the Ganges to the Euphrates, from that to the Mediterranean, an extent of ground 1,000 leagues in length and several hundred broad, was ravaged by wars during the lapse of thirty centuries. Nineveh and Babylon, so celebrated for their civilization. Palmyra and Balbeck, renowned for their opulence, now offer nothing but ruins to the exploring gaze of the traveller, in the iTdidst of deserts and s^vamps, once covered by luxuriant forests. From the time of Sesostris to that of Mehemet II., Asia Minor was a constant scene of unrelenting wars leading to similar results. The land of Canaan, so highly praised in the Bible, is now little more than a desert, and the whole coast of Africa along the Mediterranean tells a similar story. Turning from historical considerations to the present state of forests in France, he shows that similar operations, though not to the same extent, were being cfirried on there, which could only tend to produce similar effects. By Mr Marsh, who has himself given much attention to the subject, it is stated that the subject of climatal change, with and without reference to human action as a cause, has been much dis- cussed by Moreau de Jormis, Dureau de la Malle, Arago, Humboldt, Fuater, Gasparm, Becquerel, and many other writers, in Europe, and DEVASTATION OF THE EAST. Ill by Noali Webster, Ferry, Drake, and others, in America, and his work cited is a valuable repository of infonnation, collected by him from their works and other sources, combined with observations made by himself, and conclusions at which he has arrived, all of which are in accordance with those here stated. Besides the writers now named, Professor Laurent, of Nancy Forest School, has given attention to the s'lbject, and has traced the desolation which has been brought on the former homes of teeming life in the East to the destruction of trees. And a writer in the Edinburgh Review, for October 1875, on the subject of forest manage- ment, citing the work of Professor Laurent, says, " Babylon, Thebes, Memphis, and Carthage, now waste and even pestilential, were formerly the very hives of human life. The remains of conduits canals, cisterns, and pools, throughout Palestine, and especially through the now desert couutiy east of the Jordan, are such as to explain the accounts on record of the former population of these regions. So thorough has been not only the change of climate, but the denudation of soil, caused by the cutting down of the olives, palms, and other trees of Palestine during the Roman war, that it would be impossible to attach any credit to the most venerable accounts of the former fertility, beauty, and population of the Holy Land — its brooks and fountains gushing out of valley and hills, being now replaced by bare and solid rock— without the knowledge that we have acquired of the fatal effect of the destruction of timber." This may be considered by others, as it is by me, questionable, but it may be received as indicative of the conviction of the writer, that the connection of the destruction of the forests, eighteen hundred years ago, with the present aridity, as cause and effect, is established beyond all question. It is alleged by Mr Draper, while reporting his conclusions from an extensive collating of meteorological records in Amei'ica, which wei-e to the effect that there had been no diminution of the rainfall in the districts in which these observations had been made, that, — "Against this conclusion, which is based essentially on recorded instrumental observations, I cannot admit the force of any alleged historical facts ; " and expressing an opinion that the devastation of ancient empires which is attributable in part to drought, is attribut- able in a great measure to war, and consequences of war other than the destruction of forests, he says, — " It is useless to draw any 112 EFFECTS OP FORESTS ON MOISTURE inference from the present desolate condition of the regions of the Euphrates and Tigris, or of the Holy Land, as contrasted with their amazing fertility in the olden days ; " and, " changes such as these have nothing to do with changes of climate." But, with the mass of testimonies which I have piled around me to effects which have followed immediately on the destruction of forests, I cannot assent to the sweeping statement I have quoted. It may be freely admitted that devastations occasioned by war may be followed by drought, without compromise to the allegation that the destruction of forests may be followed by drought. The devastations of war may include the destruction of forests, ajid it so happens that facts are not awanting illustrative of the devastations of war being followed by an opposite effect, with results corresponding to what might be expected therefrom. When Humboldt visited South America he was led to consider what could be the cause or occasion of a process of desiccation which was brought under his notice. To quote from a statement by Boussin- gault, which is cited by Mr Marsh : — " ' The rivers which rise within the valley of the Aragua, having no outlet to the ocean, form, by their union, the Lake of Tacarigua or Valencia, having a length of about two leagues and a-half [or seven English miles]. " ' At the time of Humboldt's visit to the valley of the Aragua, the inhabitants were struck by the gradual diminution which the lake had been undergoing for thirty years. Tn fact, by comparing the descriptions given by historians with its actual condition, even making large allowance for exaggeration, it was easy to see that the level was considerably depressed. The facts spoke for themselves. Oviedo, who, toward the close of the sixteenth century, had often traversed the valley of the Aragua, says positively that New Valencia was founded, in 1555, at half a league from the Lake of Tacarigua ; in 1800, Humboldt found this city 5,260 metres [or three and a-half English miles] from the shore. " ' The aspect of the soil furnished new proofs. Many hillocks on the plain retain the name of islands, which they more justly bore when they were surrounded by water. The ground laid bare by the retreat of the lake was converted into admirable plantations ; and buildings erected near the lake shewed the sinking of the water from year to year. In 1796, new islands made their appearance. A fortress built in 1740 on the island of Cabrera, was now on a peninsula ; and, finally, on two granitic islands, those of Cura and Cabo Blanco, Humboldt observed among the shrubs, some mHrea above the water, fine sand filled with helicites. OBSERVATIONS IN SOUTH AMERICA, 113 " ' These clear and positive facts suggested numerous explanations, all assuming a subterranean outlet, which permitted the discharge of the water to the ocean. Humboldt disposed of these hypotheses, and did not hesitate to ascribe the diminution of the waters of the lake to the numerous clearings which had been made in the valley of Aragua within half a century.' " Twenty-two years later, Boussingault explored the valley of Ara- gua. For some years previous, the inhabitants had observed that the waters of the lake were no longer retiring, but, on the contrary, were sensibly rising. Grounds, not long before occupied by plantations, were submerged. The islands of Nuevas Aparecidas, which appeared above the surface in 1796, had again become shoals dangerous to navigation. Cabrera, a tongue of land on the north side of the valley, was so narrow that the least rise of the water completely inundated it. A protracted north wind sufl5ced to flood the road between Maracay and New Valencia. The fears which the inhabi- tants of the shores had so long entertained were reversed. Those who had explained the diminution of the lake by the supposition of subterranean channels were suspected of blocking them up, to prove themselves in the right. *' During the twenty-two years that had elapsed, the valley of Aragua had been the theatre of bloody struggles, and war had desolated those smiling lands and decimated their population. At the first cry of independence a great number of slaves found their liberty by enlisting under the banners of the new republic ; the great plantations were abandoned, and the forest, which in the tropics so rapidly encroaches, had soon recovered a large proportion of the soil which man had wrested from it by more than a century of constant and painful labour." In this case war seems to have produced a contrary effect to that attributed to it, in other circumstances, by Mr Draper. Boussingault proceeds to state that two lakes near Ubate, in New Granada, had formed but one a century before his visit ; that the waters were gradually retiring, and the plantations extending over the abandoned bed ; that, by inquiry of old hunters, and by examina- tion of parish records, he found that extensive clearings had been made and were still going on. " He found, also, that the length of the Lake of Fuquend, in the same valley, had, within two centuries, been reduced from ten leagues to one and a half, its breadth from three leagues to one. At 114 THE EFFECTS OF FOKESTS ON MOISTXTRE, the former period the neighbouring mountains were well wooded, but at the time of his visit the mountahis had been almost entirely stripped of their wood. He further adds that other cases, similar to those alrei.dy detailed, might be cited, and he proceeds to show, by several examples, that the waters of other lakes in the same regions, where the valleys had always been bare of wood, or where the forests had not been disturbed, had undergone no change of level." The following statement is also made by Boussiiigault : — *' In the island of Ascension there was an excellent spring, situated at the foot of a mountain originally covered with wood. This spring became scanty, and at last dried up, after the trees which covered the mountain had been felled. The loss of the spring was ascribed, and rightly so, to the cutting down of the timber. The mountain was therefore planted anew, and a few years afterwards the spring re- appeared by degrees, and by and by flowed with its former abundance. " The metalliferous mountain of Marmato is situated in the province of Popayan, in the midst of immense forests. The stream along which the mining works are established is formed by the junction of several small rivulets, which take their rise in a country thickly wooded. " In 1826, when I visited the mines for the first time, Marmato consisted of a few miserable cabins, inhabited by negro slaves. In 1830, when I quitted the country, Marmato was covered with work- shops, had a foundry of gold, machinery for grinding and amalga- mating the ores, and a free population of nearly 3000 inhabitants. In the course of these four years an immense quantity of timber had been cut down, for the construction of machinery and of houses, as well as for fuel and the manufacture of charcoal. But the clearing had scarcely been two years effected before it was perceived that the quantity of water for the working of the machinery had notably diminished. The volume of water was measui-ed by t!ie work done by the machinery; and actual gauging at different times showed the progressive diminution of the water. Now, in the island of Ascension, and at Marmato, it is improbable that any merely local and limited clearing away of the forest should have had such an influence on the constitution of the atmosphere as to cause a variation in the mean annual quantity of rain. Besides, as soon as the diminution of the stream at Marmato was ascertained, a rain-gauge was set up, and in the second year of observation showed a larger quantity than in the first year, though the clearing had been continued, and though there was no appreciable increase in the size of the running stream. " Two years' observations are insufficient to show any definitive OBSERVATIONS BY BOUSSINGAULT. llS variation ia the annual average quantity of rain. Bat, so far as they go, they show that at Marmato the mass of running water had diminished, in spite of the larger quantity of rain which fell. It is therefore probable that local clearings of forest land, even of very moderate extent, cause springs and rivulets to shrink, and even to disappeai', without the effect being ascribable to any diminution in the amount of rain that falls." These observations are advanced by Boussingualt in connection with the statement that, — " In many localities it has been thought that, within a certain number of years, a sensible diminution has been perceived in the volume of water of streams utilized as a motive- power ; at other points, there are grounds for believing that rivers have become shallower, and the increasing breadth of the belt of pebbles along their banks seems to prove the loss of a part of their water ; and, finally, abundant springs have almost dried up. These observations have been principally made in valleys bounded by high mountains, and it has been noticed that this diminution of the waters has immediately followed the epoch when the inhabitants have begun to destroy, unsparingly, the woods which were spread over the face of the land. " And here lies the practical point of the question ; for if it is once established that clearing diminishes the volume of streams, it is less important to know to what special cause this effect is due." In a report by Dr Hough, President of the United States Associa- tion for the Advancement of Science, in 1871, are references to climatic conditions there, attributed to the destructions of forests ; and, in this connection, referring to the painful accounts which the journals were then giving of the distress in India from famine, he says, — " From a careful study of this subject, with such data as are accessible in late reports, we cannot doubt that this calamity is largely due to the fact that the forests have within recent years been swept off, by demands for railroad and other uses, much more rapidly than formerly, and that the exposure to winds and sun, thus occasioned, may have largely contributed to these painful results." Mr Marsh, in a foot-note supplying indications of what may be called secular desiccation, in regard to which he had said, " After a district of country has been completely or even partially cleared of its forest growth and brought under cultivation, the drying of the soil under favourable circumstances, goes on for generations, perhaps for 116 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE ages," says, — " In many parts of New England there are tracts, many square miles in extent, and presenting all varieties of exposure, which were partially cleared sixty or seventy years ago, and where little or no change in the proportion of cultivated ground, pasturage, and woodland has taken place since. In some cases, these tracts compose basins apparently scarcely at all exposed to any local influence in the way of percolation or infiltration of water towards or from neighbouring valleys. But in such situations, apart from accidental disturbances, the ground is growing drier and drier from year to yeai-, springs are still disappearing, and rivulets still diminishing in their summer supply of water. A probable explana- tion of this is to be found in the rapid drainage of the surface of cleared ground, which prevents the subterranean natural reservoirs, whether cavities or merely strata of bibulous earth, from filling up. How long this process is to last before an equilibrium is reached, none can say. It may be for years ; it may be for centuries. "Livingstone states facts which strongly favour the supposition that a secular desiccation is still going on in Central Africa, and there is reason to suspect a like change is taking place in California. When the regions where the earth is growing drier were cleared of wood, or, indeed, whether forests ever grew there, we are unable to say, but the change appears to have been long in progress. A similar revolution appears to have occurred in Arabia Petraea. In many of the wadis, and particularly in the gorges of the Wadi Feiran and Wadi Esh Sheikh, there are water-worn banks showing that, at no very remote period, the winter floods must have risen fifty feet in channels where the growth of acacias and tamarisks and the testi- mony of the Arabs concur to prove that they have not risen six feet within the memory or tradition of the present inhabitants. Recent travellers have discovered traces of extensive ancient cultivation, and of the former existence of large towns in the Tih desert, in localities where all agriculture is now impossible for want of water. Is this drought due to the destruction of ancient forests, or to some other cause ? " For important observations on supposed changes of climate in our Western prairie region, from cultivation of the soil and the introduc- tion of domestic cattle, see Bryant's valuable Forest Trees, 1871, chapter v., and Hayden, Preliminary Report on Survey of Wyoming, p. 455." Mr Marsh adds : — " Some physicists believe that the waters of our earth are, from chemical or other less known causes, diminishing by REPLANTING FOLLOWED BY HUMIDITY. 117 entering into new and inorganic combinations, and that the element will finally disappear from the globe." I do not know anything of the facts or the reasonings on which this opinion rests. If it be necessary, in considering the effects of forests on the humidity of the climate, to take into account cases in which the extensive destruction of forests does not appear to have powerfully aflfected the quantity of the rainfall over a wide expanse of country, it is no less necessary to take into account other cases in which the extensive destruction of forests does appear to have been followed by a marked desiccation of land, and aridity of climate. They are facts perfectly compatible with each other, and the establishment of either is neither a disproof of the other, nor does it invalidate the testimony on which it is received, though it may prompt to a more strict scrutiny of what is said, and of the credibility of this, than might otherwise have been given to it. Let it suffice here to state that the objections to which such statements are open are these, first, that they are vague and general, and, second, that they relate to effects which may have been otherwise produced than in accordance with the supposition advanced ; and what is considered the cause may have been in reality the effect, for anything to the contrary advanced in the statements made. Sect. III. — Cases in ivhich the Destruction of Trees has been followed hy Desiccation, and the Replanting of Trees followed by the Restoration of Humidity, In treating of the Hydrology of South Africa, in a separate volume already referred to, I had occasion to cite St. Helena as a South African Island supplying illustrations of corresponding effects produced on the climate both by the destruction of trees and by extensive sylviculture. From a note appended by Emsmau to his German translation of a work on meteorology in relation to cosmical phenomena by Foissac,* it appears that in the beginning of the sixteenth century the forests of St. Helena must have been extensive, for it is stated by him, on the authority of the introductory chapters in Beatson's St. Helena, that it was the goats which destroyed the beautiful forests which, * Meteorologie mit RUcksight auf die Leiiere vom Kosmos. Deuich von A. U. Emsman, Leipzig, lb59. 118 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. three hundred and fifty years ago, covered a continuous surface of not less than two thousand acres in the interior of the island, not to mention scattered groups of trees. While I was at the Cape I wrote to St. Helena for information on the subject, and in reply his Excellency, H. R. Janisch, now Governor of the island, at once supplied me with the following information, embodied in notes published on the Natural History of St. Helena : — " Viewed from the sea the island offers little or nothing to the eye but an assemblage of lofty and barren hills, intersected in all directions with deep and narrow valleys, in many cases little better than ravines, and generally devoid of vegetation, excepting here and there patches of prickly pear, samphire, and profitless weeds, the wooded peaks in the interior being in most positions hidden from view by the almost perpendicular cliff's running down to the sea. Bat when first discovered, in 1502, it was in the valleys almost covered with trees right down to the water's edge. These trees appear to have been principally gum-wood, ebony, and red-wood." Tiie gum-wood flourished nearest to the sea ; the ebony and red- wood covered the slopes of the mountain ; while the hill tops appear to have been covered with the cabbage tree and ferns — the former (areca oleracea) presenting from a little distance the appearance of a tree bearing stocks of cabbage, or of brocoli, at the extremities of its branches. While such was the state of vegetation, it must have been an island well watered everywhere. Bat the earlier governors and settlers made sad havoc among the trees ; and herds of goats and of swine being allowed to run loose on the land, young growing trees, which might have supplied the waste, were destroyed, and the island became almost denuded. All the ebony trees have long since disappeared : the last, a tree remarkable for its excessive hardness, size, and density, was found on Deadwood. The red-wood is now scarce, and, like the ebony, would altogether have disappeared, had not Governor Byefield caused two young trees to be set at Plantation House, from which two all at present on the island have been propagated. And a comparison of the cabbage trees of the present with the remains of those of the past tell of a stunted growth. What was the consequence of this extensive destruction of trees? "Incidentally we find," says my correspondent, "in the records of the last century, accounts of repeated and almost periodical visitations of very severe drought, occasioning ruinous losses of cattle and crops." Towarda the close of the last century, however, the denudation of RAINFALL IN ST. HELENA. 119 the island had been carried so far that wiser governors saw it to be necessary to adopt some strenuous measure to restore the vegetation. Nurseries were made, and experienced gardeners were introduced by the Company, and trees from all parts of the world were introduced and flourished. Prizes were given for the number of trees reared, irrespective of their character. The cluster-pine (pinus pinaster) was sown very extensively, and several plantations of this tree remain in a thriving condition. But a variety of other forest trees, greatly pre- ferred both for beauty and use, were planted about the same period and have flourished well. In regard to the results, my correspondent writes : — " For many years past, since the general growth of our trees, we have been preserved from this scourge ; and droughts, such as were formerly recorded, are now altogether unknown. We have no means, however, of otherwise comparing the rainfall of the two periods, as no tables, or even estimates, of the rainfall can be had for the earlier dates. Our fall of rain now is equal to that of England, and is spread almost evenly over the year. The showers fall more heavily in two or three months of the year. But this period, though called on this account the rainy season, is in no way to be compared to what is understood by an inter-tropical rainy season." Meteorological observations are or were kept at Longwood and at Plantation. I have at command only the record of the rainfall from 1841 to 1848. The amount of rain which fell in these years was : — 1841, 68-925 1845, 19-509 1842, 90-458 1846, 26-556 1843, 37-189 1847, 42-441 1844, 20-026 1848, 45-630 The communication I have cited not only tells of the former abundance of vegetation and moisture, and of frequent long-continued droughts having followed the reckless destruction of forests, but it tells of the replenishing of the island with trees under the fostering care of the East India Company towards the close of the last century ; and that subsequent to that, droughts such as had been previously recorded had been for a long time altogether unknown. But it was further added : — " Since the transfer of the Island from the Company in 1836 the matter has been much neglected. The liberal expenditure and prizes of the East India Company came to an end. The business men of our population require, whether the profits be large or small, that the returns shall be quich ; and they have no idea of casting upon waters seed that cannot be found after so many 120 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. days. The result has been that, for the last thirty years, in place of every score cut down hardly one tree has been planted beyond the supply of self-sown plants. Our Governor has, however, given much attention to this since his arrival ; and he is anxiously endeavouring to introduce and propagate the best trees he can obtain, and as yet his experiments have been very successful and encouraging." This was written in 1865. Blanqui in a volume entitled Voyage in Bulgarie, published in 1843, says that, — " In the Island of St. Helena, where the wooded surface has considerably extended within a few years, it has been observed that the rain has increased in the same proportion. It is now in quantity double what it was during the residence of Napoleon." In this we find a corroboration of what was reported by Mr Janisch in regard to the consequence of extensive plantings encouraged by the East India Company previous to 1836. The Island of St Helena is of volcanic origin. It is said to have been discovered by the Dutch in 1502. " Viewed from the sea, as it is approached, there is nothing inviting in its appearance; one large mass of rock with deep ravines running down into the sea, divested apparently of all vegetation, and presenting inaccessible rugged cliffs, some of great height, is all at first that the eye beholds ; but as one nears the shore in the interior at certain places may be seen, peeping from out the rock, a few trees to tell that all is not barrenness within." In the " Notes on the Natural History of the Island of St. Helena " sent to me, it is stated. " The greater part of the Island is now bare of trees and verdure, many mountains having little upon them beyond samphire and a few scrubby weeds, which alone save them from absolute sterility, especially in the dry season, when the shallow soil is utterly parched up. Other mountains are capable of afFoi'ding a very limited supply of food for sheep, which traverse their loftiest peaks and most intricate paths in search of their scanty fare. " Some few of the hills are tolerably well wooded, and the loftiest of the whole, Diana's Peak, 2700 feet high, is clothed to the very summit " The cultivated parts of the Island, particularly in the neighbour- hood of Plantation, as seen from High Knoll, remind the stranger very much of England, especially of parts of Devonshire. " lllusiou or likeness is further carried out by the large quantities PLANTS ON PT. HFLKNA, 121 of luxuriant furze and scrambling brambles seen in full bloom down the slopes of the hill, along the lanes and bye-roads. " The furze appears to have been introduced into the Island during the early part of the last century, and has proved very useful to the inhabitants by furnishing them with a plentiful supply of fire-wood. It does not appear to be used here as it is in the north of England, for the purpose of watling in the walls, for making warm and comfort- able outbuildings for fai-ms and other purposes. ** When used this way, it is merely twisted between the upright posts supporting the building, and if closely worked it makes a warm building. " There are several plantations in the Island pretty well stocked with good sized trees, principally pine and fir, which grow very well here, but for timber purposes the wood is too coarse and open in texture, resulting most likely from its rapid growth. The wood will answer for common purposes when protected from the weather, but otherwise it appears soon to decay and to be subject to rot. " These trees, however, are a great ornament to the Island, and add much to its English appearance, as they are the predominating ones, and give character to the scenery. " The Scarlet Geranium grows wild and very luxuriantly among the rocks, and in some places may be seen whole hedges of it ; the nasturtion also grows wild, and water cresses are found in the valley streams, as well as many other plants common to England. " Barilla, called here samphire, is very abundant in most parts of the Island ; and the true samphire is found in many places, but does not appear to be much used. Fruit of many kinds grows very well here ; the pears are large, plump, hard, and juicy, and are seen on the tree at the same time as the blossoms. Peaches are good and plentiful, their beautiful blossoms being often seen in the hedges ; the fig thrives pretty well, as also Oranges and Lemons, and the useful Plantain. Coffee has been tried and succeeded, it is considered to be very good in quality and flavour. Cotton grows wild, as well as the castor-oil plant. " The Port Jackson Willow thrives exceedingly well, and will ulti- mately be valuable for supplying firewood, as it grows quickly and throws up much underwood ; and is a veiy ornamental tree in all its aspects, especially pleasing to the eye when full of its yellow catkins. " The Cape Gooseberry is a useful fruit, and forms an excellent substitute for the English Gooseberry which it much resembles in taste when cooked ; it is the more useful from the fact that the 122 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. English Gooseberry does not thrive well here, but runs into an un fruitful shrub. " The trees most cultivated in Jamestown are the Margossa and the Banian, neither of which are of any great use except for a little shelter from the sun; the Banian is more curious than beautiful. The Date, Cocoa Nut, and Cypress are seen in some of the gardens, and the long leaf of the Plantain mostly accompanies them wherever water can be obtained. " A great variety of plants, the natives of different regions, may be seen growing equally well on St. Helena, the configuration of which affords a considerable range of climate. The following list of the exotic trees and shrubs now growing on the island may prove not uninteresting : — " Common Oak, Mosscup Oak, Evergreen Oak, Cork Tree, Abele Tree, Weeping Willow, Pineaster Fir, Spreading Fir, Dwarf Fir, Norfolk Island Pine, Chili Fir, Cape Yew, Casuarina, Cypress (two kinds), Arbor Vitce, Eucalyptus, Banian (four kinds), Indian Rubber Tree, Eiythrina Cape Coral Tree (three kinds), Sophora, Margossa, Gamboge, Terminalia (Bengal Almond), Pittisporum, Wild Olive, Black Fruited Olive, Magnolia, Liliodendron, Silk-worm Mulberry, Cliiua Weeping Birch, Mun-aya, Sago Palm, Palmetto, Dragon Palm, Fan Palm, Iron Wood, Holy Thorn, Myrtle (three kinds), Bauhinia, Locust, Bois Noir, Teak, Cinnamon, Laurel, Bay, Barberry, Protea, Gum Benzion, Coffee Shade, Wild Fig, Wattle of New Holland, Gelega, Altheea Frutex, Chinese Rose Hibiscus (^Shoe Black), Change- able Rose (two kinds), Single Red Hibiscus, Single Purple Hibiscus, White Flowered Hibiscus, Yellow Tahitian Hibiscus, Mimosa (various,) Acacia (various), Port Jackson Willow, Buddlea, Candle Nut Tree, Yansheu, China Rose Apple, Spice Tree, Psoralea, English Privet, Sea Grape, Coral Tree (Jatrapa), Rock Rose, Travellers Joy, Oleander, Fiddle Wood, Pola Gola, Spanish Broom, Velvet Thorn, Cassia, Grewia, Datura Arborea, Scarlet Cordea, Soap Berry, Screw Pine, Date Plum, Sweet Olea, Tea, Coffee, China Privet, Jasmine (2 kinds). Holly, Banksia, (3 kinds), Elder, Cotton (2 kinds), Cytisus, Ash, Barbados Pride, Lion's Tail, Osteospernum, Castor Oil, May, Azalea, Gardenia (Cape Jasmine), Tutsan, Verbena, Furze, Wild Bringal, Bamboo (3 kinds). Bamboo Reed, Plumbago, Camellia, Fuschia, Madagascar Creeper, Passion Flower (5 kinds). Ivy, Wood- bine, Melostroma. " Fruit-bearing Plants : — Peach, Apple, Pear, Cape Plum, Mango, Chirimoya, Orange (Sweet), Orange (Seville), Lemon, Lime, Shaddock, RAINFALL ON ST. HELENA. l'?3 Citron, Quince, Filbert, Grape, Pomegranate, Cocoa Nut, Date, Water Lemon (purple), Rose Apple, Pine Apple, English and Spanish Mulberry, Loquat, Banana, Apricot, Guava, Litchi, Melon, Cherry, Indian Walnut, Chesuut, Fig, Papau Apple, Tamarind, Strawberry, Wild Raspberry, English Raspberry, Blackberry, Cape Gooseberry (Tomatita, vulgarly called Bilberry." Ships entering the harbour approach it on the eastern side of the Island, to windward, and may sail with safety close on shore, the water in the roadstead being deep, and there they may ride at anchor at all times with perfect safety, there rarely being any wind so strong, or sea so violent as to endanger their security. Opposite the anchorage is the town of St. James. At the extreme end of the town are a few pretty forest and vegetable gardens ; and at the termina- tion of James' Valley is a waterfall, beneath which is a beautiful spring whence comes all the water used for the supply of the town and shipping. The water is clear and good. It is calculated that seven thousand tons of water are daily discharged into the sea. The number of springs in the Island are said to exceed two hundred. I accept with faith the statements made to me, in regard to the changes remarked at St. Helena as following the destruction and replenishing of trees, mainly because of their general accordance with what has been observed elsewhere ; but also in a great measure from confidence in popular observations in regard to facts even when I cannot assent to popular expositions of these facts as to cause and ejQFect. The following remarks are results obtained from observations made by rain gauges kept at St Helena : — The total amount of Rain which fell at Longwood in the year 1848 was 45-630 inches, which appears to be rather more than the average of eight years previous, which amounts only to 43 '8 inches. The month of October, during 1848, was the driest month of the year, being only 0-126 of an inch. January is the nest driest mouth 0-720, and December 0-758 ; the two wettest tnonths being June 7-150 and July 9-245 inches. Upon comparing the Registers kept at Longwood and Plantation for 1847, it appears that the fall of rain was greatest at Plantation, it there being 45-892 inches, and at Longwood 42*364 inches; January and December being the two driest months of the year, June and September being the two wettest months, when the sum of the two mouths are taken. At Plantation the two wettest months were 124 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. June and July; at Longwood tlie wettest montlis being June and September. The amount of Rain which fell for the undermentioned years, was : 1841, 68-925 inches. 1842, 90*458 inches. 1843, 37-189 „ 1844, 20-026 „ 1845, 19-509 „ • 1846, 26-556 „ 1847, 42.411 „ 1848, 45-630 „ giving the mean annual fall, 43-813 inches. Upon Examining the Monthly Register for these eight years, it appears that October, November, December, and January, give the mean driest months. The four wettest being March, May, June, and July. The December of 1846 being the driest month of the Avhole 96 months ; and the February of 1842 being the wettest month of the whole period. Professor Playfair states, that when the annual fall exceeds 25 inches, the climate is to be classed as moist : if so, St. Helena must certainly be classed as a moist climate, because this standard, com- pared with St. Helena's average of eight years, is nearly in the pro- portion of 25 to 43. The Professor also " supposes" the annual fall of Rain near London at 24 inches ; if so, St. Helena far exceeds London in its fall of Rain, this being more than half as much again at St. Helena as it is at London. The four following observations, being the quantities of Rain received at the respective stations for a period of nine months in 1841, are quoted as a confirmation of the theory that woods and mountains tend to precipitate Rain : — 1, At 2644 feet elevation 22-63 inches. 2, At 1991 „ 27-11 3, At 1782 „ 43-42 4, At 414 „ 7-63 The whole four stations being comprehended within a circle of little more than a mile radius. These statements I give as I have received them. So much depends on the locality and circumstances in which observations by the rain gauge are made that I am unable to say whether they tend to strengthen or to weaken the conclusion to which I have come. The Island of Mauritius supplies analogous facts. In a history of that Island, embodied my informant believes in Thornton's History of India, the author observes that when we obtained possession of it our countrymen thought it absurd that the beautiful land on the STATE OP MAURITIUS. 125 summits and slopes of the mountains should be abandoned to forests and jungle, and so cut them down, upon which the water supply began to fail. Reflection soon taught the authorities the cause of this failure ; upon which the hills were again planted with trees, and the rivers and streams resumed their former dimensions. Mr Marsh writes : — " The Island of Mauritius lying in the Indian Ocean in about 20° N. L., is less than forty miles long by about thirty in breadth. Its surface is very irregular, and though it con- sists, to a considerable extent, of a plateau from 1200 to 1500 feet high, there are three mountain peaks ranging from 2300 to 2700 feet in height. Hence, though the general climatic influences are everywhere substantially the same, there is room for a great variety of exposures and of other purely local conditions. It is said that the difference of temperature between the highest and lowest stations does not exceed eight degrees F, while, according to observations at thirty five stations, the rainfall in 1872 varied from thirty-three inches at Gros Cailloux to one hundred and forty six inches at Cluny. Nature, September 24, 1874. This enormous difference in measure- ment is too great to be explained by possible errors of observation or other accidental circumstances, and we must suppose there are, in difi'erent parts of this small island, great differences in the actual precipitation, but still much of this variation must be due to causes whose range of influence is extremely limited." Mr Meldrum, Director of the Mauritius Observatory, read a paper before the Scottish Meteorological Society in July, 1866. In this he stated that for some years before there had been severe droughts in the island, and recently there had been severe outbreaks of fever, which had carried off one-tenth of the population. A careful analysis of meteorological observations that had been made showed that from 1861 to 1866 there had been a great diminution in the rainfall. So far as could be discovered, the rainfall was less than during any similar period since the island was discovered. This could only be explained by the cutting down of large forests in the interior, no less than 70,000 acres having been denuded of trees during the ten years from 1852 to 1862. Mr Meldrum concluded by saying that the calamities which had so seriously affected the people of the Mauritius seemed to be self-inflicted ; and that the proper remedy was to restore the forests of which the once salubrious and beautiful island had been deprived. And in a communication published in the Journal of the English Meteorological Society for that year there is given additional information on the subject. In this he states, 126 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. "That the rainfall in that island during the five years 1862-66 was considerably le^s than during any previous five years of the whole period since 1853 ; " — " that during the first five years, from 1853- 57, the relative humidity of the air was 72'1, whilst during the last five years, 1862-66, it was only 68*2 ;" — " that the vapour pressure, which in the earlier of these quinquennials was '657, had fallen during the latter given quinquennial to •638." Notwithstanding these facts, he says : — " In no former year of the period of fourteen years did such floods occur as in 1861 and 1866, or such severe droughts as in 1865 and 1866." And to account for these facts, he says : — ■" That the decrease of rainfall, humidity, and vapour pressure, and the occurrence of floods and droughty may in some measure be due to the cutting down of the forests, which commenced on an extensive scale about 1852, was vigorously carried on till 1862, and is being still prosecuted, though to a smaller extent." One chief cause of the cutting down of the forests in the Mauritius, Mr Meldrum states thus : — " Proprietors of forests in high and remote parts of the island, where the climate was as yet too damp and rainy for the sugar-cane, engaged in the work because they believed that their land would thereby become more fit for such crops ; for it was very well known that the climate became drier in proportion as the forests were cut down. Upon the whole, I think, at least 70,000 acres, or about one-sixth of the entire area of the island, have been denuded of forests since 1852, and that, too, on the central and elevated parts of the island, at or near the sources of the rivers." He points out how, by the lowering of lakes, and the complete desiccation of others, malaria resulted, and a deadly epidemic. And the remedy which he suggests is, " to restoi'e, as far as practicable, certain portions of the forests of which this once salubrious and beautiful island has been deprived." In 1871, a report was issued by Dr H. Rogers, of Mauritius, " On the Eff'ects of the Cutting down of Forests on the Climate and Health of Mauritius." This report I have not seen ; but in a lecture on Forest Culture in its relation to industrial pursuits, delivered in Melbourne on the 22d June, of that year, by Baron von Miiller, Government Botanist in Victoria, there was given the following resume of its contents, with the remarks which follow : So late as 1861 the Island was resorted to by invalids from India, as the " pearl" of the Indian Ocean — it being then one mass of verdure. But when the forests PLANTING ON MAURITIUS, 127 were cleared, to gain space for sugar cultivation, the rainfall diminished ; the rivers dwindled down to muddy streams ; the water became stagnant in cracks, crevices, and natural hollows, while the equable temperature of the Island entirely changed ; drought was experienced in the midst of the ocean, and thunder showers were rarely any longer witnessed. The lagoons, marshes, and swamps, along the sea-board were no longer filled with water, but gave off noxious gases ; while the river waters became impure from various refuse. After a violent inundation in February 1865, followed by a period of drought, fever of a low type set in. Against this the remedies employed in ordinary febrile cases proved utterly valueless. From the waterless sides of the lagoons pestilential malaria arose. Exposed to this the labourers fell on the field, and in some instances died within a few hours. Scarcity of food among the destitute classes, and inadequate sewage arrangements, predisposed also to the dreadful effect at the time. It is alleged, and maintained, that marshes should either be drained out completely, or kept constantly submerged. And Dr Rogers insists that, for sanitary reasons alone, the plateaux and high lands of Mauritius must be replanted with trees. To what extent this may have been done, and with what results, remain to be seen. In Chambers' Journal it was mentioned in the beginning of 1875, apparently on the authority of the transactions of the Royal Society of the Mauritius, that with a view to check the increasing dryness of the climate 800,000 trees had been planted, and 150,000 seed holes prepared on barren mountain slopes and other waste places. And we have the following statement in regard to what appears to have been a prior application of the remedies proposed : — " The hills were again planted with trees, and the rivers and streams resumed their former dimensions." * *A letter from Mr A. St. John, who had given attention to the subject, and had been asked by Mr Fox Wilson for testimony which he might adduce in bis paper " On the Desiccation of the Basin of the Orange River," in support of views held by them both, has been put into my hands. In this it is said;— "It is Thornton, I believe, in hia • History of India,' who gives an account of the drying up of the springs in the Mauritius ; and the Journal of the Indian Archipelago, published by Logan at Singapore, supplies information about the Island of Penang I am confident of the information retained in my memory, though I may not always be able to point out the source from which it was obtained ; for example, I am perfectly sm-e that the writer, who as I have stated I think is Thornton, that gave the history of our conquest of the Mauritius, observes, that, when we obtained possession, our country- mea thought it absurd that the beautiful land on the summits and slopes of the 12S EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. Reference is made to the Island of Ascension by Boussingault, in his work entitled Economie Rurale considerie dans ses Ba2:)ports avee la Ckimie la Physique et la Mineralogie, in a passage which has been cited, in which he says : — " In the Island of Ascension there was an excellent spring situated at the foot of a mountain originally covered with wood. This spring became scanty, and at last dried up, after the trees which covered the mountains had been felled. The loss of this spring was ascribed, and rightly so, to the cutting down of the timber. The mountain was therefore replanted, and a few years afterwards the spring reappeared by degrees, and by and by flowed with its former abundance." When I was at the Cape of Good Hope, the Hon. Mr Barrington, of Belvidere, on the Knysna, wrote to me in regard to Ascension, that on that island, the driest of the dry — spoken of sometimes as a heap of cinders, which only could be maintained as a naval station by sending to it water in tanks from England and from the Cape — trees and culinary vegetables had been planted, and had been grown with success, through instructions supplied by Sir Wm. Hooker from Kew ; and that, since this had been done, not unfrequenlly had the island been seen capped with a cloud, and little runneb of water had been seen trickling down the sides of the rock. I have always understood mountains should be abandoned to forests and jungle ; and so cut them down, upon which the water supply began to fail. Reflection soon taught the authorities the cause of this failure ; upon which the hills were again planted with trees, and the rivers and streams resumed their former dimensions," In the same letter the writer says :-" I have deferred answering your letter in the hope of being able to consult some of the works which supplied a portion of the material for my article ' On the Failure of Springs ;' but I have not been able to do what I intended. What I say of the drying up of four hundred springs in Persia is on the authority of Tavernier ; but as the copy I possess of that traveller has no index, I cannot at once find the passage, though perfectly certain that it occurs in his account of the Northern Provinces Formerly, in my ' Manners and Customs of Ancient Greece,' (II, 370), I pointed out the disforesting of the mountains as the cause of the drying up of streams and rivulets in several parts of the country, and of the diminishing of nearly all the rivers. Demoeritus, many centuries before Christ, had made the discovery that woods and forests are necessary to the maintenance of springs ; and in the last century, Volney contended that the Sahara might be rendered fertile by planting it with such firs as would grow in sand, which would attract and retain moisture. I make not the least doubt that in the Transgariep portions of Southern Africa, to which you refer, the diminution of moisture was occasioned exclusively by the cause you point out, and not by any cosmical changes, as imagined by Livingstone, Should the Government, as far as its authority extends, ordain that whenever trees are cut down others should be planted in their place, and generally encourage the multi- plication of woods and forests, I make no doubt that that whole region would be abundantly supplied with moisture." STATE OP ASCENSION. 129 that the copious supply of water in Capetown was derived, not from rainfall and surface drainage, but from the percolation, through the four thousand feet thick filtering stone, of moisture absorbed from what is called the Table-cloth, often seen on Table Mountain when the south-east wind blows in the summer months ; and there seemed to me nothing unreasonable in the information supplied by Mr Barrington. He derived his information from the late Commodore Burnet, who had been stationed at the Island, who stated that for a long time the garrison and the shipping had had a good supply of water ; and he (Mr Barrington) stated that when he himself saw it, which was in 1861, the summit was enveloped in mist the whole day. I subsequently obtained through Dr Hooker, who had succeeded his father as Director of the Royal Gardens at Kew, a copy of the report made in 1862 by Capt. Barnard when in charge of Ascension, with a lithographic plan of the Island, illustrative of what had been then accomplished, which had been published at his suggestion by the Lords of the Admiralty, that the public might know something of the altered " condition of that curious and now important island, due to the encouragement given by the Admiralty, through the instrumentality of Commodore Burnet, and more recently by the intelligence and zeal of Capt. Barnard and his indefatigable assistant, Mr Bell." And he goes on to say, in support of his suggestion : — " I doubt if there is any spot in the world where a comparatively barren rock, — destitute of all natural useful vegetation, exposed to the most terrific and injurious sea breezes, — has been, or could have been, brought into such a state of useful cultivation." The plan shows a great many patches, measured as many of them by poles as by acres, but measuring in the aggregate twenty-nine acres, covered with furze and shrubbery, and upwards of twenty-seven acres of land under cultivation, bearing crops of potatoes, sweet potatoes, cabbage, carrots, pumpkins, turnips, endive, beans, leeks, grass, pine apples, bananas, guavas, figs, oranges, shaddocks, mul- berries, and sugar-cane. It appears that a number of seeds consisting of acorns, horse chesnuts, Spanish chesnuts, etc., which had been previously sent, had been spoilt, probably by being stowed away on ship-board in a damp hold ; but simple measures were adopted to prevent the recur- rence of this, and by terracing, excavating, and levelling every little patch capable of cultivation, the most was made of every advantage which could be commanded on the island. The whole report by Captain Barnard is full of details illustrative 130 EFFECTS OF FOBESTS ON MOISTURE, of that indomitable energy and contrivance which we proudly allege to be characteristic of our nation. This I shall immediately quote at some length ; but what chiefly concerns us is that, apparently by vegetation, there was secured sufficient humidity to promote vegetation, and this in such abundance that a cloud capped the mountain supposed never to have been seen so capped before, and rills of water ran down rocks supposed never to have been bedewed with such tears within the memory of man. When every allowance has been made for suspected exaggeration of previous aridity, and of humidity attained, there remains still a fact to encourage the hope that by the extension of forests an increased humidity may be secured. In 1864 there were published by the Government the following observations on Ascension, by Captain F. L. Barnard, R,N. : — "Ascension is in latitude 7^ 56' S. and longitude 14° 24' W. It is about 7 1 miles in length and 6 miles in breadth, and is within the immediate influence of the S.E. trade wind. The island is entirely volcanic, the surface being broken into mountains, hills, and ravines. It was discovered by the Portugese in 1501, but remained uninhabited until after the arrival of Napoleon at St. Helena, when it was occupied as a post by Sir George Cockburu, and placed on the establishment of a sloop of war, under a lieutenant. In 1822 the naval garrison was relieved by a detachment of marines under Major John Campbell ; since which it has gradually been increasing in importance, and I propose tracing its rise, progress, and present capabilities from valuable notes left by my predecessor Captain W. F. Burnett, C.B., and the records in office. " But little information remains on record between 1815 and 1824, in which latter year Lieut.-Col. Nicolls arrived to take command. The number then victualled was 59. Mules and donkeys were the only draught animals, and sheep and bullocks were then first applied for. " The supply of water was scanty and precarious, and even in 1829 it depended on drips in the banks, and the rain that was collected in casks and a few old tanks. Three carts, six oxen, and three drivers were employed daily in transporting about 360 gallons a distance of six miles, and even this quantity was liable to a considerable diminution after long droughts. When Dampier's vessel, the 'Roebuck,' foundered near Ascension in 1701, he discovered springs or drips by watching where the goats went to drink; and in 1824 attention was called to three of these, viz., Middleton's, the Mountain WATER OIS ASCEiSblOi^. 131 or Breakneck, and Dampier's. Iron water pipes were applied for to lay down between the Mountain and garrison, where there were tanks capable of containing 40 tons only. " In July 1825 a boring machine arrived, and tanks and reservoirs were commenced on a large scale ; but the latter, from subsequent accounts, seem to have been mere excavations, from which the water soaked away in a few days. "Boring was first commenced in 1826 above Middleton's springs, by Colonel Nicolls, without any important results. In 1829, Captain Bate reported the possibility of supplying the African squadron with water, proposing certain measures, and Captain Brandreth, R.E., was instructed by the Admiralty to make a survey and report of the island. He found that the auger of the boring machine had been introduced nearly horizontally in the dii-ection of the substratum, which would merely have the effect of causing the stream to flow more freely without arriving at the source of the spring. Captain Bate had also bored near high-water mark by the advice of a foreign naturalist, and from the wells then made the present supply of salt water is derived. Unsuccessful borings were made in the low lands, and others were recommended in the Mountain district. Captain Brandreth reported favourably on Captain Bate's propositions, and returned to Ascension in 1830. Finding that the stock of water was reduced to 40 tons in consequence of a drought during twelve or fourteen months, he pressed for further experiments in boring, and fixed on a spot high up in the Mountain district, on the weather side, at the bottom of a ravine, the sides of which were 80 feet in height. The strata consist of volcanic matter on beds of clay. The experiment succeeded, and at the depth of 25 feet from the surface a spring was found ; the shaft was sunk 60 feet, and still yields (in 1864) from three to four tons daily, even after a long drought. A second shaft was subsequently sunk about 100 yards from the first, and produces an occasional supply only. In the latter end of 1830 the main water pipes were partly laid down. " Palmer's springs were discovered 500 feet below the drips in Breakneck, and were said to produce 2,000 gallons in 24 hours Two large reservoirs were constructed by building up a deep gorge in terraces, which receive the water from an extensive rocky valley, but there is no spring in my opinion. Drinking troughs have been con- structed here and at Middleton's ; they supply the island-bred cattle, 9.nd wild animals with water, which at the latter is brackish, and does not agree with imported beasts. The marines used to take it 132 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. medicinally in cases of dysentery. There is a neat cottage at Palmer's, in which a man and his wife reside, and take care of a garden producing chilies and pumpkins, " In December 1831 the main pipes were finished, being led from Bate's tank at Dampier's, 5 miles distant from the garrison, and 1000 feet above its level, and the same depth below the Mountain tank. "In January 1832 an octagon iron tank, capable of containing 20 tons, was placed under the drip in Breakneck Valley, and in the same year a tnnnel was cut through the mountain about 930 feet long, for pipes to convey the water, which was pumped by horse power, and forced up 140 feet into an iron tank above the level of the reservoir on the other side of the mountain. The tunnel is sufficiently wide and high to admit of people walking through with ease, and is a wonderful proof of the perseverance and skill of the marines, who, under Captain Payne, executed it in the short period between 19th May and 3rd October of the same year. The principal and only certain supply of water is obtained through this. "InFebruary 1847 there was a great scarcity of water, and distilling was first commenced with Clark's apparatus, but as salt water was obtained from a well sunk in the square, affected by the ebb and flow of tide, the supply was limited and uncertain. " I found the drips in 1861 much in the same state as they appear to have been in 1832, and shall describe the present water resources of the island, the steps that have been taken to improve them, and the plans I would suggest to ensure an adequate supply. " The drips and wells in Breakneck Valley are the only sources that never entirely fail, although the yield is considerably less after a long drought ; the drips are caused by the rain and wet fogs, arrested by the steep sides of the ravine, and percolating through the cinder to strata of rock, which crop out and form ledges. Under these, lengths of zinc and iron sheeting were placed, conducting the water in driblets to a small cemented trough over the octagon tank, which occasionally overflowed after heavy rains, and at all times the labour of forcing a column of 140 feet of water was very distressing to animals, and absorbed much labour. " In the latter end of 1863, a wind engine of 1| horse power, by Bury and Pollard, was erected near the octagon tank ; the pipes were connected throughout their whole extent, as they were found to be too much on a dead level to carry ofi" the water forced up, and we had the satisfaction of finding that it worked admirably, and was capable of doing much more when required. SUPPLY OF WATER ON ASCENSION. 133 " Extensive troughs lined with Roman cement have replaced the odds and ends of old sheeting, preventing waste and increasing the yield of water. " The wells which were sunk in the spots selected by Captain Brandreth are worked by hand pumps daily, and produce sufficient water for the consumption of the Mountain after many months of drought. I am, therefore, of opinion that the upper one is supplied by a bona fide spring, and without it much inconvenience would be frequently experienced. " The roofing surface has of late been greatly increased, and iron tanks have been placed in convenient places for the supply of the cow- house and stables, by which both manual and horse labour are saved. " Finding that a considerable rush of water from the mountain roads found its way into Dampier's tank in a very muddy state, large cisterns have been constructed, with underground drains between them, the last being connected with the main pipes just below the Mountain reservoir. A great mass of mud and cinder is deposited by these means, and the water eventually reaches its destination in a comparatively clean state. In connection with this arrangement all the upper roads, which were composed of soft light cinder, liable to be washed away, are being paved with durable stone. ** The drip at Dampier's is scarely worth taking into account, as it dries up soon after the rain ceases, and produces nothing when most required. " To prevent the waste necessarily caused by frequently running down small quantities of water from the main tank at Dampier's (Bate's), drinking troughs have been sunk on the spot and are supplied by means of a small fire engine. " The cattle that are not being stall-fed are driven in every morn- ing for food and water ; and there have been no losses amongst the imported cattle since this system has been adopted. "In 1861 Dr. Normanby's distilhug apparatus arrived in H.M.S. * Isis,' and in the beginning of 1863 pipes were laid down to it from the sea, affording an ample supply of salt water, which is pumped up a height of 25 feet by means of a simple and ingenious contrivance of Mr Smith, the superintending engineer. A small eccentric on the shaft of the donkey engine works a number of levers which pump the salt water into a tank, and the fresh water into a reservoir when the receiver is full. By attaching a strap to the fly-wheel a chaff cutter is also worked in an adjacent building. The produce of water is about one gallon per minute, 134 EFFECTS OP FORESTS ON MOISTURE. " Such are the water resources of the island, which have not more than kept pace with the increase of the population, from 59 in 1854 ; to an average of 550 in 1863; and after three years' experience and much painful anxiety, with the necessity of reducing the allowance to a gallon for each person during upwards of six mouths, I would urge the paramount necessity of ensuring an adequate supply." The details of hydraulic works proposed by Captain Barnard I do not deem it necessary to quote. After giving them, he proceeds : — " I have found but little reliable information respecting the former cultivation of the island ; but with the assistance of memoranda left by Captain Burnett, records, and my own experience, I shall describe its present state and capabilities of improvement. " Like Captain Brandreth, I shall divide the island into four parts, with reference to its agricultural capabilities. " The first, consisting of about 200 acres, on the highest lands round the Peak. " The second, of about 800 acres, lying below the Peak, from 2,200 feet to 1,400 feet above the level of the sea. " The third part, comprising tracts of cinder and ashes, with inter- vening watercourses about the lower lands. " The fourth takes in extensive beds of lava and cinder, not likely to undergo any change, but which produce purslane and other food, on which herds' of wild goats feed and keep in good condition. *• This part comprises the Peak of Green Mountain, with all it surrounding ravines and hollows, from a height of 2^820 feet to Elliot's Pass, about 2,200 feet above the level of the sea. At the summit is a small piece of table land, on which the Bei'mudian cedar, guava, hibiscus, and other shrubs flourish ; it is frequently enveloped in mist, and with the exception of a running grass gathered by the Africans for the cows, it is covered with a long wiry sedge used for stable bedding only. Orange trees brought with great care from Rio and the Gape of Good Hope, have been tried on the N.E, side, where the soil is deep and good, but without success ; they appeared to flourish for a season, but soon began to droop and wither away ; consequently all that retained any signs of life were transplanted into a nursery, where they must remain until the weather is favourable for putting them into sheltered spots in the ravines where lime trees flourish. Numbers of trees and shrubs have been planted by the sides of the path leading to the Peak since Mr Bell's arrival in 1857. They look healthy aad strong, and the more tender ones are protected by tree PLANTING ON ARCENSTON, 135 guards. A list of them is annexed. . , . , A tin trough placed under one of the wattles for the pheasants to drink from, has water in it during the driest seasons, affording a proof of how much moisture is attracted by planting. The above is enclosed on the sides accessible to cattle by a fence of cask staves. " We now come to a second enclosure planted with a double row of pinus excelsa, which are growing well. Buddlea, vites trifolia, gorse, broom, and brambles, border the path in one thick mass, with the beautiful crimson flower of the hibiscus peeping through the foliage. Between the base of the High Peak and the Little Peak is a bare ridge exposed to the strong trade wind, producing sedge and a few stunted shrubs. The Little Peak is enclosed by a bank and ditch, and is cultivated all over, producing light and uncertain crops of English or sweet potato. To leeward of and below it, shrubs grow luxuriantly, and an excavation has been converted into a nursery, but the soil is dry and porous, and tender plants do not survive even a short drought in it. Pine apples have been planted, and will probably succeed here. There is also a fine lime tree, whose roots have found their way into a fissure in the cinder; it consequently flourishes, whilst every attempt to grow others near it has failed. " All the first division is planted suflficiently, and nothing is required but attention to the growing trees and shrubs, and keeping the fences in repair. It is surrounded by Elliot's Pass, a road cut out of the solid cinder, and passing horizontally quite round the Mountain, which at several points is tunnelled through. It affords great facilities for planting the sides of the mountain and ravines — is a convenient path for the shepherds, and a pleasant walk of about three miles, lined with blackberiy bushes bearing plenty of fruit, and numbers of trees and shrubs. " The ravines present the appearance of dense thickets, bramble, buddlea, vitex, etc., having completely clothed them. Thousands of small birds flock about the bushes, and are increasing wonderfully ; they consist almost exclusively of avadavats introduced by Captain Burnett. This pass was commenced in 1839 by Lieutenant Wade, Royal Marines, and completed in January 1840. In 1861 about 600 yards of the path on the weather side were considerably widened by Captain Barnard. " The second and most important division commences below Elliot's Pass, adjoining which are the farm buildings, consisting of a a cow-house, fodder store, and stock yards, with slaughtering triangle, and every convenience for stall-feeding oxen, penning sheep, and 136 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. saving manure for the cultivated lands, a great part of which in 1861 had been constantly cropped with sweet potatoes and its fertilizing powers extracted. The farm buildings were so scattered and ill arranged that no great body of manure could be collected. All the slaughtering was carried on in the garrison, and the ofFal thrown into the sea. I made a complete change in the system ; built a fodder store, demanded chaff cutters and oil-cake crushers, formed large yards, adjoining the cow-house by excavating, did away with detached sheds, and connected a sufficient number of iron tanks to ensure a constant supply of water on the spot. *' All crops are most uncertain excepting sweet potatoes, which, unfortunately, are not generally liked as a vegetable, and cannot be used in soup. Regular and large sowings of English potatoes are now made, and several good crops have been obtained ; the arrange- ment for thoroughly manuring the ground once in two years evidently tending to restore fertility to the soil, for the sweet potatoes even come to perfection in less time than they did before. Great losses must be expected from the ravages of caterpillars and long droughts, but the system should be persevered in, if only for the purpose of introducing something like rotation of crops, not hitherto much studied. The best seed potatoes have been obtained from the Cape of Good Hope ; they are red, and about the size of walnuts. Some from Loanda have also turned out very well. Supplies according to demand are sent by the contractors for cattle from Table Bay eveiy two months. The seed saved on the spot is worthless. Pumpkins grow to a large size in the weather gardens, weighing upwards of 80 lbs. ; they are propagated from cuttings. Great efforts have been made to grow cabbages in large numbers, but the caterpillars destroy nearly all the seedlings, and there are never sufficient for a general issue. French beans succeed better than any other vegetables when- ever the droughts do not last long ; about two out of three sowings fail. Now and then a fair crop of turnips may be got, but carrots are a long time in growing, and never attain even a moderate size. The New Zealand spinach grows wild amongst the other crops, and at times is gathered in large quantities. No other vegetables are grown in the sheep walk or weather gardens. " Guano has been twice obtained from Boatswain Bird Island, and seemed to produce good crops of sweet potatoes, but stable and farm manure is better, and more easily obtained. " In the Home gardens about the Mountain cottage, leeks are pro- duced plentifully, as well as French beans, lettuce, endive, and herbs. PLANTING ON ASCENSION. 137 Pine apples have been propagated successfully of late years, and are well flavoured. " All the ground available for planting is in detached patches, and I find, on searching the records, that detailed descriptions of that under cultivation, up to the end of 1859, have been forwarded to the Secretary of the Admiralty. Since I took charge in July 1861, I have turned my attention to the possibility of breaking up new ground and culti- vating English potatoes, cabbages, and the vegetables usually issued with fresh meat. The difficulty of finding any sufficiently level and sheltered is great, and I have had recourse to excavating on the side of the mountain. One piece now in progress, on the same level with the home gardens, will have a back of 44 feet. I have also converted what was formerly a stock yard into a garden, and have a very promising crop of Jersey potatoes well up. As we can find labour, I purpose terracing a very promising piece of ground under the weather gardens, above a patch on which cabbages have been successfully raised. My predecessor enclosed a space on a rather steep slope, containing about an acre, which will be broken up, if the dry weather lasts ; it will be fit only for the sweet potato, which is the staple produce of the island, and flourishes even in the driest seasons, but it is not prized by the men There is no limit to the broken ground available for the planting of shrubs, and during the dry season a party is constantly employed digging holes four feet wide, thi'ee deep ; there are upwards of 1,000 now open for the reception of the Australian wattle, to be planted between Michaelmas and Lady-day. This shrub has been most successful at Ascension, and in a few years will change the aspect, and probably the climate, of the island, from its rapid growth and facility of propagation. I lately measured one that was planted last November twelvemonths, in the shape of a small layer, and it is now from six to seven feet high, covering a circle with a circumference of 36 feet; about 1,000 of these have been planted within the last three years. '■' Mr Bell fortunately hit upon the simple plan of laying the small branches into preserved meat tins, butter firkins, and boxes, in which they can be carried to any distance ; they already flourish much lower than any other tree or shrub, and had we not lost our last season from an unusual drought, many more would have been planted lower still ; there are upwards of 1,000 now ready. I have entered into the above details to show that the wattle has greatly reduced our requirements, and I constantly receive, from private sources, loquats, guava, orange, lime, and wild fruit trees, from the Cape of N 138 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. Good Hope and the coast. The date palm, coffee bush, and custard apple look healthy and strong in their seed beds, and thousands of young shrubs and trees, from the Peak down to the level of the home gardens, are making rapid growth, whilst the furze, bramble, and other shrubs fill the deep ravines and fissures with a luxuriant foliage, affording good cover for game. Pine apples have arrived to great perfection under Mr Bell's treatment, and we are making fresh plantations from time to time. " Of all things we most require conifers, and find that various attempts have been made by my predecessor to obtain seeds. The following advice in a letter from Dr Lindley to the Comptroller of Victualling, dated Acton Green, August 20, 1860, if acted upon would be of great service to the island : — ' Mr Bell finds by experience that of all trees the most useful to plant on the mountain slopes are conifers. In this I concur, and I would advise their Lordships to send out a supply of Chilian Araucarian and Norfolk Island pines, most especially the former, which form forests on the southern face of the Chilian Andes in precipitous places, where they bid defiance to storms. Ally quantity of the seeds (Chilian Araucarian Pine) could be procured tlu'ough the English Consul at Valparaiso, Mr Rouse, who, however, should be instructed to take care that the seeds are fresh. The Indians bring them to market, but sometimes so old that they will not grow.' " I hope to be able to get Norfolk Island pine cones, and Australian trees and plants through my predecessor, Commodore Burnett ; they all do well at Ascension. " The Bermudean cedar grows most luxuriantly at the Peak, and a parcel of the seed would be most acceptable. Scai'cely any trees or shrubs bear seed here. " As Sir William Hooker takes a lively interest in the cultivation of the island, he may like to know what steps have been taken to carry out his valuable suggestions, as well as those of Dr Lindley and Dr J. D. Hooker, which I have found amongst the Records. " Finding a great scarcity of manure, and no facilities for carting it up from the garrison, I shortly after my arrival commenced stall feeding, and slaughtering the oxen at the Mountain, and have now a most valuable heap of manure ready for our worn land. " I next pi'ocured a quantity of guano from Boatswain Bird Island ; this, from its great poi'tability, will be a great boon to us if it succeeds, which I have every hope of its doing from the healthy green and luxuriant foliage of a large breadth of sweet potatoes manured with it. PARA GRASS ON ASCENSION. 139 " Mr Bell frequently accompanies me in searching for eligible spots for establishing fresh patches of vegetable ground, and by the aid of terracing, as we can command labour, I feel confident that an ample supply of cabbages, leeks, and at times potatoes, can be commanded. " Mr Bell having represented to me that numbers of young shrubs and trees required protection when first planted out, I have caused a lai'ge number of guards to be constructed from firewood and the hoops that come off the trusses of hay; they answer most admirably. " These plans, combined with the system of layering adopted by Mr Bell, and the breaking up of new ground, will, I feel convinced, do all that is possible for the cultivation of the Mountain, which ia capable of spade labour only. " The cones of the pitch pine from the Bahamas ordered by their Lordships to be forwarded to Ascension, upon Sir William Hooker's recommendation, will, in all probability, succeed, and I shall be glad to get them. *' Having described our requii'ements and plans for the cultivation of the mountain, I think an account of an experiment on a large scale, which we are making on the north-east plains, may be interesting to Sir William Hooker. "In a document from Mr Bell to Captain Burnett, dated October 1859, I find these plains described as having been cleared and culti- vated twenty years before, but in consequence of the loss of horses, and frequent failures of the crops, they were abandoned and con- sidered barren and useless. "However, on searching the records last year, a letter was dis- covered bearing date 31st August 1849, from the Secretary of the Admiralty, acquainting the captain in charge that Sir William Hooker intended to forward a case of most excellent grass for fodder, known by the name of ' Para;' accompanying this letter was a description of the grass and its habits. "At Ascension it is doing wonders, increasing in the most astonishing manner, and growing down all weeds and inferior grasses wherever it is once established. Patches of it were tried on the No. 2 plains, and made not only rapid growth but resisted a drought of several months, though exposed to a tropical sun and the full force of the south-east Trade. " Ploughs and harrows having been promptly supplied at my request, w^e took advantage of a spare team, and a colt that required breaking in, to plough and harrow these plains, and, much to our atisfaction, found them to be covered with a rich friable loam. 140 EFFECTS OP FORESTS ON HUMID1TT= With protection, crops of every description might be grown here, but, in the absence of horse and manual labour, to collect the rocks and boulders which abound on the surrounding hills, and would form excellent dry walls and well-sheltered enclosiu-es, we are planting from six to eight acres with Para grass in fine showery weather. If it succeeds, we could have fine pasture lands for cattle in a short time, and there is every facility at hand for constructing drinking troughs. I am also trying a small patch with English potatoes, fenced for the purpose. The method Mr Bell is adopting for planting this grass is by cutting turf into junks, which are carried to the spot in bread bags, on the heads of Africans, and trod in at equal distances ; the runners grow by inches in one week after rain, and form a perfect mat which no animal can root up. Men are daily employed collecting Para grass for the beasts and cattle, both at the mountain and at the garrison, and it materially saves the expensive oat straw sent from the Cape. If Sir William Hooker could obtain a bag of the seed it would help us greatly. Should it at any time be thought advisable to bring a much larger breadth into cultivation for vegetables than can be obtained at the Mountain, I could fence in many acres on the weather slope of a valley formed by two ridges of these plains for the expense of about four additional rations for donkeys to draw the stones on sleighs, but with our present command of labour I could not attempt it. If the Para gi-ass succeeds, there are other large plains, containing hundreds of acres, capable of being converted into pasture land. " In conclusion, I think it due to Mr Bell to state that the whole of the farming and gardening operations under his care are carried on in a most systematic and skilful manner. He combines the experience of three years with considerable tact in managing the Africans. " I dwell upon this more particularly, as there appears to be a growing interest in the cultivation and general improvement of the establishment at Ascension, and operations might be more readily and economically undertaken at present than with a new gardener, who would have everything to learn ; and, on my part, I am quite willing to devote as much attention to this branch of my duties as I can possibly spare." There was appended the following Table, showing the quantity of cultivated ground on the island of Ascension, in what way laid out, and present crop : — LAND UNDER CULTURE ON ASCENSION, 141 Name of garden and En- closure. In what way laid out. Present Crop in the CultiTated > 1 ^ 2 1 > i 1 8 10 21 12 9 24 29 1 13 23 20 16 3 4 3 38 34 9 1 _ 8 12 13 13 8 5 10 3 19 16 8 The High Peak . . Little Peak . . Weather Gardens . Sheep Walk . . Home Gardens Outer boundary of the Home Garden . Hospital Garden . Sugar Cane Patches . Caldwell's Fruit Ravine Jumper's Ravine . Broad Ravine . . Narrow Ravine Black Rock Ravine Tobacco Garden Ravine Hospital Eavine . Weather Patches . . Mulberry Run Cane Eavine Palmer's Springs . Detached patches and Elliot's Pass 6 1 2 15 3 3 3 2 1 2 ?9 38 9 16 4 1 19 15 20 17 i 7 12 1 1 1 1 3 2 1 2 English potatoes ; seed obtained from Jersey. Sweet and English potatoes, Cab- bage, carrots, pumpkins, and turnips; three acres fallow. Sweet potatoes and two small grass paddocks, pine apples, bananas, &c., endive, French beans, and carrots. Leeks, herbs, seedling date palm and coffee, &c., <&c. ; one acre fallow. Turnips and English potatoes. Cuttings of shrubs. Sugar cane. Guavas. Bananas. Bananas, oranges, and shad- docks. Bananas, shaddocks, and large pandanus. Bananas (the principal banana ravine). Bananas and flg bushes. Bananas. Bananas and mulberries. Bananas and sugar cane. Bananas and sugar cane. Bananas and pumpkin. Bananas. Totals . 29 - - 4 27 1 25 June 16th 1862. (Signed) F. L, BARNARD, Captain in charge of Ascension. In the observations published in 1864, it is stated, "Much might be done to improve and add to the area of the cultivated land. . . . I consider that the cultivation of the mountain has reached a new stage ; the buddlea, vitex, and quick-growing underwood have done their work as pioneers, and made good soil where coflfee and the various ornamental and useful trees and shrubs that are ready for transplanting should be put. " Already a large piece of ground adjoining the cattle yards is being enclosed with a strong fence formed of branches of Ascension trees and underwood. It is planted with Para grass, and will be most valuable for sick cattle, as well as the sheep, at the half-yearly musters, when they invariably suffer greatly from running at their 142 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. noses, after being kept a day or two on dry food. The yearly saving in fodder will be at least £50." There is given the following table of observations : — ^ -3 S . «o CO t- s II 1' <» -* w 1 g §? 00 a . CO b JS ' CO t! C5 K> <» ■*■ ^ 1 a ^ CO 04 00 1 ^ Bain fall. a' g § ^ CO CO CO -^ ;^ S5 • m* C5 CO ^1 1 i § §0 M C5 >s b- «b 2 s ^ .a—* t. -* 10 t* s (§3 g Ci CO «b lb »b b- M i-5 s 00 (>) c, =^1 5> S » a 00 C-1 ^3 J 03 00 00 >J J_ ir» CO CI 10 ^ a • * ^ CD ^ CO •s^ .a ip M-5 eb ,1, 'JH s ^2; ■ ' , , , ^ a 1 s 3 Q s a ►-. a .a H -o 13 'C ^ § § e a r >-» Ph ^ H ei a a r^ ^ so ^ ci ,0 ci .2 U Q ^ 'rl Cm > fo rt n-! 3 a cri a a &H ^ © pC! ^ ^ A -rt m d S ft Sh a> CD >-. J -fJ !? is TREES GROWN ON ASCENSION. 143 There is appended also the following list of botanical names of trees and shrubs growing on the Peak : — Juniperus Bermudiana, Podocarpus sp., Brugmansia suaveolens, Brugmansia sanguinea, Ficus (four species), Casuarina (two species), Acacia, four species, including the Wattle, Tlex sp., Alpinia nutafts, Pinus excelsa, Pinus pinea, Vitex trifolia, Bignonia (Stoniby sp.), Hibiscus (five varieties), Clerodendron fragrans, Coffea Arabica, Buddlea (Ascension gum bush), Eriobotrya Japonica (the loquat), Quercus robur (English oak), Cedrus Deodara (one plant), Cupressus torulosa, Widdringtonia juniperoides, Fourcroya gigantea, Hakea sp., Virgilia Capensis, Eucalyptus (four species), Nei'ium oleander, splendens, Phytolacca decandra, Myrica cordifolia, Leucodendron argenteum, Melaleuca hypericifolia, Rhus laevigata, Schottia latifolia, Pandanus odoratis- simus. Fruits — The banana, peach, lime, orange, fig, loquat, and guavas, the latter being the only kind that produces fruit. Respect- ing the natural grasses on the Peak, it is said, — " What appears to be grass is in reality not grass at all, being only sedges, near relations to the English rush." I consider that the preservation of the water under the wattle, to which reference is made, may be accounted for otherwise than by supposing that the moisture is attracted by vegetation ; but the fact of the connection between plantations and moisture, resulting in an increase of the former being accompanied by an increase of the latter, remains the same whatever theory or hypothesis may be entertained in regard to the modus operandi. In the Report of Kew Garden, for 1864, it is stated, "that from Ascension there continued to be received encouraging accounts of the increased fertility and moisture of the island, consequent on the extension of the plantations." And in the Report for 1865, it is stated, — " Of once sterile Ascension Island, which we continue to supply with plants, Captain Barnard reports that it now possesses thickets of upwards of forty kinds of trees, besides numerous shrubs and fruit trees, of which, however, only the guava ripens. These already afford timber for fencing cattle-yards. When Mr Hooker visited the island in 1843, owing to want of water, but one tree existed on it, and there were not enough vegetables produced to supply the Commandant's table ; whereas now, through the introduction of vegetation, the water supply is excellent, and the garrison and ships visiting the island are supplied with abundance of vegetables of various kinds." Later reports I have not seen. 144 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. It is remarked by Marsh, that " it has long been a popularly settled belief that vegetation and the condensation and fall of atmospheric moisture are reciprocally necessary to each other, and even the poet sings of Afric's barren sand, Where nought cau grow, because it raineth not, And where no rain can fall to bless the land, Because nought grows there." * Here we have an illustration of the converse fact : one measure of humidity promoting vegetation, and vegetation not only arresting the desiccation but so reversing the process that an increased humidity is the consequence. Sect IV. — Cases, Illustrative of Effects of Forests on Humidity, correspondinng to such as have been adduced. Besides the cases which have been brought forward as indicative of the effects of forests upon the humidity of a country, there are others which point to the same conclusion, which may be adduced, not as corroborative testimony, but as independent facts, which are in accordance with what has been alleged. Continuing observations made on the Islands and Continent of Africa, I cite first the case of Madeira. Madeira does not, like St. Helena and Ascension, supply evidence of a restored or newly produced humidity following the planting of trees; but it supplies testimony to the effects of trees on the humidity of the atmosphere and soil, which is of importance. Washington Irving, in his " History of Columbus," refers to an ancient document which is believed to have been drawn up by one of the first discoverers of Madeira, about the year 1378. According to this document, — " The country was delightful. The forests were stately and magnificent. There were trees laden with excellent fruits. The waters were cool and limpid. On penetrating a little distance they found a beautiful sheltered meadow, the green bosom of which was bordered by laurels and refreshed by a mountain stream, whieh ran sparkling over jiebhles.'" In accordance with this statement is the following glowing descrip- * " Det golde Strog i Afrika. Der Intet voxe kan, da ei det regner, Og, omvendt, ingen Regn kau falde, da Der Intet Toxer." Faludam-Musllek, Adam Homo, ii, 408. FORMER CONDITION OF MADEIRA. 145 tiou of wood and waters, giveu iu au uupublished aucient manuscript, cited by Dr Graham in a work entitled " Climate and Resources of Madeira," published iu 1870 : — " The island of Madeira at the period of its discovery presented a most lovely picture of nature : a vegeta- tion truly astonishing covered it with trees, reaching to a prodigious height, — the majestic cedar, laurel, til, besides others, forming one continuous and impenetrable forest. Evergreens and creeping plants wove their festoons from branch to branch, giving new shade to a land all clothed with vegetation, and new force to inumerable springs of pic7'e and salubrious water" But tradition tells of a great forest fire having swept over a great extent of the island ; and after that, it was alleged, all was changed. Mr Milne H )me, Chairman of the Council of the Scottish Meteorological Society, in a paper submitted to this Society, entitled " Suggestions for Increasing the Supply of Spring Water at Malta, and Improving the Climate of the Island," says, — ' Some valuable facts are supplied from the island of Madeira, It has been shown that the annual fall of rain there is, on an average, thirty or thirty-two inches, being about thirteen inches more than at Malta. Can one reason be that, whilst Malta is treeless, Madeira is still partially wooded ? Dr Graham says, — ' The north side of Madeira is still well clothed ; and, although there are perhaps few trees which can aspire to the dimensions handed down to us in the relics of former days, the dark and ancient foliage still covers both hill and valley.' " Dr Graham refers to the dimensions of the trees of a bygone age in Madeira. There can be no doubt that when first colonized the island had been completely covered with wood. Its name, as given by the Portuguese, was originally Materia, in allusion to the inexhaustible materials it supplied for ship-building and the con- struction of houses." Dr Graham quotes from an unpublished ancient manuscript the glowing description of its woods and waters, which has been given above ; and referring to those statements of an old date, he goes on to say, — " It seems evident, from these descriptions, that Madeira when first colonized was much better supplied with both wood and water than at present ; and the conclusion seems not unreasonable, that the better supply of water was in consequence of the larger extent of wood." Citing these passages, Mr Milne Home goes on to say, — " Dr Graham expresses a decided opinion to that efi'ect. He condemns unsparingly the selfishness and folly of the first colonizers, who, in order to get land for the culture of the sugar-cane and vine, 146 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON MOISTURE. set fire to the woods, and produced a conflagration which lasted seven days." Dr Graham says, — " The forests of Madeira have been continually receding with the increase of fuel requirement, and the replanting of the land thus laid waste has been long and culpably neglected. Recently, however, the introduction of the pine tree has to a very great extent stemmed the progress of reckless destruction. The pine grows easily and rapidly, occupying lands ill-suited to other kinds of cultivation." And in another couneution he says, — " The recession of nature's woods has been in late years compensated by the advance of the introduced species." He reports his observations on the arrest of the water of fogs and clouds by the leaves of the coniferse, and other trees, which act almost like a sieve, draining it out ; and he remarks, " when the hills were completely wooded, at the time of the colonization, it is quite probable that the humid mists, continually passing over the moun- tains, were intercepted, and that the rivers which now, soon after rain, dwindle down to tiny streams were then more constantly full." And he further remarks : — " On the eastern side of the basin of Funchal, the upper lands have been almost entirely cleared of trees. The rain water descends impetuously in a torrent, leaving a tiny stream, which flows steadily so long as the sky is overcast, but ceases altogether after one day of sunshine. I do nut think the rains are now heavier or more fitful than in former times ; but there are now no woods on the south side to restrain the drops, which unite to denude the rocks of their soil, and to form the mighty torrents witnessed every winter. I do not doubt that the planting of trees in the villages at the head of the main ravines would lead rapidly to a nearly constant supply of water in a region where it would be useful.' The facts reported and the conclusions drawn from them are all in accordance with what has been reported in regard to St Helena and Ascension. By Blanqui, in his Voyage en Bulgarie, already cited, it is alleged that " the terrible droughts which desolate the Cape Verd Islands must be attributed to the destruction of the forests." And he says that, " in Egypt, recent plantations have caused rains which hitherto were almost unknown." I have repeatedly met with a reference in different forms to observations which have been made, or are alleged to have been made, in Alexandria and Egypt, in accordance with those which have THE CONDITION OF EGYPT. 147 been brought forward in this and in the preceding section of this chapter ; but I consider them open to question. A writer in the " Edinburgh Review " whom I have already cited, after making some remarks on the desiccation of Palestine, as a con- sequence of the destruction of the olives, palms, and other trees, during the Roman war, goes on to say : — " Even as to that country, of which it was said, two thousand four hundred years ago, that the family of Egypt have no rain, the United States Commission of Agriculture, for 1871, reports: — 'In Upper Egypt, the rains which eighty years ago were abundant, have ceased siuce the Arabs cut down the trees along the valley of the Nile towards Lybia and Arabia. A contrary effect has been produced in Lower Egypt, from the planting of the Pacha. In Alexandria and Cairo, where rain was formerly a rarity, it has since that time become more frequent." But this statement appears to be open to question. It is stated by Cezanne that Clot Bey has, in his work entitled Aper^u general sur V Egypte (vol. i, p. 22), shown that the plantations in Egypt have not rendered rains more frequent. And he states that at Cairo, the mean number of days on which it rains in the course of the year is twelve, and the rain-fall 34 millimetres. On this subject Mr Marsh remarks ; — " The alleged augmentation of rain-fall in Lower Egypt, in consequence of large plantations by Mehemet All, is very frequently appealed to as a proof of this in- flaeace of the forests, and this case has become a regular common- place in all discussions of the question. It is, however, open to the same objection as the alleged instances of the diminution of precipi- tation in consequence of the felling of the forest. " This supposed increase in the frequency and quantity of rain in Lower Egypt is, I think, an error, or at least not an established fact I have heard it disputed on the spot by intelligent Franks, whose residence in that country began before the plantations of Mehemet Ali and Ibrahim Pacha, and I have been assured by them that meteorological observations, made at Alexandria about the beginning of this century, show an annual fall of rain as great as is usual at this day. The mere fact that it did not rain during the French occupation is not couclusive. Ha\ing experieucsd a gentle shower of nearly twenty-four hours' duration in Upper Egypt, I inquired of the local governor in relation to the frequency of this phenomenon, and was tol.i by him that not a drop of rain had fallen at that point for more than two years previous. " The belief in the increase of rain in Egypt rests almost entirely on 148 EFFECTS OF DESTRUCTION OF FORESTS the observations of Marshal Marmont, and the evidence collected by him in 1836. His conclusions have been disputed, if not confuted, by Jomai-d and others, and are probably 'erroneous. See Foissac, Meteorologie, German translation, pp. 634-639." The Imperial Academy of Science has expressed a wish that the Government of Austria would apply to the Viceroy of Egypt for ex- tracts from the observations which have been made on the rise of the Nile gauge above Cairo for 3000 years and more, especially for ex- tracts from the records of the last 200 years. Should these be supplied, we may hope that some light may be incidentally cast upon some of the questions at issue. South Africa has also its tale to tell. Mr Tuck, superintendent of the Botanic Garden at Giahamstown, in writing to me before I left the colony, communicated the following notice of what he had observed in the course of the summer, that of 1864-1865 : — " This season has been unusually hot and dry along the coast ; and all arouud Grahams- town we have been unable to grow anything all this summer for want of rain. The springs are all failing. " You may perhaps know the place of Mr J. J. Stone, on the top of the hill on the Cowie road, towards the sea, marked out by a quantity of Gum trees, on the ridge of the high hills to the south- east of Grahamstown ; well, all through the summer we have had only light misty rain, just enough to damp the grass, and not enough to wet the ground, but these trees of Mr Stone's have there converted the mist into rain. They have scarcely felt any effects of the dry weather ; the vegetables and flowers have there grown all the summer without watering ; there the tanks have always been full : and that is the only place of which I have heard that it has been so within five and twenty or thirty miles of Grahamstown." I have had occasion to cite the statements made by Boussingault (ante p. 113) in regard to changes in the Lake of Tavarigua, in the vicinity of New Valencia, in South America, otherwise they also might have found a place here, as they show that a destruction of forests had been followed by a lowering of the waters of the lake, and the reproduction of the forests, consequent on the abandonment of culti- vation, had been followed by a replenishing of the lake. By Dr Hough, who has given much attention to the subject in America, it is stated, that " some twenty-five years ago the Danish sland of Santa Cruz was a garden of freshness, beauty, and fertility. IN VARIOUS COUNTRIES. 149 Woods covered the hills, trees were everywhere abundant, and the rains profuse and frequent. A recent visitor who sought the Island, with which he had been familiar in the time of its greatest beauty, for the sake of botanical study, a year or two since, found a third part of it reduced to a desert. The short copious showei's had ceased, and the process of desiccation was gradually extending over the island. An attempt to restore the former fertility, by means of planting, was made too late. One planter had set a thousand trees, but every one of them failed." " The island of Curacoa," again says he, " was, within the memory Of living persons, a garden of fertility. But now whole plantations, with their once beautiful villas and terraced gardens, are nothing but an arid waste ; and yet, sixty miles away, along the Spani^ Main, the rankest vegetation covers the hills, and the burdened clouds shower down abundant blessings," A writer in the Edinburgh Review, whom I have already had occasion to quote, citing as his authority, I presume, Dr Robert Brown, says, " ' By the destruction in France of a great extent of forest,' writes Dr Brown, ' in order to replace them by cultivated fields, the temperature has become very irregular ; heavy rains, storms, and dryness, have each done their work upon the soil, and made crops every year more and more uncertain.' In the Vosges, the destruction of forests has gone so far that agriculture has suflFered, the soil has become arid, and inundations are frequent. In the Department of the Gard, in 1837, no rain fell for nine months. " Nismes, named from the forests which once surrounded it, is now amid an arid waste. At Beziers. the Agricultural Society reported in 1797 that the forest which once sheltered the place having been destroyed, the loss of the olive crop was the consequence. The authorities of the Izere reported, in 1793, that the destruction of the foresCs had altered the temperature, augmented dryness, and seriously .affei^ed the crops. From Provence, from the valley of the Moselle, from that of the Haute Garonne, from the Herault, and from the Eastern PyKenees, come complaints of the same nature. The regular rain-fall has been diminished, the temperature has changed and become fuficertain, asiid partial and irregular storms have proved curses rather than blessings wherever the forests have been ruthlessly swept away." These statements also are all of them in accordance with what has been reported with greater detail in regard to St. Helena and Ascension. CHAPTER V. Local Effects of Forests on the Rainfall. In preceding chapters the principal subject has been the effect of forests on humidity, and any mention made of rain has been only in- cidental. In tiiis chapter that prominence is given to this ; and it is the local effects in contradistinction to the effects of forests, or of the destruction of these over a wide expanse of country, which is brought under consideration. In these preceding chaptei's oftener than once mention has been made of the rainfall as supplying indications of humidity, or of com- parative aridity ; and looking at these we have found that though the desiccation of some countries has followed the destruction of forests, in others no appreciable effect has been produced on the quantity of rainfall over a wide expanse of country. But we have found marked effects on the humidity of both soil and climate pi-oduced over a more limited range, both by the destruction of forests and by the planting of trees where they were not before, or where they had been destroyed. And by further limiting and localising our observations we may be able, with advantage, to follow up the observations which have been made, and ascertain more satisfactorily the meteorological effects of forests in relation to moisture. As a preliminary to the consideration of the effect of forests on the rainfall, it may be well to consider how rain and rivers are produced. It may be hundreds are prepared, if asked, Whence comes the rain 1 and, Whence come the rivers 1 to tell that the rain comes from the clouds, and the rivers, from springs among the hills. But we require to go a little further in our consideration of the matter before we can determine the effects of forests and of the destruction of forests on the rainfall and on rivers. Whence come the clouds 1 Oh, from the sea. And how do they spring from the sea 1 — And how are they formed 1 — And how can the formation of them be affected by forests, or by land denuded of forests, as in some cases both the rainfall and the rivers appear to be 1 — And wliy is it so in these cases and not in others ? These and a hundred other questions suggest themselves on our ON THE PRODUCTION OP RAIN. 151 entering on this n3w phase of enquiry. And in view of these, it seems expedient to begin at the beginning; and by anticipating, prevent the questionings which might have no end if a different course were followed. Sect. I. — On the Production of Rain. In consequence of the comparative heat in the tropics the air there expands, and colder air of greater density flowing in over the surface of the earth or sea, the expanded air is borne upwards from below, till, cooled at a higher elevation, it begins to descend, to the north and to the south of the equatorial region ; but, excepting in excep- tional circumstances, it reaches not the earth again until it has been cooled down to the temperature of the air at that lower level. This process going on continuously, there are produced two sets of cun-ents in the atmosphere : one from the Northern Artie regions, sweeping along, over earth and sea, towards the equator, occasioning the north- east Trade Winds, and the north winds and east winds so dreaded by the suflferers from rheumatism in the northern hemisphere ; and another from the Southern Antartic regions, sweeping along in like manner, on or near the surface of the globe, towards the equator, occasioning the south-east Trade's and the famous South-easter of the Cape of Good Hope. But though these two sets of currents inter- mingle, it may be, at the equator, they can scarcely be said to combine; foi', ascending there in a conjoined m^ss, each portion curves over almost in its entirety towards the region whence it comes, but with a tendency from west to east, instead of that from east to west with which it came. This is accounted for thus : the earth rotates from west to east, cai-rying with it not only the water of the sea but the air of the atmosphere ; being a sphere, or spheroid, each spot in the polar regions is carried through a more limited space in the twenty- four hours than is any spot nearer to the equator ; its motion per hour, minute, or second, is less rapid than is that of any spot over which the air may pass in its course to the equator ; and at this spot the wind, moving onward, without diminishing its velocity, may be dragged forward a little ; but at last it will be left behind ; and thus an apparent current from some easterly point to some westerly point is given to the current flowing from the pole towards the equator. And the returning currents from the equator, carrying with them the velocity from east to west, there acquired when they impinge upon the surface of the globe, having a greater velocity in that direction 152 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON RAINFALL, thau that of the spot on which they strike, they seem to come from some westerly point nearer to the equator. Water in contact with air appears to be absorbed by it in a state of vapour up to a point of saturation, varying with temperatui'e, beyond which it cannot either absorb or retain more. As the air advances from the polar regions towards the equator, its temperature and consequent capacity of absorption are raised, and ere it reaches the equatorial region it may have absorbed a quantity it ccmld retain where it is, but could not retain either at a greater height or in the polar region whence it had come. Accordingly we find that in the equatorial regions, when it is raised to a great elevation, and is thus cooled, the air can no longer retain it all dissolved, and the surplns is deposited in clouds. The moisture thus deposited, attracted by gravitation, passing through lower strata of a higher tetoiperature, not saturated, may be again absorbed ; and thus may be explained the phenomenon of a continuously clouded sky unaccompanied by rain, which is seen so frequently at sea, within the tropics, as almost to be the characteristic of the sky in these regions. The current returning to the polar regions from the equator, in passing over mountains on the summits of which a polar temperature prevails, being thus cooled down, and unable to retain more than a little of the moisture with which they are charged, the surplus is thei'e deposited in the form of rain, or snow, or sleet, or hail. To this also is attributable the humidity of the climate of England. It may be traced to the prevalence of southerly and westerly winds, which come to us laden, not only with moisture which they may have absorbed in passing over the Atlantic in their passage thither, but with moisture previously absorbed in their passage from the polar towards the equatorial regions. In England, the southerly and westerly winds are to northerly and easterly winds in the proportion of 196'4 to 135. There are waves of wind which come sweeping over the Atlantic from the north-west, but these are comparatively rare. Those which come blowing from the south and the west, and more especially those which c^me blowing from the south-west, have come at a higher level, with an under current, between them and the ocean, flowing in an opposite direction ; and these are the most prevalent winds in England, The following are given by Steinmitz, in his little popular work, entitled " Sunshines and Showers," as the mean of several years as the number of days on which the following winds were observed : — PRECIPITATION OP MOISTURE. 153 North, days, 40-7. South, days, 34-2. North-east,... „ 47-6. South-west,... „ 104-0. East, „ 22-6. West, „ 38-0. South-east,... „ 19-9. North-west,... „ 24.1. The east wind, cooling down the atmosphere, may occasion rain ; but all our deluges come from the south and west. The air, wh^n it reaches the polar regions, being greatly cooled down, deposits its moisture in the form of snow ; and of this are formed the fields of ice which are characteristic of the Arctic and Antartic regions alike. By Dr Scoresby, it is reported that in the Arctic regions it snows nine days out of ten in the months of April, May and June. With southerly winds near the borders of the ice, where moist air, blowing from the sea, meets with the cold breeze from the ice, the heaviest falls of snow occur. In this case a depth of two or three inches falls in an hour. In crossing and recrossing the Atlantic, in certain latitudes, frequently are fogs encountered : the cause and occasion is the same. Fragments of Arctic glaciers broken off and floated away by oceanic currents, as icebergs, cool down the ocean and the atmosphere nearer to the tropics, and that to such an extent as to occasion a deposition of moisture wherever they go, and it may be for a hundred miles around them. As some indication of the immensity of the quantity of moisture brought back to high latitudes by the return currents in the upper regions of the atmosphere, I would remind my reader of the immense body of water composing Lake Superior, Lake Michgan, Lake Erie, and Lake Ontario, in America, pouring over the Falls of Niagara unceasingly, and flowing through the Thousand Isles into the St. Lawrence ; and of the waters poured into the ocean by all the rivers of the world, great and small alike : these are but the drainage of the water precipitated by the way on the valleys through which they flow ; I would remind him of glaciers of the Alps, the product of the comparatively trifling portion arrested by the higher part of that mountain range as it was being borne onwards to the north ; and I would remind him of the immensity of the deposits near to the pole, not frozen sea, but frozen rain. In a volume lately published, entitled " Under the Northern Lights," by Mr MacGraham, — a correspondent of the ** New York 154 EFFECTS OP FORESTS ON RAINFALL. Herald," sent by the spirited proprietor of that paper on a voyage of discovery, made by the Pandora, last year to the Arctic regions, the eipense being shared with him by the late Lady Franklin, and by Captain Allen Young, who went in command of the vessel, — there is given the following account of Greenland. Speaking of the interior of the continent of Greenland as an icy solitude, — a secret unknown to man, and likely ever to remain such, — he goes on to say : — " Its surface is 4,000 feet above the sea, and when you ascend to it you will probably perceive somewhere on the plain which rises before you in a slight ascent till it touches the sky two or three little sharp conical hills, a few feet high, that pierce through the ice, and you will be astonished to learn that these insignificant mole-hills are in reality the tops of lofty mountains, that have been submei-ged beneath the mighty inundation of ice. Somebody has said of Switzerland that if it were ironed out it would be a very large country. If Switzerland were about ten thousand times larger than it is, and ice were then poured into it until it should be full up nearly to a level with the highest mountain peaks, it would present just the appearance of the interior of Greenland. And yet the whole of this vast continent was at one period of the earth's history green and fertile. There have been found here forests of carbonised trees and plants, and the fossil remains of many animals that could only have existed in a warm climate. Fossil corals and sponges are often picked up now in Lancaster Sound and on the shore of Beechy Island. It is certain that the climate was soft and mild, and that the country was covered with trees and vei'dure, and it is equally certain that this terrible inundation of ice came and buried every vestige of it, as Herculanseum and Pompeii were buried beneath the ashes of Vesuvius. But, instead of the two poor little villages, and perhaps a few square miles of the adjacent country, that Vesuvius covered with its fine ashes as with a soft warm blanket, here is a continent larger than the whole of Europe, buried beneath a massive sea of ice. It is as though the watei's of the flood had suddenly frozen to the very bottom, and had never thawed." Such are " the treasures of the snow," and " the treasures of the hail," to be found in the Arctic and Antartic regions of the earth, borne thither from the equator and the tropics, ever in a state of flux, but ever renewed by fresh accessions. Of the evaporation by which this is maintained, the quantity of moisture taken up by the air in its passage over earth and sea to the equator from the poles, I cannot hope to convey either an adequate or a definite idea. It i-; EVAPORATION FROM THE SEA, 155 proportiouate to the area, the temperature, the time, the tension, and much besides. Even from the land the evaporation is great. Maury, in his treatise on the '' Physical Geography of the Sea," (p. 274), estimates the annual amount of precipitation in the valley of the Mississippi at 620 cubic miles of water, and the discharge of that river into the sea at 107 cubic miles; and he concludes that "this would leave 513 cubic miles of water to be evaporated from the river basin annually." This is but one basin — a furrow on the dry land ; and then there is the sea ! The evaporation from the Mediterranean, the Black Sea, and the Sea of Azov, is reckoned at 50 inches on the whole extent of their surface ; this is about 1,500,000 square miles, and a simple calcula- tion shows that from these seas alone must be evaporated upwards of 500 (508) cubic miles of fresh water. A corresponding estimate and calculation shows that the annual evaporation from the Red Sea must amount to 165 cubic miles of water. Such are the quantities with which we have to deal in speaking of evaporation from inland seas alone. Of the whole surface of the earth, three-fourths are covered by sea ; that surface measures in round numbers 196 millions of square miles, of which nearly 150 millions are covered by water. What startles me is the consideration of the quantity of water which this im- plies, and the question arises. What can have been its source 1 But it is the evaporation from it with which alone we have at present to do. We should probably err were we to reckon the evaporation, over the whole area of the ocean, at the ratio of the evaporation which takes place from the surface of the Red Sea and the Mediterranean. But it is going on everywhere — in an increasing ratio, probably, towards the equator, in a decreasing, towards the poles ; and apparently it is not confined there to what is called the open sea. I have already had occasion to refer to the statement by M. Hayes, in a work entitled La mer liber du Pole, published in 1868, that thin wet linen exposed to the air dries at the lowest temperature, and that a sheet of ice suspended by a cord evaporates by degrees. He adds, " that evapora- tion is more restricted near the coast than in the interior districts of a country, and more restricted under an equatorial wind from the south-west, than under a polar wind from the north-east, the former being saturated with moisture, while the latter has been dei>rived of its humidity." 156 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON RAINFALL. Of the moisture thus absorbed by the air from the wide ocean and the inland sea, and borne onwards to the tropics, no trace is seen in the atmosphere till the air is cooled below the. temperatare at which it can keep it so sustained. This happens when it is first raised aloft, and when, on its return towards the poles, it impinges on some mountain range or solitary peak. But while the course detailed may be considered the normal course of the air in its current to and from the equator, it is liable to many disturbances. It is not usual for two currents of water flowing in difl:erent, and to some extent contrary directions, to glide past each other, each pursuing its own way ; there is friction, and asaresult of this friction there are eddies and whirlpools. It is so when they flow side by side ; it is so when they flow the one over the other ; and it is so with these aerial currents : the upper current coming completely through the lower, and producing those westerly winds, of which, otherwise, we should have none in medium latitudes; and it is reasonable to conclude by inference that there may be eddies of the lower current passing into the uppei\ Every one of these disturbances must aflfect the temperature, and consequent capacity of a great mass of air to retain the moisture with which it is charged, and that in different ways : for instance, the eddy of the warm upper current may be so cooled down that it must deposit a great quantity of the moisture which it held, or the eddy of the lower current cooling down a portion of the upper current penetrated by it may render it incapable of retaining all the moisture with which it was charged ; and in each of these cases rain or snow, or hail, according to circum- stances, may be the consequence. The eddy moreover may take a wide sweep, developing into a whirlwind or cyclone, with a radius of a hundred miles or more, and advancing onwards thousands of miles, carrying disturbance of temperature, and of hydrometric conditions wherever it goes. Similar whirlwinds I have seen produced upon a smaller scale, with all the indications of capability of being in like manner developed on a scale as gigantic, simply by the sun beating on arid ground, or on ground from which water has evaporated. In the centre of such a whirlwind the air of the district over which it passes may be raised to such a height as to be cooled so low that much of its moisture is precipitated, and falls in two parallel lines of rain, or hail, marking the lateral limits of its course ; and over the whole area of the ground traversed by it, embracing hundreds of thousands of square miles, and over all the area of the ground FORMATION OF CLOUDS. 157 traversed by eddies throwa off by it, rain may be a couseqaence of disturbances of the hygrocnetric equilibriaoa beyond whit was com- patible with the retention of the moisture by the air. A current of cold air so brought into a body of warm air may cool this to a tempera- ture at which it is saturated with a much less quantity thau it con- tains, and the excess will be precipitated as rain ; or a current of warm air brought into a body of cold air may be so cooled down that its surplus moistux-e is deposited in the form of rain. Thus are clouds produced ; and a change of wind occasioning^ a slight rise of temperature may cause the cloud to melt away into transparent air, by the re-absorption of the vapour of which the cloud was formed. The phenomena I have seen at the Cape of Good Hope a hundred times. They are there of constant occurrence, A correspondent from Sea Point writes : — " On Thursday evening, during the hard south-east gale, some very remarkable and beautiful cloud efifeuts were witnessed. Dark masses of cloud came driving across the Lion's Back at a furious rate, obscuring the brilliant moon- light. But in a few seconds after passing the zenith, their speed became checked, and, at the same time, they began rapidly to dissolve. Some of the cloud masses hung for a few seconds apparently motionless between the opposing currents of wind. Others again yielded to the counter current, and rushed back furiously from the north, meeting the driving masses from the south, and, almost in the moment of apparent meeting, dissolvino- utterly away. It was like the unavailable charge of a gallant body of light cavalry against a masked battery of artillery, — swept away before the cruel storm. The sudden alternations of clear blue sky, with black thunderous-looking masses of light fleecy clouds, and the changing iridescent hues of the vapours as they drifted across the moon, wei'e very striking, and produced a scenic effect which those who witnessed it will not soon forget." By the clouds may be traced the aerial currents, Writin- GO O |o LO 05 CO 00 f^ 00 h*^ cs ^ '■ < ^ VJ '^ V! VI Vd V:i CO a> o CD >^ -i i-S ^ 4" V QQ w ? f ^ " » . - o s -.•=J o fcO to w to to o ^5 1 C5 05 to I' III Oi ►<^ 05 ox J. o CT ST. CD CO t— ' t—i 1—1 (W 1— t ^_1 !;=. Pll -^ 00 Ci o I—" 05 rf^ ^ cs n cs l4^ CJl OS to -i H(^ o3 to C5 O OS CO -:r CO to O-JB, w ^i- S g.S:S P S as- . . , 1 X 1 g -t- 4- + H- ' o H- ' I—' o I— ' CO 11a o o 6t c5t ^ ox Ol do p I? 00 ^ 00 05 P 00 CO o| a' r; f t4^ H_. ht^ ^_, H-l H_ 1 LO ^ 11 05 I—" CO 05 Or C3 CO o 2 1-1' CO CO to -^ O CO CO 1 to! CO 5' P-OXJ fcO O " or ZJl CD 0:1 CO _^ ^1 188 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON SPRINGS AND RIVERS. " If we omit from this table the observatious made with the pegel on the Rhine at Germersheim, — as the loweriug of the water level there, together with the deepening of the river bed, is mainly attri- butable to the extensive rectifications of the river by cuttings, and only in a comparatively small degree to a diminution of the delivery, — we find that the greatest lowering of the water level is on the Danube at Orsova, amounting to from 46 to 55 inches ; on the Vistula at Marien- werder from 26 to 43* 9 inches ; and on the Rhine at Emmerich from 20 to 24*8 inches ; and on the other pegels of the rivers named from 6 to 18 inches. " In the Elbe the falls of the lowest and of the mean water levels are 15"76 and 16'28 ; and they might indeed have been considerably greater had it not been that since 1842, in consequence of the great silting up of the river bed with sand, the lower water levels have been elevated from 13 to 22 inches. " The lowering of the watei* level becomes so much the greater the larger the river is, and the nearer to the mouth of the river in the sea that the pegel is situated, and this for the reason that the region drained by the river is the greater, and that it is the sum of the reduc- tions in the levels of all the brooks and streams and lesser rivers which have flowed into the main stream which is there represented in this greater lowering of the river level. " In regard to the high floods of the said rivers, we see from the diagrams submitted that, with the single exception of the station at Orsova, in all of them floods have latterly occurred more frequently and reached a greater height than in the earlier years in which the observations were made, from which it appears clear as day that in these rivers at present, at times of high flood, a much greater quantity of water is delivered by them than in the earlier years. " From the diagrams representative of the high floods, it is further apparent that in the earlier times of observation the rise of water, in consecutive years, w^as more uniform ; whereas, in the later decades of the periods embraced by the observations, in one year there occurred a very great flood, and in the year before or the year after only a very insignificant rise of water ; from which it follows that the alternation of very dry with very wet years occurs more frequently and to a much more marked degree now than for- merly. "This is particularly apparent in the tabulated observatious on the Elbe and the Vistula. " The cause of this remarkable pheuomeuou lies evidently in this, TREATISE BY HERR WEX. l89 that since the clearing away of many forests, more especially in the mountains, deluges of rain and rain-spouts occur more frequently ; further, while the rain-water, in lands devoid of trees, sinks less into the soil, it at the same time more speedily reaches the brooks and streams and rivers, and fills and overflows these water-courses ; and finally, the body of water, now tearing along with rapidity, cuts up the mountain sides cleared of forests, and fills up the beds of the brooks and streams and rivers with earth and sand and rubbish, and so raises the bed of the river — whence a higher level is reached by the water-surface. " The correctness of this allegation is being attested, in a way which it is saddening to contemplate, by the ever more frequently recurring inundations in Italy, in the south of France, in Hungary, in Bohemia, and in many other lands. " The aforementioned phenomena of high floods led a disthiguished meteorologist to express to me the conjecture that the great increase of the body of water passing along our water-courses, in high floods, may be about equal to the diminution observable in the low and mean levels. " This conjecture, however, is not in accordance with the facts of the case, because, as I have already shown, in the case of the Rhine and of the Elbe, the annual delivery is approximately represented by the mean water-levels, which, even in all these five rivers named, is on the decrease. But the incorrectness of the conjecture is more particularly manifested by the tabulated observations by the pegel at Orsova, in as much as, from the geographical position of the very extensive basin drained by the Danube, it frequently happens that the high floods of several of the large afiluents coincide in time with that of low water level in several other important accessories of the river, and yet there is not an equivalent compensation for the lesser supply coming from the one class of affluents, in the greater supply coming from the other, in as much as, even at Orsova, the average of the floods of the mean and of the lowest levels have fallen still more than have these in the four other rivers named. "But even if, in accordance with this conjecture, in particular years with repeated extraordinary high floods, some such equalisation of the increased and the diminished delivery of a river should occur, this would supply but little consolation for man, as the great evils consequent on the diminution of the delivery of water at the lowest and the mean levels are not obviated by the more frequent occurrence of the greater delivery during high floods, but are being more than 190 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON SPRINGS AND RIVERS. ever increased in that those high floods now occasion more frequent and more disastrous inundations." Hen- Wex goes on to say: — "Having in foregoing statements given indisputable evidence that in the five principal rivers of Central Europe, — the Danube, the Rhine, the Elbe, the Vistula, and the Oder, the basins of which embrace an area of 26,860 [German 1] square miles,* — the lowest and the mean annual water levels, and consequently also the quantities of water delivered by these rivers, during a lengthened period of many years, has been continually decreasing, we may/rom this draw the following conclusions : — "1. As the aforesaid rivers are fed mainly by the brooks and streams which flow into them, there must have been also in these a continued deci'ease in the quantity of water delivered by them for a great many years, from which we may further conclude th at if observa- tions had been made on the levels of the difi'ereut feeders, similar to those which have been made on the five large rivers named, and these had been compared, they would have supplied results similar to those at which we have arrived concerning these. " The correctness of this allegation receives confirmation from the fact that many manufactories, &c., which have been built during the last fifty years, on rivulets and streams, have experienced a marked diminution in the quantity of water coming through their water- leadings, and it has been found necessary to employ steam-engines to meet the deficiency of their water power, which was originally sufficient for the work they had to do. "2. As it is possible that the causes which have produced the eff'ect of the lowering of the water level, and diminution of the quantity of water delivered in these five river basins, operate equally in the basins of the other rivers and streams in Europe, and not only so but in the most populous and cultivated districts of the other three quarters of the globe — it may be assumed that in most of the streams and rivers on the surface of the earth a similar lowering in the lowest and viean levels of the body of water delivered by them has taken place ; while the high floods in the same, reaching a higher point, and becoming of more frequency, discharge a greater quantity of water, and produce more extensive devastating inundations than previously was the case. " 3. If the causes which have operated in producing the decrease of the usual water flow of the streams and rivers, with the rapid over- * A German mile is equal to 4^ English miles. TREATISE BY HERE WEX. 191 flowing of them in times of flood, in the course of the last 140 years, were to continue to operate also in the future, it is evident from what has taken place that in brooks, and streams, and rivers, the lowest and the onean levels of these may be expected to be lowered still further in the future. And the question forces itself upon every one involuntarily, to what degree may this diminution in the quantity of water thus delivered by the several streams and rivers be carried % " In the principal rivers, the Danube, Rhine, Elbe, and Vistula, it is scarcely to be supposed that the lowering of the lowest level of the flow will go on till it reach the very ground of the bed of the stream, occasioning the temporary drying up of the river altogether : seeing that the two first named rivers are in part fed by the melting of the masses of ice and snow lying on the Alps ; while, further, it is to be hoped that the occasion of the lowering of the water level will not be carried beyond a certain limit ; and finally, because the highest and the lowest level of the stream occur in many of these streams and affluents at different times of the year from what they do in others. " If, however, we look on the other hand to the very considerable lowering of the lowest and the 7necm levels of the rivers mentioned in the foregoing table, which has taken place within the comparatively short period of 50 years, we are brought to the disturbing conclusion that these five rivers, in the course of 100 or of 200 years, may have their lowest and average levels so lowered that they will be no longer navigable if we do not take measures to counteract the cause which is continuously operating to effect the diminution of the water flow in these rivers. " The brooks and streams, on the contrary, which drain only basins of limited extent, may, by the continuous lowering of the water level ; and by the diminution of the delivery in them, be converted into inter- mittent torrents, which lie dry during many months of the year, and then, on a fall of rain, suddenly fill and deliver immense bodies of water. That the dread of this is not without foundation is proved by numerous cases in which very large rivers, which in previous cen- turies, according to historical records, were navigable at all seasons of the year, have become now only ivildbache and torrents, such as for example, are most of the torrents which characterise the southern slopes of the Alps in Italy and in Carinthia. Many other streams and rivers, which not many decades back were of full water, have latterly, and within the memory of man, become torrential streams 192 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON SPRINGS AND RIVERS. which pour down large bodies of water when, and only when, there have been dashes of rain, and from what has been stated it may be seen that the prognostication is not without foundation when I allege that if the causes which have, during the last 140 years, occasioned a lowering of the water-level and diminution of the above-named five European rivers shall go on operating in the time immediately before us, the result will be that the level will be still further lowei-ed and the delivery diminished, until bye and bye they become so reduced as to be unnavigable. " Although, beyond the results which have been published by Dr Berghaus in his ' Hydrography,' which has been quoted, and which, unhappily, are but little known, we have hitherto been unable to obtain reliable compilations and comparisons of observations con- tinued for many years of the water-level on the larger rivers, there are men of observation and experience who, in consequence of what they have noticed on some few rivers, have called attention to the diminution of the water supply which is going on. An instance of this we have in the following communication, which is well-deserving of consideration, found in an article, by F. Perrot, in Deutsche Monat- schrift fiir Handel, Schif-fahrt und Verkehrswesen (I. Baud, Rostock, 1872). " A consideration of the three rivers — Weser, Elbe, and Oder — makes clearly manifest a reduction in the quantity of water delivered by them, and a silting up of the river-bed with sand. It has been calculated that if the Elbe continue to diminish in the future at the same rate at which it has been diminishing up to this time, it will soon be impossible for heavily laden ships to pass by it. Nor is it otherwise with the Oder ; in the very dry year 1858, there were only eleveji days in which the navigation of the Oder in Silesia could be carried on with full force. The Weser delivers the smallest body of water of the three. One principal reason for this is the destruction of forests which has taken place on the heights which are found alongside of the river and which the Government have latterly taken steps to prevent ; but still more than what has resulted from the destruction of forests has been the consequence of the rectifications of the river-bed, which it has become a general practice to carry out. " After weighing fully the collected observations on the water level and consequences deduced from them in the foregoing treatise, I think no Hydrotechnik will venture to call in question the correct- ness of the allegations advanced by the distinguished hydrographer Dr Berghaus, in the year 1835, which allegations have been coufirmed STATEMENT BY HERR WEX. 193 and established by myself, that in the brooks, streams, and rivers in central Europe, within the period of observations, extending over about 140 years, high floods now appear oftener and attain a greater height; on the contrary, the lowest, and the yiiean levels of the rivers are falling, and consequently the delivery of the water by these streams and rivers is being continuously diminished to a very great There follows an expression of the views of the author on the great practical importance of the fact brought to light. In the second chapter he describes the reduction observed in the flow of springs and in the quantity of water yielded by them, and after citing numerous facts, illustrative of these points, he thus con- cludes : — "In regard to the diminishing of subterranean waters, we can adduce the following evidence : — " As we have in the preceding chapter shown, from observations on the water level continued through long series of years, that there has been seen in later decades a lowering of the level of the lowest and of the mean annual flows, while the high floods, consequent on storms of rain, have become of more frequent occurrence — from which it comes to pass that a greater quantity of water is thus carried away at such times than formerly — it follows as a consequence that if the quantity of the rainfall remains the same, the proportion of this flowing away on the surface of the earth in such circumstances has increased. On the other hand the proportion sinking below the surface must be less ; and from this it comes to pass that the quantity of the subterranean water supply, the drainage and super- ficial waters, and with them the springs which are fed by them must have been reduced ; and the correctness of this conclusion can be established by the following facts : " From these long continued observations on river levels we have further proved that on brooks, streams, and rivers in these later times, the lowest and the mean levels, and also the quantity of water delivered, have been being continuously reduced, and that to a marked degree ; and that in the very months during which the water courses have been fed almost exclusively from subterranean flows of water and from springs the diminution of the water delivered has been greatest. Whence it may with all justice be concluded that in these later times the water supplies in subterranean reservoirs and in the water bearing strata have decreased, and also that drainage waters and the springs in a river basin in their collective contribu- u 194 EFFECTS OP POBESTS ON SPRINGS AND RIVERS. tions now furnish smaller water supplies to the feeding of the river course than was the case at an earlier period. " Dr H. Berghaus has in his work on * Hydrography' which has been cited, advanced on this point (p. 30) the following doctrines : " In some parts of the world it has been remarked, the springs have suffered a loss in the quantity of their water supplies. Thus it is in France in what was formerly Poitou, and in the department of the lower Charente, where there has been remarked a decided reduc- tion of the springs since 1825. " The phenomenon is attributable to the desiccation of the land, the cutting of canals, trenches, &c , while Fleuriau of Bellevue has -alleged that the cause is to be found in a diminished rainfall. " It can also be established by manifold evidence that of late years ■many springs have dried up, and that in a great many others the quantity of water yielded by them has been greatly reduced ; further it is generally known that several solidly and skilfully constructed aqueducts which erst while conveyed a rich supply of water have become completely useless in consequence of a permanent deficiency of water which has arisen, and that very many old wells known amongst us as inexhaustible have become, since 1852, in consequence of the lowering of the water level in the subterranean strata by which they were fed, in some cases absolutely dry ; and in other cases so impoverished in water supplies that the wells must be sunk some fathoms deeper if they would be made permanent sources to meet the demand. " From amongst the numerous cases which have become known to me, I shall adduce but a few specimens : " It is generally known that the city of Rome, in its pristine glory, with its public fountains and baths, and its several aqueducts, was exceedingly richly provided with water ; some of these, from the dry- ing up of the springs by which they were fed, have now run dry, and others have lost a large share of their water supply — as, for example the aqueduct aqua vergine (some 20,000 metres, or between 60 and 70 feet, long), which it is now in contemplation, at extraordinary expense, to reconstruct. " The springs and aqueducts which, at one time, provided for the City of Constantinople a very abundant supply of water for drinking and for use, have fallen off to a very considerable extent in their pro- ductiveness, so that it has become necessary to seek out more, and more remote, springs. " The world-wide renowned fountains and water-works of Versailles TREATISE BY HERR WEX. 195 were formerly so abundantly provided with water from the aqueducts by which they were supplied that they could play almost the whole day long ; whereas now, from the great diminution which has taken place in the water coming to them, this must be allowed to accumu- late for about twenty-three hours to allow the fountains and other water-works to play a single hour. " So also with the numerous fountains and artificial cascades in the Belvidere-Schwarzenberg and Lichtenstein-Gardens at Vienna, and those in the palace garden at Schtinbrunn, which were abundantly fed by spring-water led to them, they stand now almost quite dry, as a saddening monument of the dried up springs. "The City of Vienna has, besides, about 10,000 sunk wells, and in addition to these nineteen different aqueducts, with which the springs and drainage waters in the environs of Vienna are intercepted, col- lected, and brought into the city. After the water in the sunk wells had not only diminished, but, in consequence of the filtration from the canals, had become deteriorated — and also the quantity of water brought in at one time by the aqueducts had become very much reduced; there was constructed, in the year 1836, the Emperor Ferdinand's aqueduct, by means of which were brought into the City of Vienna, from the Vienna Donaucanale, near Nussdorf, by long and deep suction pipes, an aggregate of about 100,000 einiers of water daily ; and now, after this aqueduct also, through a lowering in the water-level in the Vienna Donaucanale, and partly through the coincidence with this of a sliming up of the suction pipes, has be- come insufficient and precarious, the commune of Vienna, after year- long negociations, has seen itself under the necessity to seek to obtain the two million eimers per day, required by the city for drinking and necessary uses, from the high springs of the Schneeberg (Kaiserbrunnen and Stixensteinerquelle), by means of a canal about twelve German miles long,* which aqueduct will absorb a capital of about sixteen miUion of Guldens [or ^1,600,000 sterling]," Herr Wex goes on to say : — " I consider that I have satisfactorily proved, by the foregoing observations, deductions, and examples, that in recent times the supply of water in subterranean reservoirs, and in the water-bearing strata of the earth, is being diminished ; further, that many of the drains and springs of to-day have become some quite dry, and others yield a comparatively small supply of water ; * A Germaa mile is equal to about 4^ £nglisb miles. 196 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON SPRINGS AND RIVERS. and finally, that througli these changes the lowest and the mea7i water-levels in brooks, streams, and rivers are being continuously lowered, and the quantities of water delivered by them continuously diminished. " If this continuous diminution, which has been going on for the last 140 years, is to go on continuously still, then will these results and changes on the surface of the earth entail on coming generations evils, and evils of incalculable extent and magnitude. Through the lowering of the level, and reduction of the rivers and of the sub- terranean drainage, and also through the alternation of very wet and very dry years, — such as is shown, by the diagram referred to, to be prevailing, — will the fertility and productiveness of the land be reduced in no inconsiderable degree, and not a few lands now covered with luxuriant vegetation will become veritable deserts, cheerless and desolate. " After the drying up of many brooks and streams, and after the conversion of streams and rivers into torrents, in consequence of these changes men would have to go for their water supplies for drinking and for domestic use, and for other purposes, either to the deeper- lying water-bearing strata of the earth, or to a greater distance from their dwelling ; whereby the cost of the water consumed would be increased, while many industrial establishments and manufactories would be deprived altogether of the supply of water indispensably necessary to their operations, and would have either to adopt expen- sive means of providing a substitute for what has been lost, or remove to some remote district where brooks and rivers have not as yet been deprived of their water supplies. " Finally, by the continuous diminution of water in streams and rivers, the former would become quite dry through the greater part of the year, and the latter would become unnavigable. " As, through the consideration of what has been advanced, it may thus be seen that, through the continuous diminution and lowering of the flowing water on the surface of the earth, there is imperilled — and that to a great extent — not only the prosperity and the health, but also the existence of future generations, it is desirable that numerous students of physical science should be incited to further research into the cause of these intimately connected phenomena, and then to devise measures to avert the impending calamity, in so far as it may be within the scope of man's power to do so." The author adds : — '' I have given myself also to an attempt to a solution of this difficult problem, and I give the results of my TREATISE BY HERB WEX, 197 researches in this study in the two following chapters, in the hope that distinguished collahorateurs in the same calling and men of scientific attainments may prosecute further the researches I have been privileged to commence, and that the results of their study may bring great good to generations yet unborn." \ The chapter which follows is occupied with a discussion of the cause or occasion of a diminution having taken place in the quantity of water flowing in streams and rivers, which he thus concludes : — " When we fully realise what is implied in the opinions expressed by jnen of science, and practical men expert in such matters, in various countries and in very difierent parts of the world, after long experience, observation, and research, we find that forests affect to a very great extent the quantities of water coming from springs and flowing in rivers ; that they affbct the climate ; and that they have a great effect upon the fertility of the lands in which they exist ; and that thus : — " 1. The deposit of rain from the atmosphere is greatly increased by the amount of woods in a district, in as much as mists and clouds passing along" the surface, striking upon the forests, have the moisture of which they are formed condensed and precipitated as rain. Further, the temperature within the woods is cooler by day, and, on the contrary, warmer by night than it is in the open fields and meadows ; and by reason of this, there is a continual cii'culation of air in the vicinity of forests whereby mists and clouds are precipitated and led to discharge themselves of their contents. This happens not through the forests in and for themselves, nor as a consequence of the forests of themselves, but through the difference between the forests and the open fields ; and on this depends the abundance of the rain. It is also very manifest that the forests exercise an attractive influence upon the clouds, by their attracting from them electricity with which they are charged, and with this the water of which they are composed, increasing thereby the rainfall. It is also an ascertained fact that a great part of the water precipitated as rain remains on the leaves of the trees, one part of which falls to the ground, but another portion of which evaporates into the atmosphere, and is again precipitated as fog, mist, dew, or rain, — whence it comes to pass that rain water is kept longer within forest lands, and may be precipitated oftener than once, whereby the rainfall is increased. " 2. Through the abundance of forests will the copiousness of the subterranean drainage flow, and springs be increased, while the rain water retained by the foliage of the forest trees, falling slowly to the 198 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON SPRINGS AND RIVERS. earth, is kept by the spougy character of the ground in woods from flowing quickly away, and is in part absorbed, or is left to permeate the mineral strata, which is considerably facilitated by the numerous spreading roots of the trees penetrating cracks, fissures, and canals in the superficial ground, by which means the rain water reaches a greater depth, and this in a much greater quantity in forest ground than in the open field. Further, by numerous experiments it has been established that the evaporation of the humidity in the open country is at the least from four to five times as great as it is in wood- lands ; from all which it appears that the moisture absorbed in forests is not so readily evaporated, but is retained and directed to the feed- ing of drainages, springs, and brooklets. " 3. If forests be uprooted, more especially in mountainous regions, or even in somewhat hilly country, the rain drops, falling upon the exposed ground with some force, tear it up, and then flowing down the declivity with considerable rapidity carry with them earth and stones towards the brooks and streams and rivers, by which these water courses are suddenly filled up, and experience much higher and more devastating overflowings, and inundations, than was the case while the woods stood, as is explicitly testified by the aforementioned tabulated observations of river levels. " 4, Through the extensive clearing away of forests the heat of the summer months and the desiccation of the ground becomes increased, then, as a consequence of this, the duration of droughts is prolonged, and from this there follows naturally a diminished productiveness of the land. " These most disastrous effects of the clearing away of forest show themselves in a very marked degree in these countries, once blessed with a luxuriant vegetation, Palestine, Persia, Greece, Sicily, Spain, and the Canary Islands." It is stated also that " a great cause of the diminution of water aupply from springs and subterranean reservoirs in Europe has been the draining of lakelets and ponds, and the draining of bogs and marshes, which has taken place, in various parts, of late years." And " a third cause of the diminution of water in springs and rivers at present going on is to be sought for in the greatly extended, and still from year to year extending, operations to bring under culti- vation, to cultivate, and to improve the land." Of both of which statements illustrations are given, with illustrations of the effect of the latter when carried on on hill sides, to increase the violence and the maguitude of torrents and devastating inundations. REPORT BY ACADEMY OF SCIENCE OF VIENNA. 199 There follows a chapter devoted to the consideration of measures proposed with a view, on the one hand, to prevent continued and ever extending devastation occasioned by inundations ; and on the other to arrest and prevent the continuous diminution of water in springs and in rivers in their lowest state, and in their mean delivery. But it is the facts of the case established in regard to the effects of forests on rivers and springs with which alone we have at present to do. The paper was subsequently published, and it excited much interest. By several learned Societies Commissioners were appointed to report upon it. Amongst others this was done by the Royal and Imperial Academy of Science of Vienna, and the Imperial Academy of Science of St Petersburg. It was also favourably considered and approved by the Society of Engineers and Architects of Vienna, the Geogra- phical Society of Vienna, the Forest Academy of Mariabrun, by several Polytechnic Schools, and by many men of science. In regard to the views of Herr Wex relative to the phenomena observed, the Commission appointed by the Academy of Science of Vienna reported : — "In view of the facts brought forward by the author, the Commission has come to the conclusion that the diminution seen within the last century, in the medium and lower heights of the rivers made the subject of observation, is attributable to a diminution in the annual delivery of these rivers. " The author finds that the diminution of the quantity of water in the river is attributable to a diminution in the quantity of water yielded by springs, of which he finds additional indications in the diminution of water in streamlets, aqueducts, and wells. " The Commissioners agree with the author in this view, considering the low depth of water in the rivers to be justly attributable to the quantity of water flowing throughout the whole district constituting the basin of the river having been reduced. " The causes of this general diminution in the flow of water may be found — 1. In a diminution of the annual rainfall, connected with the extension of agriculture occasioned by the cleaving away of forests ; 2. In an increased evaporation from the surface of the soil, consequent on the change of culture spoken of ; 3, In such a change in the mode of flow that the rainfall, instead of being, for the most part, retained for a time and percolating through the gravel, flows away quickly, producing brief periods of high floods, alternating with protracted periods of drought." 200 EFFECTS OF FORESTS OX SPRINGS AND RIVERS. After reporting their opinion in regard to the effects of forests on the distribution of the rainfall, the Commissioners go on to say : — " The copious flow of springs, and the abundance of water in rivers, however, does not naturally depend solely on the quantity of rain falling in the course of the year ; for, on the one hand, a very con- siderable quantity of the rainfall is returned by evaporation to the atmosphere ; on the other hand, the nature of the soil determines, in a great measure, the quantity of the rainfall which sinks into it, forming subterranean reservoirs from which springs are fed. " In regard to both of these phenomena, forests exercise an influence which can hardly be estimated too highly. " It is proved by direct observation in France, and in the forest stations for meteorological observations in Bavaria, that the variations in the temperature of the air in the forests are less than in the open country. Especially does this hold good in the hours of the day and in the seasons of the year in which the greatest heat prevails, the degree of temperature being at these times considerably lower than in the open country, and, in accordance with this the temperature of the soil in the forest, is considerably below that of the land unshaded by trees. " In like manner the degree of humidity in the forest differs from that in the open country ; this being, at all seasons of the year, greater within the forest than it is outside.* " In view of these facts, we need not be surprised that the evapora- tion in the forest is found to be much less than it is in the open field ;t and all the more so that, besides the relation of evaporation to temperature, the strength of the wind or movement of the air constitutes an essential element in the operation, and there is pro- portionally much less movement of the air in the forest. " In proportion as it is important to obtain a correct determination of the quantity of the rainfall which is lost by evaporation so is it difficult to do so. " As the means of making observations on the amount of evapora- tion from the surface of plants and the surface of the ground are different, — besides which, the comparison between the quantity of the rainfall and that of the evaporation is prejudiced by difference in * According to Ebermayer, the difference in the four seasons, from spring onwards, amounts to 5'7, 93, 5'2, and 5 "2 per cent. f According to Ebermayer, the evaporation from an exposed suface of water in the forest was about 64 per cent, less than from one outside the forest. —Zeitschriftfdr Meteorologie, viii. 253. riEPORT P.Y Af'APKMY OF SCFKNOE OF VIENNA. 201 the exposure of the mstruments, they being in some places exposed to the sunshine and the rain, in others protected from these, by difference in the sizes of the atmometers, and by difference in the materials of which these are made, — it is not impossible, from these causes, that an atmometer of small size, made of metal, and set in the sunshine, may give an annual evaporation which exceeds by far say two or three times, the amount of the rainfall. " In consequence of the difl&culty of determining by direct observa- tion on evaporation the evaporation from the gi'ound, and thereby determining the quantity of the rainfall available for feeding springs and streams, some have sought to determine this directly in part by comparison between the quantity of water delivered by a river in the course of the year, and the rainfall on the whole valley drained by it; or, otherwise, between the quantity of water percolating through a given section and the rainfall over a given range, " If now there be also in a wood a considerable portion of the rainfall kept by the twigs and leaves from immediately reaching the ground, the difference between that rainfall and the evaporation (amounting, according to Ebermayer, to 72 per cent., Zeit&chrift fxir Met. viii. 274) will also be retained longer in the forest and get time to permeate and feed the springs. " The remainder of what has not been dispersed by evaporation either penetrates the ground or flows away over the surface. " In the former case it seems principally to feed the springs; in the latter case it is carried directly to the water-courses, and after a brief time produces a more or less considerable flooding of these. " It is generally acknowledged that the forest, through the vegeta- tion of lichens, mosses, &c., peculiar to it, is pre-eminently fitted to absorb the rain, to store up the same, and only gradually — little by little — to yield it again. " In view of this, the aforementioned investigations in regard to the quantity of water which sinks into the ground to certain depths is very instructive, as they give on the one hand the relative effect of different kinds of soil on the absorption of the different plants with which they are covered, and on the other the proportion of the moisture absorbed by the soil in the course of the year. It appears, according to the latest of these, that the absorption of the forest is especially manifested in the warm season of the year.* " In regard to that portion of the rainfall which does not penetrate * According to Ebermayer, in the summer the following per centages of the rain- fall was fovind at the depth of one metre ;— X 202 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON SPRINGS AND RIVERS. the ground, but flows away over the smface, and to which popularly is ascribed the swelling of floods, there exists no difference of opinioa in regard to the influence of forests. On all hands it is agreed that with the removal of forests the tributaries to water-courses rush more rapidly to these ; and that in mountain regions, on steep precipices, from which woods have been cleared, the fruitful soil is swept away, and water-courses are converted into torrents. " In the cutting down of forests which present no longer, as previously, a hindrance to the flowing off of the rain-water by their manifold united roots, by lichens and by mosses, may be seen gene- rally the cause of the more frequent and extensive, and ever more threatening inundations. " With the facts before them of the diminution of the water in the rivers, which diminution is connected with a diminution in the copiousness of springs, the Commission find the cause of these phenomena to lie — 1. In the continued extensive destruction of forests, the beneficial effects of which consist in an increased humidity of the air, a reduction in the extremes of temperature, a diminution of evaporation, and the securing a more regular distribu- tion of the rainfall ; while the injurious effects of the destruction of them is seen in an alternation of periods of drought at one time, with wasting floods at another. " 2. In the drying up of the lakes, marshes, and bogs, which increased the humidity of the atmosphere, diminished evaporation elsewhere, kept down excessive heat, and finally escaped through rents in the ground, increased directly the formation of springs. "3. In the breaking up and cultivation of extensive tracts of coimtry, for the watering of which considerable quantities of water are required. " 4. In the increase of population and of domestic animals, although the diminution of the water occasioned by these causes can amount to what must be relatively a small portion of the whole. Willi Utter. Without litter on the groiiuJ. In open ground, 13 — H 11 In the forest 82 72 6* 36 Difference 33 61 51 25 Earlier experiments come to us from Maurice in Geneva, and Gasparin in Orange. A later one, on a great scale— undertaken by E. Risler at Calfeve, by Nyon (Canton Wallis), who sowed different experimental fields, of 12-300 square metres, with corn, clover, etc.,— determined the infiltration at 0-35 metres deep, and showed the comparative humidity of the soil with that of the superficial soil under different conditions of culture.— Annuaire Meteorohgique de I' Ohservatoire de Paris, pour 1873, p. 277, REPORT BY ACADEMY OP SCIENCE OP ST PETERSBURG. 203 " 5. And, lastly, it appears to this Commission that the view ex- pressed M. S. Saeman, * according to which, in the interior of the earth, water is continually required for the formation of minerals in which it is chemically combined, and from which mineral operation a diminution of water must follow, deserves consideration." At the instance of the Academy of Science of Vienna, the paper by Herr Wex was brought under the attention of the Imperial Academy of Science in St Petersburg, by which also a Commission was ap- pointed to consider it, to supply information in regard to similar phenomena in Russia, and to report. In a report submitted by the Commission to a meeting of the Academy held on the 27th January 1876, amongst others things it is stated, in reference to what had been said by the author in regard to the effect of the destruction of forests on the humidity of different countries : — " To these examples we may add the districts in Southern Russia, where it is well-known that large forests existed about 150 or 200 years ago in the very spots invaded by the steppes, the higher portions of which are perfectly arid, so that the inhabitants, to prevent their dying of thirst, are obliged to live on the banks of tiny streamlets in the lowest valleys. We may also make mention here of the Volga and Dnieper, where the destruction of the forests, from south to north, has made and is making such progress that these rivers, so indispen- sable to the commercial prosperity of Russia in the middle and in the lower portions of their course, now flow through regions which are quite cleared of forests. There the floods reach a higher level than they did formerly. And who has not heard serious complaints, annually repeated, with regard to the modifications of river-courses caused by these floods by changing the direction of the navigable channel and hollowing out new beds for the streams 1 And who does not know that gorges, deprived of water in winter and dry in summer, dm-ing spring, in consequence of the rapid melting of the snow on the naked steppes, become, after heavy rains, impetuous torrents, which undermine their banks and carry away lai-ge portions of valuable soil 1 Furthermore, all the affluents of these rivers bring down masses of detritus, which every year contribute to the formation of new river beds. We may state it as our conviction that the injuiy caused at present by the Volga, the Don, and the Dnieper, would be much * Sur V unite des phcmmcties gcologiques dans le systeme du solcil. Bull, de la SociSte Geologiqw de France. 2 iSerie, t. xoiii. 2>. S22. 1861. 204 ACTION OF FORESTS ON SPRINGS AND RIVERS. less serious if the land along the banks had been preserved from deboisement." Thus do abound observations which go to establish it as a fact that, whatever may be the effect of trees on the rainfall, there is an efl'ect produced by them on the humidity and moisture deposited from the atmosphere which is such as to aff"ect the existence of springs, and the flow of rivers. It is the fact alone, and not the way in which it has been brought about, with which we have here to do, and the fact seems to be established beyond question by the ob- servations which have been brought forward. It is not to be expected that the treatise by Herr Wex should at once command universal unhesitating acceptance of all the observa- tions cited, and reasonings and deductions founded thereon. Since it was published (in 1873) Herr Wex has collected a great many new and interesting observations of facts and experiments in relation to the diminution of water in lands under culture, and in relation to the influence of the extensive destruction of forests ; and while these sheets are passing through the press he is can-ying through the press a second treatise on the subject, in which he meets all doubts and conflicting observations known to him to have been advanced against the statement made by him in regard to the diminution of water in springs and rivers. Reference is made by the Commissioners appointed by the Academy of Science of Vienna to report on the treatise by Herr Wex, to observations made by Dr Ernst Ebermayer, professor in the Ceiitral- Forster Lehanstalt, School of Forest Science, Aschaff"enburg. For some seven or eight years he had been engaged in the study of observations on the meteorological effects of forests, made by himself, or under his direction, and corresponding observations made by others. Results have been published from time to time in scientific journals. And the more important were embodied in a volume published under the title of Die jy/ii/sikalischen Eimvirhtngen des Wcdcles auf Luft und Boden und Seine Uimatologische und hygienische Bedeutung, hegrimdet durch die Beohachhingeii den forstlich-meteorologi- schen stationen in K'&nigreich Bayern. The following is a resicme of facts noted by him, embodied in a report on the Cultivation of Timber and the Preservation of Forests, submitted to the Congress of the United States in 1874. It is given as taken from a report made by H. J. Wiseman, Consul of United States at Sonneberg, to the Department of State, November 1873. OBSERVATIONS BY EBERMAYER. 205 " That the forests of a country are not only of great importance m supplying many necessary productions of ordinary life, but also serve still higher purposes in the domestic economy of nature — to the extent that within certain limits the arability, the inhabitability, and beauty of the land depend upon an appropriate area of woods — has often been declared. Indeed, this fact is now generally ac- knowledged, at least by all educated persons, and it forms the basis of a series of legislative measures, which have for their object the pro- tection of the forests from destruction and misuse on the part of the ignorant for selfish purposes. But, hitherto, the exact x-elations between the woods and the fields have not been fixed by the certainty of figures. There has always been a lack of scientific accuracy in connection with a matter of so great importance, simply because no systematic method has been carried out by which, from actual experi- ment, these relations could be surely determined, The discussions, therefore, which for years past have taken place on this subject, the conflicting opinions which have been advanced in literature and in scientific bodies, have been only valuable to the extent that they served to keep alive interest in a vital question. No argument which has been made has been deemed conclusive, because there has always been a failure to base theories upon the I'esults of scientific researches. " To obtain this scientific foundation upon which to prosecute future investigations, the kingdom of Bavaria has taken the initiative. Since 1867, under the organization of Dr Ebermayer, professor at the Forest Academy at Aschafteuburg, a series of meteorological observ- ations and experiments have been made at several stations within the kingdom, which were selected as being best adapted for the object in view ; and most painstaking and minute investigations have been pursued by competent and experienced observers. These interesting and very importaut results, which have been obtained by these six years of close inquiry, have just been made public. " The observations have been made simultaneously at a station within the forest, and at a station corresponding thereto in all respects in the open country. The results which have been reached are as follows : " 1. That the average annual temperature of the atmosphere in the woods is somewhat below that of correspondingly situated areas which are unwooded. (About 1| to lyj of a degree Fahrenheit.) " 2. That the average annual temperature at the crowns of the trees is about 1^° above that which is found in dense woods at a distance of 5 feet above the surface of the ground ; w hile in the 206 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON SPRINGS AND RIVERS. former case the average temperature is |^° below that of unwooded lands at a distance of 5 feet above the surface of the ground, " 3. That the average temperature of the spring within the forest was 2-95*^ below that of unwooded land. This difference was less apparent among shade-trees, than where pines were the growth. " 4. That the average temperature of summer in the day-time, in thick woods, is 3*78° below that of unwooded land. " 5. That the temperature of the atmosphere within the woods, in the summer season, increased 3 '94° from the ground to the tops of the trees. " 6. That the average temperature of autumn within the woods was scarcely 1^ below that of the open land ; and " 7. That in winter this difference in temperature almost entirely disappeared. " These briefly mentioned differences between the temperatui-e of the atmosphere within the forests and that of unwooded lands, affect the constant current of air in the day-time. For instance, the stream of air flows from the surface of the ground withiu the forests toward the periphery of the woods, and thence spreads over the open fields. It afterward passes back again to the crowns of the trees, and by coniing in contact with the leaves which, during the day, are colder than the atmosphere, the latter itself grows cooler and heavier, and so gradually descends from the tops of the trees to the surface of the ground. " At night the conditions are entirely different. The thermometer now is higher in the woods than in the open lands. The Bavarian observations for the month of July show that, while at midday the temperature within the forest is 8'01° below that of the unwooded land, at night it is 4*39 higher, (18 and 29 per cent.); in August, during the afternoon, 7* 13° lower, and at night 3*71 higher, (16 and 22 per cent.) During the night, therefore, the colder and denser air of the unwooded land passes into the forest, displaces the warmer air, which rises and is cooled by contact with the leaves, and then radiates. " The maximum and minimum temperature of the open lands is never reached in the forest. The [mean ?] atmospheric temperature of the woods always remains several degrees lower. " From these data, therefore, it is evident that the thermal effects of woodland are of great moment, and that climatic alterations must result from deforestation on a large scale ; that these climatic changes will cousisi, as a general thing, in increasing the annual temperature, OBSERVATIONS RY ERERMAYER. 207 and in sharpening still more the extremes of heat and cold. But these thermal effects are not alone confined to the atmosphere, but have, as well, a particular influence upon the soil. The Bavarian investigations have clearly demonstrated that the average annual temperatures at various depths beneath the surface of the ground are nearly equal ; that the average temperature diminishes downward quite slowly and by small degrees, (at a depth of 4 feet never more than ri2°,) but that the average annual temperature of woodland soil, at all depths, is below that of unwooded land, on an average of 3-37°. " Further, it has been demonstrated that the temperature of the soil in the spring and summer is highest at the surface and diminishes downward. In spring the difference between the warmth of the soil at the surface and at a depth of 4 feet amounts within the forest to 5*62°. In summer these differences show 7*50° both in the wood and in the open land. But the soil of the woods in summer is 75.0? colder than that of the unwooded land, and the greatest diflference has been found at a depth of 2 feet. " In contrast to spring and summer, the temperature of the soil increases in autumn and winter, from the surface to a depth of 4 feet beneath. In autumn this advance of temperature, according to the Bavarian observations, amounted to 4'50° outside of the forest and to 3*49° within the forest ; in winter, relatively 4*21'' outside and 4-41'^ inside the woods. Wooded and unwooded lands have, therefore, in winter, to the depth of 4 feet, very nearly the same temperature ; the result of which is that the influence of the woods upon the temperature of the soil is not less than that which they exert upon the tempera- ture of the atmosphere.* * It cannot be supposed that trees have any vital process by which a degree of heat is maintained above the medium in which they grow. Their trunks, branches, and leaves are heated and cooled in the same manner as inorganic bodies under like condi- tions of exposure. But wherever evaporation or condensation is taking place, the same change occurs in them as elsewhere, and the universal law of thermal result ap- plies. " The trunks of trees," says M. Becquerel, "only acquire their maximum tem- perature after sunset. In summer it occurs as late as 9 p.m., while in the air the max- imum temperature occurs from 2 to 3 p. m. Changes of temperature take place very slowly in the tree, but in the air they are rapid. When the leaves are cooled by noc- turnal radiation they recover from the trunk by radiation the heat they have lost. The temperature of the air above the trees which have been heated by solar radiation acts on the temperature of the air, and prevents it falling as low as it would otherwise have done." — Comptes Rendus, Seances de VAcad. des Sciences, May 22, 1855, tome ix p. 1049 ; also Jour, of Scottish Meteorological Soc, (new ser.,) i, 234. [I give the note as given appended to the text, but I do not homologate what is said in the opening sentence.— J. C. B.] 208 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON SPRINGS AND RIVERS. " Far more important, however, than the thermal eflfects upon the soil and the atmosphere are the influences inherent to the forests of a country which affect the humidity of the soil and air, the quantity of the rainfall, and the abundance of the springs. In relation to these points the investigations of Ebermayer have produced very valuable results. " In the fii'st place, it has been discovered that the influence of forest-lands upon the absolute contents of moisture in the atmosphere — the evaporation pressure — cannot be proved, in spite of the fact that the air of the woods is always more humid, relatively, than the air of the open grounds. This is easily explained by the greater cool- ness of the former. The higher a place is situated, the more marked was the relative difference observed in Bavaria between the humidity of the wooded and imwooded country. Ebermayer assumes that the augmentation of aqueous descents, caused by a larger area of wood- land, noticed at many places, is to be attributed merely to the increase of the relative moisture within the forests. " In close connection with the relative humidity of the atmosphere of wooded and unwooded lands stands the quantity of water which has been discovered to evaporate at given points, during a given interval of time, at a certain temperature, and at a certain pressui'e of the atmosphere, from an open surface of water. " The Bavarian observations have proved that in an average of one year less than 64 per cent, of water evaporates within the forest than outside of it. The fact is more remarkable, because the proportion of evaporation was nearly the same at all seasons of the year, although the temperature of the atmosphere of the forests and the open lands is so different in the winter from what it is in summer. This forces us to the conclusion that the movement of the air, which is very much less within the woods than outside of them, plays a far more important part in relation to evaporation than has hitherto been " But for the abundance of water and the forming of springs in any country, the evaporation from rivers, ponds, and lakes is not so impor- tant, by any means, as the evaporation of the water of the soil. " The amount of evaporation from one square foot (Parisian measurement) of an open surface show, in Parisian cubic inches, as follows : — OBSERVATIONS BY EBERMAYER. 209 In open land. In the woodt. April, 1869 399 200^ April, 1870 373 226 July, 1869 407 151 July, 1870 394 151 October, 1868 158 73 October, 1869 194 50 " There evaporated, therefore, from the water contained in the soil of wood-lands, as well as from open water-surfaces, far less than evaporated from the water of the soil of the open grounds — about 40 to 50 per cent, in April, 60 per cent, in July, and 70 per cent, in October — and this decrease reaches its maximum in the hottest season. Still more glaring does this difference of exhalation appear when wood-soil, covered with leaves and pine-needles, is compared with wood-soil which is free of litter of this description. " Under the first-mentioned conditions the evaporation from one square foot (Parisian measurement) amounted, in Paris cubic inches, to the following : — From uncovered From wood-soil wood-soil. covered with litter, April, 1869 200J 78 April, 1870 226 102 July, 1869 151 55 July, 1870 151 55 October, 1869 50 25 " In wood-soil covered by litter, when compared with the bare soil of the fields, the difterence in the amount of evaporation per square foot (Parisian measurement) is shown, in cubic inches, by the following figures : — From bare soil of From litter-covered the field. forest soil. April, 1869 399 78 AprU, 1870 373 102 July, 1869 407 55 July, 1870 394 55 October, 1869 194 25 " From these figures, therefore, it is perfectly apparent how impor- tant are the influences of the woods of a country upon the abundance of its springs and the mellowness of its soil ; and in this connection how essential are wood-lands which are covered with the litter of fallen leaves, the uprooting of which effects a direct injury to cultivation. Y 210 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON SPRINGS AND RIVERS. " But it must also be borne in mind that extensive areas of wood- land materially increase the quantity of the rain. At Rohrbrunn (Spessart) 62 per cent, more rain falls than at AschafFenburg, in its immediate neighbourhood, on an average of the years 1867 to 1871- Certainly one-quarter of the gross quantity of the rainfall was caught by the tree-tops and conveyed, by evaporation, again to the atmos- phere, (average of the years 1868 to 1871 at all the meteorological stations.) But of the remaining three quarters of the aggregate rain which fell upon the earth, there evaporated during the same interval six times less from the soil of the forest than from that of the open country ; and, therefore, a much greater quantity of water is absorbed by the forest, where the leaf-litter is retained, penetrating to the deeper strata of the earth, than is held by the soil of the fields. This fact is of the utmost importance in its relation to the formation of springs to the supply of water to the rivers, and to all the numerous interests of agriculture which stand in so close connection with it. " The investigations of Ebermayer have also led to very important conclusions in regard to the amount of ozone in the atmosphere. " The air contains most ozone in situations of great altitude, where there is much humidity. In dense woods, however, the amount of ozone in the atmosphere is somewhat less than in the directly adjoining open land. The most healthy dwelling-places, therefore, are not in the midst of the forests, but at their borders. " The proportion of ozone, on an average, at the six meteorological stations in Bavaria, on the borders of the forest, relatively to that contained in the atmosphere at AschafFenburg and Zwickau, was as follows : In spring, as 8-20 : 6-80 : 3-20 In summer, as 7-70 : 3-20 : 3-10 In autumn, as 8-00 : 5-40 : 2-20 In winter, as 8-40 : 6-00 : 1-80 " These few data satisfactorily demonstrate the general importance to which these forest meteorological stations may lay claim. A con- siderable increase of the number of these observations may soon be expected. " To the six stations now existing in Bavaria will shortly be added ten in Prussia, one in Mecklenburg-Schwerin, and three in Alsace- Lorraine. In Bohemia, at PromenhofF, one observatory is already in operation ; also thi-ee in Switzerland, Canton-Berne. The erection of a station at Valambrosa, near Florence, in Italy, is also projected." OBSERVATIONS BY EBERMAYER, 211 About the time that Herr Wex's paper was published in 1873, there was held in Vienna an International Congress of distinguished students of forest science. By them was resolved to send to the different governments of the civilized world the following expression of their views : " 1. We recognize the fact that, in order to effectually check the continually increasing devastation of forests which is being carried on, international agreements are needed, especially in relation to the preservation and proper cultivation (for the end in view) of those forests lying at the sources and along courses of the great rivers, since it is known that through the reckless destruction of them, there results a great decrease of the volume of water, causing detri- ment to trade and commerce, the filling up the river's bed with sand, caving in of the banks, and inundations of agricultural lands along the river course. " 2. We further recognize it to be the mutual duty of all civilized nations to preserve and to cultivate all such forests as are of vital im- portance to the well-being — agricultural and otherwise — of the whole land, such as those on sandy coasts, on the sides and crowns, as well as on the steep declivities of mountains, and on the sea-coasts and other exposed places, and that international principles should be laid down, to which the owners of such protecting or " guardian forests " should submit in order to preserve the land from damage. " 3. We recognize further that it is the case that we have not at present a sufficient knowledge of the evils (disturbances in nature) which are caused by the devastation of the forests, and therefore that the efforts of legislators should be directed to causing exact data to be gathered relating thereto." It has been noticed as a singular coincidence, that, at nearly the same time, the American Association for the Advancement of Science had under discussion measures tending to similar results, although not expressly designing to extend its recommendations beyond the limits of the United States, except in the way of correspondence with other associations having similar objects in view. It is not supposed that either of these bodies derived their suggestions from the other, although the proceedings at Portland antedate those at Vienna only about three weeks in time. The coincidence, however, shows the wide and general prevalence of a realizing belief that the time for action has now come, and that it is the duty of all Uoverumeats to look well to the future, and take 212 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON SPRINGS AND RIVERS. early and effectual measures to provide against the injuries that might soon follow a further neglect of interests in this regard. Sect. IV. — Immediate Action of Trees in Arresting the Flow and Uscape of Rainfall. While it is true that the rainfall is only the precipitation from the air of a quantity of moisture which it could no longer hold in solution, it is no less true that thus often a much larger supply of moisture is brought to a locality than it would have obtained in the same time, or in a much longer time, either by deposit of dew, or by the attraction of moisture from the atmosphere by any of the constituents of the soil ; and we have now to consider the immediate effect of trees upon it when thus precipitated. Some of these have been adverted to in documents which have been quoted ; but they require more detailed consideration. The testimony which goes to show that the destruction of forests has occasioned the drying up of springs, and that the replanting of woods has been followed by their re-appearance, seems to be incon- trovertible ; but it has been questioned whether the views which have been advanced and have been generally received in regard to some of the phenomena connected therewith be correct. Marshal Vaillant, whose experiments on the emission of moisture from the leaves of trees have been cited in a preceding chapter, remarks : — " In the report read by Monsieur Becquerel, at the Academy of Science, it is asserted that s^sri^^^s^e/icro/^y ^'^^^ their rise in mountains It is true, and according to nature, that the causes which formed the mountains have at the same time broken up the impermeable strata in which are stored the water which creates and supplies the springs. That forests are more usually formed on mountain declivities than in the x>lains is generally true, and this is a simple consequence of the superior fertility of the plains and valleys, and of the greater trouble which the agriculturist would have in cultivating such difficult localities where there are often not even forest tracks ; but to conclude from this that there is a necessary and intimate relation between the existence of forests and of springs is perhaps a rather far-fetched conclusion ; and we think it would be well to examine what the conclusion is really worth. " The same report states that, ' the roots of the trees by dividing the soil make it more permeable and facilitate infiltration.' *' May we be permitted to make some observations on this point. STATEMENT BY MARSHAL VAILLANT. 213 Usually there is no ground harder or less permeable than that formed close to the trunks of trees ; if required we can bring forward, as a proof, the long and deep trenches which have lately been opened on some of the Boulevards of the capital, the substitution of rich vegetable mould for the exhausted and, as it were, petrified soil, and finally, the drainage works intended to convey air and moisture to the trees on the Boulevards. All these sufficiently prove that these roots would suffer in the soil in which they are condemned to grow, and they are powerless as regards the penetration of water or rain, as well as in imparting theleastmeasureof permeability to the soilwhich stifles them, " Monsieur Becquerel, in support of the opinion that forests are favourable to the maintenance of springs, cites two facts the impor- tance of which we do not deny, but which would require a more careful study before being considered incontestable. We allude to the Scamander, which M. de Chouseul-Gouffier found to have dis- appeared, and the invasion by the lake of Tacariqua of a large tract of land formerly under cultivation. Is it quite certain that the source of the Scamander has dried up, simply in consequence of the destruction of the cedars on Mount Ida 1 May not the reservoir which supplies this spring have been disturbed by some subterranean convulsion 1 Have any observations been made regarding the other springs on Mount Ida 1 And as to the lake of Tacariqua may not the loose soil of such localities so often disturbed by volcanic eruptions have first sunk and then risen, so as to cause in the first place the water to retreat from, and in the second to invade, the shores of the lake? Does not the entire globe, even in its most stable portions, continually present such phenomena 1 On the western shore of Schleswig and Holstein, in the strata of the ground there are found alternate layers of peat, formed by fresh water, and marine deposits, which sufficiently indicate alternate rises and falls of the land. " To resume I agree with my honourable friend, M. Becquerel, in saying that forests exercise a complex action. I add that this action has never been studied, specially with regard to the desiccation of the soil which they cover, and the exhaustion of the springs which may be the result. On this point there is work to be done, prejudices to be destroyed, and truth to be revealed." All that is thus advanced by Marshal Vaillant is entitled to re- spectful consideration. But along with these theoretic objections may be taken into consideration facts which have been cited above in numbers, and at the same time the following ;— - 214 ACTION OF FORESTS ON THE SURFACE-FLOW OF RAIN WATER, M. Conte-Grauchamps, Ingenieur en Chef des Fonts et Chanssees, has established by direct experiment, made with precision and with the greatest care in the forests of conifei'ous trees situated in the regions of the Loire and the Alps : — "1. That existing sources have ceased to flow on the desti'uction of forests. " 2. That these identical springs have re-appeared along with vegetation. " 3. That the discharge from a water-course, the hassin de reception of which is wooded, varies from one to two ; whilst that of another water- course, proceeding from a bassin de reception which is devoid of woods, all things else being equal,, vai'ies from one to six. " 4. Finally, that the rehoisement of one hectare, or two and a half acres, will increase the discharge fi'om the spring sixteen cubic metres daily ; whilst gazonnement, or covering it with herbage, in the same circumstances increases the discharge by four cubic metres." And on the other hand, M. d'Arbois de Jubainiville, in reply to an appeal made to its readers by the Revue des Ecmx et Forets, for information respecting the influence of forests over the water system, expresses himself as follows : — " Several forest clearings have been executed in the canton of Vaucoul6urs. I have tried to discover what changes have been produced in the springs. All the springs of this territory have their rise in the middle strata of the oolitic system. And the forests above are treated as are usually coppice and timber forests. " In the territory belonging to the commune of Taillancourt the spring of Vaux-de-Bure had never dried up so long as the plateau which supplied it was shaded by the forest of Vaux-de-Bure, but ever since the half of that forest was cut down every summer the spring has ceased to flow. The clay bed underlying the spring is at no great depth ; it lies within a few metres of the surface throughout the greater part of the basin of supply. " In the commune of Sauvoy, near the Mayoralty, a perennial spring became ephemeral when a wood was cut down which covered the side of a hill, at the foot of which the spring was situated. " On the contrary, in the commune of Monsigny-les-Vaucouleurs, the partial clearing of a hill overhanging the spring has not interfered with the outflow, the fountain of supply seeming to be very deep. " I have also examined the effects of exploitation where felling takes place in the basin of the springs, giving thus free access to to them of sunshine and wind. TESTIMONY OF M. d'aRBOIS. 215 " In the reserved quarter, in Maxey-sur-Vaise, the summer flow of the spring of Moymout was much diminished when its basin was exposed by the exploitations. The impermeable bed on which the water is collected lies at no great depth, for during the season of making charcoal the taste of the spring is affected by the smoke. " The inhabitants of the small town of Void have also noticed a diminution in the summer discharge of water, on the destruction of the woods subject to a right of felling which surmount the springs. " M. Clavery — who, for a long time, and with such enlightened care, has administered Commercy, — has also made similar observa- tions on the water system which supplies that town. He writes thus on the subject : — " ' Since the exploitation of the woods situated in the basin of the source called Fontaine Royale, which supplies the town, for two or three months every year the inhabitants are deprived of water. Almost all the springs dry up about the month of July. Even before these woods were cut down this scarcity had begun to appear, but only slightly, very few springs being entirely dried up during great heat ; but since the exploitations near the Fontaine Royale the greater number are exhausted every year.' " Cutting doft^n woods has a still greater influence on ponds. Thus the ponds situated in the reserved quarter at Taillaucourt was full of water during the growth of the neighbouring woods, but ever since they were cut down it becomes dry during the summer. " In the same way roads which were muddy and impassable have been rendered dry and good in summer by cutting down the adjoin- ing woods. " In fine," he remarks in conclusion, " forests increase the summer out-flow of the springs by preventing the ground being dried up, and this influence is all the greater when the water collects on an impermeable bed at no great depth." From these facts, and the many others which have been adduced, there seems to be no room for doubt, notwithstanding the authority to be attached to anything proceeding from the pen of a man like M. le Marshal Vaillant, that forests exercise a great influence on the water system of a district. But we can carry our investigations much further, and trace the operation whereby trees arrest and so regulate the flow of and escape of the rainfall in many of its details, and so make manifest what the eftect of trees in this operation is. 216 ACTION OF FORESTS ON THE SURFACE-PLOW OF RAIN WATER. Herr Wex has expressed his views on this point in a passage I have quoted, and Marsh in his treatise on the " Earth as Modified by Human Action," states in regard to a foi'est : — " By its interposition, as a curtain between the sky and the ground, it both checks the evaporation from the earth, and mechanically intercepts a certain portion of the dew and lighter showers, which would otherwise moisten the surface of the soil, and restores it to the atmosphere by exhalation. While in heavier rains the large drops which fall upon the leaves and branches are broken into smaller ones, and, consequently, strike the ground with less mechanical force, or are, perhaps, even dispersed into vapour without reaching it. " The vegetable mould, resulting from the decomposition of leaves and of wood, seems as a perpetual mulch to forest soil by carpeting the ground with a spongy covering which obstructs the evaporation from the mineral earth below, drinks up the rains and melting snows that would otherwise flow rapidly over the surface, and perhaps be conveyed to the distant sea, and then slowly give out by evaporation infiltration, and percolation, the moisture thus imbibed. The roots, too, penetrate far below the superficial soil, conduct water along their surface to the lower depths to which they reach, and then by partially draining the superior strata, remove a certain quantity of moisture out of the reach of evaporation." The meteorological eftects produced thus by forests resolve them- selves into the prolongation and consequent increase of the evapora- tion of water falling in the forms of rain, snow, and hail, eftected in two distinct operations, first the absorption and retention of a large portion of the rainfall, and second the retardation of the flow of the remainder towards the great reservoir and source of all, in accord- ance with the observation of the Hebrew preacher, " All the rivers run into the sea ; yet the sea is not full : for unto the place from whence the rivers come thither they return again." Mr Marsh speaks of the ever-renewed and increasing vegetable mould as a perpetual imdch, and in reference to the humidity of forest soil he cites the following passage from Etudes su7- V Economic Forestiere, by Jules Clav6 : — " Why go so far for the proof of a phenomenon which is repeated every day under our own eyes, and of which every Parisian may convince himself without venturing beyond the Bois de Bologne, or the Forest of Meudon 1 Let him after a few rainy days pass along the Chevreuse road, which is bordered on the right by the wood, and on the left by cultivated fields. The fall of water, and the continuance of the rain, have been the same on both STATEMENT BY M. MARSCHAND, 217 sides ; but the ditch on the side of the forest will remain filled with water, proceeding from infiltration through the wooded soil long after the other, contiguous to the open ground, has performed its office of drainage and become dry. The ditch on the left will have discharged in a few hours a quantity of water which the ditch on the right requires several days to receive and carry down to the valley." And but for this drainage into the ditch the water might have remained there for an indefinitely longer time. Thus by an operation, distinct from all that have been mentioned, the humidity of the soil is prolonged and maintained by forests. By continuous exhalations of moisture through the stomates of the leaves — the moisture being obtained in part, and it may be in great part, froni what is stored up in these superficial and deeper-lying reservoirs, replenished from time to time by raiu — the humidity of the air in a forest is increased ; bnt it is the other phase of the operation with which we have at present more especially to do. It is this effect of forests which has led to the extensive replanting of the Alps, the Cevennes, aud the Pyrenees with trees, herbage, and bush, with a view to arresting and preventing the destructive conse- quences and effects of torrents. In a separate volume I have given a copious compilation of records of what has been done, of what led to this being done, and of the successful results which have followed. Here I may cite some of the statements made by one of the writers on the subject, M. L. Marschand. I have already referred to remarks by him on the hydroscopicity and capillarity of certain minerals; as a property distinct and different from these which retain moisture, he speaks of the permeability of soils, by which they give passage to moisture and allow of its transmission ; aud he gives cases of minerals which absorb and retain very little moisture in their structure, but which are very permeable by water. In general, rocks which are highly hydroscopic are not very permeable, for the molecules, once moistened, cohere and present the appearance of a compact mass impermeable to water, as may be seen in clay. On a permeable soil or subsoil, trees create and maintain on the surface a layer of humus of considerable hydroscopic and capillary properties, retaining water, and modifying the general permeability. While, on an impermeable rock, the roots break up this and increase the permeability. The^principle which he seeks to establish is, that forests have the "218 ACTION or FORKS^TS ON THE SURFACK-FT.t i\V i.F RAIN WATER. effect of modulating the properties of rocks, giving to them what they have not ; and he alleges it is in this way, more especially, that their action is salutary in the control of waters on the mountains. Of this view of the subject he gives the following illustration : — " When the rain falls on a denuded brow of a hill, composed of argillaceous earth the water moistens the surface — this absorbs a great quantity of it, through its hydroscopicity and capillarity — but when once this surface is moistened, the transmission of water goes on only very slowly from particle to particle, for the permeability is almost nothing, in consequence of the minute subdivision of the molecules which are brought into the closest contact ; and that which is absorbed remains on the surface and dilutes the superficial layer, which is soon thus trans- formed into a thin clay devoid of cohesion. A layer more or less deep will then detach itself from the surface of the mass, and will flow to the bottom as mud more or less fluid, according as the rain may have been more or less violent. By a very gentle rain, a superficial layer is moistened ; but the water falling slowly may be able to penetrate it completely, in virtue of its hydroscopicity and capillarity. In this cas.^ there will be only a superficial flow, for the greater portion of the water will penetrate the soil. " But suppose that this same argillaceous land, or other unstable ground, were wooded, the trees in spreading the fall of the rain over an expanded surface, that of their foliage, would moderate the rain- fall, and would at the same time augment the absorbent power of the soil, as well as its permeability, and as a consequence augment the quantity of water retained superficially. The mobility of the surface thus softened would, undoubtedly, be increased, but the roots im- prisoning it would retain the softened ground to such a degree that no amount of water falling upon them from the heavens alone could cause it to slip away. Wherever landslips occur on wooded grounds they can be otherwis9 accounted for. " If, in conclusion," says he, " we examine a forest situated on a land permeable en masse, as are the plateaux of Jurassic limestone, the first effect of the forest would be to cover the soil with a thick layer of humus and of moss, which combine in a very high degree hydroscopicity and capillarity. The quantity of water retained thus in the upper layer of the soil will be much greater than it would have been had there been no forest there, for on the rocks referred to the destruction of woods is alnaost immediately followed by a denudation of these rocks of soil. " It follows from this that on these lands the forest arrests the r^fATEMKNT BV M. MaKSSCHaND, 219 descent of the waters to the bottom of the valleys, for it is only very slowly that water retained by hydroscopicity and capillarity quits the substances which they penetrate. Moreover, as the greatest storms of rain never do saturate completely the layer of humus on wooded soils, it is impossible to form torrents on these." He states that the effect of gazonnement is to augment the hydroscopicity and capillarity of the surface of the soil, bnt that this is not sufficient to secure the absorption of all the water that falls upon it in a storm of rain, and he sites facts in support of the allegation. The same good effects, he states, are produced to a greater extent by buissonnement, or the planting of bushes, while a layer of humus of great hydroscopicity, produced by the decay of their leaves, co-operates in the production of these good effects ; but he cites evidence that even gazonnement and buissonnement combined have failed to prevent erosion and the formation of torrents. But forests produce in a surpassing degree each and all of the effects referred to, as produced in a minor degree by meadows and bush. (I) They form by their detritus a very hydroscopic layer, and in consequence augment the quantity of water retained ; (2) They augment the expansion of surface on which the water falls ; and (3) They augment the capillarity and permeability of the subsoil. " I have," says he, " in treating of the permeability of the soil, explained the influence of forests on this. In retaining for some time the water at the surface they augment considerably the quantity which is absorbed, particle by particle, by hydroscopicity and capillarity, for this absorption is slow ; and thus, in a word, the forest tempers the action of rain dashed downwards in a storm, and leads the water gently on to the soil, as if it had fallen in a gentle shower ; and further, it augments, in fine, the permeability of the soil, by keeping the surface unhardened and in sOme sort always open to receive the water which comes slowely from the heavens. " I make no mention of the influence of forests in regard to evaporation — in regard to the direct absox-ption of water — and in re- gard to the humidity of the atmosphere, etc. I take up one point of view alone of the torrential management of waters in the high mountains, and these relate to this only indirectly. " If a storm of rain beat upon a forest the whole of the water which falls is temporarily retained, all penetrates more or less deeply the soil without flowing on the surface ; and, it may be objected, if the subsoil is impermeable the result will be the same. But the objection is without foundation. 1 shall suppose, what is frequently the case, 220 ACTION OF FORESTS ON THE SURFACE-FLOW OF RAIN WATER. that there is impermeable rock underlying the humus : all the water should arrive at this bed of rock and flow down, but the hydroscopicity and capillarity of this humus — of the ground — of the foliage — of the branches of the trees — in a word, of the material of which the forest is composeil — will arrest the water to such a degree and measure as to regulate temporarily the delivery. . . " I have glanced rapidly at the action of forests, in view simply of their effect on the water which falls on their surface ; but tlieir function is by no means limited to this, for they serve also to arrest the waters which come from the pastures above them. They constitute in some measure a kind of immense and powerful barrage, or barrier placed between the summit and the bed of the valleys. " In support of this allegation, I shall cite personal observations which seem to me conclusive. Never have I seen, during the most violent storms of rain, superficial flowings of water in the forests situated under pastures, though such flowings may have existed in the meadows at a greater elevation than the forests ; all the waters which these supplied were literally absorbed aad retained by the forest soil. I except, intent. onally, well-m irked ravines, which coming from above traverse forests, for the question here is only of slopes somewhat uniform, or but slightly undulated ; it is evident that the soil of the forest will not absorb the water of a stream which traverses it encased in a bed. " I take, for example, a valley which rises to a summit line some- what elevated. The end situated at a great height is formed entirely of pasture lands, which spread out equally on the summits of the brows of the mountains ; at a lower level beneath these are the forests. The waters which fall into the cistern formed by the head of the valley rapidly accumulate, and give birth to a torrent which traverses the forest. On the contrary, that which falls on the pasture lands above the brows do not commonly readh the depth of the ravine ; descending to the forest zone uniformly extended over the soil, they are there absorbed. " In a word, the zone of the forest absorbs generally the water flowing from the zone of pasture lands which correspond to it. In support of these observations, I appeal to all who, in the Alps, have observed storms of rain in the forest. I except water accumulated in ravines or depressions, which are in another condition. " But the beneficent action of the forests does not limit itself to this ; the flow in the ravine may also, if it be not completely absorbed, be by them rendered less injurious if it should come to spread itself over a cone de ddjection in a forest otherwise covered with wood. I STATEMENT BY M. LEMOINE. 221 have observed, in connection with this, numerous muddy floods in ravines which, spreading themselves out in the middle of a forest, come out thence very limpid, depositing in it their slime, and leaving in it also almost the whole of the water. " The great forest of the Ofen, in the Orisons has supplied me me with many instances of this. The soil, composed of the dolomite limestone of the triassic period, is somewhat unstable ; in the middle, of the pasture lands which surmount the forest there are formed every year numerous torrents, which to an enormous extent carry off the small pebbles, which are characteristic of the dolomite. All these torrents arriving in the forest, then expand and diffuse themselves, and very rarely do they penetrate to the bottom of the valleys. In the upper portion of the Munster-Thal, I have seen on the right-hand side an enormous ravine, the muddy torrents of which are arrested by the forest. And the waters of the Munster, so well enclosed at this point, are a proof of the beneficial action of the forests. In fine, from the moment that the forests begin to retain the mud they retain also temporarily the greater portion of the water in which this was sus- pended, which are arrested by the enormous absorbent powers they possess." At the meeting of the Brititsh Association held at Brighton in 1876, M. G. Lemoine, Ingenieur des Fonts et Chaussees, read a paper " Sur les Forets dans lew Rapports avec l^ Hydrologie." In which he stated that in the basin of the Seine it had been established that, com- pared with soil covered with grass, or even with other permanent culti- vation forests had no special influence on watercourses. The only absolutely certain action of forests was their influence in protecting the soil and preventing it from being carried away ; but from this single fact it followed that in mountainous countries they would retard the flow of torrential water. In the Department of the Hautes Alpes the presence of forest vegetation prevented the formation of torrents ; re-planting woods led to the drying up of torrents already formed ; but in most cases turfing, alone, was sufficient to produce the same effect. M. Cezanne, in writing of what he calls the Mecanisme de Vlnonda- tion, remarks that the rain as soon as it has fallen becomes divided into three portions, the first of which, taken up again by evaporation returns into the atmosphere to be formed into new showers • the second, after infiltration into the soil, appears again at a lower level in the form of springs, when it loses not itself in the deeper 222 ACTION OK FORESTS ON THE SURFAOE-FLOW OF KA^IN WATEK. reservoirs, whence it is made to project itself by artisian wells ; finally, the remainder flows away by a thousand streamlets towards the thalweg, feeding the brooks, and streams, and rivers. But these portions do not stand to each other in any definite pro- portion. Their relative importance varies not only, between one water-course and another, with the nature of the ground, according as this may be more or less favourable to the flow, or to the infil- tration, but also in the case of the same water-course according as the season restrains or promotes evaporation. In summer the drier soil and warmer air are more greedy ; they drink up or absorb the waters ; in winter the moist air and damp ground allow the sheet of rainfall to flow away. The only general and certain law is that over the area of the river's basin these are complemental to one another, their sum is equal to the quantity of rainfall. And if, for example, after evaporation has taken away its portion, the infiltration be complete, the flow will be nought. It is the infiltration which is here brought under consideration. Following out this division he says that it is by springs that the permeability of the soil may be said to be revealed to us, and if their regime be connected with meteorology, their existence depends on geological conditions. And in illustration he says : — " Mount Ventoux — separated from the A.lps by deep valleys, and isolated on all sides, — is a mass of very permeable cleft limestone, resting on an impermeable base which slopes toward the south-east. So constructed, the mountain is a veritable filter, through which the rain disappears at once ; and excepting in the cases of any violent storms of rain, the superficial ravines are always dry. The sub- terranean waters protected from evaporation descend slowly by the internal fissures of the rock, and stopped at last by the impermeable bed, they are directed towards the south-east, and flow out in springs and streams sufficiently powerful to give motion to water-mills. " The fine fountain of Vaucluse owes its origin to analogous circumstances : it is a veritable rivei-, which is formed as other rivers are by the means of a great many imperceptible tributaries ; but it presents this peculiarity, that its basin instead of being open to the vault of heaven, is subterranean, and covered by a great thickness of permeable limestone. The area of the basin is nearly 100,000 hectares, * the delivery of the fountain is at low water from 10 to 12 * Bouvi&r, Annates des Fonts et Ohavssees. (1855, p. 367.) STATEMENT BY M. CEZANNE. 223 cubic metres, 300 to 350 cubic feet, that is almost the sixth part of the Seine.* The Eure, the basin of which is in extent six times that of the fountain of Vaucluse, gives no more water than this at low water. " What a difference there is between the climate of Px'ovence and that of Normandy ! In Provence the evaporation might carry off three or four times as much water as the rain supplies ; the greater part of the water-courses there are dried up in summer, and the plains of the Camargue, notwithstanding inundations and irrigation, are covered with saline inflorescence. If then, under this climate, the source of the Vaucluse is so constant and so abundant, it is because its basin being, as is the case with all sources, subterranean, the water which has once penetrated the ground is there sheltered against evaporation." Now, turning to the consideration of forest lands, we find that, besides the desiccating of swampy land by evaporating through the stomates of the leaves the moisture taken up by the rootlets, another effect of the growth of trees is to desiccate the superficial soil by aiding the water which it receives to descend along its roots to a lower level, whence it is less likely to be carried off quickly by evaporation. " The roots of vegetables," says d'Hericourt, in a passage which is quoted by Marsh, " perform the oflBce of draining in a manner analogous to that artificially practised in parts of Holland and the British Islands. The method consists in driving deeply down into the soil several hundred stakes to the acre ; the water filters down along the stakes, and in some cases as favourable results have been obtained by this means as by hoi-izontal drains." And by Marsh it is remarked : — " It is an important observation that the desiccation of trees by way of drainage, or external conduc- tion by the roots, is greater in the artificial than in the natural wood and hence that the surface of the ground in the former is not char- acterised by that approach to the state of saturation which it so generally manifests in the latter. In the spontaneous wood the leaves, fruits, bark, branches, and dead trunks, by their decayed material, and by the conversion of rock into loose earth, throuoh the solvent power of the gases they develope in decomposition, cover the ground with an easily penetrable matter extremely favourable to the * On the 12th August, 1858, fhe Seine was lower than had been observed for a hundred and fifty-six years before. The gauging that day gave a delivery of 48 cubic metres per second. The ordinary low water of the Seine is from 75 to 80 metres. Belgrand, Annates des Fonts et Chaussiea. (1858 t. ii p. 222.) 224 ACTION OF FORESTS ON THE SURFACE-FLOW OF RAIN WATER. growth of trees, and at the same time too retentive of moisture to part with it readily to the capillary attraction of the roots. " The trees, finding abundant nutriment near the surface, and so sheltered against the action of the wind by each other as not to need the support of deep and firmly fixed stays, send their roots but a moderate distance downwards, and indeed often spread them out like a horizontal network almost on the surface of the ground. " In the artificial wood, on the contrary, the spaces between the trees are greater ; they are obliged to send their roots deeper, both for mechanical support and in search of nutriment, and consequently serve much more effectually as conduits for perpendicular drainage." If attention be given to the mode of growth in roots and rootlets, it may be seen how it comes to pass that the fact is as stated by Mr Marsh. The root does not bore its way into and through the soil it enters, but it is prolonged, as is the line of dominoes by the players with these. The extreme cells, and probably the extreme cells only, or chiefly, multiply in the spongioles in accordance with the usual mode of cell genesis by the formation of cells within cells, and that in proportion as they are supplied with nutriment ; and if this multiplication of cells occasion a pressure in all directions, it tends more to the extension of the root than to what may be called the wp rooting of the tree. The direction of growth appears to be to whence chiefly come the supplies of nutriment, or material of growth. Where this is found on the level reached the roots extend. Where it is found in the soil below them they descend. Where it is found in tha soil above them they ascend. I have had reported to me a case of roots extending towards a ditch, descending by the side of this, changing then their course so as to pass beneath it, ascending then on the further side till they came near the surface, and then spreading horizontally as at first. I have often heard of roots growing towards a quantity of assimilate- able material as if guided by instinct ; and I am given to understand that in willows by a stream there is generally a much more copious growth of roots on the side towards the stream tlian on the other sides around. Roots of forest trees are often prevented from descend- ing by plintint^' thsm abjve a flit stone, wiiich cuts off" supplies ; and roots of fig-trees growing upon rocks follow and penetrate every crack and crevice where, and where alone, they find nutriment. Thus may the downward growth of roots of planted trees be ac- hKCONPARY KFFKCTS OF TREES. L'S;) counted for, and the horizontal growth of roots of trees in a forest, when such phenomena are seen; and by this downward growth of the roots of planted trees may the descent of water to the subsoil be promoted, there to be reserved against a day of need, converting the subsoil into a reservoir of water, which, raised by evaporation by heat, would moisten the superincumbent soil, promote vegetation, and pass again through the stomates of the leaves into the atmosphere, — again to be precipitated and absorbed by the soil instead of flowing off to the sea, to be lost in that abyss which never says it is enough ! — the springs and fountains and river sources being to us significant of the greatness of the quantity of water which is thus retained. In view of all that has been advanced, it appears that trees by their growth, the extent of their rootage, and the decay and de- composition of their foliage and debris, tend to increase the proportion of the rainfall which is preserved by infiltration, and to utilise for the promotion of vegetation, a larger portion of what is thus retained than otherwise would be so utilized. The depth at which evaporation ceases must vary with the temperature, humidity of the atmosphere and character of the soil. Some interesting observatisns on this point are recorded by Johnstrus, in a work entitled Om Fugtighedens Bevaegelese i den naturlige Jord- bund, published in Copenhagen in 1866. He found in the neighbour- hood of Copenhagen that there, at the depth of a mfetre and a half (59 inches) the effects of rain and evaporation were almost impercep- tible, and became completely so at a depth of from two to three metres. (6| to 10 feet. Sect. V. — Secondary Effects of Trees in Arresting the Flow and Escape of the Rainfall, and thus equalizing to some extent the Flow of Rivers. While rivers in their sources indicate to us that the quantity of water retained by the earth after a copious fall of rain, by the infil- tration of a portion of this into the soil, must be very great — even these being composed of what is only the drainage of the quantity in excess of what the ground can retain — rivers in their flood indicate that the portion of the rainfall carried away by ruissdlement, or by flowing away over the surface of the ground, must also be great. It may be noted that of what is retained by infiltration a great deal may be utilized by vegetation ; and that of what is in excess of 2a 220 ACTION OF FORESTS ON THE FLOW OF UIVERS. this and is carried off, feeding springs and fountains, and streams, the saddest thing that can be said is that it is lost, thoiigii this can only be said with a show of truth of that portion of it which is lost in the sea ; but of what is canned off by ruisseUeni''nt comparatively little is utilized ; a much greater proportion of it finds its way to the sea, and this in rushing thither often carries with it devastation and destruc- tion. According to the statements I have cited from Surell, evaporation, infiltration, and ruissellement, are equal in their sum to the quantity of the rainfall, and if after evaporation has taken up its part the in- filtration be complete, the ruissellement will be nil. To the negative good which might thus be done, or damage which might thus be prevented, and the effect of trees in doing these, by equalizing to some extent the flow of rivers, would I next di'aw attention. In connection with a statement made in the preceding section, relative to the effect of the destruction of forests upon the Durance, reference was made to the important circumstance that while the river is confined to a current little more than thirty feet in width, the bed in some places exceeds a mile and a quarter in breadth, and so far back as 1789 it was computed that it had covered an area of not less than 130,000 acres with gravel and pebbles; and it was intimated that thus was brought before us another of the effects of forests, or rather of the desti'uction of forests, which would be -sub- sequently brought under discussion, Mr Marsh, writing on this subject, says : " The traveller who visits the depth of an Alpine ravine, observes the length and width of the gorge, and the great height and apparent solidity of the precipitous walls which bound it, and calculates the mass of rock required to fill the vacancy, can hardly believe that the humble brooklet which purls at his feet has been the principal agent in accomplishing this tremendous erosion. Closer observations will often teach him that the seemipgly unbroken rock which overhangs the valley is full of cracks and fissures, and really in such a state of disintegration that every frost must bring down tons of it. If he compute the area of the basin, which finds here its only discharge, he will perceive that a sudden thaw of the wintei-'s deposit of snow, or on-e of those terrible discharges of rain so common in the x\lps, must send forth a deluge mighty enough to sweep down the hugest masses of gravel and of rock. The simple measurement of the cubical contents of the semicircular STATEMENT BY MR MARSH. 227 hillock which he climbed before he entered the gorge, the structure aud composition of which conclusively show that it must have been washed out of this latter by torrential action, will often account satisfactorily for the disposal of most of the matter which once filled the ravine, " When a torrent escapes from the latei'al confinement of its moun- tain walls and pours out of the gorge, it spreads and divides itself into numerous smaller sti-eams, which shoot out from the mouth of the ravine as from a centre, in diff"erent directions, like the ribs of a fan from the pivot, each carrying with it its quota of stones and gravel. The plain below the point of issue from the mountain is rapidly raised by newly-formed torrents, the elevation depending on the inclination of the bed and the form and weight of the matter transported. Every flood both increases the height of this central point and extends the entire circumference of the deposit, " Other things being equal, the transporting power of the water is greatest where its flow is most rapid. This is usually in the direction of the axis of the ravine. The stream retaining most nearly this direction moves with the greatest momentum, and consequently transports the solid matter with which it is charged to the greatest distance. " The untra veiled reader will comprehend this the better when he is informed that the southern slope of the Alps generally rises suddenly out of the plain, with no intervening hill to break the abruptness of the transition, except those consisting of comparatively small heaps of its own debris brought down by ancient glaciers or i-ecent torrents. The torrents do not wind down valleys gradually widening to the rivers or the sea, but leap at once from the flanks of the mountains upon the plains below. This arrangement of surfaces naturally facilitates the formation of vast deposits at their points of emergence, and the centre of the accumulation in the case of very small torrents is not unfrequently a hundred feet high, and sometimes very much more. " The deposits of the torrent which has scooped out the Nautzen Thai, a couple of miles below Brieg in the Valais, have built up a semicircular hillock, which most travellers by the Simplon route pass over without even noticing it, though it is little inferior in dimensions to the great cones of dejection described by Blanqui. The principal course of the torrent having been — I know not whether spontaneously or artificially — directed towards the west, the eastern part of the hill has been gradually brought under cultivation, and there are many 2-'8 ACTION OF fUltt-STb UN THK iXOW UF KiVEKS. trees, fields, and houses upon it ; but the larger western part is furrowed with channels diverging from the summit of the deposit at the outlet of the Nantzen Thai, which serve as the beds of the water courses into which the torrent has divided itself. All this portion of the hillock is subject to inundation after long and heavy rain, and as I saw it in the great flood of October, 1866, almost its whole surface seemed covered with an unbroken sheet of rushing water. " The semi-conical deposit of detritus at the mouth of the Litzner- thal, a lateral branch of the valley of the Adige, at the point whei'e the torrent pours out of the gorge, is a thousand feet high and, measuring along the axis of the principal current, two and a half miles long. The solid material of this hillock — which it is hardly an exaggeration to call a mountain, the work of a single insignificant torrent and its tributaries — includaig what the river which washes its base has carried otf in a comparatively few years, probably surpasses the mass of the stupendous pyramid of the Matterhorn. " In valleys of ancient geological formation, which extend into the very heart of the mountains, the streams, though rapid, have often lost the true torrential character, if, indeed, they ever possessed it. Their beds have become approximately constant, and their walls no longer crumble and fall into the waters that wash their bases. The torrent-worn ravines, of which I have spoken, are of later date, and belong more properly to what may be called the crust of the Alps, consisting of loose rocks, of gravel, and of eai'th, strewed along the surface of the great declivities of the central ridge, and accumulated thickly between the solid buttresses. But it is on this crust that the mountaineer dwells. Here are his forests, here his pastures, and the ravages of the torrent both destroy his world, and convert it into a source of overwhelming desolation to the plains below. "I do not mean to assert that all the rocky valleys of the Alps have been produced by the action of torrents resulting from the destruction of the forests. The greater, and many of the smaller channels by which that chain is drained owe their origin to higher ^uses. There are primitive fissures, ascribable to disruption in up- heaval or other geological convulsion, widened and scarped, and often even polished, so to speak, by the action of glaciers during the ice period, and but little changed in form by running water in later eras. " It has been contended that all rivers which take their rise in these mountains originated in torrents. These, it is said, have lowered the aummits by gradual erosion, and with the material thus sTATliMKNT BY MR MAK.SH. 229 derived have formed shoals in the sea which once beat against the cliffs ; then, by successive deposits, gradually raised them above the surface, and finally expanded them into broad plains traversed by gently flowing streams. If we could go back to earlier geologitial periods, we should find this theory often verified ; and we cannot fail to see that the torrents go on, at the present hour, depressing still lower the ridges of the Alps and the Apennines, raising still higher the plains of Lombai-dy and Provence, extending the coast still farther into the Adriatic and the Mediterranean, reducing the inclination of their own beds and the rapidity of their flow, and thus tending to become river-like in character. " We cannot measure the share which human action has had in augmenting the intensity of causes of mountain degradation, and of the formation of plains and marshes below, and we know that the clearing of the woods has, in some cases, produced, within two or three generations, effects as blasting as those generally ascribed to geological convulsions, and has laid waste the face of the earth more hopelessly than if it had been buried by a current of lava or a shower of volcanic sand. New torrents are forming every year in the Alps. Tradition, written records, and analogy concur to establish the belief that the ruin of most of the now desolate valleys in those mountains is to be ascribed to the same cause, and authentic descriptions of the irresistible force of the torrent show that, aided by frost and heat, it is adequate to level Mont Blanc and Monte Rosa themselves, unless new upheavals shall maintain their elevation, " There are cases where torrents cease their ravages of themselves in consequence of some change in the condition of the basin where they originate, or of the face of the mountain at a higher level, while the plain of the sea below remains in substantially the same state as before. If a torrent rises in a small valley containing no great amount of earth and of a disintegrated or loose rock, it may, in the course of a certain period, wash out all the transportable material, and if the valley is then left with solid walls, it will cease to furnish debris to be carried down by floods. If, in this state of things, a new channel be formed at an elevation above the head of the valley, it may divert a part or even the whole of the rain-water and melted snow which would otherwise have flowed into it, and the once furious torrent now sinks to the rank of a humble and harmless brooklet. * In traversing this department,' says Surell, ' one often sees, at the outlet of a gorge, a flattened hillock, with a fan-shaped outline and 2 30 ACTION OF FORESTS ON THE FLOW OF RIVERS. regular slops ; it is the bed of dejectiou of an ancient torrent. It sometimes requires long and careful study to detect the primitive form, masked as it is by groves of trees, by cultivated fields, and often by houses, but, when examined closely, and from different points of view, its characteristic figure manifestly appears, and its true history cannot be mistaken. Along the hillock flows a streamlet, issuing from the ravine, and quietly watering the fields. This was originally a torrent, and in the back ground may be discovered its mountain basin. Such extingidshed torrents, if I may use the expression, are numerous." The quotation is from Etude sur les Torrents des Haates Alpes, by Surell (Chap, xxiv.), and Mr Marsh adds in a foot-note: — ''In such cases, the clearing of the ground, which, in consequence of a temporary diversion of the waters, or fi'om some other cause, has become re- wooded, sometimes renews the ravages of the torrent. Thus, on the left bank of the Durance, a wooded declivity had been formed by the debris brought down by torrents, which had extinguished them- selves after having swept off much of the superficial strata of the mountain of Morgon. ' All this district was covei'ed with woods, which have now been thinned out and are perishing from day to day ; consequently, the torrents have recommenced their devastations, and if the clearings continue, this declivity, now fertile, will be ruined, like so many others.' " And resuming, he goes on to say : — " But for the intervention of man and domestic animals, these latter beneficent revolutions would occur more frequently, and proceed more rapidly. The now scarped mountains, the hillocks of debris, the plains elevated by sand and gravel spread over them, the shores freshly formed by fluviatile deposits, would clothe themselves with shrubs and trees, the intensity of the causes of degradation would be diminished, and nature would thus regain her ancient equilibrium. But these processes, under ordinary circumstances, demand, not years, or generations, but centuries ; and man, who even now finds scarce breathing-room on this vast globe, cannot retire from the Old World to some yet undis- covered continent, and wait for the slow action of such causes to re- place, by a new creation, the Eden he has wasted." In a foot-note he adds : — " Where a torrent has not been long in operation, and earth still remains mixed with the rocks and gravel it heaps up at its point of eruption, vegetation soon starts up and prospers, if protected from encroachment. In Provence, ' several communes determined, about ten years ago, to i^eserve the soils thus sTATKMF.NT HY MH M.\f?STI. 'I'M ■wasted, that is, to abandon them for a certain time to spontaneous vegetation, which was not slow in ranking its appearance.' " Mr Marsh next treats thus of two subjects intimately connected, the crushing effects of torrents, and the transporting power of water : — " I must here notice a mechanical eifect of the rapid flow of the torrent, which is of much importance in relation to the desolating action it exercises by covering large tracts of cultivated ground with infertile material. The torrent, as we have seen, shoots or rolls forward, with great velocity, masses and fragments of rock, and sometimes rounded pebbles from more ancient formations. Every inch of this violent movement is accompanied with crushing con- cussion, or, at least, with great abrasion of the mineral material, and, as you follow it along the course of the waters which transport it, you find the stones gradually rounding off in form, and diminishing in size, until they pass successively into gravel, and, in the beds of the rivers to which the torrents convey it, sand, and lastly impalpable slime. " There are few operations of nature where the effect seems more disproportioned to the cause than in this crushing and comminution of rock in the channel of swift waters. Igneous rocks are generally so hard as to be wrought with great difficulty, and they bear the weight of enormous superstructures without yielding to the pressure ; but to the torrent they are as wheat to the millstone. The streams which pour down the southern scarp of the Mediterranean Alps along the Riviera di Ponente, near Genoa, have short courses, and a brisk walk of a couple of hours, or even less, takes you from the sea-beach to the headspring of many of them. In their heaviest floods, they bring rounded masses of serpentine quite down to the sea, but at ordinary high water their lower course is charged only with finely divided particles of that rock. Hence, while near their sources their channels are filled with pebbles and angular fragments, intermixed with a little gravel, the proportions are reversed near their mouths, and, just above the points where their outlets are partially choked by the rolling shingle of the beach, their beds are composed of sand and gravel to the almost total exclusion of pebbles. " Guglielmini argued that the gravel and sand of the beds of run- ning streams were derived fi-om the trituration of rocks by the action of the currents, and inferred that this action was generally sufficient to reduce hard rock to sand in its passage from the source to the outlet of rivers. Frisi controverted this opinion, and maintained 232 ACTION OF FORESTS ON THE FT.O'W OF RIVERS. that river-sand was of more ancient origin, and he inferred from experiments in artificallj-grinding stones that the concussion, friction, and attrition of rock in the channel of rnnning waters were inadequate to its comminution, though he admitted that these same causes might reduce silicious sand to a fine powder capable of transportation to the sea by the currents. Frisi's experiments were tried upon rounded and polished river-pebbles, and prove nothing with regard to the action of torrents upon the irregular, more or less weathered, and often cracked and shattered rocks which lie loose in the ground at the head of mountain valleys. The fury of tlie waters and of the wind which accompanies them in the floods of the French Alpine torrents is such, tliat large blocks of stone are hurled out of the bed of the stream to the height of twelve or thirteen feet. The impulse of masses driven with such force overthrows the most solid masonry, and their concussion cannot fail to be attended with the crushing of the rocks themselves. " The greatest length of the basin of the Ardeche is seventy-five miles, but most of its tributaries have a much shorter course. ' These affluents,' says Mardigny, ' hurl into the bed of the Ardfeche enormous blocks of rock, which this river, in its turn, bears onwards, and grinds down, at high water, so that its current rolls only gravel at its con- fluence with the Rhone.' " Duponchel makes the following remarkable statement : ' The river Herault rises in a granitic region, but soon reaches calcareous forma- tions, which it traverses for more than sixty kilometres, rolling through deep and precipitous ravines, into which the toi'rents are constantly discharging enormous masses of pebbles belonging to the hardest rocks of the Jurassian period. These debris, continually renewed, compose, even below the exit of the gorge where the river enters into a regular channel cut in a tertiary deposit, broad beaches prodio'ious accumulations of rolled pebbles, extending several kilome- tres down the stream, but they diminish in size and weight so rapidly that above the mouth of the river, which is at a distance of thirty or thirty-five kilometres from the gorge, every trace of calcareous matter has disappeared from the sands of the bottom, which are exclusively silicious.' •' Similar effects of the rapid flow of water and the concussion of stones against each other in river-beds may be observed in almost every Alpine gorge which serves as the channel of a swift stream. The tremendous cleft through which the well-known Via Mala is carried receives, every year, from its own crumbling walls and from STATEMENT BY MR MARSH. 233 the Hinter Rhein and its mild tributaries, enormous quantities of rock, in blocks and boulders. In fact, the masses hurled into it in a single flood like those of 1868 would probably fill it up, at its narrow points, to the level of the road 400 feet above its bottom, were not the stones crushed and carried off by the force of the current. Yet below the outlet at Thusis only small rounded boulders, pebbles, and gravel, not rock, are found in the bed of the river. The Swiss glaciers bring down thousands of cubic yards of hard rock every season. Where the glacier ends in a plain or wide valley, the rocks are accumulated in a terminal moraine, but in numerous instances the water which pours from the ice-river has force enough to carry down to larger streams the masses delivered by the glacier, and there they, with other stones washed out from the earth by the current, are ground down, so that few of the affluents of the Swiss lakes deliver into them anything but fine sand and slime. " Great rivers carry no boulders to the sea, and, in fact, receive none from their tributaries. Lombardini found, twenty years ago, that the mineral matter brought down to the Po by its tributaries was, in general, comminuted to about the same degree of fineness as the sands of its bed at their points of discharge. In the case of the Trebbia, which rises high in the Apennines and empties into the Po at Placenza, it was otherwise, that river rolling pebbles and coarse gravel mto the channel of the principal stream. The banks of the other affluents — excepting some of those which discharge their waters into the great lakes — then either retained their woods, or had been so long clear of them that the torrents had removed most of the disin- tegrated and loose rock in their upper basins. The valley of the Trebbia had been recently cleared, and all the forces which tend to the degradation and transportation of rock were in full activity." Of the transporting power of water he writes : " The geographical eflfects of the action of torrents are not confined to erosion of earth and com- minution of rock ; for they and the rivers to which they contribute transport the debris of the mountains to lower levels, and spread them out over the dry land and the bed of the sea, thus forming alluvial deposits, sometimes of a beneficial, sometimes of an injurious, character, and of vast extent. " A mountain rivulet swollen by rain or melted snow, when it escapes from its usual channel and floods the adjacent fields, naturally deposits pebbles and gravel upon them ; but even at low water, if, of course, it is long enough for its grinding action to have full scope, it transports the solid material with which it is charged to some larger 234 ACTION OF FORESTS ON THE PLOW OF RIVERS. stream, and there lets it fall in a state of minute division, and at last the spoil of the mountain is used to raise the level of the plains, or is carried down to the sea. "An instance that fell under my own observation, in 1857, will serve to show something of the eroding and transporting power of streams which, in these respects, fall incalculably below the torrents of the Alps. In a flood of the Ottaquechee, a small river which flows through Woodstock, Vermont, a mill-dam on that stream burst, and the sediment with which the pond was filled, estimated after careful measurement at 1 3,000 cubic yards, was carried down by the current. Between this dam and the slackwater of another, four miles below, the bed of the stream, which is composed of pebbles, interspersed m a few places with larger stones, is about sixty-five feet wide, though, at low water, the breadth of the current is considerably less. The sand and fine gravel were smoothly and evenly distributed over the bed to a width of fifty-five or sixty feet, and, for a distance of about two miles, except at two or three intervening rapids, filled up all the interstices between the stones, covering them to the depth of nine or ten inches, so as to present a regularly formed concave channel, lined with sand, and reducing the depth of water, in some places, from five or six feet to fifteen or eighteen inches. Observing this deposit after the river had subsided and become so clear that the bottom could be seen, I supposed that the next flood would produce an extraordinary erosion of the banks and some permanent changes in the channel of the stream, in consequence of the elevation of the bed and the filling up of the spaces between the stones through which formerly much water had flowed ; but no such result followed. The spring freshet of the next year entirely washed out the sand its predecessor had left, deposited some of it in ponds and still-water reaches below, carried the residue beyond the reach of observation, and left the bed of the river almost precisely in its former condition, though, of course, with the displacement of the pebbles which every flood produces in the channels of such streams. The pond, though often previously discharged by the breakage of the dam, had then been un- disturbed for about twenty-five years, and its contents consisted almost entirely of sand, the rapidity of the current in floods being- such that it would let fall little lighter sediment, even above an obstruction like a dam. The quantity I have mentioned evidently bears a very inconsiderable proportion to the total erosion of the stream during that period, because the wash of the banks consists chiefly of fine earth rather than of sand, and after the pond was once STATEMENT BY MR MARSH. 235 filled, or nearly so, even this material could no longer be deposited in . it. The fact of the complete removal of the deposit I have described between the two dams in a single freshet, shows that, in spite of con- siderable obstruction from roughness of bed, large quantities of sand may be taken up and carried off by streams of no great rapidity of inclination ; for the whole descent of the bed of the river between the two dams — a distance of four miles — is but sixty feet, or fifteen feet to the mile. " The facts which I have adduced may aid us in forming an idea of the origin and mode of transportation of the prodigious deposits at the mouth of great rivers like the Mississippi, the Nile, the Ganges, and the Hoang-Ho, the delta of which last river, composed entirely of river sediment, has a superficial extent of not less than 96,500 square miles. But we shall obtain a clearer conception of the character of this important geogTaphical process by measuring, more in detail, the mass of earth and rock which a well-known river and its tributaries have washed from the mountains and transported to the plains or the sea, within the historic period." The whole process of the disintegrating efiects of the Po Mr Marsh then details with clearness, and concludes : — '•' Upon the whole, we shall not greatly err if we assume that, for a period of not less than two thousand years, the walls of the basin of the Po — the Italian slope of the Alps, and the northern and north-eastern declivities of the Apennines — have annually sent down into the lakes, the plains, and the Adriatic, not less than 375,000,000 cubic yards of earth and disintegrated rock. We have, then, an aggregate of 750,000,000,000 cubic yards of such material, which, allowing to the mountain surface in question an area of 50,000,000,000 square yards, would cover the whole to the depth of fifteen yards. There are very large portions of this area, where, as we know from ancient remains — roads, bridges, and the like — from other direct testimony, and from geo- logical considerations, very little degradation has taken place within twenty centuries, and hence the quantity to be assigned to localities where the destructive causes have been most active is increased in proportion. " If this vast mass of pulverized rock and earth were restored to the localities from which it was derived, it certainly would not obliterate valleys and gorges hollowed out by great geological causes, but it would reduce the length and diminish the depth of ravines of later formation, modify the inclination of their walls, reclothe with earth many bare mountain ridges, essentially change the line of 23'6 ACTION OF FORESTS ON THE FLOW OF RIVERS. junction between plain and mountain, and carry back a long reach of the Adriatic coast many miles to the west. " It is, indeed, not to be supposed that all the degradation of the mountains is due to the destruction of the forests — that the flanks of every Alpine valley in Central Europe below the snow-line were once covered with earth and green with woods, but there are not many particular cases in which we can, with certainty, or even with strong probability, affirm the contrary." There is thus brought under consideration a secondary effect of trees in arresting the flow and escape of the rainfall, and so to some extent equalizing the flow of rivers. How this is affected next demands our attention. As the evaporation, to which attention has been called, may be considered as only a continuation of evaporation, begun so soon as the rain-drop was formed in the atmosphere, so may the infiltration and ruisseUement be considered as only a continuation of the descent by which, under the influence of gravitation, it fell ; but it is effected under different conditions, and it presents different phenomena. So soon as it falls part is absorbed by the hydroscopicity of the soil, more, it may be, escapes by infiltration through the soil, and the remainder flows over the surface to a lower level. It may have been observed that on the footpath, or the rock, it accumulates in pools, but not on the grass or turf of herbage, or field of corn ; and on the bare ground, it may be seen flowing off in runnels ; but on the grassy turf the phenomenon is somewhat different. Even on the declivity of a knoll, or on the declivity of a mountain side, the grass arrests, divides and subdivides, and so retains the super- ficial flow of the superabundant rainfall. In accordance with this is the action of forests thereon. The establishment of this fact has followed the study of the natural history of Alpine torrents. In some of these the whole rainfall in a mountain basin, rushing off impetuously to the sea, and undermining the banks of its channel, carried off the detritus, and buried there- with, it may be, fertile lands, and villages and towns beyond. The destructive effects thus produced in France called attention to the subject nearly a century ago, and in 1793 there was published by M. Fabre, a civil engineer, Essai sur la theorie des Torrents et des Riviers, in which he alleges that the destruction of forests in the mountains, and the uprooting of their stumps, had been the primary and the secbMary causes of the formation of these torrents, and had thus been STATBMRNT RY M. SURELL. 237 the occasion of all the disasters accompanying or following these torrents ; and he urged the abandonment or regulation of these pro- ceedings, and the rehoisement of the mountains, as means of arresting and counteracting the evil. The commotions occasioned by the revolution prevented full effect being given to these views at that time, but some fifty years later a work was published by M. Alex. Surell, entitled Etude sur les Torrents des Hautes Alpes, in which similar and more extended views of the subject were advanced. This work was crowned by the Academy of Sciences ; and it led to the commencement of extensive works of re- hoisement on the mountains of France. These have been prosecuted with energy and success at great expense, but ungrudgingly, — the result having proved corroborative of the principles upon which they were undertaken. It is only as illustrative of the soundness of the views upon which these were founded that they are now referred to ; and here I can only bring forward statements of these views and prin- ciples, with a passing notice of results illustrative of their truth. M. Surell says : " When we examine the lands in the midst of which are scattered the torrents of recent origin, we see them to be in every case stripped of trees and of every kind of arborescent vegetation. On the other hand, when we look at mountain sloj)es which have been recently stripped of woods, we see them to have been gnawed away by innumerable torrents of the third class, which evidently can only have been formed in later years. " See then a very remarkable double fact : everywhere where there are recent torrents there are no more forests : and wherever the soil has been stripped of wood recent torrents have been formed ; so that the same eyes which have seen the forest felled on the slope of a mountain have there seen incontinently a multitude of torrents." And again, " In examining the basins drained by great extinct torrents, there are almost always found there forests, and often dense forests. There may be observed also, along wooded revers, a number of small torrents of the third class, which appear as stifled under the mass of vegetation, and are completely extinct. Now this second observation, which can be verified by a multitude of examples, supplies a demonstration of a fact of which the first only permitted us to entertain a suspicion in a vague way : — it is, that the forests are capable of bringing about the extinction of a torrent already formed. Indeed, it is impossible to admit that the small torrents, dug for the most part in mobile and friable ground, can have died of 238 ACTION OF FORESTS ON THE PLOW OF RIVERS. themselves, so to speak, in their very birth, and through the effect alone of that equilibrium to which reference has already been made. " Stability cannot establish itself so speedily on beds which are scarcely formed, and in the midst of lands whicfh offer still so much food for erosion by the waters ; it is a work which demands time, and which is never entirely consummated until the mountain has been gnawed away to the quick, to its last ridge. " Amongst the great number of extinct torrents, of which the basins are wooded, there are some, the forests of which have been subjected to the commune regime, and have fallen in part under the axe of the inhabitants. Very well, the result of this destruction of trees has been to rekindle the violence of the torrents, which only slumbei-ed. There have been seen thus peaceful streams give place to furious torrents, which the fall of the wood had re-awakened from their long sleep, and which vomited forth new masses of dejection on beds of deposit, which had been cultivated without suspicion from time immemorial. This is what has been remarked more especially after the excessive destruction of woods which followed the first years of the Revolution • the devastations of many great torrents only date from this epoch." And once more, " This last fact completes all that need be said in regard to the influence of forests. In seeming these show themselves almost everywhere on the body of extinct torrents, one may suppose that these had first died, and that the woods had then seized upon them when the extinction had been completed, and when the soil of the neighbourhood became stable, permitted vegetation to develop itself in safety : the forest would then only have been one of the effects of the extinction of these, instead of being the cause of it. But then the destruction of the woods would only have restored things to their primitive state, and the torrents ought to have been able to continue extinct after the taking away of the woods as it was before their appearance there — and this is exactly what does not happen. It has sufficed to clear away the woods to see the devasta- tions immediately reappear. It must be then the forests which, by their permanent appearance on the soil, hindered the devastations, and it is the forests, in taking possession of the soil, which have caused them to cease — and the extinction of the torrents is so com- pletely their work that it begins, continues, and disappears with them, the eftect ceasing immediately with the cause. " One sees by this that the action of foi'ests is not confined to pre- venting the creation of new torrents, but that it is sufficiently STATEMENT BY M, 8URELL, 239 energetic to destroy torrents already formed. One sees also that the injurious result of the removal of woods is not only to open every where the soil to new torrents, but that it augments the violence of those which exist, and resuscitates those which appear completely extinct. We may then sum up the influence which forests exercise on torrents already formed on two facts, parallel to those which sum up their influence on lands where the torrents have not yet appeared. (1.) The presence of a forest on a soil prevents the formation of a torrent there. (2.) The destruction of forests leaves them subject to become the prey of torrents. Nor is there in this any thing for which we may find it difficult to account." He proceeds then to explain the modus operandi whereby forests produce such eff"ects : " When the trees fix themselves in the soil the roots consolidate this, interlacing it with a thousand fibres ; their branches protect it, as would a buckler, againet the shock of the heavy rains ; and their trunks, and at the same time suckers, brambles, and that multitude of shrubs of all kinds which grow at their base, oppose additional obstacles to the currents which would tend to wash it away. The effect of all this vegetation is thus to cover the soil, in its nature mobile, with an envelope more solid and less liable to be washed away. Besides, it divides the currents and disperses them over the whole surface of the ground, which keeps them from going off" in a body in the lines of the thalweg and meet- ing there, which would be the case if they flowed freely over the smooth surface of a denuded ground. Finally, it absorbs a portion of the water which is imbibed in the spongy humus, and so far it diminishes the sum of the washing away forces. " It follows from this that a forest, in establishing itself on a mountain, actually modifies the surface of the ground, which alone is in contact with atmospheric agents, and all the conditions find them- selves then modified as they would be if a primitive formation had been substituted for a formation totally diff'erent. Whence it is not more astonishing to see the same soil alternately cut up or free from torrents, according as it is despoiled or clothed with forests, than it is astonishing to see torrents cease when we come to primitive formations, or reappear suddenly on friable limestone. " In accordance with this we find — first, the development of forests brings about the extinction of torrents ; second, the destruction ot forests redoubles the violence of torrents, and may even cause them to reappear. And nothing is more easy than to explain these new actions. It will be remembered what are the causes which call forth 240 ACTION OF FORESTS ON THE PLOW OF RIVERS. and maintain the violence of torrents : it is, on one hand, the friability of the soil ; and, on the other, the sudden concentration of a great mass of water. Now, we know already that the forests render the soil less liable to be washed away ; we know also that they absorb and retain a portion of the i-ainfall, and prevent instantaneous con- centration of the portion which they do not absorb. Consequently they destroy both the one and the other cause. They prolong the duration of the flow, and they render the floods at once more pro- longed, less sudden, and less destructive. " It may be understood from this how forests, in invading the bassins de reception, may have contributed powerfully to stifle certain torrents. Whilst the waters were creating for themselves the most convenient slopes, the forests were retaining the soil which was ready to go, were rendering it more solid, were consequently diminishing the mass of earth washed away, and above all were opposing them- selves to the concentration of currents. They were augmenting all the resisting, all the existing obstacles, and were diminishing all the motive powers; and they were coming thus to hasten by a double efl&cacy that epoch of stability in which the force of the waters would find itself in equilibrium with the resistance of the soil. There is one circumstance which ought to render their triumph still more speedy, — it is, that the torrent, in proportion as it is enfeebled, abandons to them a soil more and more stable and favourable to vegetation, in such a way that this augments every day their forces in proportion as the torrent loses force. In fact, if the expression may be allowed, it is reinforced by the eftect. " By this I do not mean to say that the torrents can never become extinct of themselves. That would be in contradiction to what I have said, and at the same time to facts observed, for there are examples of torrents being extinguished without the presence of forests, and solely through the erosion of the mountains — as, for instance, the torrent of Saint Joseph, near Monestier. But I say that the forests expedite the accomplishment of this effect, and that they can produce it where the other circumstances are not yet producing it. " Thus nature, in summoning forests to the mountains, places the remedy side by side with the evil. She combats the active forces of the waters ; to the invasions of the torrents she opposes the aggressive conquests of vegetation. On those mobile revers she spreads a solid layer which protects them against external attack, somewhat in the manner that a facing of stone protects an earthen embankment. It is worthy of remark that the little cohesion of limestones, which is STATEMENT RY M. SURBLL. 241 opposed to the fixing of grounds, which renders them so mobile, and draws torrents thither, is precisely the quality which renders them favourable to the development of vegetation. The same cause which multiplies the torrents ought then to multiply also the robust forests, and to cause productiveness succeed in the long run to barrenness, and stability to disorder ; not that, strictly speaking, there can be in nature anything otherwise than orderly, for there is nothing which is not subject to the rule of immutable laws, but in popular phrase the term disorder has also its meaning. " One is struck with the illustrations of the observation which has just been made in going over certain forests in these mountains. One sees the vegetation doubling its profusion and energy in grounds torn by ravines, and crumbling on all hands, as if it were mustering its last efforts to retain a soil escaping from it. To cite one example : in the forest of Boscodon may be seen the vigour and tenacity of the vegetation contending against a friable soil composed of schist, tufa, and gypsum. It is, in fact, the lands which are the most mobile which are at the same time the most fertile, and the hard rocks on which vegetation has no hold, brave also the effort put forth by all the causes of destruction. The mountains, if they were abandoned quite naked to external influence, would soon be levelled or cut up into bits, and they would oflfer to man nothing but a heap of cleft rocks, uncultivated and uninhabited. " It is vegetation which prevents this ruin ; and as there can be no vegetation without water, it is on the mountains that nature has poured out the water in the greatest profusion. We have already called attention to the remark, that there falls more rain on the mountains than on the plains. The mountains attract and retain the clouds [1]. Snows and glaciex's crown their summits as immense reservoirs, whence trickles out a perpetual moisture, and whence flow innumerable streamlets which fertilize their sides, and distribute fertility, from brow to brow, down to the very depth of the valleys. Thus, the waters which are the most energetic means of destroying the soil are at the same time the most active in its conservation. In drawing on vegetation, they preserve the soil against their own attacks, and the more they have of power to destroy, the more vegetation they cause to spring up to preserve. It is in this way that nature imposes on all her forces moderators which counterbalance them and keep them from acting always in the same way ; and this must end in brino-ino- everything to a state of restored peace." After dwelling on the thought of self-adjusting provision for the 2c 242 ACTION OP FOEESTS ON THE FLOW OP RIVERS. natural extinction of torrents, he, in something like a burst of en- thusiasm, gives expression to his feelings in view of the thorough and efficient way in which torrents had naturally become extinct, and of the contrast thus presented to the puny endeavours of man to restrain their ravages : the natural and the artificial ; God's way of doing it, and man's way of doing ; the work of God and the work of man ; and the results : success, perfect and complete ; and success, partial and imperfect ! " Let VIS go back for a moment," says he, " and compare these effects of vegetation with those exercised by the different systems of defence hitherto devised. The result of defences like that of vegetation is to arrest the ravages of torrents ; and how powerless appear all embankments by the side of those great and powerful means which natui'e employs when man ceases to oppose her, and when she patiently prosecutes her work throughout a long series of ages ! All our paltry works are nothing but defences, as their name indicates ; they do not diminish the destructive action of the waters, they only keep it from spreading beyond a certain boundary. They are passive masses opposed to active forces ; obstacles, inert and decaying, opposed to living powers, which always attack, and which never decay. Herein is seen all the superiority of nature, and the nothingness of the artifices devised by man. " I make not here a barren comparison. I wish to let it be seen that it is better to bridle the torrents than to erect at great expense masonries and earth-works, which will always be, whatever may be done, expensive palliatives, better adapted to conceal the plague than to eradicate it. Why then does not man ask assistance of those new powers, the energy and efficacy of which are so clearly revealed to him ? Wliy does he not command them to do yet again, and that under the directions of his own genius, that which they have already done in times long gone by on so many extinct torrents, and that under the prompting of nature alone V In 1872 a sequel to this work by M. Surell was published by M. Cezanne, Ingeneiir des Fonts et Chausees, Representant des Hautes Alpes a r Assemble Nationcde. Referring to the phenomena of torrents brought under review in that work by M. Surell, and in the Sequel supplied by himself, M. Cezanne says : — " There may be given in a few words a resxmie of the whole series of these phenomena. " The mountains are the result of a series of upheavals following STATEMENT BY M. ofZANNB. 343 one upon another in the same region, A final agitation gave to the different chains of these the existing elevation; it elevated the summit and opened up deep fissures or divisions, which have become the valleys of the present time. From the time this occurred the waters began to fashion the thalwegs, following the line which best suited them; wearing down outlets and filling up basins. It is necessary to admit, or to assume, that the depth or thickness of the alluvial deposits in the bottom of certain valleys — for instance, those of the Isere in the Graisivaudau, or of the Rhine in Alsace, — is to be reckoned by hundreds, and perhaps by thousands, of metres or yards ; for even yet certain lakes existing in depressions of the Alps have their bottom below the level of the sea. " After a long series of ages the mountains assumed the leading features which they now exhibit, when, the climate changing, great glaciers carried on actively the work of erosion ; these have planed away escarpments, and fashioned into something like horizontal lines the rocky belts of the valleys. " Dehddes, or inundations, from the escape of the waters of pent-up lakes, and deluges resulting from the tremendous rains of summers on the extensive fields of ice, have carried away and deposited in the principal valleys in certain favourable places, but more especially at the debouches of lateral gorges, the masses of loess which have formed cones in the higher plains, and in which the water-courses have subsequently dug out the secondary valleys, " At a later period, after the melting away of those glaciers, the torrents seized upon the bared mountains ; and without restraint they have dug out their basins, and have again taken up the materials disintegrated by the glaciers, and deposited these in the gigantic cones which give to certain regions a physiognomy peculiarly their own " But after a time the forests, spreading by degrees, stifled the waters under a mantle of verdure ; the torrents became extinct, — an era of peace and of compai'ative quiet supervened in the mountains ; then the tribes of men, who during the glacial period rambled over the low-lying plains, in company with the reindeer, the aurochs, and the bears, began to spread themselves in the high-lying valleys. The most ancient settlements were made at the gorges of the torrents, towards the summit of the cone ; in point of fact, there are to be found in the mountain valleys very few of these gorges in which we do nut meet either with an existing village or with an ancient ruin. " Ju this location, which was then one favourable to their pursuits, 344 ACTION OF FORESTS ON THE FLOW OF UIVEUB. the primary inhabitants could profit by the exceptional fertility of the cone of deposits ; they had nothing to fear from the principal river, which flowed through the lower-lying lands, nor from |the torrent, which was then extinct ; they commanded the plain, and found themselves at the gate of the mountains ; the adjacent gorge supplied them with water, the forest supplied them with wood, the rock supplied them with stone, and their flacks spread themselves over the verdant ridges around them, " Little by little, a reckless use of the forests and of the pasturage disturbed the equilibrium of the natural forces ; and now the old sore is re-opened, and anew, by man's deed, the mountains are inoculated with the leprosy of the torrents. The evil has gone on increasing during prolonged ages of disorder and recklessness ; the position of the cultivated grounds, and of the villages established at the dehouche of the torrents, has now become critical in the extreme ; and unless we go back, as we have done ; to the olden times, we are unable to account for men having taken up their dwelling in the spots, of all othei's, which at this day appear to be those which are more immediately threatened. " But at last an era of reparation begins ; and, thanks to the eminent men who have in byegone years given their mind to the work, the next generation may hope to see the final decline of the modern re- newed Torrential Era." In 1874 was published Les Torrents leur lois, leur causes, leur efds: Moyens de les reprimeur et de les utiliser : leur action geologique uuiverselle, par Michel Costa de Bastelica, Conservateur des Eaux et Forks. This work treats of another aspect or of another department of the subject than any discussed in the treatises already mentioned, which the author designates, — Le phenomhie torreiitiel, or la torreiitialiiG ; and thus is opened up another chapter of the natural history of torrents. In speaking of the good done by forests on the face of moun- tains forming a basin drained by water-courses, he says their bene- ficial action is manifold ; and though this manifold action it may be difficult to unfold, the attempt to do this will place beyond all question that their beneficial action on the water-course is at once most marked and considerable. " In the discussions which have taken place on this subject," saya he, " the point which has engrossed attention to some extent has STATEMENT BY M. OOSTA DE JSAbTELlOA. 245 been almost exclusively the permeability or impermeability of the soil, and the proportion borne by the water absorbed to that which flows off. This is certainly an important question, and no difficulty is found in showing that forests diminish to an enormous extent the amount of water which flows away ; but the service which they render is perhaps greater still in regulating, as they do, the flow, and in securing the delivery of only water of perfect fluidity, " The study of torrents has shown that the evil done consists not so much in the greater or less volume of water discharged as in the disturbances or perturbations of the flow connected with this. The principal causes of these are sudden changes or variations in the delivery and in the degree of fluidity of the flood. And if it be shown that the forests have, in relation to both of these, a regulating power superior to that of any other force operating on the torrent, it will be proved that they are the most potent means of extinguish- ing torrents. " If we could expose, by a vertical section, a wooded slope, it would show in the upper portion a layer of varymg thickness, but most frequently of from 30 to 40 centimetres (12 or 15 inches) of humus in which the fibrous rootlets ai-e so developed that the whole has the appearance of a woolly material. This layer is at once a sponge and a filter. The large roots of the trees penetrate more or less into the subjacent rock. " When the rain falls on ground covered with wood a considerable portion of the water is restored to the atmosphere by evaporation • another portion is absorbed by the immense expansion of foliage and boughs. If the rain be prolonged the water comes at length to the ground, which again is capable of absorbing an immense quantity. A flow from this is slow to establish itself; it is necessary, first that the saturation of the sponge-like layer be complete ; and when this is effected — when the water has been able to make a passage for it- self by an infinite number of imperceptible channels — the flow, like that of a charged syphon, maintains a certain uniformity of flow and this it continues for a long time after the rain has ceased. " So much is this the case that opponents have alleged that forests are more hurtful than beneficial, as they tend to prolong floods. The flood is prolonged, it is true, but the delivery is regulated — diminished at the commencement and increased at the close ; the total quantity of water drained away takes a longer time to flow ; it flows durino- the whole of that longer time ; and, what is of more importance, it flows vmiformly and equally, with no sudden variations, and thereby much 246 ACTION OP FORESTS ON THE PLOW OP RIVERS. evil is avoided ; and, what is of more importauce still, the forest acts at the same time as a filter, delivers no water but what is of perfect fluidity, scarcely even discoloured by the washing away of organic matter, and unable to wash away the earth of the subsoil pi-otected against erosion by its thick covering of humus. " When, on the contrary, the rain falls on a soil stript of vegetation, it tends to cut this up into ravines, and it does so if the tenacity and resistance of the ground be not sufficient to withstand it ; and the flood is subject to great variations in its current, carrying oS", here and there the earth and other debris of the soil. " Forests have, then, a double action ; on the one hand they consolidate the soil, on the other hand they reduce and regulate the flow of the current, — acting at once both on the delivery and on the perturbation, — in other words, on the primary cause and on the secondary causes of the overflowing of water-courses. " It has been tried to subject to experiment and observation the meteorological and hydrological eftects of forests. And doubtless studies so interesting are by no means lost to science. They cannot be too much encouraged ; but it should bs borne in mind that they can have comparatively little value in this question, seeing that they cannot take cognisance of this modulating and regulating action. " In regard to any flood which we may wish to make the subject of study, it would avail comparatively little to know what quantity of rain falls annually in the basin drained by it. What is necessary to be known is — In what way did the flow of the flood operate during the duration of the flood, taking into account the quantity of water discharged, and all the causes or sources of perturbation operating — which is a much more difl&cult problem. " And in resolving the whole question into the permeability of the soil, and its capacity of absorption, it appears importance is attached exclusively to the reduction of the volume of water which flows away. It seems to be forgotten in this that water-courses, if steadily supplied, constitute it may be said the principal riches of a country, and the most potent of all instruments of labour. " By their modulating power forests act as vast reservoirs, not only in preventing sudden variations of delivery during a flood, but in feeding the water-courses and raising their level during the period of exhaustion. In what relates specially to the torrents of the Alps it has been demonstrated that the renewed devastating power which they have exhibited, and which has assumed such portentous magni- tude iu the course of the last forty years is a consequence of the dis- STATEMENT BY M. COSTA DE BASTELICA. 247 appearance of the woods. When one goes over these lands — cut into ravines and despoiled of all vegetation — he meets with numerous stumps of pine and of larch, which testify that at a period as yet still recent they were covered by vast foi-ests. " M. Surell cites, as an example of the action of forests, the torrent of Savines, now completely extinguished, and the basin of which is everywhere adorned with a magnificent forest of firs and pines. The forest has effectively contributed to the extinction of the torrent, but at this point the following observations may be made : " This natural extinction of the torrent goes back to ages most remote. The cone is of a perfect geometric regularity. At its base, opposite the Durance, it presents a troncature or section, produced by the erosion of the river, and the escarpment of which is about 30 metres (100 feet) in height at its culminating point. This section of the ground lays open the interior of the torrential deposit formed of rolled pebbles. " The whole surface of the cone is cultivated, and on one portion has been built the large village of Savines, the chief place of the canton. " This enormous heap of deposit is situated at the foot of a high mountain called Morgon, in the flanks of which are dug out a pro- found gorge surrounded by a vast basin, the work of the water. All the upper slopes of the mountain are hung with a beautiful forest, producing firs more than 30 metres (100 feet) in height, and 3 metres (10 feet) in girth. The lower slopes are deeply ravined, but wooded to the very edge of the thalwegs. A pretty strong stream rises from the principal gorge, but it swells but little ; it carries down no material, and it flows into the Durance by a bed deeply enclosed in the left bank of the cone. Extinction and stability are complete ; but it is certain that if the forest should be made to disappear, anew would disorder revive, and this with the same intensity as before. " In going over the basin with attention, I satisfied myself that everywhere the bed of the thalwegs of the gorges and the ravines formed of the hard rock, were absolutely incapable of being under- mined. From this it may be inferred, that during the activity of the torrent, when the basin was being deepened more and more, the sur- face could not have been wooded. But from the time that the waters had everywhere reached the hard rock, and that they could no more bo undermined and washed deeper, their thalwegs in the upper slopes tended to consolidate themselves, taking their natural stable declivity ; 248 ACTION OP FORESTS ON THE PLOW OP RIVERS. and from that time vegetation could begin to take hold and complete the extinction. " This remark is important in this way, that if the disappearance of a forest always gives birth to torrential disturbances, it does not always hold true that one can put a stop to them by the planting of a forest alone, " Much as an unstable ground is protected by being wooded — though it maintains itself and behaves, in a hydrological point of view, as do the most solid lands, if the wood come to disappear, if the ground be deeply ravined, if the bottom of the ravine continues to be easily undermined and washed away — it becomes extremely difficult to establish vegetation on the mountains, which continually crumble away, and which with this instability no longer retain any trace of vegetable soil. " In the Alps there are numerous cases of old mountains which crumble away when the foot of the slope is undermined by the water. And one is thus left, if he desire to effect a radical and prompt ex- tinction of a torrent, to give, artificially, to the bottom of the ravine a power of resistance to undermining and washing away, by appro- priate works of consolidation. " But be this as it may, the potent action of forests is beyond all question. Whatever be the character of the woods — timber forests, coppice-wood, or simple shrubbery — all contribute to give firmness to the soil, to retard and to regulate the flow of the water drained off. " In comparing the different kinds of woods, it may be said that lofty timber forests, with their vast apparatus of foliage at a great elevation above the soil, are of most use with a view to meteorological and hydrological effects ; and that young trees serve perhaps better to insure the consolidation of the soil on steep declivities. But as generally, on poor land, the soil of timber forests covers itself with branches, &c., it follows that a mixture of the two kinds of woods accomplishes best the end which it is sought to effect." He speaks with similar expHcitness in regard to the effect of gazonnement ; and in reference to artificial structures other than those which he advocated, he remarks : " MM. Scipion Gras et Phillipe Breton have also loudly proclaimed, in a way the most explicit, that the boisement of the valley appeared to them the most efficacious measure which could be adopted against torrents, and that it was only in default of proceedings with a view to extinction behig adopted — the application of which, when they wrote, was still surrounded with obscurity and uucertaiiity — that they proposed the STATEMENT BY M. MARCHAND. 249 measures they did, as means of diminishing, at least provisionally, the danger. The torrents in the Alps which have given occasion for the study of these phenomena owe their origin to the melting of snow on higher lying mountains in summer, and to orages, or tremendous storms of rain, which fall in spring. These torrents occasioned by the latter are generally the most destructive. " M. L. Marchand, Garde General des Forets, says on this subject, — " When the torrential rains of tha Alps are made a subject of study it is soon seen that they are all of them occasioned by a particular wind called the foehn. These winds are generally violent, and present almost always the chiiracter of orages, or storms of rain ; it follows that great quantities of rain are poured down upon the soil ; and to this may be attributed disasters sometimes coming upon spots which seemed to be placed in the best possible situation and circum- stauces to bear the most persistent rains. " The fcehn is a wind which blows from the south, often with extraordinary force ; it is peculiar to the Alps, and is felt throughout their whole extent. Having climbed over Italy, where it is no other than the sirocco, the following are its chief characteristics : — It comes from the south, but its direction is modified at every step, either by mountain chains or by valleys. Its origin is still a subject of discussion : according to some it originates in the Sahara, according to others it originates in the Gulf of Mexico. It gives to the sky a strangely-marked, peculiar, heavy, whitish aspect ; and the rain falls on the second or third day following its appearance. " The wind arrives on the Mediterranean coast loaded with vapour; it there encounters that immense calcareous semi-circular wall of the Maritime Alps, and it scales their higher slopes ; but in consequence of their covering of forests, and the great heat concentrated by them, in doing so it only attains a higher temperature. It is rarely the case that the moisture is condensed or precipitated on these countries which it rapidly traverses ; but it cools by degrees as it mounts the Maritime Alps, and on reaching the upper basin of the Var and its affluents it deposits an enormous quantity of water ; then it continues to advance northwards to French Comt6, before reaching which latitude it has lost much of its force. " If a glance be cast over a map of the Southern Alps, it may be observed that from mount Viso there part off great chains running perceptibly from east to west ; the fcehn comes up the valleys of the basin of the Var, or of the upper sources of the Durance, it strikes upon the first chain parting from the col of the Pas-de-la-Cavale, or of 2d 250 ACTION OF FOREST.S ON THF, FLOW OF RIVERS, the Grandes-Communes, taking a deviation to the north of Digne. It is against this chain that the first great storms of rain dash them- selves. The clouds in passing over these mountains seek the cols or lower parts, and they arrive in the valley of the Ubaye by the openings of Grande-Commune, of Enohastrayes, of theCold'Allos, of theLawerq, of the Bas, and in fine, by the great passage of the mountains of the Seyne. ' " The foehn forces a passage for itself into the valley of the Durance ; goes up this throughout its whole length ; it makes its way also by some cols of the chains which separate this valley from that of the Ubaye, and more especially by those which are opposite Embrun. " If now the forest chart of the country spoken of and the chart of t\iQ foehn be compared, it will be seen that the mountains of Seyne have been cleared of woods, and that the whole southern upper slope of the valley of the Ubaye is devoid of forests ; in a word, that all the parts which bear the direct attacks of the foehn — those which arrest it — force it to ascend them, and to pour upon them masses of water, are all of them almost entirely cleared of woods. Here we have no longei', as is the case above Mentou, a tropical sun to warm the soil ; the wind has cooled down as it rose higher from the sea, and it is obliged with fatal effect to precipitate in the form of rain the moisture it has borne thither ; and at that place where the forests are an absolute necessity, and where the most considerable quantities of water fall, there it is that they have completely disappeared. " This summary is incomplete, but it may suffice to render intelli- gible the general course of the orages, or storms of rain in the Alps, and the intensity of these on certain parts, which are generally those at which the foehn is compelled to rise considerably or to change its direction. The celebrated torrent of Riou-Bordoux, near Barcelonette, in face of the opening at Alios, is exactly so situated. The portion of the Alps situated below the department of the Is^re almost completely relieves the foehn of its humidity, and this is the classic region of the orages. ^^^he foehn does not confine itself to the production of torrential rains ; it is not less terrible in its action on the snow, and on the glaciers. As has been stated, it blows sluggishly and warm for one, two, or three days before the rain appears ; if at this time the ground be covered with snow this is not slow to melt rapidly, and absorbing a great quantity of water it becomes like a sponge ; then supervenes the rain which expedites the process and brings on a kind oi debdcle, or breaking up, and the water arrives in great quantities in the STATEMENT BY M, MAllCHAND. 251 valleys. If the raiu do not supervene the action of the foehn may suffice to cause all the snow to melt aLd to produce great consequent disasters. In 1856 the inundations of the valley of Barcelonette had no other cause of production ; the maximum of the flood was attained under a magnificent sky, and all the water came from the melting of the snow which covered the mountaiu. In Switzerland the terrible inundations of 1868 had in general a double origin — with warm con- tinuous rains were combined the melting of the glaciers. It is always in the spring, or with the first snows of October, that the latter torrents are to be dreaded if the moantaius be not covered with glaciers ; where this is the case the danger is constant, " The foehrh sometimes produces geueral raius over the whole of the country over which it blows, but sometimes only local orages, or storms of rain. This can easily be accounted for when it is considered that the contour of the Alps admits of one current of air passing up a valley to be in its cause and in its effects quite independent of a current passing up a neighbouring valley, though they have had a common origin, — and that a difference in the cooling of the currents of air may occasion a precipitation of rain in one valley, while the neighbouring valleys, being warmer, are enjoying a cloudless sky." When the late Emperor Napoleon came to power he took steps to give effect to the observations and reasonings of MM. Fabre and Surell, which the pre-occupation of public men with political changes had previously prevented. In 1860 the work of reboisement was begun. To the report given by the Director-General of the Administration of Forests, of what had been done in 1867-1868, are appended a number of monographs on works executed in different departments, embracing the departments of the Isere, the High Alps, the Low Alps, Drome, Gard, H^rault, Aude, and the High Pyrenees, all telling of success. Amongst others, of which details are given of what had been done, and of what results had followed, is mentioned the case of the torrent of Saint Marthe, on the right bank of the Durance. Of this M. Costa de Bastelica, in a work already cited, remarks : — " This torrent supplies amongst many others a remarkable example of what can be done. In 184:1, when M. Surell wrote his valuable work, this torrent had a sad celebrity for its violence. It swept away every bridge thrown across its course. On every occasion of a storm of rain the inhabitants of the banks of the river were thrown into dis- quietude, fearing to see it burst their dykes, and spread over the plain. 252 ACTION OF FOKESrtJ ON THE i'hOW OF RIVEBS. •' The works undertaken with a view to secure its extinction were only begun in 1864, and in 1869, when M. Cezanne, before the publication of his work, did me the honour to allow me to show to him and explain our works, he noted the fact that the work of ex- tinction was so complete that a simple foot-bridge placed only 50 centimetres, or 20 inches, above the torrent, had become a work that bade defiance to the greatest floods which now occur. This foot-bridge still stands, and there have been no want of violent storms of rain : in the interval there has been no change in the meteoric conditions. The effect of the extinction of the torrentiality was then attained and certain, and this so much so that the syndicate, organised by the proprietors interested, having no longer anything to do, dissolved itself." In accordance with this fact are facts innumerable illustrative of the efficiency of vegetation in extinguishing torrents and preventing the formation of torrential floods, by which disastrous inundations are occasioned. Of these, as has been stated, details have been given in a separate volume,* and with these details copious information in regard to legislative measures and practical operations by which the results in question were obtained, together with resumes of the works which have now been cited, and notices of others which have been published on the subject. In the conclusion of the volume there are remarks on the pre- ventability by reboisement and gazonnemeiU of such sudden and dis- astrous inundations as that which in 1875 proved so destructive to Toulouse and the valley of the Garonne. A similar inundation of the Loire occurred in 1846. In a valuable work by M. Valles, published in 1875, entitled " Utude sur les in- ondations leur causes et leurs effets" the author denies the efficacy of reboiseinent as a means of preventing inundations. But M. A. F. Hericourt, in writing of this work in the Annales Forestieres for De- cember 1857, in an article entitled Les inondations et le livre de M. Valles, combats his views ; and he thus maintains his position that the reboisement of a portion of the upper basin of the Loire would have prevented the inundation of 1846 : — " Accepting," says he, " the data of M. Valles, who has analysed with much care the various phenomena • Reboisement in Prance ; or, Records of the Replanting of the Alps, the Cevennes, and the Pyrenees with trees, herbage, and bush, with a view to arresting and preventing the destructive consequences and effects of Torrents. London : H. S. King & Co. 1876. STATEMEM' BV M. HERlt'OUliT. 253 which characterised the flood of October 1846, in the upper basin of the Loire, I will admit with him that if we could have held back 175,000,000 cubic metres of water, the inundation which proved so sad a calamity to France would not have proved so painful an event. The upper basin of the Loire, as far as Roanne, comprises an area of 640,000 hectares (158,080,000 acres), of which at least a third, say 213,000 hectares (52,693,000 acres), might be profitably re-forested. The inundation was caused by a rain which lasted sixty hours, and poured upon the soil a sheet of water 153 millimetres (about 6 inches) in depth. This portiou of the basin of the Loire, therefore, received 979,200,000 cubic metres of water. On the hypothesis of M. Valles, 244,800,000 cubic metres were absorbed. There accord- ingly remained for superficial flow, 734,400,000 cubic metres. "But let us suppose that, in 1846, the 213,000 hectares above- mentioned to have been covered with massive woods, and then let us calculate what would have happened. These 213,000 metres would have received, as their share, 290,000,000 cubic metres. The absorbent qualities of the soil are increased 40 per cent, by reforesting, and this operation would have withdrawn 130,116,000 cubic metres from the superficial flow, which would have reduced the amount upon the re- timbered portions to 195,174,000 cubic metres. But this liquid mass would have been hindered in its course down the valley, as we have above explained, by the passive resistances of every kind which the forest presents, and a half, at least, would not have arrived until after the other half, which had fallen in other portions of the basin, had passed otf. We may therefore conclude that the superficial flow would not have exceeded 500,000,000 cubic metres, and that the calamities occasioned by the inundation of 1846 would have been completely prevented by reforesting." As rain is the precipitation from the air of a quantity of moisture which it can no longer retain, so rivers are composed of the draining ofi" of a quantity of the rainfall which the ground upon which it has fallen can no longer retain ; and — while the flow and escape of the rainfall is arrested by much of it being absorbed and retained by the decaying debris of leaves and twigs lying on the surface of the ground in a forest, and by the humus in the soil, and by being carried to a great depth along the channels of the roots — a secondary effect of this is to regulate, and, in doing so, to some extent to equalise over a considerable time the continuous flow and delivery of the streams and rivers by which it is drained. 254 ACTION OF FORESTS OX THE FLOW OF RIVERS. lu not a few of the statements which are given in preceding chap- ters in regard to the effects of the destruction of forests, mention is made of what had previously been perennial streams being often dry, while at other times the water-course was filled from bank to bank with a rushing torrent. There might be as much water delivered by these in the course of the year as ever there was — though this might be questionable, and the observations cited by Herr Wex, and given above, show that in some of the principal rivers of Europe a greatly increased irregularity of flow has been accompanied by a diminished annual delivery — but the flow was irregular, and the correction of this is a consequence of the absorption referred to. Among the con- sequences of this may be reckoned the following : — 1. The devastating and destructive effects of floods are mitigated, if not altogether prevented. 2. The prolonged retention of the rainfall in an inland situation increases both the moisture of the atmosphere and of the soil, by prolonging the periods of evaporation and infiltra- tion. 3. From both of these effects will follow other consequences tending to perpetuate the results so obtained. 4. Not only will the promotion of vegetation, desirable as an end, be accomplished, but one of the meteorological effects of vegetation, the increased or maintained humidity of the atmosphere, will be secured. CHAPTER VI. On the Correspondence between the Distribution of the Rainfall AND OP Forests. As the student of Anatomy takes up now a muscle, now a nerve, now an artery, and now a vein, and tx-aces it by careful dissection from all integuments and other structures with which it may be united, giving to it for the time his undivided attention, and leaving for subsequent consideration the connections and relations in which each stands to each and each stand to all, so would I pass from the consideration of one subject to the consideration of another, treating each as for the time the one subject with which we have to do, and leaving for sub- sequent consideration the various facts evolved in their combined connections and relations. It has been alleged that the distribution of forests corresponds to some extent with the distribution of the rainfall. And this raises the questions, Which is cause and which is effect 1 or are they both consequences of a common cause 1 and in either case to what extent may they be legitimately regarded as cause and effect 1 In Scottish courts of justice it is customary for the public prose- cutor to lead evidence and then to state his case as founded on this, while in English courts he states his case and then leads evidence to establish it. I do not admit that I have got a case to establish ; but I shall state what my belief is, adduce observations in illustration of different particulars, and then state what I consider to have been proved. Tt appears to me that observations made show in many cases a general correspondence between the distribution of the two — that in many cases the distribution of the rainfall has been determined in a great measure by the geographical position and by the contour of the country, and that this distribution of the rainfall may have determined the distribution of the forests — but that the forests once established may have exercised an important influence in further modifying the distribution of the rainfall in time and in space. 256 DISTRIBUTION OF RAINFALL AND OF FORESTS. Sect. I. — On the Measure of Correspondence between the Distribution of the Rainfall and of Forests. I have said it appears to me that observations made show in many cases a general correspondence in the distribution of the rainfall and of forests. It may occur to many on the mention of this that while there are found forests covering extensive plains, their special habitat appears to be the mountain side — and that the rainfall in the vicinity of a mountain range is in general greater than it is on the horizontal area of an extensive plain. But the correspondence is more marked than this alone would inti- mate. It happens to be the case that, in some cases, the observations have been given to the world by observers having decided views in regard to the connection of cause and effect, and in illustration of their views ; but at this stage they are adduced only as illustrative of the measure of correspondence which has been observed. The first observations I adduce are some brought before the Meet- ing of the British Association for the Promotion of Science, held at Brighton in 1867, by Dr Brandis, Superintendant-General of Forests in India, in a paper On the Geographical Distribution of Forests in India. Dv Brandis considering India as divided, by observation of the rainfall, into arid, dry, and wet districts, stated that in the west corner of India was what might be called the arid tract, extending from the coast of Cutch and from Scinde in the south to the Salt range in the north, and from the hills of Beloochistan in the west to the Aravalli range in the east. The average rainfall in this district was less than fifteen inches. Throughout this arid part of India the spontaneous arborescent vegetation was extremely scanty, although a thin sprinkling of low thorny scrub on the hills offered ample and interesting employment to the botanist. In this region the work of the forester was limited to those tracts which stretched along the Indus and its principal tributaries, watered by the annual overflow of the river during summei-, or which could be otherwise irrigated. Thus in Scinde there were on both sides of the Indus river 352,000 acres of Government forest maintained solely by the overflow of the river and by percolation. The result of the deflec- tion of a river from its course was that the forest near the old bed frequently perished. Outside this arid tract there were two belts, with an annual rainfall of between fifteen and thirty inches, which might be called DISTRIBUTION OF RAINFALL IN INDIA. 257 the dry zones of India. The spontaneous arborescent vegetation was scanty, save in the moist lauds aloug the great rivers, but it was better than in the arid tract. In the southeru dry zone, comprising part of the Deccan, was the country of tlie sandal wood, a small tree which did not grow gregariously, and did not form continuous forests. Here, too, were the ancient irrigation works, tanks, and gigantic stone dams across rivers ; and where water was thus supplied, fields and gardens were most luxuriant. " Beyond these dry zones, and in the rest of India generally, the rainfall exceeded 30 inches; but even in these moister parts of the country the conditions for forest vegetation weie not everywhere as favourable in India as in Europe. Eeally thriving forests were only found where the fall exceeded 45 inches, and luxuriant vegetation was limited to those belts which had a much higher rainfall. Within the moist regions, with a rainfall exceeding 60 inches (in one place rising to 250 inches) and in Eastern lndi;i, tliere was a great variety of good forest. Of the Deodar forests of the North-West Him;ihiya a small portion only fell into this belt, the greater pirt lying in laud where the rainfall was less than 60 inches. Between the dry and moist regions was a vast tract of country with an annual rainfiU of more than 30, liut less than 61inches, comprising the greater portion of the upper Ga:igetic phiiu, the whole of Ceutral India, and the western side of the peninsula. In this part of India the main obstacle to a luxuriant forest growth was not so much an in- suflBcient supply of moisture, as its unequal distribution over the seasons of the year. Of the moist zones, there were two in which the annual rain exceed-^d 75 inches, the smaller one along the western coast of the peuinsula, ami the more extensive one on the outer Himalaya ranges, the hills of Bengal, and the coasts of Burraah. " Ou the western coast the rainfall was moderate as far down as Surat, 47 inches, and Bombay had 72 inches ; but Janna, only a few miles inland, had 102. Further down the coast the rain- fall was heavier. Rutnaghem had 115, and Canara had 123 inches. Approaching the soutaeru extremity of the peniusula, the rainfall gradually diminished to 28 inches at C.ipe Comoriu. In this narrow moist belt were found some of the finest forests in India. The teak forests of Noi'tli Canara, protected by the difficult nature of the country, the teak aud blackwood forests of Wynaad and the Anamallays and the forests of Travancore were reputable forests, which might stand comparison with the oak and beech forests of the Spessart, and the oak forests of Central France. The teak planta- 28 258 HBLATION OF FORESTS TO tions of Nellumboor, in Malabar, which were commenced in 1844, and now covered upwards of 2,400 acres, were a splendid instance of luxuriant forest growth on a good soil, in a foreign climate, and under good management. The moist region of the Himalaya and the eastern part of India had a much larger extent. The Kangra valley, in the Punjab, had a rainfall of 100 inches, and from here the moist narrow belt, but widening gradually, ran in a south-westerly direction as far as Sikkim. Near Simla, the width of this belt, with a rainfall of 75 inches, was not more than 30 miles. Near Darjeel- inz, it extended into and comprised the whole of Assam, Eastern Bengal, as far as Dacca and British Burmah. A second belt of between 60 and 75 miles, ran outside the foot of the Himalaya, comprising the estuary of the Ganges and part of Orissa. Within these moist regions of northern and eastern India, were a great variety of good f )rests. Only a small portion of the deodar forests of the north-west Himalaya fell within this belt, the greater part lying inland, where the rainfall was less than sixty inches. The india-rubber forests of Assam and Cachar were within the range of the heavy rainfall as well as the ironwood forests of Arracan and the teak forests of British Burmah. " Between the dry and moist belts there lay, as has been intimated above, a vast tract of country with an annual rainfall varying from thirty to sixty inches. In this part of India the main obstacle to a luxuriant forest growth was not so much an insufficient supply of moisture as its unequal distributions over the seasons of the year. In the grenter portion there was a long dry season and a short rainy season. During the dry season the leaves and grass get excessively dry and inflammable, and the smallest spark was then sufficient to create a conflagration, which did not stop until it had reached the limits of the forest. These jungle-fires destroyed millions of seed- lings, and those which escaped were scarred and had in them the germs of early decay. The jangle-fires were sufficient to explain the remarkable fact that, in a large proportion of the forests of Southern and Central India, and in some of those of the north, the mature trees were unsound or hollow." I could scarcely desire a better illustration of what I mean by a general correspondence between the distribution of rainfall and of forests, leaving out of view all that may be said bearing upon the question of cause and effect, than is afforded by this statement. A view similar to that advanced in regard to the geographical distribution of forests in India is advanced in regard to the distriba- tion of forests in America, by Mr Ciiarles M lulareu, in an article on America in the " EncyclopoeJia Britannica." In this the writer says, — " We are induced to think that in all countries having a summer heat exceeding 70°, the presence or absence of natural woods, and their greater or less luxuriance, may be taken as a measure of the amount of humidity and of the fertility of the soil. Short and heavy rains in a warm country will produce grass, which, having its roots near the surface, springs up in a few days, and withers when the moisture is exhausted; but transitory rains, however heavy, will not nourish trees, because after the sur- face is saturated with water the rest runs off, and the moisture lodged in the soil neither sinks deep enough nor is in sufficient quantity to furnish the giants of the forest with the necessary sustenance. It may be assumed that twenty inches of rain falling moderately, or at intervals, will leave a greater permanent supply in the soil than forty inches falling, as it sometimes does in the torrid zone, in as many hours. It is only necessary to qualify this con- clusion by stating that something depends on the subsoil. If that is gravel or a rock full of fissures, the water imbedded will soon drain off; if it is clay or a compact rock, the water will remain in the soil. It must be remembered also that both heat and moisture diminish as we ascend in the atmosphere, while evaporation increases ; and hence that trees will not grow on very high ground, though its position in reference to the sea and the prevailing winds should be favourable in other respects." Assuming as unquestionable that the trade winds are the agents which transport the moisture exhaled from its surface to the interior of great continents, where it is precipitated as rain, or dew, or snow ; and that mountains, by obstructing aerial currents and presenting great inequalities of temperature, cause precipitation, this writer says, — " Let us consider then what will be the effect of a mural rid^e like the Andes in the situation which it occupies. In the re '■ioa within the 30th parallel the moisture swept up by the trade wind from the Atlantic will be precipitated, part upon the mountaius of Brazil, which are but low, and so distributed as to extend far iato the interior; the portion which remains will be borne westward, and, losing a little as it proceeds, will be arrested by the Andes, and fall down in showers on their summits. The aerial current will now be deprived of all the humidity which it can part with, and arrive in a state of complete exsiccation at Peru, where no rain will consequently 260 RELATION OF FORESTS TO fiill. That even a much lower riflge t.lian the Andes may intercept the whole muisture of the atiaoi[)'aerj is proved by a weU ktiowa phenomenon in India, whea the G^Miits, a cliain only SuOO or 4030 feet high, d.vide samner frotu winter, aa it is called: that is, they have copious ruins on their windward side, while on the other the weather remains clear and dry ; and the rains regularly change froai the west side to the east wiih the monsoons. " In the region heyoud the 30th parallel this effect will be reversed. The Andes will in this case serve as a screen to intercept the moisture brought by the prevailing west winds from the Pacific Ocean ; rains will be copious on tlieir summits, and in Chili on the their western declivities, but mme will fall on the plains to the eastward, except occasionally when the winds blow from the Atlantic." And he adds, — " The views on the sal)jeut of climate we have been unfolding will enable us to throw some light on an interesting point, the distribution of ft) ests." Thtre is a[>pended a small map of America, in which by long hatched lines are shown the positious of the chains of mountains ; white spaces rL-presout land* o.i wliich little or no wooi grows ; shading represent the regiou-s of fjrjsts, dease forests bjing repre- sented by double sl»a ling, au I thiuuar o les by open Hues; while arrows i.idic ate the direction of prevailing winds. And in explanation it is stated, — " In speaking of the rejim of forests, we neither restrict tie term to those districts where the n itural wojds present au un- brukjn continuity, nor extend it to every place where a few trees grow in open plains. It is not easy to give a de.l;iitiression we vvisli to be under- stood as applying i: to groan 1 where the natural wools cover more than one-fourth of the surface." An 1 there is given the following statement in regard to the distribution of the forests, — " In North America, to the west of the Rocky mountains, is thus represented a woody region, extending from lat. 35' to about 58°, of unknown breadth, densely wooded from the coast, more thinly wooded towards the mountain range ; to the east of the mountains, an extensive region stretching E.NE. to the ocean, partly a bare desert, partly covered with grass and clothed with trees. On the east coast and more to the south is the Allegany range, with dense forests on the east and the south and thin on the west, the forest region thus indicated being bounded by a curved line passing from the mouth of the St. Lawrence, in lat. 50", through Lake Huron to St. Luis in Mexico ; and an arrow points out the direction of the wind turned DISTRIBUTION OF RAINFALL. 261 from its course, ascending the valley of the Mississippi, and nourish- ing the western parts of these forests. To the south of lat. 30° the equatorial winds blowing from the east prevail ; and from 35° south- ward from the forest lands of the Rocky Mountains, is the table land of Me.xico, graduating in the north-west into the dry plains of Sonora and California, all bare or nearly bare of wood. From this region, down through the Isthmus of Panama, there are dense forests. These dense forests fork and stretch to some extent along the western coast of South America to Amotape, whence stretches a long strip of dry bare sand ; on the west side of the Andes, which constitute Lower Peru and the north part of Chili, a little to the north of the equator, about midway from both coasts, is the Llanos, (a bare plain of caraccas, nearly fenced round with mountains) ; passing this to eastward, the dense forests follow the coast line, stretching far into the interior, somewhat diminished in densit}', and forming the great region of forest which constitute the basin of the Amazon and occupies all the rest of Brazil. " Near the equator the moisture is so excessive that after 150 or 200 inches of rain have fallen on the east coast there is still sufficient humidity in the atmosphere to afford copious showers to all the country up to the Andes. Here, therefore, the woods reach from side to side of the continent. But as we recede from the equator the humidity diminishes rapidly, and though the continent becomes narrower towards the south the supply of rain falls off in a still greater proportion, and the forests extend over a much smaller space. At the foot of the Andes the forests extend to 16° or 18° south lat. ; on the east coast, to 25°, probably 30°. Thence, on the east coast are the Pampas, or open lands of Buenos Ayi'es, extending, on the east side of the Andes, from the latitudes mentioned to Cape Horn. ^ " But on the western side of the Andes, extending through the same latitude, are the forests of Chili, where the prevailing winds •which are from the west, coming loaded with the moisture of the Pacific Ocean, produce copious raiuSjto nourish the hei-bage and forests. This applies chiefly to the country south of the 35° parallel. From that to Coquimbo, lat. 30°, the wood is scanty." In this, as in the account given by Dr Brandis of the Geographical distribution of forests in India, we find, apart from the facts embodied in the statement, an illustration of a general correspon- dence between the distribution of the rainfall and of forests. Independent testimony on the distribution of the rftinfall in 262 RELATION OF FORESTS TO America is supplied by the Smithsonian Institution, unencumbered by any theory. The arrangements made by this Institution for col- lecting, collating, reducing, and utilizing meteorological observations are on the most ample scale. Towards the close of 1873 I received from Professor Henry a series of rainfall tables, comprising all the observations that have been made in regard to the rainMl in the United States since the settlement of Europeans in the country, and an intimation that they had com- menced a new epoch, and had subsequently to the publication of these tables distributed several hundred rain-gauges in addition to those previously used, and to those which had been been provided by the Gjverumeut in connection with the signal source ; aud three rain charts are given showing, from the material collected in the general table of results, the geographical distribution of rain over the area of the United States, with the average amount fallen during the year, and during the seasons of summer and winter. The first chart exhibits the results from 750 stations, and the others the result obtained from nearly the same number. In regard to the general character of the distributions of rain on the average throughout the year, it is stated, — " The most striking features of the phenomenon of rain, as delineated on the chart, are the apparent precision and continuity in the law of its distribution, and the great variation or range in its amount. Thus the curve, passing over places where the annual fall amounts to 40 inches, can be followed from New Brunswick, on the Bay of Fandy, to Texas ; the isohyetal line of 36 inches, similarly, runs without interruption from the St. Lawrence River to the mouth of the Rio Grande. The regularity of the curves is sufficiently disti-nct to mark out everywhere the progression in the deposition of the aqueous vapour. The annual amount varies from four inches in the Yuma aud Gila Deserts, at the head of the Gulf of California, to 80 inches and more on the Pacific Coast in Washington Territory ; on the Gulf Coast 6i inches appears to be the maximum amount, and 48 on the Atlantic Coast. " The principal supply of rain over the United States comes from the Gulf of Mexico ; its diffused vapour can be traced from the eastern slope of the Rocky Mountains to the Great Lakes ; while the supply of vapour from the Atlantic Ocean is distinctly traceable over that area lying north and east of Virginia. All States and Territories west of the Rocky Mountains receive their supply of rain from the condensed vapours of the Pacific Ocean. " There are distinct localities of entry of maximum rain from each DISTRIBUTION OF RAINFALIi. 263 of these basins of supply ; the vapours from the Pacific are deposited ■within a remarkably well-defined coast region between latitude 41° and our boundary at the Straits of Juan de Fuca ; the rain pours down with great intensity on the coast between the mouth of Columba River and Cape Flattery. It is surprising how little rain falls on the Pacific coast between San Diego and Cape Mendocino, and how quickly the atmosphere becomes drained of its vapour as we leave the coast and proceed inland in latitudes north of 41°. The coast range of mountains here act powerfully as condensers by forcing the air up their western slopes. " The densest part of the Gulf vapour is thrown over the delta of the Mississippi River, and as far east as longitude 8Q^ its axis of dlffasio7i can be traced distinctly to the west end of the Lake Erie : it is inclined towards the northeast for two reasons — the effect of the earth's rotation on a fl^w from the south, and the influence generally of the prevailing westerly winds. A second sweep over the country occurs in southern Florida, most likely due to the immediate proximity of the Gulf Stream ; and there is a thinl, as yet undefined, influx, passing through Georgia and South Carolina. " The condensation of vapor from the Atlantic is most apparent a short distance inland at the following localities : Along the coast of Maine near Eastport and near Portland, in central Connecticut, western Massachusetts, and extending to southern Vermont, and near the entrance of Chesapeake Bay. Upon the whole, hills and mountain ranges appear to have a comparatively small directive influence upon the distribution of the rain. Florida, which may be considered as almost perfectly flat, exhibits well-defined bounding lines of rain distribution. River courses also seem to influence the amount of rain, as along the Rio Grande. At the mouth of the Hudson River, the curves become suddenly contracted ; and some similar feature can perhaps be traced out on the Mississippi delta near New Orleans. Beyond furnishing by their evaporation a supply to the general fund of moisture, the Great Lakes do not appear to exercise any direct influence ; on the yearly average the rains along their borders are not increased. There is even a remarkably small amount of rain-fall in northern New York, close to Lake Ontario. The effect of equalizing the temperature produced by all large bodies of water has no doubt a direct influence upon the distribution of rain; the greater and more sudden the variations in temperature, the greater, comparatively, the rain-fall. " The laws of the distribution of the rain-fall, as far as they depend 264 RELATION OF FORESTS T(^ upon the changes of teraperatui'e and direction of wind, can be studied to better advantage by means of the two charts showing the dis- tribution in summer and in winter, tliau by that for the yeai*, since the l*^tter necessarily brings out the resultant phenomena, and should consequently be of greater complexity than either of those for the extreme seasons. "With a few exceptions, presently to be noticed, the distribution of rain in the extreme seasons is not very dissimilar from that of the year as a whole." It is stated in the report that the tables show that mountains and hills have apparently a comparative trifling divertive influence on the distributions of rain. Fur this conclusion some of my readers may not have been prepared. To what extent, if any, the distribution of forests may correspond with the distribution of rain is not referred to ; but in a work on the aspects presented by forests in different parts of the world, by M. F. S. Marny, we have notices of the forests in the United States, of which we may avail ourselves to see how far these independent records — the one of the rainfall, and the other of the forests — correspond. After a graphic description of the forests of South America, M. Marny says: — "On re-ascending into upper Mexico and reaching California, arborescent vegetation resumes, with regard to kinds, the character of our tempemte climates, but it still preserves its gigantic character which belongs to the trees of the New World. In Oregon, the pines that fill the forests spread along the sea shore seem to be the kings of all the pines in the universe. Their diameter is often 5 mfetrcs, their height surpasses sometimes 100, and their cones are 15 inches long. The pine lamhertina gives to the coast of California an imposing but melancholy aspect. The lines of pines run alnng the shore as far as Russian America, where they are associated with oaks and birches. Their less lofty species prevail in the forests of New Hanover, of New Georgia, where they adorn, with sycamores and maples, the slopes which inpline towards the ocean " Along the coast, from lat. 50° to 41", we have according to the rain-chart a rainfall of from 60 to 40 inches, diminishing as we pro- ceed inland to .52, 44, 32, 30 ; and in the longitudes of Nevada, extending thence to Minnesota, Nebraska, and Kansas, 16 and 20, with no mention of forests, but in the State last-named it rises to 20, 24, and 28. M. Marny proceeds : — " Crossing the Appalachian and the Rocky DISTRIBUTION OF RAINFALL. 265 Mountains, we encounter new lines of forest-trees. One of the first is traced by the bald cypress, which seems to be surrounded by natural boundaries. These are protuberances formed upon the roots of this conifera, and they often rise to a metre in height : which barriers defend the trunk against the attacks of large animals. These cypresses compose gigantic thickets, which cover the swamps of the lower Mississippi, of the Arkansas, of the Red River, and of Florida, and extend as far as the mouth of the Ohio. It was under the vast shade of one of these trees that Cortez and all his army found a refuge in Mexico. Their wide stems, of conical form, are crowned with a multitude of horizontal branches, which are entangled with each othei", and confounded with those of the neighbouring cypresses. These vaults of foliage, which are frequently superimposed, give to the forests of this cypress an aspect quite peculiar. The short leaves of a sombre green, represent on drawing near a kind of crape, which impresses on these shades a funereal appearance. And under these gloomy domes, which are here and there enlightened by a few openings made by the winds, or due to the age of the branches, all the scourges of man, whether animate or inanimate, seem to have given each other the rendezvous. Death soars over these shady solitudes, which incessantly evoke the idea of it. Fevers, alligators, serpents, mosquitoes contend with each other for the woodman who goes with his axe to strike their trunks — the growth of ages. But no danger arrests the avidity of man, nothing terrifies the enter- prising descendant of the Anglo-Saxon race. The lumberers venture through these pestilential swamps, and precipitate into the waters of the Mississippi the trunks they have uprooted. " The Mississippi, that ancient father of waters, is indeed the great agent of destruction to these forests of North America ; its waters, especially at the period of inundation, are continually charged with enormous masses of wood, with gigantic rafts which encumber its bed, and are self-constracted with moi-e solidity than any raft made by the hand of man. These trains of trees are especially remarkable upon the Atachafalaya, one of the arms of the Mississippi. They are equally met with upon the Red River. One of the affluents of this river, the Nashita, is interrupted for a space of seventeen leagues by an almost uninterrupted succession of these rafts. M. de Humboldt has made known the same fact in the Orinoco, whose bed is unceas- ingly encumbered by a mass of trunks, which seem as if driven into the mud. "These swampy forests, by the destructive action of humidity, 2f 266 RELATION OP FORESTS TO THE finish by transforming themselves into vast bogs, which present the appearance of great inundated plains, whose surface might be covered with trees brought along by the waters. These immense stagnant pools, these seas of mud, still fui-nish a soil sufficiently firm for a species of cypress, and of broom which grow there ; they offer the only ground of support for the foot of the animals that wander in these aquatic solitudes, — bears, wild cats, wolves. The most cele- brated of these swamps is the Great Dismal, which Mr Lyell has described in his interesting journey in the United States, and which extends between the towns of Norfolk, Virginia, and Weldon, North Carolina." In the Lower Mississippi we have, according to the rain-charts, a rainfall of 56, 60, and 64 inches per annum ; in Arkansas, a rainfall of 42, 44, and 50 ; in Norfolk, Virginia, 44 ; in North Carolina, 44, 48, and 52. M. Marny continues, — " Upon the lower levels of the Alleghany Mountains, the rhododendron and the kalmia display their elegant flowers. From stage to stage the vegetation is modified ; and to forests of oak ssucceed the resinous pines, with which are associated magnolias, poplars, and different species of nyssa. " The forests of the Alleghanies belong to one of four forest zones which embrace North America; they extend over the south-west coast as far as to the south of the bay of Chesapeake. They chiefly contain pines, firs, cedars, and cypresses." In this district we have a rainfall of 36, 40, and 44 inches. "The second zone, which corresponds with the region of magnolias, catalpas, tulip-trees, stretches over the Floridas and Louisiana ; it is characterised in several parts by forests of cedars, known under the name of cedar-swamps. In Louisiana the rather stunted stems of the wax-myrtle are found among the rhododendrons. " In Florida and Carolina are forests called pine-harrens composed of gigantic pines, reaching a height of more than 50 metres, and rivalling those which clothe the opposite coast of the American continent. These pine-harrens comprise a broad band several hundred miles in length. Behind these forests of coniferse, which form the second forest line, one encounters on disembarking upon these shores — the first being composed of graceful palms — come other forests not less dense, but composed of a thousand kinds of wood. 'There,* writes M. F. de Castelnau, * the magnolia exhibits with profusion its DISTRIBUTION OP RAINFALL. 267 leaves like immense spatulas, while the air is embalmed by itsbeautiful and enormous flowers so dazzlingly white. It is intermingled with a hundred species of sassafras, catalpas, laurels, cedars, gum-trees, in the midst of which the magnificent evergreen-oak distinguishes itself. Everywhere the cornel-tree dazzles the eyes by its silvery splendour ; the azalea is lavish of its corolla, like an elegant butterfly ; and the sumach displays with pride the magnificent splendour of its scarlet bouquets. All these various trees are closely matted together by lianes without number — veritable alliances with these brides of nature.' " In Florida we have a rain-fall of 60, 52, 48, 44, 40, and 36 inches, and in South Carolina the same. " The third forest zone invests the hills and low mountains of the Carolinas, of Pennsylvania, and comprehends the slopes of the Alleghanies which we have just described. The oak, the birch, the mulberry, the sycamore, the maple, occupy these woods. The willow-leaved oak, the elm, and the chestnut, principally form forests in Pennsylvania and in New Jt-rsey ; in the environs of Habochene venerable forests run parallel to the coast. The two parts of this state form a striking contrast to the rest; whilst a vigorous vegetation adorns the northern divisions, those that lie to the south offer only an arid sandy soil, which has its own species and its especial forests. The upper Ohio flows under a bower of tulip-trees and planes, whose elegant foliage is reflected in its waters. " But it is iu the state of Indiana, above all in the environs of New Harmony, upon the banks of the Wabach, that the forests of North America show themselves in all their magnificence. They present, among the forests of the New world, a distinct character, and one of their peculiarities is the want of evergreen plants, with the exception of the mistletoe, a species of bignonia, Dutch rushes, which are a kind of equisetum, and the Miegia microsperma. When the woods are stripped of their foliage, the eye is attracted only by the equisetum just named which reaches a height of eight or ten feet In these collections of trees the traveller is struck by the gigantic planes, ramifying themselves into a certain number of hollow trunks, which serve him as a shelter in time of need. To these planes are united maples of proportions almost as great, several oaks, and notably that which bears the name Mossy over-cup oak, whose enormous acorns are strewn over the ground and which grow in close ranks. A multitude of climbing-plants em- brace the trunks of the large kinds, the quinate-leaved ivy, the poison 268 RELATION OF FORESTS TO THE ivy, the bignonia, which attach themselves to the trunks like a thick net-work formed of aerial roots, to which are attached at right angles the branches that bear the leaves. Among these mighty trees there are lofty thickets of 15, 20, and 30 feet in height, composed of the papaw-tree, the spice-wood or fever-bush, and the red-bud tree. Be- low these smaller kind of trees the ground is still covered with shrubs, and in the openings grow the RJms typhina and the Rhus glabra, Magnificent catalpas appear at every step in a wild state ; but the botanist seeks in vain for trees with aciculate leaves, the pine, the cypress, or for the rhododendrons, the azaleas, the magnolias, the chestnuts, which are met with in other parts of America. " These woods are rapidly thinning. Legions of backwoodsmen take up their abode in them ; and they are speedily cleared. Already wood is becoming singularly dear at New Harmony ; and the hickory, which gives out so powerful a heat, has been cut down with a pro- fusion and ignorance usual with the first colonists of forest countries." In Indiana we have a rainfall of 44, and 40. " The fourth zone loses the physiognomy of the subtropical vegeta- tion, to resume that of the vegetation of our northern countries. It comprehends the greater part of New York, New England, Vermont, New Brunswick, Canada, the region of the lakes ; to this region New- foundland belongs. " In the state of New York, forest vegetation is of a heavy and dense character; which is owing to the predominance of certain kinds of hemlock, spruce, fir. The black-spruce constitutes the characteristic tree of this cold region ; it forms a third of the forests in all the districts comprised between 44« and 53" north latitude. " A great part of Long Island is covered with forests, of which one-half is formed, according to Dr Timothy Dwight, of yellow-pines. " The borders of Lake Huron are covered with gigantic forests of planes, between the close ranks of which are seen groups of tamarask or of American larch, of pendulous larch, that frail tree which seems to be an arborescent reed. All the vegetation of the borders of this lake is of a more decidedly grand character than that of the other lakes. The forests of Lake Erie are enriched with the sassafras-laurel, the magnolia-, the Cormis Florida, whose branches, adorned in autumn with bunches of scarlet, agreeably diversify the sombre verdure of the rest of the forest. The vegetation of Lake Ontario resembles that of Lower Canada ; yet we find there some characteristic species — Canada poplars, the robinia, the lime, the resinous pine, and the red pine. DISTRIBUTION OF RAINFALL, 269 Upon the borders of Lake Champlain, the sugar-maple, the balsam-fir, the Virginian poplar, are equally remarkable. " In the environs of the Falls of Niagara the t ulip-tree, the red cedar, and the Canadian yew grow in great abundance ; whilst near to Kingston, which is only seven miles from the cataracts, an immense forest, composed of horse-chestnut trees, has taken possession of the soil to the exclusion of every other kind, " Around Bloomfield, not far from Lake Canandagua, magnificent forests of oak furnish the colonists with a valuable wood, and embel- lish the slopes of the hills. Throughout the district specified we have a rain-fall of 44, 40, 36, 32, and on one very limited spot so little as 28. " When we advance into Canada, forest vegetation gradually dwindles, and at length becomes quite stunted. We no longer meet with any thing but little firs, dwarf birches, and lank poplars. This is observed to the north of Quebec, and of the parallel of the Isle of Manitoulin." Within the line indicated we have a rainfall of from 32 to 44, the latter being the rainfall at St. Johns, New Brunswick ; falling to 40 and 36 as we come nearer to the St. Laurence. Thus does it appear that every observation made in North America seems to tend to show a general accordance between the distribution of the rainfall and of forests. Something similar may be observed in the distribution of forests in South Africa, In the Colony of the Cape of Gooa Hope all the existing forests are found on mountain slopes following the convex curve of the sea coast from the mouth of the Orange River on the west to Port Natal on the east. The trees are comparatively few in number on the Cedar-Bergen range, in Clanwilliam, but so numerous were they formerly as to have suggested the name given to the mountains ; they are more numerous on the Table Mountain range near Capetown ; they appear in greatest abundance in the districts of the Knysna and George ; but they abound also in Kafi'raria and in the Trans-Kei territory. This curve encloses an extensive inland district almost destitute of trees, bounded on the north by a district crossing the continent beyond the colonies, in which trees are more numerous, connecting the forest lands of the east with forests on the west coast further to the north. Co- extensive with these forests, there is what may be called com- 270 RELATION OP FORESTS TO THE paratively a copious humidity of soil and climate ; while in the districts in which there are none, the soil and the climate are com. paratively dry. There have been described by Livingstone three distinct meteorological zones in South Africa : the eastern, compre- hending Zulu-land, Natal, Independent and British Kaffraria ; the central, comprising a portion of the elevated Central Basin of the continent, and divided from the eastern by the Drakenberg, Malutis, and other ranges ; and the western, including the KaUhdri Proper, the wastes of Namaqualand, and^^the wilds of Bushmanland — the latter, situated to the south of the Orange Eiver. The first of these is comparatively well watered, and there we find extensive districts covered with ever-green succulent arborescent herbs, and most of the extensive forests. In the second we find comparatively little water, and forests disappearing. The third is arid and sterile and barren in the extreme. I have had occasion to cite the statement that " the prevalent winds of most of the countiy thus divided are from the northeast. Heavily laden with vapour from the Indian Ocean, the clouds, under the influence of these easterly currents, are driven over the Zulu territory. Natal, and Kafikland, watering those lands luxuriantly; but when the moisture-bearing nimbi arrive at the peaks of the mountain ranges, not only have they parted with a large proportion of their water, but they are then on the edge of the more arid central basin, and begin to meet with the influences of the heated and naked plains, under the radiation from the surface of which, and in an increasing degree as the Bechuana tribes are past and the K41dhdz'i is reached, the clouds rise higher above the earth, the moisture evaporates in a thinner vapour, and as a consequence fewer showers fall upon the hot thirsty soil beneath. "The further we journey from the Drakensberg eastwards, the greater becomes the diminution of water. " Leaving the mountains, the Lesuto or Basuto land, as it is called, is without doubt the best watered portion of the central meteoro- logical district, mainly, it is presumed, on account its being intersected by the Malutis range. Towards this important section of country, from November to April, the northeast winds blow from the shores of Mozambique and the delta of the Zambesi immense masses of cloud, which sweep heavily over the earth, darkening the sky, and preceded in their course by dreadful peals of thunder. On reaching the high land, the aerial lake is shut in by the huge table-headed mountains ; as a consequence, a rapid condensation takes place, and DISTRIBUTION OP RAINFALL. 271 then a veritable deluge ensues. In a few moments cataracts rush from the mountain heights, the smallest and most thread-like rivulets are transformed into torrents, and the rivers overflowing their banks cover the plains : this sometimes lasts for days together (Casalis). It is from the accumulation of these waters that the Lekoa, the Caledon, and many other tributaries of the great Orange River, which with slow and majestic course flows to the westward across the vast plains of the centre of South Africa, take their rise. As the moun- tains, however, merge into the plains, and these again into the Kdldhdri, we are reminded by the gradual diminishing rivers of the continual aridity of the soil, till we reach Great Namaqualand, where the occurrences of periodically filled water-courses again testifies to the descent of rain. " In this latter district, however, as well as in the desert, rain falls only from thunder-clouds. These rise from the northeast, and are always hailed with delight by the inhabitants of those parched and burning regions ; but they are partial in the distribution of their precious treasure, the storms frequently passing over with tremendous violence, striking both European and native with awe at their terrific grandeur, while not a particle of rain descends to cool and fructify the barren waste." Thus do we find in Asia, in America, and in Africa alike, a general accordance between the distribution of the rainfall and of trees. Sect. II. — On the Distribution of the Rainfall dependent on Geogra- phical Position, being determined by the contour of a country. Of two existing phenomena it is sometimes difiicult to determine what is the order of sequence in which they have appeared — which is cause and which is eff'ect — or whether both be not consequences of the same cause ; and this we may experience in view of the cor- respondence between the distribution of the rainfall and that of forests. Whatever may be the effect of a copious rainfall on a mountain side in promoting a growth of forest trees — and whatever may be the effect of a forest there, in producing and maintaining an abundant rainfall — it is the case that the configuration of a country, irrespective of forests, exercises a considerable influence on the territorial distri- bution of the rainfall. The effect which may be produced by altitude alone on the dis- tribution of the rainfall receives an interesting illustration from 272 RELATION OF FORESTS TO THE observations collected and publisbed by M. Belgrand* in regard to a wind-wave which passed over Europe towards the end of September, 1866. This wave originated in America, on a line which extends from Buenos- Ayres to the North Pole ; it traversed the Atlantic, and reached England on the 20th September, and France, Belgium, and Holland on the 21st. On the 22nd, it reigned at the same time over Nancy, and over Paris. On the 23rd, it raged over the sources of the Seine, and of the Loire, and extended to the Garonne. On the 24:th, it passed over Lyons ; its fury broke upon the St Bernard, from the 24th to the 26th; and from the 23rd to the 24th, upon the Simplon. On all the elevated places it poured out a quantity of rain equal to about a fifth of the average annual rainfall. On the contrary the low-lying plains were almost everywhere spared ; England and Nor- mandy did not receive a twentieth of the annual rainfall. Shielded by the mountainous backbone of France, which stretches obliquely from the Vosges to the Pyrenees, and as a watershed divides the water between the ocean and the Mediterranean, Carcassonne, Mont- pelier, Grenoble, Lyons, Bourg, and Bezangon did not receive any extraordinary rainfall ; it did not rain at all at Strasburg, at Dresden, at Munich, at Breslau — nor did it in Austria or in Italy. In Swit- zerland, and even in Savoy the rain was not great, while Mont Blanc, the Simplon, and the St Bernard received only 17 per cent, of the annual rainfall. There is much that is interesting in the study of the atmospheric wave, sweeping along 1700 feet above the level of the sea, with a stretch of wing, extending some 1200 miles and more, skimming the high lying plateaux of France, and by a flight of 200 leagues a day dashing itself against the summits of the Alps ; but it is to the dis- tribution of the rainfall occasioned by it with which alone we have to do here. At the meeting of the British Association for the advancement of science, held this year (1876) in Glasgow, Sir William Thomson made a communication in regard to the production of the phenomenon known as a " mackerel sky," which suggests an illustration of the phenomenon under consideration. Schoolboys amuse themselves sometimes with skimming flat stones * Belgrand' Anuales des Fonts et Chausees. Sept. 1866. DISTRIBUTION OP RAINFALL. 2f7'^' along the surface of smooth water. The same phenomenon is pro- duced upon a greater scale when a cannon ball, aimed at a floating target, strikes the water and rebounds into the air again and again ere it disappears. I have often, at the Cape of Good Hope, seen indications of the southeast wind advancing in waves, raising dust where it seemed to descend and strike the ground, but leaving un- disturbed alternate stripes over which it seemed to bound or rebound at a higher level. Thus may it be with all currents, whether of water or of air, descending and striking upon other matter, solid, liquid, or gaseous, at an acute angle of inclination — as is indicated by the undulations or waves raised by the breath on a cup of tea, by the wind on a pond or placid stream, and by a storm upon the sea. And, according to the supposition of Sir William Thomson, a current of air striking upon^a lower current, advancing in the same direction but with less velocity, or advancing in another direction, or upon a stratum of air in a state of quiescence,may rebound as does the skimming stone or the rebounding cannon ball on striking the water. And if the temperature of this current of air were near to that of the dew-point, or point of saturation, when it rebounded to a higher elevation, the temperature being thereby reduced, a condensation of moisture would ensue ; but when the rebounding force was exhausted, and it again descended to a lower level, it would acquire a higher temperature, and the condensed vapour would be again dissolved in the air, producing the phenomenon of alternating stripes of cloud and of sky. It is to this difference in the power of air to sustain vapour in solution at the different temperatures through which it passes at different elevations that I refer as illustrative of the rainfall occa- sioned by the wind-wave which has been spoken of. I have had occasion to refer to an illustration of the same kind afforded by the passage of the southeast wind over Table Mountain, producing dense clouds and even drizzling rain on the mountain top, but the clouds disappearing as the current pouring over the front of the mountain reached a lower level but a higher temperature ; so is it with the wind-wave deluging the mountains with rain but passing over the lower-lying plains without any such effect. Such wind waves, varying in their sweep and in their dimensions, but essentially the same, are not of un frequent occurrence. Most of those, of which the phenomena have been studied, have swept along the surface of the earth and the ocean, and even they may have 2a 274 RELATION OF PORESTa TO T HE produced or yielded a greater rainfall on mountains than on plains ; as in passing over mountain elevations the temperature of the air would experience a great reduction, and a precipitation of the moisture they contained would follow. And it may be the case that the presence or the absence of forests on the mountain summits might affect within a limited range the degree to which the temperature of the wave in passing over the ridge would be reduced. So would a fire in a hunter's cabin ! So would the huntsman's breath, and even the huntsman's presence, and every discharge of the huntsman's rifle ! But in the presence of such meteorological phenomena as are under consideration all of these are as nothing. And as is the case in such occasional disturbances, so may it be, and most probably it is, with the regular current of the atmosphere passing over a mountain range in its coui'se to the equator from the pole, or striking upon a mountain top in its return to the arctic or antarctic zone. The great change of temperature occurring in the case cited made manifest in such a way as to arrest attention the consequence of such a change in so far as it afi'ected the rainfall ; but any reduction of temperature below the dew-point would, in pro- portion to its extent, produce corresponding effects. Such a reduction of temperature frequently follows the passage of an atmospheric current over a mountain range ; and to the altitude of the mountain, so completely as almost to warrant the use of the term exclusively, ia the greater rainfall on the mountain attributable. I have hesitated about using the term exclusively, not on account of the influence which the circumstance of the^ mountain summit beinc clothed or being bare of forests might have in somewhat, but probably to an imperceptible degree, modifying the result ; but I have done so on account of the influence on the rainfall exercised by the contour of the mountain range. This subject, the influence on the rainfall exercised by the super- ficial configuration of a country, has engaged the attention of M. Cezanne. From his sequel to Etude sur les torrents des Hautes-Alpes, I translate the following statement : — " When a rain-producing wind strikes against an eminence which forces it to rise in the atmosphere, a double efl'ect is produced : the ascent of the air itself tends to a reduction of temperature, and con- sequent condensation of vapour j but besides this, the atmospheric cur- rent turned from its course is subjected to friction against the cooled DISTRIBUTION OF RAINFALL. 275 surface of the earth, and the rain is, as one may say, mechanically pressed out of the clouds. For these reasons, it rains more on the headlands than on the exposed slopes ; but in the deep fiords of Norway, a pluvial rain, sharply arrested by a wall of rock, deposits immediately a maximum of rain, " There falls annually at Bergen, 2 metres (80 inches) of rain ; at Bourdeaux, only 719 millimetres (29 inches) ; at Nantes, 1 m^tre (40 inches); at Cherbourg, 830 millimetres (33 inches). " On the coast-land of the Mediterranean, the rain-producing wind blows from the east, or the south-east, in a vertical direction to the wall of the Cevennes, upon which descend violent showers. There falls annually at Marseilles, 512 millimetres (20| inches); at Tou- lon, 505 (20 inches) ; at Nismes, 640 (26 inches) ; at Montpelier, 770 (31 inches) ; at Viviers, at the foot of the mountains, 900 (36 inches); at Joyeuse, at the bottom of a valley, 1-300 millimetres (52 inches). " The region of the Jui'a gives as characteristic of the rainfall the following figures: Lyons, 776 millimetres; Magon, 876; Bourg, l"* 172; Syam, in the gorge, l"* 630. " Some writers have erred in thinking that they may conclude, from such and similar facts, that the quantity of the rainfall in a place increases with the altitude of the place. Formulated thus, the law is not correct ; and the phenomenon cannot be explained satis- factorily. The phenomenon is mechanical as well as physical, and is more intelligible when formulated thus: The pluvial ralnfallis greater in proportiot), as the atmospheric current arrested hy an obstacle is com- pelled to rise more rapidly. It is not then the altitude of a place which is of most importance, it is the incidence with which the rain- yielding wind strikes the slope which opposes it ; but the law regu- lating this incidence it is not easy to determine. " From what has been stated it comes to pass that in order satis- torily to compare two rain-gauges it is necessary to take into account their absolute elevation, and along with this the slope and configura- tion of the mountain sides which support them. The following table, in which are brought together several localities situated in the gorges of the Jura, show that the altitude is not the dominating element — for the maximum of rainfall is far from corresponding with the maximum of elevation : — * * L'Eveille: Eecherclies sur les inondation {annates de la Societe d^ agriculture de Lyon, 1858). Altitude, Eainfall. MHres. Millimetres. 161 1260 233 1111-8 310 1592 365 1741 444 1457-7 840 970 1001 1176-7 1045 1560 276 RELATION OF FORESTS TO THE Locality. Pierrechatel, Varambon, Saint Bambert, Syam, Saint-Claude, Pontarlier, Fortde-Joux, Saint- Cerques, " At the convent of the great Saint Bernard (altitude, 2620 mfetres, = 8733 feet) there is collected annually 1500 millimetres (60 inches) of water. If the most elevated pluviometre in Europe be at the same time one of those giving the high measurements, the cause of this is perhaps less its altitude than its topographical position. The instrument is placed in a narrow embrasure, dominated by glaciers, in which the winds, come from what direction they may, must pass on violently, and be rapidly cooled. " The obstacle once passed, the rain diminishes — the current descends and becomes heated again ; desirous of repairing its loss, it drinks up the clouds with avidity, and dries up the mountain slope on the opposite side." Giving then a graphic account of the appearance presented by a sea of clouds rising up a mountain side and pouring over into the valley beyond, when this is contemplated from a surmounting height, which has been already quoted (ante p. 157), he goes on to say, — " That the superficial aspect of a country has an important influence on the phenomena of the rain may be illustrated by many well- known cases. " On the two sides of the Scandinavian Alps, the west wind and the east wind give inversely fine weather and rain, the one to Sweden and the other to Norway. " When it rains at Narbonne the sun shines at Montauban. " The rain comes from the west in Switzerland, and from the east in Lombardy. It is in consequence of its being sheltered from the south and southeast winds, which drench the basin of the Rhone, that the valley of the Durance presents that exceptionally dry climate which M. Surell points out to be favourable to the development of torrents.* It rains upon an average, at Marseilles, 57 days in the year; at Aries, 45 days; at Aix, 40; but in the region of the Durance it rains only 38 days in the year.t • Sorrel, chap. xxi. t Arago : Melanges, p. 430. DISTRIBUTION OF RAINFALL, 277 " Under the tropics, where prevail the trade-winds blowing from the east, the lands which incline towards the east are inundated with torrential rains : thus is it on the coast of Mozambique, and in the basin of the Amazon. On the contrary, it almost never rains on the western slope of the Andes. It is said that thunder has not been heard at Lima three times in as many centuries.* " In the Indian peninsula the eastern coast, or that of Coromandel, is watered by the North-east Monsoon ; and the west coast, or that of Malabar, by the South-west Monsoon.t " When, after having climbed the slope of a mountain, the atmos- pheric current, greatly relieved of its load, comes upon a plateau, it freely expands ; but its lowest layer, being in contact with the earth, is alone reduced to a lower temperature. From which it comes to pass that, from the same wind, a plateau, though more elevated, receives less rain than the ascending slope, but receives more than does the descending slope beyond. " The summit of the elevation which separates the Ocean from the Mediterranean supplies the following table : — | Region. Altitude— Metres. Kainfall-MillimStres. West Slope (Toulouse), ... 148-50 632-7 Summit (Castelnaudary), ... 170-00 630-0 East Slope (Carcassonne), ... 113-00 757-3 " From this table it may be seen that the slopes receive a little more rain than do the summits, and if it be borne in mind that the summit gets rain — now from the east wind, now from the west wind, — while Carcassonne, for example, does not receive it except by the east wind, it is beyond a doubt that the summit receives less rain from the same wind than is received by the two slopes which are ascended by the pluvial current. " On a very interesting hy^tographic chart, prepared by M. Delesse, Ingenieur en chef des mines\\ it is seen that the plateaux of La Beauce and of La Brie, subject to the influence of the west wind alone, present a very manifest minimum. There falls at Chartres 540 millimetres, at Meaux 400 millimetres of rain annuaUy. " La Burgogne forms, as is known, a basin which stretches itself * Eevieu : Theorie de la pluU [Annuaire de la SocUti m^teorologique de France, (1866) tome XIV.) ■f Lamairesse (annales despont et Chaussees, October 1869). X Raulin : Ohseroations Pluviometriques. D Deleste : Distribution de la Pluie en France (Bulletin de la 8oci6t6 de geographie dm, 1868.) 278 RELATION OP FORESTS TO THE from North to South, between the walls of the Forez and of the Jura. This basin is crossed by the west wind, which distributes its rain in such a way as to give clear testimony to the influence of mountain elevations. * Regions, Mean of observations. Places of Slope of the Forez passed over by the pluvial wind descending, Bottom of (Eight bank of the Saone, Valley. (Left bank of the Saone, Adjacent region et the base of the Jura passed over by the pluvial wind re- ascending, .. ... 301 1087-8 Gorges of the Jura where the pluvial current is compressed, ... ... ... 549 1358 '0 Altitude- Rainfall - Observation. Metres. Millimetres. 440 704-3 3 stations. 252 695-7 5 „ 234 730-1 6 „ " From this table it is seen that the pluvial wind produces very different effects indeed according as it descends an incline, or re- mounts an acclivity. When it is descending it gives quantities of rain almost equal at the very different altitudes of 440 and 252. While, when it re-ascends, it sufl&ces to pass on the opposite bank, from the level of 234 to the height of 301, for the quantity of rainfall to increase 50 per cent. During the descent there is precipitated less rain at the level of 252, than is precipitated in the re-ascent at the lower level of 234 ; there falls twice as much rain on the re- ascending acclivity, at the level of 549 metres, than falls on the descending incline by which it came, at the level of 440 metres, although the difference between the two altitudes scarcely exceeds 100 metres." From what has been advanced it may be seen that in rainfall determined by geographical position, the distribution of this is greatly modified by the contour of the country. Bat this is not done only in the way which has been referred to. M. Cezanne goes on to say : — " The elevation of the ground acts in yet another way on the distribution of the rain : altitude modifies the proportion of rain falling in the different seasons of the year ; in this way elevation above the level of the sea has the same influence as distance from the coast. During summer the maximum of rain falls in places of con- siderable elevation or distance from the sea, but during winter in * L'Eveille : BecJierches, <&c. DISTRIBUTION OF RAINFALL. 279 low-lying lands or places near the coast. And when one observes the distribution of the rainfall over the ramifications of the same valley, the phenomena become still more interesting. The basin of the Seine is particularly suited for this study, since it is regular in form, lai'gely open to pluvial winds, and more especially since M. Belgrand, who has explored it in its every part, has made us acquainted with his scientific investigations.* " Near the sea, at the lighthouse of Fatonville, there falls annually 799 millimetres of rain. From this point to the valley of the Oise the plateau maintains perceptibly its level ; in consequence of this the quantity of the rainfall diminishes in proportion as the pluvial current advances from the sea. The average sinks to 580 milli- metres in the valley D'Oise, and to 575 '6 millimetres at Paris ; but it re-increases from that point as the land itself rises : it amounts to 656 millimetres at Hirson ; towards the Ardennes, at the altitude of 196 metres ; and to 1570 millimfeti-es at the Settons, on the height of the Morvan, where the altitude is 596 metres. " It is remarked that it rains more in valleys than on elevated plains, because the atmospheric current follows by preference the deep depressions which cut up the plateaux, in the same way as on the flat bottom of a valley levelled by an inundation, the current by its tumultuous waves still marks out distinctly the line of the old " But M. Belgrand, however, has established as a fact that the pluvial current does not go up iudifierently every valley ; it passes bye the valley D'Oise, and ascends by preference the valley of the Seine, and by that of the Yonne, which in going up from Montereau is a direct continuation of the first. " Even at Paris the hill of Montmartre divides this current, which bifurcates as does a river around a pier of a bridge ; the pluvial wind passes by preference behind the hill, and La Villette receives more rain than does Paris. Thus each valley receives more rain in proportion as it is set towards the atmospheric current which brings the rain." Other observations not less interesting -are adduced by M. Cezanne, illustrative of an influence on the distribution of the rainfall being exercised by the contour of a country. ' In illustration of the same thing, M. Eaulin, Frofesseur 1746-1755 'S'^ I 83-5 1756—1765 88-2)' 1766—1775 103-6 \ gg.^ 1776-1785 93-2 > 1786-1795 Period. Proportional mea^surement. 1806—1815 9^H99-3 103-9 J 1816-1825 1826-1835 1836-1845 lO^-HlOO-8 100-2 J 1846-1855 1856—1865 26-3 i "^■6 I 93-2 1796—1805 89 7 i f In the Annuaire meteorologiquc de V Ohservatoire physique central pour 1873, Marie Davy gives the following calculation of the annnal ramfall at Paris :— Period. Average in millimeires. 1688—1700 517 1701—1710 481 1711—1720 465 1721—1730 378 1731—1740 411 1741—1750 420 1773—1780 540 1781—1790 507 Period. Average mm. 1791-1798 413 1804—1810 518 1811-1820 496 1821—1830 514 1831-1840 507 1841—1850 529 1851—1860 520 1861—1870 493 ON THE RAINFALL. 301 " It would be rash to conclude, from the fact that no permanent change in the direction spoken of has been proved to have occurred in the west of Europe, that no alteration of the kind has taken place in the interior of the continent ; and there are certain pluviometrical records made at continental stations which do not indeed go so far back, bat which also, so far as they go, ai*e not unfavourable to the sup- position of some such diminution having occurred.* " Blodget arrived at a similar conclusion from an examination of pluviometrical observations in North America ; although the destruc- tion of forests had been carried out there to such an extent that a change in the rainfall might have been expected. " In reference to the older observations of the rainfall we must observe that their value is very much diminished by the circumstance that the observations were not made every day, but sometimes at long intervals ; besides which, the rain-gauges were often placed in unsuit- able localities, as on roofs and on towers, &c. Both of these circum- stances would produce an effect in the same direction, giving returns of less than the actual rainfall at the time at which ^they were made.- " In view of all the facts of the case, although the actual measure- ments of the rainfall, extending back for 200 years, cannot be adduced as evidence of any progressive diminution in the quantity of the rain- fall, it would not be right to attach no weight to the facts brought forward by the author, more especially from Milne Home's paper in the Journal of the Scottish Meteorological Society, (vol. III. p. 35) from Becquerel, (Atlas meteor ologiq^iie de V Observatoire de Paris, pour 1867) and from a great many other sources, which tend to prove a deterioration in climate to have taken place in consequence of the extensive destruction of forests. " The Commission agrees with him in considering thai it is pro- bable, forests have an i?ijluence on the quantity of the rainfall, and especially on the distribution of the rainfall over the year, although the direct observations in our possession do not as yet seem sufficient to determine the extent of that influence." I am quite aware that there are facts recorded which appear to * In the Imperial Central- Amtalt fiir meteorologie have the obervations in abou* 120 stations in Europe and North America, been examined on this point. *0n the effect of altitude on the returns of the rain-gauge there are numerous state ments. In Mijllendorfs works (p. 102) it is shown that at different stations the lower rain-gauge received from 13 to 60 per can',, mora rain than on a higher place one did, 302 DISPUTED EFFECTS OF FORESTS point to a different conclusion from that which is thus announced. But I have to say in reference to this, that it was implied in or covered by the instructions given to the Commission to consider this matter and to report ; and further, that I find no difficulty in accounting for any of the apparently conflicting facts referred to, without com- promising the conclusion arrived at by the Commission, and I know of numerous facts in accordance with that conclusion. M. E. Renou, in a paper entitled Theorie de la pluie, which ap- peared in the Annuaire de la Societe MeUorologique de France (t. xiv. p. 89, 1866), writes : — "When it is seen that the rain depends as its condition on great atmospheric movements, and is only modified by the principal accidents of soil, mountains, and seas, what influence can the cultivation by man, and more especially the forests, have upon this phenomenon ? A generally-existing opinion attributes to them an important influence on the distribution of the moisture pre- cipitated from the atmosphere ; but this opinion, which is purely theoretic, has absolutely no foundation : there never has been cited in support of it a single indisputable observation, and if in certain lands, as Algeria, it rains more on forests than on the lands devoid of these, in attributing to them an influence on the rain this is only to confound the effect with the cause. The rainfall follows in a striking manner the relief oi the soil, and forests appear nowhere spontaneously excepting where there is a sufficiency of rain. This observation is applicable to the analogous cases cited by M. Boussingault in America, It is precisely at the line of contact of the bare regions and the wooded regions near the limits of the natural growth of woods that this can be remarked ; these forests do not generally receive sufficient rain for them to grow everywhere, and they are found only there where the position and arrangement of the mountains permit the soil to receive the greatest quantity of water. " Charts representing courses followed by storms of rain and storms of hail do not indicate the least deviation from their course in the vicinity of forests. The celebrated hail-storm of the 13th June 1788 has long ago shown this to be the case ; it followed a line almost straight, absolutely independent of what was seen on the soil beneath it. " The opinion in regard to the influence of forests on rain is just like all prejudices : it has been repeated for a considerable length of time without having the least proof. In my opinion, man has not the least influence on natural phenonena. Formerly, it was sought to connect meteorological phenomena with dominant local influences ; ON THE RAINFALL. 303 but, ia proportion as the study of them extended, the magnitude, grandeur, and general character of atmospheric phenomena came to be recognised," In citing these views of M. Renou I am citing what has been cited in France with approval ; and there is much in them with which I agree, but this so combined with much with which I do not agree that I am almost glad to have the opportunity to • state wherein we differ. I have given evidence of my belief that the primary distribution of forests is attributable to the previous geographical distribution of the rainfall; but I consider that this is not incompatible with their exercising an influence on the subordinate subsequent distribution of the rainfall within the district in which they have grown : in other words, that while the primary distribution of forests appears to have been determined by the rainfall, once established, they may, and they do, exercise a manifold influence on the rainfall. Sinbad's adventures with the Old Man of the sea, and ^sop's fable of the horse being saddled and bridled by man, have made us acquainted — many of us while yet young, acquainted — with the principle that con- sequences may flow from an action which were not anticipated when that action was performed. The Spaniards have a proverb to the effect that Whoever gets a wife gets a master. The Scotch have another version of the same proverb which is not less pat : their version of it is — Whoever gets a man gets a master. And in many lands it is seen that a family often produces on both of the parents a very marked change of habit. So is it here, the mountains once clothed with forests, all is changed. And it is to what takes place in this altered condition that the report cited refers. M. Renou seems to attach importance to storms of rain and storms of hail advancing in a direct line, deviating from this in passing near by a forest. On this subject M. Cezanne writes : — " On charts which have been published by the Academy M. Becquerel has re- presented the course of certain [thunder] storms. Some people have thought that they could conclude from these charts that storms avoid forests. But it should be remarked that these charts having been prepared from testimony supplied by populations and Assurance Companies, the abundance of documents establishing the devasta- tions caused by the hail is not necessarily in exact relative propor- tion of the frequency and violence of these storms : it depends more especially on the density of the populations and the richness of the crops. If the wooded regions do not supply documents towards 304 DISPUTED EFFECTS OP FORESTS establishing the statistics of storms, it is because iu the forests there are neither notable devastations committed by them nor inhabi- tants to report them. " The department of the Gironde furnishes a striking case in support of this explanation. According to the storm chart of this department (Atlas meteor ologique, 1868) the hail would seem to fall by preference on the banks of the Garonne, or in the rich canton which extends between that river and the Dordogne, but particularly on the inhabited places; and, on the contrary, that the desert landes were entirely spared by the hail. "But it is well known that the landes are traversed by violent storms ; but the shepherds of the landes do not send bulletins to the Observatory !" So much in regard to storm-charts such as are cited by M. Renou. In regard to the kind of storms referred to by him, they are such as were not likely to deviate from the cause in consequence of any such difference on the surface of the earth as a forest might present. Of the hailstorm cited by M. Renou, Sir John Herschel writes ; — "In the hail-storm of July 13th, 1788, which passed across France from south to north, two such tracks were marked, of 175 and 200 leagues in length respectively, parallel to each other, the one four leao-ues broad, the other two, and separated by a track five leagues in breadth, in which only rain fell. A similar character is very com- mon though not to such an extent. Such linear hail-storms are always attended with violent wind, sudden depression of the baro- meter, indicating a great commotion in the air, and probable mingling of saturated masses of very different temperature. And in writing on the Hydrology of South Africa, I had occasion to state : " According to views advanced by Espy, a distinguished American meteorologist, the two parallel lines along which the hail- storm advanced in the case mentioned by Sir John Herschel can be satisfactorily accounted for. According to one of the laws regulating storms, many of these advance, as does a wheel, rotating and pro- crressino- horizontally — as a wheel does vertically in advancing along a road as is made visible in a small advancing whirlwind of dust, or leaves, or straw, or chaff. The cyclone, a whirlwind of such extent as to create a storm, is fed with air as it advances; this, raised to a gi-eat height, expands, cools, precipitates the moisture it contained, and throws this off in a frozen state — as does a twirled wet mop throw off drops of water, — and by gravitation it falls. As the rotaiing ■whirlwind advances, the motion of the air forming the forefront will ON THE RAINFALL. 305 cross the breadth of the circle from left to right, or from right to left, as the case may be ; the air forming the rear will cross the breadth of the circle in the opposite direction, and scatter the hailstones or rain over the whole breadth traversed in two showers, minutes, hours, or days apart ; but at the sides the wind blows in but one direction on the right of the circle, and in one direction, the opposite of this,^ on the other, and along the lines followed by these the hail or rain falls continuously in greater abundance." M. Cezanne writes in reference to what he had stated relative to the fall of rain being determined in a great measure by the contour of a country, and which I have already quoted : — " It may be said — if the rain acted as if it had caprices and the protuburances of the soil caused a change in the pluvial current — will a mass of forests which raises itself on the plain remain without any influence 1 Stating the question thus, it must be admitted as un- questionable that forests may exercise an influence on the rainfall. It may so happen, for example, that a forest of trees coming to bar up a valley of little depth may interrupt the pluvial current, and notably diminish the quantity of water collected in a pluviometer which would be placed behind it. The town of Erfurt, for example, sheltered against the west wind by the Thuringian forest, receives less rain than do adjacent regions.* It is not necessary to speak of a high forest of timber trees ; a simple wall, suitably disposed, suffices. It is well known that the face of such a wall, exposed to the pluvial wind, re- ceives more rain than does the sheltered side, — what is kept on the one side falling there leaving so much the less to fall on the other ; and observations show that it is enough to raise up buildings or other erections in the neighbourhood of a pluviometer to produce a change in its receipts." But the hail-storm cited by Renou was not a fall of rain produced by a pluvial wind blowing along the surface. The hail was produced at an elevation far above the loftiest forest, where the forest could not pi'oduce such a deviation as he states did not occur. And with regard to his belief that it is beyond the power of man to exercise the least influence over physical phenomena, the expression given of it would require some qualification in order to exempt at least such physical phenomena as are mentioned by M. Cezanne in the state- ment by him which I have just cited, and who holds the same opinions as does M. Renou on the point to which I understand him to refer. * Kaemiti. 2l 306 EFFECTS OF FORESTS ON RAINFALL. So far as my own observations have gone it is in accordance with what has now been advanced. My observations have been made incidentally and not of purpose, and they are general rather than precise. They have been made, one class of them in Scotland, the other in Africa, or countries which are in very different climatal condi- tions, and for this it may be considered by some that some allowance should be made; but such as they are they are these : While the genial shower or the drizzling mist appears to be a characteristic of wood- land rain, deluges of rain like thunder plumps are the forms which I have found most characteristic of rain in the arid regions of South Africa ; frequent showers and constant damp in spring and autumn and winter alike are characteristic of woodlands in Britain with which I am familiar, a cloudless sky, and a persistent drought broken only by an occasional deluge, brief in its duration and local in its range, are the characteristics of the other. In the one we have the rainfall distributed over eight or ten months of the year, with occasional showers in the course of the intervening summer ; in the other a drought continued for months, or it may be for years, and a rainfall of two days or three, or of some hours, or it may be of half an hour at most. In the one we may have the rainfall distributed over the whole of the area of a hundred or a thousand square miles, falling not over the whole simultaneously or continuously, but so distributed in time as well as in space that no part suffers lack ; in the other we may have a deluge of rain over twenty square miles at one time within an area of a thousand, and a deluge over other twenty square miles at another time, weeks or months, or it may be years thereafter. The geographical distribution of rain may be attributable to geo- graphical position and contour of the country. Such deluges of rain as have now been referred to may be attributable in some cases to eddies in one or other of the aerial currents flowing continuously be- tween the equator and the poles ; in other cases to the passage of a minor cyclone or whirlwind above the place ; but the frequent drizzling genial showers prevailing in a wooded country may be con- sidered a form given to the rainfall in some measure by an influence of the woods ; and the absence of these in arid woodless regions, in which the mean annual rainfall is the same and the conditions similar, may be considered in a corresponding manner attributable to the absence of forests. CONCLUSION. We are told in the book of Proverbs : " He that is first in his own cause seemeth just • but his neighbour cometh and searcheth him." I have stated in preceding chapters, with such precision as I could attain unto, what I consider to be the effect of forests on the humidity of the soil and character of the districts in which they exist ; but I am aware that a compilation might be prepared of observations made by men of science which might seem to support a widely-diflFerent conclusion. I have given attentive consideration to all such to which I have had access, and prepai'ed a statement on their apparent bear- ing on what I have advanced ; but I refrain from inserting this, not because I consider them unimportant, for I consider them equally valid and equally important with many — I may say with any — which I had advanced. I refrain from inserting this first, and mainly, because I am unwilling to add to the expense and the bulk of the volume; 2ndly, and the reason weighs with me almost as much as the first, I wish to present the subject to my readers in as simple a form as I can, and without complications which I do not consider necessary for my pur- pose ; and I know of nothing which has been advanced as observations made, or conclusions deduced by reasoning, or phenomena observed, which are incompatible with what I have advanced. From what has been advanced it appears to be established as a fact that there are cases in which an extensive destruction of forests has been followed by a marked desiccation of soil and aridity of climate, and some cases in which the replanting of trees has been followed by a more or less complete restoration of humidity, — or the planting of trees where there were none has been followed by a degree of humidity greatly in excess of what had previously been observed; that there are cases in which the rainfall within forests, or in their immediate vicinity, has been perceptibly greater than in the open country beyond ; but that there are also cases in which it is alleged that the desiccation of some lands once clothed with forests and 308 CONCLUSION. fertile, now treeless and barren and dry, may be attributable in part, if not in whole, to other causes besides the destruction of the forests, and cases in which the extensive destruction of forests does not appear to have extensively aifected the quantity of the rainfall over a wide expanse of country. These facts may, by a little latitude in the use of language, be characterised as antagonistic or conflicting ; but they may neverthe- less be accepted as facts, and that with the admission that if facts they must be perfectly compatible with each other, and not only compatible but consistent with each other in the actually existing system of things, and necessary to be known in order to a correct con- ception of this system as a whole. s it is with these apparently conflicting facts which I have cited so does it appear to me to be with those apparently conflicting facts, connected with details, which I have refrained from bringing forward here : they do not appear to me to invalidate in any way those which have been founded on in the conclusions I have advanced. When I was a boy I was told of one of my townsmen, that, being on trial before one of the magistrates for the theft of a hen, when a witness testified that he had seen him take it, he broke forth with a vehement appeal " Your honour ! I can bring forward twenty men who did not see me." And to such testimony might be likened testimonies to facts which are not in question cited as sufficient to invalidate explicit testimony to other facts observed. I am prepared to admit unhesitatingly all that can reasonally be said in regard to my accept- ance as facts of what I have accepted as such ; the conclusions I have drawn from them I commend to the consideration of my readers ; and I leave to their judgment to determine to what extent these should influence deliberations on the adoption of practical measures to avert the evil and to secure the good which appear to be at our command. The effects of forests in retarding the flow of the rainfall after its precipitation has been established, I consider, beyond all question ; and not less so their eff'ect in maintaining a general humidity of atmosphere and of soil. PINE PLANTATIONS ON THE SAND-WASTES OF FRANCE. COMPILED BY JOHN CROUMBIE BROWN, LL.D., Formerly Government Botanist at the Cape of Good Hope, and Prof essor of Botany in the South African College, Capetow7i, Fellow of the Royal Geographical Society, Felloiv of the Linnean Society, arid Honorary Vice-President of the African Institute of Paris, etc. EDINBURGH: OLIVER & BOYD, TWEEDDALE COURT. LONDON : SIMPKIN, MARSHALL, AND CO. 1878. Kirkcaldy : Cra\\tord & Walker, Peinte::s [All rights of Translation and Reproduction are reserved.] CONTENTS AND ARGUMENT. PAGE. Index to Authorities Cited, . . . . y Preface, ----... vii States circumstances in which the vohime is published. Chapter I. — Apjjearances Presented hy Plantations on Drift- Sand, ------- 1 Cites the appearance presented by plantations seen from the bell tower of the Cathedral at Antwerp (p. 1) ; and by vineyards in M6doc and the vicinity of Bourdeaux (p. 2) ; by Landes adjacent (p. 3) J by Arcachon (p. 4), and the pignadas in the vicinity (p. 5). Chapter II. — Appearances Presented hy Landes adjacent to the Pine Plantations on Gascony, - - - - 9 There are given Mangin's description of the Landes (p. 9), and of the Dunes (p. 13), of Dartmoor (p. 17), as corresponding to scenes in Brittany (p. 18) ; of the swampy land of Montoir resembling the Fen country of England (p. 21) ; and there follow notices of what has been done to reclaim the adjacent sand-wastes (p. 24). Chapter III. — Legislation in Regard to the Planting of the Landes with Trees, - - - - - 27 There are given excerpts from the laws issued on 13th Messidor an IX (2ud Jidy, 1801) ; on 3rd Jour compldinentaire, an IX (p. 27); 12th July, 1808, 14th December, 1810 (p; 28) ; 5th February, 1817 (p. 29) ; and 29th April, 1862 (p. 30). Chapter IV. — Literattcre Relative to the Arrest and Cidtivation of Drift-Sands in France, - - - - 32 Works in French are specified (p. 32) ; works in German (p. 33) ; and works published in Hungary, America, and England are referred to (j). 34). Chapter V. — Culture of the Maritime Pine on the Landes of Gascony, - - - - - - 36 The preparation of the ground is described (p. 36) ; the zone ad- jacent to the sea is described (p. 37) ; dayonnages (p. 39) ; sowing and planting (p. 40) ; account given by M. Bagneris (p. 42) ; and by M. Boitel (p. 45) ; thinning (p. 46) ; pruning (p. 48). Chapter VI. — Exploitation of the Five Plantations of Gascony, 51 Account of the exploitation of resin, by Bagneris (p. 51) ; of the manufacture of charcoal, by Boitel (p. 57), and that of charcoal dust (p. 63) ; products exhibited in English museums (p. 66). Chapter VII, — Sylviculture on the Landes of La Sologne, - 69 Account of the Landes of La Sologne (p. 70) ; of their soil (p. 72) ; woods (p. 74) ; culture of pine woods (p. 75) ; reclaiming land by plantation (p. 80). Chapter VIII. — Inlaiid Sand-Wastes, and Sand-Wastes on the Coast, ----.-- 81 Differences seen in sand-wastes (p. 81) ; Wessely's account of sand- wastes on the coast (p. 82) ; account of the impermeable alios by M. Faye (p. 84) ; capillary attraction of sand (p. 86) ; absorption and retention of moisture (p. 88) ; absorption of vegetable nutri- ment (p. 90) ; peat lands in sand-wastes (p. 92) ; composition of sand (p. 92) ; sand-wastes of the tertiary formation (p. 96) ; woods on such sands (p. 97). Chapter IX. — Natural History and General Cidture of the Scotch Fir in France, - - - - - 100 Description of the Scotch fir by MM. Lorentz and Parade (p. 100) ; account of arboretum at Barres by the founder, M. Vilmorin (p. 103) ; his observation on the Scotch fir (pinus sijlvestris) (p. 107) ; the Riga pine (p. 115) ; pine of Smolensk (p. 117) ; Wilna pine (p. 117) ; pine of Tschernigoff (p. 118) ; pine of Volhynia (p. 118) ; varieties of the Riga pine (p. 119) ; Scotch fir (p. 122) ; intermediate varieties (p. 123) ; instructions given in School of Forestry at Nancy in regard to the exploitation of the Scotch fir (p. 131) ; in regard to its economic uses (p. 137) ; and the collecting and preservation of its seed (p. 138), and sowing (p. 141). Chapter X. — Natural History and General Culture of the Maritime Pine in France, - - - - 143 Section I. — Commendations bestowed on the Maritime Pine, - 143 Commendation by M. Boitel (p. 143) ; by M. Samanos (p. 145) ; and by MM, Delamarre, Crinon, and others (p. 147). Section II. — General Culture and Exploitation of the Maritime Pine, ------- 148 Instructions given at the School of Forestry at Nancy relative to its natural history (p. 149) ; its economic uses and mode of gemmage (p. 151) ; sowing (p. 152) ; exploitation (p. 154). Chapter XL — Diseases and Injurioiis Influences to tvhich the Maritime Pine is subject, - - - - 157 Section I. — Choking by an Over-growth of Local Vegetation, - 157 Section II. — Destructive Ravages by Birds, and Sqtdrrels, and Insects, ...... 157 Mode of destruction (p. 157) ; accounts of lignivorous insects by M. Perris (p. 159) ; destruction of the chenille processioiiaire (p. 161). Section III. — Destructive Conseqxiences folloiuing the Effects of Charcoal Burning, - - - - -163 Evils pointed out by Professor Bagnei'is (p. 163), and accounted for by M. Boitel (p. 163). Section IV. — Destructive Ravages occasioned by the Mole, - 167 Natural history of the mole by M. Boitel (p. 167) ; destruction of moles (p. 169). Section V. — Destructive Ravages by Forest Fires, - - 170 Prevention of forest lires mentioned by M. Samanos (p. 170) ; by M. Bartro (p. 171) ; by M. Boitel (p. 171). INDEX TO AUTHORITIES CITED. Andresen, 86. Bagneris, 42, 51, 163. Bartro, 171. Baude, 1. Boitel, 37, 41, 45, 46, 51, 57, 63, 71, 74-79, 143, 157, 163, 167, 171. Chambray (Marquis), 159. Clavt5, 91, 98, 99. Cotta, 100. Courreges, 39, 40. Crinon, 148. Dela- marre, 147. Edinburgh Eeview, 34. Faye, 84. Forchhammer, 86, Grouven, 90. Haddington (Earl), 109. Hartig, 100, 138. Hauer, 93. Heyer, 88. Janin, 20. Javil, 66, 84. Kedzie, 34. Kerner, 89, 95. Laurent, 87, Lorentz, 100, 132. Mangin, 9, 13, 16, 21, 24, 70, 98. Marchand, 88, Marsh, 34, 86, 96. Mayer, 89. Nanquette, 135. Parade, 100, 139, 149. Perris, 159. Samanos, 51, 145, 170. Schuebler, 88, 89, 93, 94. Thurmann, 87. Vilmorin, 103-130, 157. Weld, 1, 2, 3, 5. Wessely, 82, 88, 92, 99. PREFACE. The preparation of this volume for the press was undertaken in con- sequence of a statement in the Standard and Mail, a Capetown paper, of the 22nd July, 1876, to the effect that in the estimates submitted to Parliament £1,000 had been put down for the Cape Flats, it was supposed with a view to its being employed in carrying out planting operations as a means of reclaiming the sandy tracts beyond Salt River. In view of the success which has followed the planting of the Landes of Gascony and the Gironde with the maritime pine, it might seem that nothing now can be required in order to arrest and utilise drift- sands, but to plant them judiciously with that tree. But, happily, I may say, the failure of such plantations on the Landes of La Sologne comes to warn us against any such rash generalisation. And the observation of sand downs in Britain, and sand plains elsewhere, show that herbs, carices, reeds, and grasses have operated extensively in arresting effectually, and, according to their measures, in utilising what otherwise would have been barren and destructive sand- wastes. Looking at the subject generally, all that I consider established by the pine plantations on the sand-wastes of France is the practicability of arresting and utilising sand-drifts by means of plantations of trees. What has been accomplished there we may legitimately infer may be effected elsewhere, not necessarily by the same means, but by means as appropriate, if they can be discovered. But while this may be all that is established there is much more suggested. And still more might be found to be suggested by a study of the whole of the sand-wastes of Europe, and of the natural history of sand, its composition, its formation, and its aggregation on the shore, in dunes, in drifts, in sand-wastes, and in sand plains, and of the various genera and species of plants growing upon it, and of planta- tions of broad-leaved trees which have succeeded in other conditions — the poplar, the willow, and the aspen, the elm, the elder, the ash, the acacia, the oak, the hazel, and the dogwood, the birch, and the wild pear. There has been prepared a twin volume, in which these subjects have been discussed. This volume was originally compiled in view of what seemed to be required at the Cape of Good Hope. It has been revised, and printed now, only as a contribution towards a renewed enterprise, to arrest and utilise sand-wastes which stretch from Table Mountain to the Hottentot Holland Mountains ; and additional information is forth- coming if it should be desired. Appended to reports of the Colonial Botanist for 1864 is a letter on grasses adapted to arrest drifting sand (pp. 99-102), and appended to report of the Colonial Botanist for 1865 is a letter on the arrest of drifting sand, and planting the same with trees (pp. 83-93). Haddington, 10th A2)ril, 1878. PINE PLANTATIONS ON THE SAND- WASTES OF FRANCE. CHAPTER I. Appearances Pebsbnted by Plantations on Drift Sands. Within the last eighty years much has been accomplished in the arresting of Drift Sand, and in utilising Sand Wastes by a judicious combination of sylviculture and agriculture. " A spectator placed on the famous bell tower of the cathedral of Antwerp," says Baude in an article in the Hevue des Deux Mondes, January, 1859, one of an interesting series of articles entitled Les Cotes de la Manche, " saw not long since on the opposite side of the Schelde only a vast desert plain ; now he sees a forest, the limits of which are confounded with the horizon. Let him enter within its shades. The supposed forest is but a system of regular rows of trees, the oldest of which is not yet forty years of age. These plantations have ameliorated the climate, which had doomed to sterility the soil where they are planted ; while the tempest is violently agitating their tops, the air a little below is still, and sands far more barren than the plateau of La Hague have been formed under their protection into fertile fields." A similar description of landscape eflfects, produced by the planting of the Landes of the Gironde in Gascony with pines occurs in Weld's tour through the Pyrenees. Writing of this district he says : — " Opposite to Blaye, and extend- ing for a considerable distance up and down the Gironde, is the M6doc district, unlovely in appearance, being a vast plain composed of stones and sand, the deposit probably of the river in long past ages. But no smiling valley, ' Deep meadowed, hajspy, fair with orchard lawns, And bowery hollows crown'd with summer sea,' is so fruitful as is this seeming waste : for it is the nursing mother of those vines, which, stunted though they be, produce the far. 2 APPEARANCE PRESENTED BY PLANTATIONS. famed claret grape. Who, ignorant of these facts, would suppose that an acre of Medoc land is a fortune !" Writing of Bourdeaux, the capital port of the district, he says : — " Grand indeed is the water avenue to the great city of Bourdeaux. Flowing beneath the softly wooded heights of Floirac, the tawny Garonne, here upwards of 2,000 feet wide, sweeps in a semi-circle past handsome quays three miles long, bearing all kinds of crafts, from the jaunty felucca from the Mediterranean, to the stately India- man ; for the tide at Bourdeaux, though the city is seventy miles from the sea, rises twenty feet. Looking at all this beauty and com- mercial grandeur, I thought of our Thames, and what it might be if properly embanked and provided with capacious quays. " Long to be remembered is an afternoon which I spent at Floirac, where one of the great wine merchants resides. After an early dinner, consisting of many delicacies, we adjourned, ladies as well as gentlemen, to an arbour in the pleasure ground, situated at the edge of the wooded heights. Within the arbour a large table was covered with an endless variety of delicious fruits, all grown on the estate ; and while we sat round these abundant products of the rich south, the distant views, which are of the most exquisite nature, were illumed by a sunset of great glory. " On a day remarkable for an exti'a allowance of caloric — Bourdeaux is exceedingly hot in summer — I visited the fai'-famed claret vaults of Messrs Barton & Guestiei-. 0h, how delicious was the wine I tasted in these deliciously cool regions — tasted ! no, drank ; for it would have been nothing short of an insult to that rare old nestar to have acted according to the advice given when you enter the London Dock wine vaults — taste but do not swallow. Here, within the cool precincts of the cellars, if you have the good fortune to be favoured by being allowed to taste famous vintages, you will be made aware how little, how very little, the middle classes really know what good claret is. The stuff which, impudently assuming that name, is generally our potion at a dinner party, is no more like the prime first growth clarets of Medoc than sloe juice and brandy is genuine port ; but when we remember that a hogshead of good claret, the produce of a first-rate vintage, frequently fetches a thousand francs on the spot, we at least I, who am of the middle classes, can understand that the chance of making acquaintance with prime claret is very small. The more then, if you are a middle man, will you enjoy a tasting visit to the Bourdeaux claret vaults, and especially if you enter them after a lionising tour through streets baked with a temperature of about 90° WELD S DESCRIPTION OF THE LANDBS. 6 . . . Lighted by huge wax candles, I walked long and wonderingly through alleys lined by hogsheads, or barriques, as they are called. The value of these, as I was informed, was £120,000. There are generally 10,000 harriqiies in store, for the most part cob- webbed and venerable vessels emitting a peculiar aroma, something like that of new hay ', for your first-class claret reqviires to be kept many years before it is ripe for post-prandial honours." But sterile as seem the lands of the M6doc, where such treasures are produced, they come short in this respect of the appearance presented by the Landes of the Gironde, which have no such tales to tell of fruit and wine. " A few miles from Bourdeaux," he writes, " you enter the Landes, across which the line is carried to Bayonne. Nothing can be more dreary than these apparently interminable wastes. Your passage across them suggests ideas of the ocean, with this great difference however, that whereas the latter is rarely at rest, the vast tract of the Landes, comprising 600,000 hectares, equal to 1,482,600 acres, except when swept by hurricanes, presents a still and monotonous surface. The soil is sand — endless sand — vertically as well as superficially. Artesian wells have been sunk to nearly the depth of 1,000 feet, and then a scanty supply of wretched yellow water has been the only result. As may be supposed, the lives of the inhabitants of this unpromising region are short, feverish, and sickly. The Landais have a proverb — * Tant que Landes sera Landes Lapellajri te demande.^ The said pellagri, being a fatal disease occasioned by malaria and bad water. Amidst these wastes, lying to the east of the pine forests which fringe the sea coast, the Landais, who are with few exceptions shepherds, spend the long summer days with their flocks of sheep, each animal being as well known to them as their dogs. The Landais shepherd is a primitive being, fond of solitude, rarely venturing near the railway ; when he does, he gazes wonderingly at the passing train — so to see him, you must penetrate into his wilder- ness. There, amidst the great wastes, clothed in sheeps' skins, and wearing the Navarre cap, you will find him mounted on tall stilts, become, from long habit, like a second pair of legs, for he has been accustomed to them from childhood ; pi'obably knitting while his flock cross the scanty herbage. There he stands, resting against his pole, a strange tripod-looking figure — stranger still when he strides 4 APPEARANCE PRESENTED BY PLANTATIONS. across the Landes in hot haste after a wandering sheep. He has a small hut, sometimes a wife who aids him in cultivating a small patch of ground, from which he obtains a little corn and a few vegetables. A miserable existence is this, but the dawn of brighter days has, we may hope, appeai-ed for the poor Landais." Some two hours journeying by rail takes the traveller from Bourdeaux through clouds of dust and forests of pine to Arcachon. *' Here," writes an English tourist, " houses, like Indian bungalows, with broad verandahs, and often of only one storey, run for more than a mile along the water's edge, each surrouuded by its own * compound,' to keep up the Indian phraseology, and each with its bathing-house and steps leading down to the beach. From these the lightly-clad inmates emerge at all hours, and pass the greater part of their time either paddling barefoot on the shore when the tide is out, or dancing in groups in the sea, which has the merit, in the eyes of the nervous part of the population, of always being as smooth as a mill-pond. I never saw a place so absolutely and completely given over to bathing. , . But the real charm of Arcachon lies in its pine forests, covering sand-dunes sometimes three or four hundred feet high, and stretching back over the landes, where fresh-water lakes glimmer in the blue distance. Picturesquely grouped within these resinous groves are perched the villas and cottages of the winter town, to which consumptive patients resort in the colder months to breathe turpentine mixed with the soft sea breeze. The extraordinary advantages of this hygienic compound seem to be getting more and more recognised, and each year the number of visitors increases. The high dunes completely shelter the winter town from the violence of the gales, while there is a life and purity in the atmosphere which have worked marvellous results. With a compass one may explore the recesses of these forests for miles on horseback, for there is scarcely any underwood, and one can therefore steer through them in any direction ; though in fact there is not much danger of being very seriously lost, for the forest abounds with the wooden shanties of the collectors of turpentine, who are perpetually at work gashing the trees and emptying the little pots tied on to them, and which contain the sap, into the small tanks prepared to receive it. In the centre of the basin are a couple of sand-banks, one of them partially dry at low water, and on which any number of rabbits may be shot ; and on the other an oyster-park, with an old hulk stranded upon it. Large parties of merry-makers sail to this moist and oozy spot, and, DESCRIPTION OP THE PIGNADAS. taking off their shoes and stockings, catch their own shrimps, gather their own cockles, and knock the oysters off the tiles upon which they are growing, for themselves ; and then retiiing to the hulk, where sundry articles of diet may be purchased, make their cannibal pic-nic with the addition of these living creatures, . . . Another pleasing entertainment, much resorted to by both sexes, is spearing fish by torchlight. On a dark night the bay is sometimes brightly illuminated with the glare of the pine-splinters flaming from the prows of boats in iron cradles, and the shouts of laughter tell of un- successful prods with many-pronged spears at the eels and mullet which wriggle or dart round the bright reflection on the water. It requires considerable skill and practice to bring home a large basket- ful, but some ladies become tolerably expert at this sport." And here, amidst all the gaiety of a fashionable watering-place, the residenter or the forester may find a solitude, for which he might seek in vain elsewhere, in the forest of pines. " This, indeed," writes Weld, " is the characteristic feature of Arcachon. The great pine forest of the Landes, locally called pignadas, extends from the Adour to the Gironde, and is an extraordinary monument of man's skill and perseverance. " Prior to 1789 this vast forest area was — ' A bare strand Of hillocks heaped from ever-shifting sand, Matted with thistles and amphibious weeds, Such as from earth's embrace the salt ooze breeds. ' The sand was so fine as to be wafted by the faintest breeze ; while the great sea storms raised huge sand waves, which overwhelmed vegetation, and, rolling inland, frequently carried desolation and destruction among far distant villages and fields. Such was the state of this part of the countr-y when M. Bremontier, an officer in the Government department of the administration of forests of France, conceived the idea of erecting wattle hurdles and boards near the sea, so as to break the storms ; and of sowing in narrow zones, leeward and at right angles to the prevailing wind, seeds of the Pinus Pinaster and common broom, in the proportion of five pounds of the former to two of the latter per acre. The area sown was then covered or thatched with pine branches, care being taken to prevent these being blown away, by pinning them to the ground. In about six weeks the broom seeds produced plants sis inches high, which attained the height of two feet at the close of the year. These 6 APPEARANCE PRESENTED BY PLANTATIONS. now afforded excellent shelter to the pine plants, which were but 4:-inch striplings, and under their fostering protection the pines grew and flourished.^ until at length, with an ingratitude not unhappily confined to the vegetable world, they suffocated their infantine pi'otectors, and rose high, defiant of the raging sand-storms. " So effective was M. Bremontier's process that, in 1871, a com- mission, appointed by Government to examine the Landes, reported that 12,500 acres were covered with thriving and profitable pines; and the Landais, who had lived to see their howling wastes clothed with far-stretching forests, were enabled to gain a livelihood, less precarious and perilous than that obtained by fishing in the stormy waters of the Biscay Bay. " Twenty-five years passed, and then the hand of man was busy among the pines. Good as the pinaster is for domestic purposes. La Fontaine says : ' Sera-t-il Dieu, table, ou cuvette ? it is far more valuable for the great quantity of resin, tar, and lamp- black which it produces. As you ride thi'ough the pines you will meet the resin-gatherers, resiniers, as they are called, who during the summer months live in the forest ; for the most part a rude set of men, speaking a strange j^cttois, from which, however, you may glean some information. When the resin-harvest is at hand, the resinier goes forth provided with a short ladder and a curved axe. His manner of testing the fitness of a tree to be tapped is by throwing his arms around it. If the trunk be so thick that he cannot see his finger ends, the pine is ripe for the operation. This is performed with great quickness and dexterity. A longitudinal cut or groove is made in the trunk, down which the resin flows, and is caught at the bottom of the stem, in a little trough fashioned in a few moments from the bark removed by the cut. Weekly the wound is re-opened but not widened, and the operation is renewed yearly, until the entire trunk is scored in such a manner as to make you wonder how the maimed bole can support the superincumbent weight. But, stranger still, the pine is not injured by this scoring process ; for, if the operation be judiciously performed, by the time that the resinier has gone round the tree, the first wound has healed, and the trunk is ready to be bled again. Wonderful too is the quantity of resin which exudes from these bountiful trees. You may know where the resiniers have lately been, by the palsamic odour proceeding from the wounded pine. A resin-gatherer told me that after a season's practice — from the first of May to the end of September — a good COLLEOTING OP EESIN. 7 hand could score 2,400 trees, scrape the resine molle, which encrusts the trunks, into the troughs with small iron rakes, and carry the resin to the pits where it is boiled. I saw a resinier frequently score a tree to the height of 15 feet, and make a ik'ough in two minutes and a quarter. Such a proficient earns 25 francs weekly, a high wage in this part of France. Indeed, the resinier is far better off now than the small vineyard proprietor, who generally, destitute of capital, is ruined by a failure of his crop. . . . '•' When the pines have been scored and re-scored, those destined to make tar — called pins perdus — are cut down. The tar, com- mercially known as goudron des Landes, not so good, however, as that derived from the Scotch pine, is made by burning the roots and thick portion of the trunk very slowly in cavities made in sloping ground, and the tar is caught in cast-iron pans and run into barrels. An inferior kind of lamp-black is deposited from the smoke of the wood, but a better description is obtained by burning the straw used in straining the resin. " Besides these products, the resin of the Finns Pinaster yields common turpentine, and is used extensively for pills. Glaring placards and advertisements at Arcachon further inform the visitor that ' Sdve de Fin Maritime est recommandee contre les affections de poitrine, cafarrhes, bronchitis,' &c., by the French Faculty, — a revival by the way, in another form, of tar-water, whose varieties were extolled by Bishop Berkeley long ago, in his curious book, entitled * Sevis'. . . " And even now the economical uses of resin are not exhausted ; so the Frenchman did not exaggerate when he asserted that, resine est I'or en barriques. " Many and delightful were the hours that I spent in the Pignadas, generally on horseback, for the country around Arcachon is very favourable for riding, and the small Landais horses are excellent. Arab blood runs in their veins. *' As all the ayrhnens of Arcachon are not yet chronicled in guide books, I may mention that by far the most enjoyable excursion is that to the Fointe du Slid, about six miles south of the town. Start early, when the tide is ebbing, so that you may enjoy the fine, broad, hard sand. At the Fointe du Sud you have the mighty Atlantic before you, the great Biscayan waves breaking at your feet ; while behind dark pines fringe the coast. Return through the forest ; avenues, called Gardes-feii cut through the pines to prevent the spread of fire, extend to Arcachoa ; and when you are on the right track, you will 8 APPEARANCE PRESENTED BY PLANTATIONS. do well not to stray from it, as it is quite possible to realise in these pignadas the unpleasant feeling of losing your way, particularly when -the sun has set. "Few places are more. impressive than dark pine forests, now scream- ing when the wind sweeps through to the trees, and now filling the solitude with murmering voices, when stirred by gentle breezes, and yet not a solitude ; for as you pass through them in the noontide the air trembles with ceaseless hum. Pines are always a favourite home for insects ; and here, in the warm south, they exist in countless multitudes, making even silence vocal ; for, flashing through the air, or sluggishly basking in the summer sun, they are endowed with the power of making the forest resonant with strange sounds. By far the most remarkable of these noisy animals is the Cicada, which attains a great size in the pine forests in Southern France, and emits a loud sound, according to my observation, always increasing in intensity as the temperature rises." Agriculture, as from the first was intended, has followed in the wake of sylviculture. " After innumerable futile attempts to reclaim and fertilise portions of this desert, two joint stock companies (Gompagnie des Landes, and Gompagnie d'Arcachon), have succeeded in reclaiming a considerable portion of the Plaine de Gazaux. "Sheltered from the prevalent west winds, by the great maritime pine forest, the Plaine de Gazaux, situated to the east or leeward, as may be said, of that forest, is not so liable to the destructive effects of the great sand storms as other parts of the Landes. Rice, tobacco, and the topinamhour or Jerusalem artechoke, for which the soil is admirably adapted, are the chief crops. The improvements are in a great measure due to a M. Pierre." From these pen and ink sketches some idea may be formed of the appearances presented by the pine plantations on the Landes of the Gironde. The forest-like character of these will bear comparison with that of the plantations seen from the tower of the cathedral of Antwerp. And a knowledge of the general appearance presented by the district may lead to the conclusion that the transformation cannot have been less complete. CHAPTER II. Appearances Presented by Lands Adjacent to the Pine Plantations in Gascony. To appreciate ai-ight the effect produced by the planting of the drift sands of the Landes with pine trees, it is necessary to know some- thing of the appearance presented by the land thus utilised, and of the land around which has thus been transformed into what in com- parison therewith is a paradise — a garden of delight. A description of the district, which may be reckoned one of the most dreary and dismal in the land, one altogether at variance with the ideas called up by the designation La Belle France, is given in a work by Arthur Mangin, entitled " The Desert World," from an English translation, of which I cite the following description : " The department which borrows its name from the Landes of Gascony is divided by the Adour into two wholly dissimilar parts. To the south of the river lies a rich, undulating, vine-bearing country, rich in pasturage and harvest, sown with pleasant villages and smiling country houses, and watered by full streams and little rivers. To the north the appearance of the country changes abruptly. When the traveller has crossed the alluvial zone of the Adour he sees before him a thin, dry, sandy level of a comparatively recent marine for- mation. Its only products are rye, millet, and maize ; its only vege- tation, forests of pines and scattered coppices of oaks ; beyond these, and they do not extend far, all cultivation ceases, and the soil is stripped of verdure ; you enter upon the Landes — seemingly vast as a sea — occupied by permanent or periodical swamps ; and where, over a space of several square leagues, in an horizon apparently boundless, you perceive nothing but heaths, sheepfolds or steadings for the flocks of sheep that traverse these deserts, and shepherds keeping mute watch over their animals, living wholly among them, and having no intercourse with the rest of humanity, except when once a week they seek their masters' houses to procure their supply of provisions. It is these shepherds only (Landescots and Aouillys), and not, as is generally supposed, all the peasants of the Landes, who are perched upon stilts, so as to survey from afar their wandering flocks, and to traverse more safely the marshes which frequently lie across their path. b 10 APPBARANOB OP THE LANDBS, " Wild and uncouth are the figures which these stilt-walkers present, as they move rapidly over the country, often at the rate of six or seven miles an hour ; occasionally indulging in an interval of rest, by the aid of a third wooden support at the back (curved at the top, so as to fit the hollow of the body), while they pursue their favourite pastime of knitting. The dress of the Landescot is singu- larly rude. His coat or paletot is a fleece; cuisses and greaves of the same material protect his legs and thighs ; his feet are thrust into sabots and coarse woollen socks, which cover only the heels and instep. Over his shoulder hangs the gourd which contains his week's store of provisions : some mouldy rye-bread, a few sardines, some onions and cloves of garlic, and a flask of thin sour wine. From sunrise to sun- set he lives upon the stilts, never touching the ground. Sometimes he drives his flock home at eventide ; sometimes he bivouacs stcb Jove frigido, under the cold heaven of night. Unbuckling his stilts, and producing his flint and steel, he soon kindles a cheery fire of fir- branches, and gathering his sheepskins round him, composes himself to sleep ; his only annoyances being the musquitoes, and his fears of the evil tricks of wizard or witch, who may peradventure catch a glimpse of him in the moonlight, as they ride past on their besom to some unholy gathering or demon-dance. " An English traveller has sketched in vivid colours the landscape of the Landes. Over all its gloom and barrenness, he remarks, over all its * blasted heaths,' its monotonous pine-woods, its sudden morasses, its glaring sand-heaps, prevails a strong sense of loneliness, a grandeur and intensity of desolation, which invests the scene with a sad, solemn poetry peculiar to itself. Emerging from the black shadows of the forest, the pilgrim treads a plain, ' flat as a billiard- table,' apparently boundless as the ocean, clad in one unvaried un- broken garb of dusky heath. Sometimes stripes and ridges, or great ragged patches of sand, glisten in the fervid sunshine ; sometimes belts of scraggy young fir trees appear rising from the horizon on the right, and sinking into it again on the left. Occasionally a brighter shade of green, with jungles of willows and water weeds, giant rushes, and 'clustered marish mosses,' will tell of the 'blackened waters' beneath — ' Hard by a poplar shook alway, All silver-green with gnarled bark ; For leagues no other tree doth mark The level waste, the rounding gray.' " The dwellings which stud this dreary, yet not wholly unpoetic DESCRIPTI0N OP THE LANDES. 11 landscape, are generally mere isolated huts, separated oftentimes by many miles. Bound them spreads a miserable field or two, planted with such crops as might be expected on a poor soil and from deficient cultivation. The cottages are mouldering heaps of sod and unhewn and unmortared stones, clustered round with ragged sheds composed of masses of tangled bushes, pine-stakes and broad-leaved reeds, beneath which the meagrest looking cattle conceivable find a precarious shelter. " The Landes are divided into the Little Landes, near Mont-de- Marsan ; and the Great Landes, stretching to the north and west of the department of which that town is the capital, and uniting unin- terruptedly with those that occupy the vast country situated south of the Gironde. The total superficial area of these plains is estimated at upwards of 2,400,000 acres, of which two-thirds belong to the de- partment of the Landes, and the remainder to that of the Gironde." Again — '* In shape, the Great Landes may be compared to an immense rectangular triangle, having for its base the coast, which, from the mouth of the Gironde to Bayonne, or for a length of more than sixty leagues, is almost rectilineal. But they are separated from the sea by a long parallel chain of lakes and water-courses — a waste of shallow pools — a labyrinth of gulfs and morasses, and then by the continuous chain of the Dunes. " That which is commonly called the Great Lande is bounded on the north by the etang, or lake, of Cazau. It is a sandy, treeless plain, and upon which, for a traject of several leagues from east to west, not one habitation worthy of the name is perceptible until the traveller arrives at Mimizan, near the southern point of the lake of Aureilhan. This lake on the south-west pours its waters into the sea. To the north it communicates, through the canal of St. Eulalie, with the lake of Biscarosse, which is itself connected with that of Cazau. East of this chain of lakes lies the Lande ; west of it stretches the range of Dunes, or sand hills. ** The lake or pool of Cazau is a small sea of fresh water, perfectly clear, profoundly deep, and fourteen to fifteen thousand acres in extent. It has its whirlwinds and its tempests, so that in certain seasons it is perilous to embark on its surface. And were its banks clothed with rich woods, or raised aloft in irregular or precipitous cliffs, it would surely attract as great a throng of tourists as the mountain-tarns and lochs of Scotland or Cumberland, or the Arcadian waters of Northern Italy. The lake of Biscarosse, in form a triangle, with one side formed by the Dunes, covers about twelve" thousand 12 APPEARANCE OF THE LANDES, acres. It derives its name from a village situated at its northern angle, on the bank of the canal which connects it with the lake of Cazau. The lake of Aureilhan is the smallest of the three ; the St. Eulalie canal, which links it to the preceding, traverses a series of peat-bogs bounded eastward by gloomy pine-forests, and westward by the interminable Dunes, which, by arresting the flow of the rain- waters, have really created these so-called lakes and extensive swamps. Enormous quantities of rain fall every year in the Landes, — which district the Eomans would certainly have dedicated to Jupiter Pluvius, — and find beneath the thin superficial stratum or crust of sand and earth, a sub-soil of tii^a and allios — in other words, of com- pact chalk and sand agglutinated by a ferruginous sediment. Fre- quently this tufa possesses all the hardness of stone, and its imperviousness is its fundamental property. Hence it follows, that a portion of the heavy annual rainfall remains in the receptacles provided by the hollows and depressions of the soil, and in due time accumulates into marshes and lagoons, until gradually evaporated by the heat of spring. " When of old the scared peasants beheld the irresistible advance of these strange ministers of destruction, they had no other resource than to fell their woods, abandon their dwellings, and surrender their * little all' to the pitiless sand and devouring sea. What could avail against such a scourge? Efibrts were made to repel it. It is said that Charlemagne, during a brief residence in the Landes, on his return from his expedition against the Saracens, employed his veterans, and expended large sums of money in preserving the cities of the coast from imminent ruin ; but whether the means employed were insufficient, or whether the imperial resources failed, and other urgent needs diverted the population and their leaders from this struggle against nature, the works were wholly abandoned." But in more propitious circumstances the work has been resumed with better success. " The reader," says the writer I have quoted, " must not believe this country to be a desert in the popular acceptation of the word ; it has its forests of pines, where the extraction and pi-eparation of resinous matter are carried on with considerable activity. It has its small towns, its pretty villages, its factories, and even its handsome villas. Finally, modern industry has cut the Landes in two by the Bordeaux railway, which traverses them from north to south, and bifurcates at Morans to throw ofi" a line to Bayoune, and another to Tarbes." DESCRIPTION OF DUNES. 13 Of the Dunes which have been so transformed M. Mangin gives the following description : — " The Dunes form the extreme line of the Brittany coast for nearly two hundred miles, from the Adour to the Garonne. They are hills of white sand, as fine and soft as if it had been sifted through an hour-glass. Their outline, therefore, changes every hour. When the wind blows from the land, millions of tons of sand are hourly driven into the sea, to be washed up again on the beach and blown inland by the first Biscay gale. A water hurricane from the west will fill up with sand square miles of shallow lake, driving the displaced waters into the interior, dispersing them in shining pools among the ' murmurous pines,' flooding and fre- quently destroying the scattered hamlets of the people, and inun- dating their fields of rye and millet. " Their origin is due to the prevalence of the sea-winds on those points of the coast which are not protected by rock and cliff, and whose slopes of sand descend very gradually to the margin of the waves. Their formation is easily explained. The sand of which they are composed is a silicious material, reduced to minute grains, generally rounded, by trituration. These grains, nevertheless, are often too big and too heavy for the wind to take them up and scatter them afar, like the dust of the highways or the ashes of volcanoes. But at low tide the sand, dried by the sun's rays and the action of the wind, ofi'ers to the latter a sufficient holdfast to be dragged up the slopes which descend seaward, and deposited at a certain distance. This process being constantly repeated, the heaps are daily increasing in dimensions. " It will easily be understood that this accumulation along the shore cannot have taken place where the force and direction of the sands experience periodical or capricious changes ; for then the sands cast upon the beach by the winds of the north and west would be driven back into the sea by the winds of the south and east. This is noticeable in many places where the nature of the coast is favourable for the production of such a phenomenon. But on other shores — as on the Atlantic littoral of France — the winds which blow most frequently and most violently are from the west and south-west. And it is there we encounter the Dunes. Those of Gascony are by far the most remarkable. Northward, they extend as far as the Point de Grave, which shuts in the mouth of the Gironde ; southward, to the bank of the Adour, and even further, to the olifis of Beam. Here the basin of Arcachon constitutes one vast hollow ; and some open- ings exist, moreover, in the department of Landes, between that basin 14 APPEARANCE OF THE LANDES. and the Adour, for the overflow of the waters which descend from the interior. To the north and south of the Teste de Buch the chain of sand hills measures from 4,400 to 6,600 feet in width. At other points it is still wider ; but it narrows towards its extremities, and both at the Point de Grave and near Bayoune does not exceed 450 yards. " Owing to their extreme shiftiness of soil, the Dunes can attain no considerable elevation. The sand deposited by the wind on the sum- mit of the hill is always in a state of precarious equilibrium. It has a constant tendency to be precipitated down the other side, and the higher the summit the greater is this tendency, so that there comes at last a moment when no further accumulation in height is possible. The Dune may then extend its basis, may even increase twofold in dimensions, but it no longer rises. " Let us note, moreover, that owing to its density the sand cannot be carried even by the most violent winds into the higher regions of the atmosphere ; and that the Dunes, when they have reached a cer- tain elevation, oppose to them an insuperable obstacle. This circum- stance would consequently have a salutary effect, and the accumulation of sand would be determined by a law of its own, if the Dunes, once formed, had time to cohere. But this is not the case. Incessantly does the wind undo or modify its work ; and the loftiest hills being the most exposed to its violence, are quickly reduced to the common level. In general, the greatest elevation of the Dunes corresponds to their greatest breadth. Thus the culminating point of those of Gas- couy is found in the belt situated between the lakes of Cazau and Biscarosse, where the chain is from 7,500 to 9,000 yards across. Their average height is 180 feet to 200 feet above the sea-level ; but some of the hills in the forest of Biscarosse attain an altitude of 320 feet. In the neighbourhood of the mouths of the Gironde and the Adour, where the chain is considerably narrowed, the height of the Dunes is only thirty to forty-five feet. " The reader must not suppose that the Danes consist of a single series of sand hills ranged along the shore. He will, however, have conjectured, from our statements respecting their width, that they really compose a chain of several more or less regular ridges. The hills are separated from one another by valleys, locally named laites or lettes. These valleys, where the pluvial waters flow and accumu- late, exhibit a striking contrast, in their freshly-blooming verdure, to the naked, barren Dunes. The general aspect of the landscape may, therefore, be compared to that of the ocean. There is the same DISORIPTION OP DUNES. 16 broken surface, the same extent of undulation, the billows of sand being upheaved by the wind like the billows of the sea, and sharing in their mobility. You must see, says a writer, in order to form an idea of those colossal masses of fine sand, which the wind incessantly skims, and which travel in this way towards the inland country ; you must see their contours so softened that they look like mountains of plaster of Paris polished by the workman's hand, and their surface so mobile that a little insect leaves upon it a conspicuous track ; their slopes, at every degree of inclination ; their everlasting sterility — not a blade of grass, not an atom of vegetation ; their solitude, less imposing than that of the mountains, but still of a truly savage character. You must see, from the summit of one of these ridges, the ocean on your right hand, and on your left the extensive lakes which border the littoral ; and, in the midst of this tumultuous sea of tawny sand, green grassy valleys, rich and fertile pastures, smiling oases of verdure, where herds of horses graze, and cows, half-wild, guarded by shepherds scarcely less wild than they. " The marked characteristic of the Dunes, as we have already said, is their mobility, which renders them a constant menace for the neighbouring populations. To the wind which creates them they owe their frequent changes and their inland movement. While the sea eats into the coast, assisted by the breezes which gradually sweep clear the ground before it, the Dunes extend, and drive before them the shallow lakes : these in their turn encroach upon the Laudes, and until now man has been constrained to recoil, step by step, before his threefold enemy. It is in this phenomenon, rather than in the un- grateful soil of the Landes, that we must seek the cause of the curse which has seemed so long to rest upon this country-side. You must go back some twenty centuries to trace the origin of the Dunes of Gascony. Fourteen or fifteen hundred years ago the coast north of the Adour was inhabited, and comparatively flourishing. Mimizan was then a town and a sea-port, from which were exported the resinous products of the neighbouring forests. The Normans disembarked there on several occasions. Under its walls, in 506, was fought a great battle between the allied Goths and Ostrogoths on the one side, and the Bearnais, commanded by a bishop of Lescar, on the other. Both town and port to-day are buried under the sands. ' Full fathom five ' lie church and convent, and the busy street, the noisy mart, and the once peaceful home. The present village has nearly perished : the Dune was not three yards from the church when its progress was recently arrester). Other cities, laid down in old charts of the country, 16 APPBARANOB OF THE LANDEB. but of which not a trace remains, have in this manner disappeared, and entire forests have been ingulfed, now under the sands of the Dunes, now under the sands and waves of the sea. " Some parts of the chain have been rendered to a great extent immovable by the vegetation which has gradually covered them, and these have opposed a formidable obstacle to the encroachments of the sands. Yet here and there the barrier has been defied. For example, in the forest of Biscai'osse the movable Dunes, actually sweeping over the ancient hills, have not only filled up the valleys, but ingulfed a great number of pines, and raised themselves several yards above the crest of the oldest trees, planted on the summit of the highest hills." The name Dunes is traced etymologically to Bun, a hill, and in the designation we may trace the origin of the designation downs given to extensive districts in England. The designation lande is given to waste lands and moors ; and thus may the landes of the Gironde be associated in thought with Dartmoor and Exmooi', and with Howns- low Heath and other places bearing similar designations in England. But if associated in thought differences in their character must not be lost sight of. Of Dartmoor, the extensive and romantic table land of granite, which occupies the south-western part of the country of Devon, it is stated in the work ft-om which I have quoted — " In its recesses still linger the eagle, the bustard, and the crane; its solitudes are broken by the hoarse cries of the sparrow-hawk, the hobby, and the goshawk ; and the Cyclopean memorials of Druidism which cover its surface — cromlechs and kistvaens, tolmens and stone-avenues — invest it with a peculiar air of mysterious awe. It extends in length about twenty-two miles (from north to south), and in breadth twenty miles (from east to west). Its total area exceeds 130,000 acres. It rises above the surrounding country like ' the long, rolling waves of a tempestuous ocean, fixed into solidity by some instantaneous and powerful impulse.' A natural rampart is cast around it. Deep ravines, watered by murmuring streams, diversify its aspect, and lofty hills of granite, locally called tors, of which the principal. Yes Tor, has an elevation of 2,050 feet above the sea. Its soil is composed of peat, in some places twenty-five feet deep, underneath which lies a solid mass of granite, occasionally relieved by trap (a volcanic rock), and traversed by veins of tin, copper, and manganese. " Nearly in the centre of this dismal wilderness lies an immense morass, whose surface is in many places incapable of supporting the lightest animal, and whose inexhaustible reservoirs supply the foun DESCRIPTION OF DARTMOOR. 17 taias of many a river aud stream — the Darfc, the Teign, the Taw, the Tavy — all clear as crystal iu the summer months, but, after heavy rains, running redly through the ' stony vales.' The roaring of these torrents, when angry and swollen, is sublime to a degree inconceiv- able by those who have never heard the wild impressive music of untamed Nature. " The tors are remarkable for their quaint fantastic outlines, which, like the clouds, suggest all manner of strange similitudes — to dragons, and grilfins, and hoary ruins, and even to human forms of gigantic size, apparently confronting the traveller as the lords and natural denizens of the rugged waste. The principal summits are Yes Tor, Cawsand Beacon, Fur Tor, Lynx Tor, Rough Tor, Holne Ridge, Brent Tor, Rippen Tor, Hound Toi', Sheep's Tor, Crockern Tor, aud Great Mis Tor. Not only must their variety of form delight the artist, but his eye rests well pleased on their manifold changes of colour — purple, and green, and gray, and blue — now softened by a delicate vaporous shadow, now glowing with intense fulness in the sun's unclouded light. " Dartmoor is traditionally reputed to have been anciently clothed with forest. The sole relic now existing is the lonely Wistman't Wood, which occupies a sombre valley, bounded on the one side by Crockern Tor, on the other by Little and Great Bairdown ; the slopes being strewn with gray blocks of granite in ' admired disorder,' as if the Titans had been at their cumbrous play. Starting from this chaos of rocks, appears a wood or grove of dwarf weird-looking oaks, interspersed with the mountain-ash, and everywhere festooned about aud garlanded with ferns and parasitical plants. None of these trees exceed twelve feet in height, but at the top they spread far and wide, and ' branch and twist in so fantastic and tortuous a manner as to remind one of those strange things called mandrakes.' Their branches are literally covered with ivy and creeping plants, and their trunks so thickly embedded in a coating of moss that at first sight, says Mrs. Bray, ' you would imagine them to be of enormous thickness in proportion to their height. Their whole appearance conveys to you the idea of hoary age in the vegetable world of creation; and on visiting Wistman's Wood it is impossible to do other than think of those " groves in stony places " so often mentioned in Scripture as being dedicated to Baal and Astaroth.' " That heathen rites were celebrated here in the pre-historic era seems very probable, the best etymologists agreeing that the name is a corruption of Wise-man, or Wish-man ; that is, of the old Norse god C 18 APPEARANCE OP THE LANDE8. Woden, who is still supposed to drive his spectral hounds across the silent wastes of Dartmoor. Celtic or Cymric memorials, as we have previously hinted, are very abundant and very various. There are cromlechs, where the Britons buried their dead ; stone pillars, with which they commemorated their priests and heroes ; avenues of upright stones leading up to the circles, where, perhaps, their priests celebrated their religious rites ; kistvaens, or stone-chests, containing the body unburned ; tolmens, or holed stones, whose meaning cannot be determined, but which may probably have had some astronomical uses; bridges, huts, and walled villages, all bearing traces of the handiwork of our ' rude forefathers.' " For the counterpart of this we must go considerably to the north of the Landes ; but we find it in Brittany, which, geologically speak- ing, may be regarded as a prolongation of our English mountains, to which, with all the north-west coast of France, they were formerly united. " Brittany," writes Mangin, " belongs to what geologists call the primitive and intermediary formations. It is divided into three belts or longitudinal trenches : those of the north and south consist of primitive rocks, granite, and porphyry ; the central appertains to a more recent formation, to the group of intermediary or secondary rocks, composed in the main of schists and mica-schists, quartz, and gneiss. Schist prevails over a considerable area, and is prolonged to the very extremity of the peninsula. These hard, compact, imper- vious rocks, are entirely bare in many places ; elsewhere, and over a great extent, they are covered but by a thin layer of clayey and sandy earth, where the sudden slopes of the soil do not allow the rains to settle. " Here are the plains, often of considerable dimensions, which, bristling with rocks, and broken up by ravines, water-courses, and marshes, constitute the Landes of Brittany. True deserts these, relieved at distant points by an isolated hut, or by a wandering herd of swine, lean cows, and meagre-looking horses, which obtain a scanty subsistence from the heathery soil, sown here and there with tufts of furze, broom, and fern. " Under a sky of almost continual sombreness, like that which impends over the pottery districts of England, these landes present a sufl&ciently sinister and uninviting aspect. The traveller, as he crosses their sepulchral wastes, will hardly marvel that they were anciently a chosen seat of Druidical worship. Like Dartmoor, they would seem to have offered a peculiarly fitting arena for the rites and ceremonies of a creed which we know to have been mysterious in DESCRIPTION OP BRITTANY. 19 character and sanguinaiy ia spirit. They are covered with its gray memorials : the masses of granite of different shapes known as Maen- hirs, or 'long stones,' and i-)eidvens, which appear to have been employed as sepulchral monuments ; dolmens, or ' table-stones ;' and cromlechs (crom, bowed or bending, and lech, a stone), which anti- quaries are now agreed to regard as the remains of the ancient cemeteries or burial places. At Camae, near Quiberon Bay, may be seen a truly remarkable example of the Parallelitha, or avenues of upright stones, forming five parallel rows, which extend for milea over the dreary moorland. What were their uses it is impossible to determine, for there seems little ground to believe, as some writers would have us believe, that they were * serpent temples,' where the old Ophite worship was celebrated. We can only gaze at them in wonder : mile upon mile of gray lichen stained stones, some twenty feet high, laboriously fashioned, and raised in their present places by the hand of man some twenty centuries agone. " On these very dolmens, where the priests of the Tentates were wont to immolate their human victims to their unknown god, the mediaeval sorcerers and sorceresses celebrated the Black Mass, or Mass of Satin, in terrible burlesque of the Eoman Catholic sacrament, concocted their abominable philtres, and performed their dreary incantations. Alas for human nature ! In every age it is a prey to the wildest credulity. Even in the present day more than one superstition hovers around the monuments of the Celtic epoch. The Bretons believe them haunted by demons called potdjnquets, who love to make sport of the passing stranger, but will sometimes give both counsel and encouragement to those who know how to address them in the prescribed formulas ; who, like the Ladye in the * Lay of the Last Minstrel,' at their bidding can bow ' The viewless forms of air.' For, in the Breton mind, the superstitions of Druidism have not been wholly uprooted by the teachings of Christianity, still less by those of science and reason. Many a dark and dismal legend flourishes in the lonely recesses of the landes. " Brittany, like England, has its Cornoiiaille, or Cornwall, and it is here, particularly in North Cornwall, that we see it under its most desolate aspect, with its chains of black treeless hills covered with heath and furze ; with its deserts of broom and fern, its ruins scat- tered along the winding roads, its attenuated herds wandering at their will across the moors, and its savage, ignorant, and scanty population. 20 APPBARANOB OP THE LANDES. The Bretons of Cornwall, according to a French writer, are elevated but a little above the true savage life. Those who dwell upon the coast live on the products of their fishing, except when the fortunate occurrence of a wreck provides them with temporary abundance. At bottom, they possess the qualities and defects of characters strongly tempered, but absolutely uncultivated. They are as hard and bare as their own granite rocks. Persevering, courageous, resolute, they make excellent sailors, the best which France can find ; the sea is for them a second country. Progress, which they do not understand, inspires them with a sort of terror, a gloomy mis- trust. When the railway surveyors first intruded upon their solitudes, these rigid conservatives assailed them with volleys of stones, and, when the railroads were laid down, flung beams across the lines to overthrow the hissing, whirring trains which threatened to disturb their prescriptive barbarism. They asked but to be left alone — to be suffered to live as their forefathers lived — to be spared the ingenuities, successes, vices^ and virtues of the New World. But modern civilization, like Thor's hammer, or Siegfried's magic sword Balmung, will break down the last barriers raised by ignorance and superstition. It will shed its light upon the wilds and wastes of Brittany, and compel their inhabitants in the course of years to acknowledge its value and accept its benefits." There is not a little in the ethnological remarks made which I am not prepared to homologate. I consider the Parallelitha and similar erections had no connection with Druidism, that they were more probably connected with the worship of Baal in some of its forms, having their counterpart in the high places spoken of in the Jewish Scriptures, while the Druids represented the worshippers of the " groves." But referring thus to this in passing I gladly, and with gratitude, avail myself of the topographical desci'iption. Ere we reach that stony region in travelling northwards from the Landes of Gascony, we must pass across the peat bogs of Montoir and the Grand Briere, near Savenay, in the department of the Loire Inf^rieure. They occupy a considerable area of a vast desolate plain, where a few lean sheep crop an insufl&cient food from the scanty herbage, and whose sole product is turf. " This country," says Jules Janin, " has no other harvest, no other wealth than its peat ; neither fruit, nor flowers, nor corn, nor pastures, nor rtpose, nor well-being ; the earth is wild, the sky one of iron. It is a region of stagnant waters, pestiferous exhalations, deci-epit men, famished animals." THE SWAMPS OP MONTOIR 21 " The swampy levels of Montoir form the natural vestibule to the Armorican Peninsula, which of all the French provinces has the longest and the most vigorously withstood the advance of civiliza- tion, its ideas, and its modern institutions, and has the most rigidly preserved its primitive character. There are many nooks and cor- ners in Brittany scarcely changed in outward aspect or inner life since the remote days when it was a valued appanage of the English crown. They seem to have been plunged in a sleep of centuries, from which the shrill whistle of the steam-engine is only just awaken- ing them. The country is undulating and broken ; in the central districts it assumes quite a mountainous character. It is true that its heights are only of moderate elevation, the loftiest not exceeding 2,000 feet ; but they are barren, rude, and sombre in appearance. The coast is picturesque enough to delight the most zealous artist, bordered with high and abrupt cliffs, and lined, as it were, with a beach where the waters of the Channel ever break in floods of spray and foam, and where masses of rock lie scattered of immense size and the most fantastic forms." The counterpart to this we find in the English fen country, which extends inland, around an arm of the North Sea called the Wash, into the six counties of Cambridge, Huntingdon, Lincoln, Norfolk, Northampton, and Sufiblk, with an area of upwards of 420,000 acres. Inland it is bounded by an amphitheatral barrier of high lands, and touches the towns of Bolingbroke, Brandon, Earith, Milton, and Peterborough. Into this great basin flow the waters of the greater part of the drainage of nine counties, which gather into the rivers Cam, Glen, Lark, Nene, Great and Little Ouse, Stoke, and Welland, these being linked together by a network of natural and artificial canals. " Anciently, the Fens were pleasant to the eye of the lover of the picturesque ; for they contained shining meres and golden reed-beds, haunted by countless watei'-fowl, and strange, gaudy insects. ' Dark- green alders,' says Kingsley, ' and pale-green reeds stretched for miles round the broad lagoon, where the coot clanked and the bittern boomed, and the sedge-bird, not content with its own sweet song, mocked the notes of all the birds around ; while high overhead hung hawk beyond hawk, buzzard beyond buzzai'd, kite beyond kite, as far as eye could see.' What strange transformations must this wild region have undergone 1 There was a time, in all probability, when a great part of the German Ocean was dry land, through which, into a vast estuary between North Britain and Norway, flowed together 22 APPBARANOB OF THE LANDES. all the rivers of North-eastern Europe — Elbe, Weser, Rhine, Scheldt, Seine, Thames, and all the rivers of east England, as far north as the Humber, Meanwhile, the valleys of the Cam, the Ouse, the Nene, the Welland, the Glen, and the Witham, were slowly ' sawing them- selves out' by the quiet action of rain and x'ivers. Then came an age when the lowland was swept away by the biting, corroding sea-wash still so powerfully destructive on the east coast of England, as far as Flamborough Head. ' Wave and tide by sea, rain and river by land ; these are God's mighty mills in which he makes the old world new. And as Longfellow says of moral things, so may we of physical, — " Though the mills of God grind slowly, yet they grind exceeding small ; Though he sit and wait with patience, with exactness grinds he all." ' These ever-active causes have converted the dry land into the fens. The mud brought down by the rivers cannot get away to sea ; and, with the debris of the coast, it is constantly swept southward by tide and current, and deposited within the great curving basin of the "Wash, between Lincolnshire and Norfolk. There it is kept by the strong barrier of shifting sands coming inwards from the sea ; a barrier which also confines the very water of the fens, and spreads it inland into a labyrinth of streams, shallow meres, and bogs. The rainfall, over the whole vast area of dull level, has found no adequate channels of escape for centui'ies; and hence we may understand how peat — the certain product of standing water — has slowly overwhelmed the rich alluvium, and swallowed up gradually the stately forests of fir and oak, ash and poplar, hazel and yew, which once spread far and wide over the blooming country. ' Many a green isle needs must be In the deep wide sea of misery,' sings Shelley ; and this dreary outcome of mudbank and bog and mere had its wooded isles, very fair and lovely to behold, redeeming the desolation of the landscape. Such were Ramsey, Lindsey, Whittlesea, whose names remind us of their whilome characteristics [ea, ey, an island). In these green places the old monks loved to build their quiet abbeys, rearing their herds in rich pastures, feeding fat fish in their tranquil streams, and dreaming in the shadow of green alder and stately ash. " But these Eden-isles were few, and the surrounding marsh was black and dismal enough to scare the boldest spirit, and pestilential enough to sap and undermine the strongest frame. The Romans had attempted to drain and embank it, and their vallum may still be DESCRIPTION OF THE FENS. 23 tracked along the surface of the marsh-lands, marked to this day by the names of Walsoken, Walton, and Walpoole. In the Middle Ages, however, it returned to its primeval desolateness — a waste and ■wilderness, haunted by the foul legends of an unwholesome super- stition. In the immediate neighbourhood of the great monasteries of Crowland and Ely, and of the thriving towns, the good work of drainage went on slowly ; but elsewhere the land was given up to the bittern and the heron." By Dukes of Bedford much was accomplished in the earlier half of the seventeenth century, and by Rennie, the great engineer, some hundred and fifty years later, to fit these fens for agricultural opera- tions. " Works are now in progress," says the writer from whom, in furtherance of my work, I have quoted so largely, " for rescuing a further portion of the basin of the Wash, to be formed into a new county, and named after the Queen, So that now, in tracts once covered by the sea, or knee-deep in reedy, slushy, pestilential slime, the grass grows luxuriantly, the crops wave in golden abundance, or the breeze takes up and carries afar — ' The livelong bleat Of the thick-fleecfed sheep from wattled folds.' " But the dominion of labour has not yet been established over the the whole Fen-districts. There are still dreary nooks, and gloomy corners, and unproductive wastes ; wild scenes there are, which few Englishmen have any conception of as contained within the boun- daries of their own ' inviolable isle.' Romantic scenery, remarks Mr. Walter White, must not be looked for on the Lincolnshire coast. In all the journey from the Wash till you see the land of Yorkshire, beyond the Humber, not an inch of cliff will your eyes discover. Monotonous is the prospect of — ' A level waste, a roitnding gray' of sand-hills, which vary but slightly in height, and bristle with marum. ' But tame though it be,' continues our authority, ' the scene derives interest from its peculiarity. Strange perspective effects appear in those irregular hills : yonder they run out and form a low dark, purple headland, against which the pale green and yellow of a nearer tongue look bright by contrast. Here for a few furlongs the range rises gray, cold, and monotonous ; there it has a warmth of colour relieved by deep shadows, that change their tint during the hours ihat accompany the sun while he begins and ends his day. Sitting ou the summit of those dry hills, you will remark the con- 24 APPEARANCE OP THE LANDES. trasted landscape : on the one side, the level pasture land, league after league of grassy gi-eeu, sprinkled with villages, farms, churches, and schools, where work and worship will find exercise through ages yet to come ; on the other, league after league of tawny sand, sloping gently outwards to meet the great sea that ever foams or ripples thereupon. On the one hand, a living scene bounded by the distant wolds ; on the other, a desert, sea and shore alike solitary, bounded only by the overarching sky. More thoughts come crowding into the mind in presence of such a scene than are easy to express.' " Such as are these English Dunes and Moors and Fens are the Landes, with which the sand dunes which have been reclaimed to man are associated, and of which they form a part. The special characteristic of them is the sand of which they are composed ; the second characteristic of them is the superficial aspect which the hill- like accumulation of the sand gives to the contour of the country ; a thii'd characteristic is the constant onward movement of the sand landward, covering up valuable fertile land with sterile sand and stagnant waters ; and the last, but not least remarkable characteristic is the forests which now wave over extensive areas thus recovered. Of these the writer I have quoted, — I am unable to say whether M. Mangin or his translator, — for the latter states that he has made copious additions to the original work, with the view of rendering its scope more comprehensive and complete, and of adapting it specially to the requirements of the English reader — says : — " The works of Charlemagne, on which he employed his veterans to preserve imperilled cities, have been resumed, and with greater success, by a skilful agriculturist, M. Desbiey, of Bordeaux, and an able engineer, M. Bremontier, who have called in nature herself to assist man in his war against nature. Their system consists of sowing in the driest sand the seeds of the sea-pine, mixed with those of the broom (genista scoparia), and the psamma arenaria. The spaces thus sown are then closely covered with branches to protect them from the action of the winds. These seeds germinate spontaneously. The brooms, which spring up rapidly, restrain the sand, while sheltering the young pines, and thenceforth the Dune ceases to move, because the wind can no longer unsettle its substance, and the grains are held together by the roots of the young plants. The work is always begun on the inland side, in order to protect the farmer and the peasant, and to withdraw the infant forest from the unwholesome influence of the ocean-winds. And, in order that the sown spaces THE PEATUKB OP THE LANDE8. 25 shall not themselves be buried under the sands blown up from the shore, a palisade of wicker-work is raised at a suitable distance, which, reinforced by young plants of sandwort (losamma arenaria), check the moving sands for a sufficiently long time to favour the development of the seeds. Finally, the work is completed by the construction of a substantial wall, or rather an artificial cliflf, which efiectually prevents the further progress of the flood, or directs it seaward, to be arrested on its course by the barrier of the sand-hills. Unable to force a passage thi'ough these natural ramparts, they have excavated certain basins, more or less extensive, and more or less deep, which have formed inland seas, communicating with the Atlantic by one narrow issue. " It is a noteworthy fact that, owing to the encroachment of the Dunes, these lakes have been constantly forced back upon the inland country. Fortunately, this menacing invasion of the sands has been checked by the great engineering works executed a few years ago ; which, on the one hand, have fixed, and, as it were, solidified the Dunes, and, on the other, have provided for the regular outflow of the waters. The Landes have thus been opened to the persevering labours of the cultivator. The culture of the pine, and the manu- facture of resinous substances, have largely extended, and the time, perhaps, is not far distant when these deserts will almost completely disappear; when these desolate and unproductive plains will pleasantly bloom, transformed into shadowy woods or verdurous meadows. " To so fortunate a result nothing will more powerfully contribute than the embankment of the Dunes. These have been, in reality, the true scourge of this country ; these were the moving desert, the con- stantly ascending sea, which had already engulfed forests, villages, even towns, under its billows of sand, and driven before it the ter- rified inhabitants of the coast." The expressions employed in this intimation of what is expected remind a Scotsman of his Scottish paraphrase of the predictions of Isaiah — " With joy and peace shall then be led the glad converted lands ; The lofty mountains then shall sing, the forests clap their hands. Where briers grew 'midst barren wilds, shall firs and myrtles spring ; And nature, through its utmost bounds, eternal praises sing." 26 APPEARANCE OP THE LANDE8. I have not seen these plantations, but I have in France had much conversation in regard to them with others of similar tastes who have resided in the midst of them. The accounts given to me were vague, but not more so than conversational statements in general are. They left on my mind the impression that on the sea margin there is a pretty broad beach, and some 100 yards or more from this — 200 it may be, or 300 — the trees have been planted in a belt following, to some ex- tent, the line of the coast, and extending in breadth irregularly from half a mile to a mile, it may be, or more, beyond which the planta- tions are continued in strips of some breadth, crossing each other at right angles, and thus enclosing quadrangular patches or fields, which have been brought under cultivation. Upwards of 100,000 acres of land were reported to me as having been reclaimed, and to a con- siderable extent covered with trees. CHAPTER III. Legislation in Regard to the Planting op the Landes WITH Trees. The planting of the Landes with trees was begun in 1789, under the direction of the Minister, M. Necker, (father of Madame de Stael). On the 13th Messidor an /X(2nd July, 1801), there was issued the following Arret6, or Order, relative to the plantation with wood of the Dunes on the coast of Gascony. " The Consuls of the Republic on the report of the Minister of the Interior, the Council of State having been heard, order : " Art. 1. Measures shall be taken to continue to fix and to plant in wood the Dunes of the coasts of Gascony — beginning with those of La Teste — according to the plans presented by the citizen Bremon- tier, engineer, and the Prefect of the department of the Gironde. " 2. To this effect there shall be established a commission, composed of the chief engineer of the department, who shall preside, a forest administrator, and three members taken from the agricultural section of La Societe des sciences, arts et belles-lettres de Bourdeaux, who shall be appointed by the Prefect on presentation by the society. " The said commission shall direct and superintend the execution of the works, together with the employment of the funds which shall be appropriated thereto. The whole under the authority, and with the approval of, the Prefect." . . . By another order, issued under date of the 3rd Jour complementaire, an IX, it was ordered : " Art. I. The measures prescribed under Order of the IStk Messidor, an IX, for the fixation and plantation of the Dunes on the coasts of Gascony shall, in what relates to wicker hurdles and other artificial works which they shall require, be discussed on the plans of the citizen Bremontier, Engineer-in-chief, and approved by the Prefect of the department of the Gironde ; and in what relates to sowings and plantations these must be arranged with the Administration of Forests. " 2. The expenses for hurdles and other artificial works shall be made from the funds of the department of the Interior, and those for the plantations and the salaries of forest agents from the funds appropriated to forests." 28 LEGISLATION RELATIVE TO By decree of 12th July, 1808, it was declared : "Art. 22. There shall be established in the departmeut of the Landes a commission for the plantation of the Dunes. " This commission shall be organised in the same manner as that established at Bordeaux in execution of the decree of the 18th Ifcssidor, an IX." On the 14th December, 1810, the following decree was passed by Napoleon : "Napoleon, &c. — On the report of our Minister of the Interior, our Council of State having been heard, we have decreed and do decree as follows : " Art, 1. In the maritime departments there shall be taken measures for the sowing, the plantation, and the culture of vegetables known to be the most suitable for the fixation of Dunes. " 2. To this effect the Prefects of all the departments in which are Dunes shaU cause to be prepared in their respective departments by the Ingenieurs des Fonts et Chaussees, a chart of the Dunes which are susceptible of being fixed by plantations appropriate to their nature ; they shall cause to be distinguished on their charts the Dunes which belong to the domains, those which belong to communes, and those which are the property of private persons. " 3. Each Prefect shall draw out, or cause to be drawn out, in support of these charts, a memoir on the most advantageous manner of proceeding, according to localities, in the sowing and planting of the Dunes ; they shall annex to this report a draft of regulations, which shall contain the measures of administration the most appropriate to his department, which can be usefully employed to effect the end desired. " 4. The charts, memoirs, and drafts of regulations, got up and drawn out in execution of the foregoing articles, shall be sent by the Prefects to our Minister of the Interior, who can, on the report of our Director-General des Fonts et Chcmssees, order the plantation if the Dunes do not include any private property ; and, in the contrary case, he shall make his report to us, to be by us decided in Council of State in the form adopted for regulations of public administration. " 6. In the cases in which the Dunes shall be the property of private persons, or of communes, the charts shall be published, and posted up in the forms prescribed by the law of 8th March, 1810 ; and if the said private persons or communes find themselves incapable of executing the works commanded, or refuse to do so, the public PLANTATIONS ON THE DUNES. 29. administration shall be authorised to see to the plantation at their expense ; they shall retain possession of the Dunes, and collect the proceeds of the fellings which may then be made, until complete recovery shall have been made of the expenses which have been incurred in the case, and of interest thereon ; after this the Dunes shall return to the proprietors, under burden of maintaining satis- factorily the plantations thereon. " 6. In time coming no felling de plants d'oT/ats, of mat grass epines maritimes, pine trees, silver firs, larches, and other arenaceous plants, ministering to the conservation of the Dunes, shall be made without the special authorisation of the Director-General des Fonts et Chaussees, and on the advice of the Prefects. " 7. There shall be established Guards for the conservation of the plantations actually existing on the Dunes, or which shall be made there in time to come ; their appointment, their number, their duties, their salary, their uniform, shall be regulated after the mode in use, for the guards of communal woods. " Offences shall be prosecuted before the tribunal, and punished conformally to the provisions of the Penal Code. " 8. We do not design, by the present decree, to innovate aught on what is practised for the plantations which are being executed in the Dunes of the departments of the Landes, and of the department of the Gironde. " 9. Our Ministers of the Interior, and of Finances, are charged each in what concerns him, with the execution of this decree." After the restoration there was decreed the following Ordinance : " Ordinance of 5th February, 1817, relative to the fixation and the sowing of the Dunes on the departments of the Gironde and the Landes. " Louis, &c. — On the reports of our Ministers, Secretaries of State in the departments of the Interior and of Finance, our Council of State being heard, we have ordained, and do ordain as follows : "Art. 1. The works of fixation and of sowing the Dunes in the departments of the Gironde and of the Landes shall be resumed in 1817. " These works shall, in regard to execution, be directed by our Director-General des Fonts et Chaussees, under the authority of our Minister of the Interior. 2. The necessary funds for this operation shall be charged in the budget des Fonts et Chaussees, the yearly credit must not exceed 9 ,000 francs for the two departments. 30 LEGISLATION RELATIVE_TO 3. The works shall be executed, the expenditure made, and the accounts rendered, according to the mode adopted for the service des Fonts et Chaussees. " 4. In succession as the sowings reach an age which shall be afterwards determined, they shall cease to be entrusted to the Director des Fonts et Chaussees ; but he shall transfer them to the General Administration of Forests. *' 5. The General Administration of Forests shall furnish, free of charge, to the Direction des Fonts et Chaussees, the seeds, young trees, and boughs, yielded by the forests which they administer, which shall be necessary for the fixation and sowing of the Dunes. " 6. The Ingenieurs des Fonts et Chaussees are authorised to require assistance of the forest agents and guards in the tours of inspection which they shall have to make over the whole extent of the Danes. " 7. It shall subsequently be decided what special measures shall be taken to prevent and to repress the offences which tend to destroy or to injure the works of sowing the Dunes. " 8. A regulation of our Director-General des Fonts et Chaussees, approved by our Minister, Secretary of State for the Interior, shall determine the advance of the works, their range and their surveillance. (This was done by a regulation dated 7th October, 1817.) "9. The orders of 2nd July, and 20th September, 1807, are abrogated, together with all other provisions contrary to the present ordinance. '* 10. Our Minister, Secretary of State for the Interior, is charged with the execution of the present ordinance." On 29th April, 1862, was issued a decree, which places the superintendauce of the Dunes within the duties of the Minister of Finance. * The provisions of this are as follows : " Art. 2. The works of fixation, of maintenance, of conservation, and of exploitation of the Dunes in the maritime coast are placed within the range of duties of the Minister, Secretary of State of Finance, and they are entrusted to the Forest Administration. " 8. These provisions shall come into operation on 1st July, 1862. " 4. Our Ministers of State, of Finance, of Agriculture, of Commerce, and of Public Works, are charged each in what relates to his de- * A law appears to have been issued in 1857, enjoining the draining and planting of all lands belonging to communities within the district of the Landes, but this I have not seen. PLANTATIONS ON THE DUNES. 31 partment with the execution of the present decree, which shall be inserted in the Bulletin des Lois. These enactments tell this much of the history of the work : that the views of M. Bremontier commended themselves to the execution of the Kepublic, and that he was entrusted with the execution of the work at the public expense, under legitimate restriction ; that the work was ordered to be begun at the Dunes of La Teste in Gascony, in the first year of the present century, and seven years later they were begun on the Landes ; that the work was carried out with if possible greater energy under Napoleon the 1st, and subsequently under Louis XIV ; and that, carried out previously under the Minister of the Interior, they were in 1862 transferred to the control of the Minister of Finance, and entrusted to the Forest Administration. CHAPTER IV. Literature Relative to the Arrest and Cultivation op Drift-Sands in France. The work of planting the Landes of Gascony, as has been stated, was begun in 1789. In 1790 was published a Memoire sur les Dunes, c&c, by" M. Bremontier, by whom the work was projected and begun under the direction of M. Necker. In this memoir M. Bremontier describes the formation of the sand-dunes, and of the measures which had been adopted to arrest the drifting of the sand. In 1806 appeared a Rapport sur les diff events Memoirs de M. Bremontier, by M. M. Laumont, et autres. In 1827 was published Historique de la creation d^une Eichesse Millionaire, par la culture des Pins, by M. Delamarre ; In 1831, a Notice stir les travaux de la fixation des Dunes, by M. Lefert, Ingenieur des Fonts et des Chaussees, in Annales des Fonts et Chaussees, 1831, 2nd Semestre. In 1833, in Annales des Fonts, &c., 1st Semestre, were reprinted the Memoire by Bremontier, and the Ra2}port, by Laumont and others, mentioned above. 1842, a Notice sur le pin Maritime, by M. Lorentz, appeared in Annales forestiere. 1847, a Memoire sur les Dunes de Golf de Gascoyne, par M. Laval, Ingenieur en chef, Directeur des Fonts et Chaussees, appeared in Annales des Fonts, &c., 2nd Semestre. This is spoken of as a very remarkable Memoir, which, though less extensive and comprehensive in subject than that of the dis- tinguished Bremontier, fully and perfectly explains the formation of Dunes, and the latest and most approved methods employed to fix them. In 1857 was published a second edition of Mise en valeur des terres pauvres par le Fin Maritime, by Am6d6e Boitel, Inspecteur de r agriculture. In 1862 appeared an interesting article entitled, Le littoral de la France, by Missee Reclus, in the Revue des Deux Mondes, for December, 1862. FRENCH AND GERMAN LITERATURE. 33 In 1864 was published Traite de la Culture du Pin Maritime dans les Landes, by Eloi Samanos, Paris. 8vo, About this time, I presume, was published " The Desert World," by Arthur Mangiu, from a translation of which, published by Nelson and Sons, I have quoted so largely ; and Weld's " Tour through the Pyrenees," to which I am also so greatly indebted. In 1870 an interesting report on the Landes of Gascony was made to the academy, by M. Faye. These works I cite as bearing chiefly upon the planting of the Landes of Gascony and the Gironde. The literature thus cited relates only to one aspect or department of a wider subject : The natural history of drift sands, and means of arresting and utilising them. The literature on this subject is voluminous. It is chiefly in con- nection with sylviculture in Gascony that the students of the natural history of Dunes in France have published the results of their obser- vations. It may be, and probably it was the case, that the planting of the Landes with trees called then for the study of the subject, and supplied, at the same time, the opportunity of careful observation. But much as we may owe to French writers on the subject, it is not to them alone that we are indebted for information on the subject ; and none will be more ready than they, with the courtesy of their nation, and the honourable feeling of men of science, to admit that it is not to them or to their countrymen, but to others, we are indebted for information on many points surpassing in importance in their relation to physical geography what they have communicated, relating as this did chiefly, though not exclusively, to the cultivation of these Dunes when formed, and the practicability of doing so advantageously to all concerned. While they were thus employed, in other nations the subject in other aspects of it was commanding and receiving attention. In 1832 appeared Anleitung zum A^tban der Sandficichen ; and in 1838 was published a work entitled Over den Oorsprong en die Geschiedenis der HoUandsche Duiueii, by Hull. The latter relating to the origin of the Dunes, the former to the planting of them. In 1841 appeared a paper, by G. Forchhammer, entitled Geognostische Studien am Meeres Ufer, in Leonhard und Broun's JVeues Jahrbuch fur Mineralogie, Geognosie, Geologie, o&c. Jahrgang, 1841. In 1846, was published Die Inseln und Marschen der Herzogtkiimer Schleswig und Holstein. Dresden and Leipsig. 3 vols. 8vo. E 34 LITERATURE OF THE SUBJECT In 1850, Ber DUnenhau auf Ostsee, Kusten Wesf-Preussens, by G. C. A, Krause, 1850, appeared; and subsequently there was published. In 1854, Ansichteii uher die Bewaldiing der Stepioen des Europdischen Russlands, by J. von den Brincken. Braunschwieg. 8vo. In 1856 was published at Haarlem De Boden von Nederlanden, by W. C. H. Staring. In 1861 was published at Copenhagen Om Klit formationen og Klittens BeJiandlhig, og Bestyvelse, by C. C. Andreson. And in 1873 was published at Vienna Der Euroixiische Flug sand und seine Kidtv^r, by Josef Wessely, in which is given a list of upwards of 100 books and papers on subjects pertaining to this department of forest science in Hungarian, Latin, and German, published in Hungary alone. In our own language valuable information in regard to the natural history of sand, and of sand dunes, is given by the Honourable Mr G. P. Marsh in his volume on " The Earth as Modified by Human Action ;" and by Professor R. C. Kedzie of the Agricultural College of the State of Michigan, in a lecture delivered at the College, in September, 1870 ; which will be printed in the appendix. It does not come within the scope of my purpose in this volume to enter upon the consideration of the more comprehensive views of the subject thus opened up. The discussion of these is for the pre- sent postponed. In accordance with what has been advanced in a previous chapter, is a narrative of the operations given in an article on pine trees, which appeared in the Edinburgh Review in October, 1864. From this it appears the Landes, in Gascony in 1789, covered 300 square miles, ever shifting, and ever encroaching on the productive land beyond this sand. M. Bremontier, in the administration of forests, set himself to fix, and, if practicable, so to utilise this as to make it productive. " In his report of proceedings, he compared this sandy tract to a billowy sea. It ofi'ered nothing to the eye but a monotonous repetition of white wavy hillocks perfectly destitute of vegetation. When violent storms of wind occurred, the surface of these downs was entirely changed — what were hills had become valleys, and valleys, hills. The sand on these occasions was often blown into the interior of the country, actually covering cultivated fields, villages, and even entire forests. This was done so gradually by a shower of particles as fine as the sand used for hour glasses that nothing was IN THE " EDINBURGH REVIEW." 35 destroyed. The sand gradually rose amongst the crops as if they were inundated with water ; and the herbage and the tops of trees appeared quite green, and healthy even at the moment of their being submerged. On this moving and shifting sea, M. Bremontier sowed seeds of the common broom mixed with those of the pinaster, com- mencing on the side next the sea — or on that from which the wind generally prevailed, and sowing in narrow zones in directions at right angles to that of the wind. The first zone was protected by a line of hurdles, and after it was established, it protected the second, as the second did the third, and so on. " To prevent the seed being blown away before it had germinated and become firmly rooted, he protected it by various ingenious modes, such as hurdles and thatching, and he had at last the gratification, after conquering many difficulties, of seeing his first zones firmly established. The rest was then comparatively easy ; and by degrees the trees covered the whole of these sandy downs, not only providing the interior country with a barrier against the incursion of the sands, but turning the downs themselves from a desolate waste into a source of productive industry. Although the timber is of little value, the manufacture of tar, turpentine, and other resinous products furnishes sufficient occupation for the inhabitants, who are thinly scattered over large spaces. Among the effisrts of man to control the elements and the powers of nature the conquests of the Landes from the desola- tion of the desert is entitled to a place beside the recovery of Holland from the empire of the sea. "An agricultural genius, who, having studied agriculture, and particularly drainage, under scientific teachers, devised a system of reclaiming and husbandry, which has been very successful. " Prosperity is rapidly following these improvements, and, what is better, malaria no longer poisons the reclaimed district. The peasantry enjoy better health, and M. Pierre firmly believes that the terrible pellagri will soon be unknown in the Landes." CHAPTER V. Culture op the Maritime Pine on the Landes op Gascony. M. BoiTBL, in his volume entitled Mise en valeur des Terres pauvres par le pin maritime, supplies much of the information which is naturally desired in proceeding to enquire what steps should be taken in carrying out similar measures elsewhere. The following is a resum6 of the details of operations followed in Gascony, as reported by him. Having referred to the circumstance that these two distinct forms of sand-lands, the one situated more in the interior of the land, immobile, or at least settled, and ranked by geologists amongst the formations of the tertiary period ; the other found in the neighbourhood of the sea, and belonging to the dune formations still going on, mobile, and affected by the winds ; he describes, first, the formation of pineries, or plantations of pine on the fixed sands. Operations are carried on generally thus on lands covered with heather, or heather brooms, and whins : If the land be capable of tillage they begin by enclosing it, so as to exclude cattle, which, but for this precaution, would over-run the plantation, and do great damage to the seedlings or plants. This is effected by the formation of what is locally called a harradeau, composed of an exterior ditch, the inner bank of which is furnished with a wall of earth covered with sods about a metre, or- 40 inches, in height. It is constructed entirely of earth dug in the formation of the ditch, and is almost vertical on the outside ; on its inner side it is formed of the sand furnished by the same ditch, leaning against the wall to a height of 45 m.m., or 18 inches. This done, advantage is taken of the weather to set fire to the bush, taking necessary precautions against the extension of this beyond the enclosure to the bush, or pineries adjacent. If the ditch be not deemed sufficient, a band of 1 or 2 metres in breadth is cut with a scythe along the outside of the harradeau, and the bush and brushwood thus obtained is thrown into the interior of the enclosure. When the growth of bush is strong and near a tile-work, it is often advantageous, instead of burning it on the ground, to sell it for use in the kiln. boitbl's account of operation. 37 Some careless proprietors sow the pine seed on the land amongst the bush, without any preparatory work. In such cases the seedlings push their way with difficulty, and the young pines remain long in a miserable and languishing state, if they do not altogether succumb in the struggle. In the district of Orleans a careful preparation of the soil is necessary, but in Gascony it is enough that the heath be mown or burned. It is found advantageous to sow in September, but it may be sown on till May, and in favourable spots till the end of that month. When the ground is free, five or sis seeds are deposited in holes made with a small wooden trowel, 60 m.m., or 2 feet apart, and 10 or 12 inches deep. Where the ground is hard or covered with sod, the holes are dug with a pick-axe or a hoe. Brooms are sown at the same time to give shade and shelter to the seedlings, which are very sensitive, both to sunshine and to cold, By Bremontier, first hurdles or wicker work, and afterwards trees were employed in his successful undertakings to arrest the drift-sands of the Landes, and the two appliances are used conjointly; while not a little is accomplished by the natural, or aided, spread of the indigenous vegetation, the different kinds of which, in accordance with the laws regulating the distribution of plants, grow well in their own domains. "On the very margin of the sea," says Boitel, "that is at the limit reached by the waves on the slope of the coast directly opposed to all the marine inflaences, we admire the robust vegetation of the calamagrostis arenaria, (a species of small reed), called there gourhet ; of the triticum junceum, (a species of Couch grass) ; and of the Festuca sabulicola (a species of Fescue grass). These are the three species of plants which, by their vivacious condition, their long, wide- stretching and resisting roots, their numerous and persistent leaves, and the length of their stipes, or stalks, contribute most powerfully to arrest the sands. Some other herbaceous plants also are feeble auxiliaries to them in doing so — such are the convolvulus soklanella (the sea convolvulus), the arenaria jyej^loides (ovate leaved Honckenya), the caTcile maritima (sea rocket), the galum arenaria (a species of lady's obedstraw), the eryngiimi maritimum (sea holly), and the euphorbia paralis (sea spurge). " Leaving this little slope battered by the sea, and mounting the terrace which dominates the sea there for a breadth of from 400 to 500 metres — ligneous vegetables are as yet unable to maintain them- 38 CULTURE OF THE MARITIME PINE. selves against the sea-breeze, — we find only a herbaceous vegetation, which comprehends the species which have been mentioned, and with them the following : — Elychrysum stoechas (a species of everlasting), carex aremiria (sand carex), Unaria serpyllifolia (thyme-leaved toad flax), thymus serpylliom (wild thyme), hoeleria cristata (crested koeleria), aira canescens (gray hair grass), lotus corlatus (nicurd's foot trefoil), jasione montana (common sheep's bit), silene hicolor (a species of campion, or catchfly), cdyssicm arenarium (sand alyssum), hieraceum prostatum (a species of hawliwood), anthyllis vulneraria (lady's fingers), astragalus hayonensis (a species of milk vetch), medicago maritima (seaside medick), dianthus gallicus (French pink), ononis spinosa (prickly rest-harrow), sedum acre (biting stoncrop), diotis candidissiam (white cotton weed), thrincia hirta (hairy thrincia), Grithmum mariti- mum (sea camphire), artemisia crinthmifolium (camphire leaved worm- wood)." It is the zone which succeeds this last, extending from Bayonne to Cape Breton, which has, by the care of the Government, been devoted to the culture of the maritime pine. In regard to outlying portions of the zone of plantations, he says : — "It is interesting to visit the maritime pines, which look like advanced posts, planted there to withstand the sea, and arrest the winds and the sand. Although they are under the shelter of an en- ormous screen of sand accumulated by the waves, they are all mutil- ated and deformed ; no one has kept his head ; they have the trunk laid against the ground, the branches are covered up with sand, and having assumed the appearance of young pine layers. The sea winds have levelled up the sand on them to a depth of 1.50 meters, or 5 feet. The grains of sand driven by the tempest give to the leaves violent and multiplied strokes, which make them become yellow and dry. " In proportion as the distance between them and the sea is in- creased, being numerous and varied, they give mutual support ; they also increase in size, and resume by degrees their natural form. "Beyond this zone of deformed and stunted pines we find at about a kilometre, (two thirds of a mile) from the sea, beautiful pineries which furnish in abundance wood and resin. But it must always be born in mind that these pines never acquire the dimensions, the regularity, and the vertical growth of the pineries farther inland ; the influence of the sea makes itself be felt over a radius of from 2 to 3 kilometres (or two miles)." Sometimes a spontaneous and vigorous vegetation fixes and oonsoli- ACCOUNT GIVEN BY OOURREQES. 39 dates the sand on level spots which present little hold to the violence of the wind ; but it is the maritime pine which plays the most im- portant part in eflfecting this. Two principal things have to be attended to by the forester to whom it is entrusted to sow the pines in these mobile lands. He must seek first to prevent the adjacent sand from invading and annihilating the sowing ; and, second, to prevent the wind cai'rying away or otherwise modifying the surface of the ground sown: that is, in other words, he must fix down the adjoining sand, and protect the ground sown. The first must be done by plantation of Gourbet, calamagrostis arenaria (sand small reed), or by clayonnages, lines of wickerwork. We are indebted to Courreges, a careful observer, early lost to forest science, for the following notes preserved in the Annates forestiere for 1847, which relate to the employment of these wickerwork fences and the subsequent sowing of the seed. " The clayonnage is the best means to employ to consolidate the drift-sands and prevent their displacement on parts exposed to the wind ; and this is the first thing to do before proceeding to sow the seed, " Clayonnage may be eff"ected in three ways — first, with planks or beams j second, with stakes dressed with branches ; third, with heather or other bushes. " It is carried out in such a way as to receive at an angle of 45°, the winds coming from the north-west or from the south-west, which are the most violent winds, and those most to be feared for the sowings. It takes the form of a triangle of which the base is parallel to the shore, and the two sides form, with this base, an angle of 45°, the exact direction of the aforesaid winds." The employment of planks and beams, in the structure of these, is almost abandoned. It is the most expensive of the three modes of clayonnage, and it does not appear to me that it would be of any use to describe it. " The Clayonnage of stakes, is composed of poles, about 2 metres (or nearly 7 feet) long, planted in lines some 20 inches apart. They are united by branches of heather, or other bushes placed as closely together as possible " The Clayonnage of heather is formed of four parallel ranges of bundles of Erica Scoparia (small green-flowered heath), or of other bushes growing on the land, such as whins, brooms, &c. These bundles may be 9 or 10 inches in girth ; they are planted — quincunx, fashion 6 inches apart — in lines 10 inches distant. 40 CULTURE OF THE MARITIME PINE. "The moving sand striking against this is stopped, and it gradually fills up all the intervals, and forms thus a slope with two sides. In proportion as the dune rises, care is taken to raise, from time to time, all the bundles of the four ranks until it is judged that the dune is sufiiciently elevated to protect the sowings on the adjacent zone. " The costs of the two are about the same ; but the latter lasts longer, and is more easily maintained. Nevertheless, the former is perferred for points on which the wind acts with more force and violence." Of the sowing, M. Courreges reports — " They sow by hand broad cast 16 kilogrammes (about 351bs.) of pine seed, and 7 kilogrammes (15| lbs.) of broom seed to the acre, sowing the one after the other, because, being of different weights, they would be ill sown if they were mixed. "They immediately cover up the surface sown with brushwood, composed of heather, whins, and other bushes, laid with the root to the wind, that they may be less easily raised by the action of the wind, and fixity is given to the covering by loading it with some shovelfuls of sand. " Branches of the pine are little esteemed as a covering, because they very soon become despoiled of the leaves with which they are clothed. " When the covering up of the ground is completed, it is well to cast over it 4 or 5 kilogrammes (9 or 10 lbs.) of pine seed, which falling between the branches, may come to replace seeds buried to too great a depth by the treading of the workmen. " The broom and the maritime pine appear above the sand about the same time, but the broom developes more rapidly, and soon covers, with its shade, the young pines, the vegetation of which shows itself pretty promptly and pretty vigorously under the protecting shelter." In the Landes they value the cork oak, and not without reason, because of its product, and it is often grown along with the maritime pine, under the shade and shelter of which it grows up erect, yielding its bark in good condition for sale, whereas otherwise it is apt to be- come bushy. It is sown in a similar way two years after the sowing of the pine. In some cases, but not generally, pines produced by natural sowing on marshy land, are cut out with a sod of such size as to contain all the rootlets, and planted in holes dug for them of the same size, with ARREST OF THE SAND. 4l the same exposure, arranged in lines, and from 6 to 7 metres, (20 to 24 feet) apart. This cannot be done with seedlings in sandy soil, as the soil would not cohere to the roots. When done quickly it often succeeds well; bat with sundry disadvantages. The trees yield resin as well as the others, but they do not grow so regularly as to yield equally useful wood. By Boitel it is intimated that it is well that the young pines which grow in the vicinity of the sea should be numerous and closely grown, as they can then resist with greater efficacy the shock of the winds and storms, and, through the mutual support which they give, they are less likely to bead and break under the load of snow cast upon them in winter. The expense being greatly increased by the covering of branches, to avoid this in many cases after the preliminary step of securing shelter by an artificial dune, raised by clayonnage, they wait till the sand is fixed by a spontaneous vegetation, or a plantation of gourhet (calamagrostis arenaria), in spots a mfetre, or 40 inches apart ; and when this has been done the grain is sown or planted in accordance with the method adopted on old inland sands. This is found to do pretty well. When none of the measures described are practicable, the seed is sown on the bare and mobile sand, and covered with branches of pine obtained from the thinnings and prunings of the nearest pineries. In this case, the branches are disposed north and south ; along- side of the first branch is laid a second ; along-side of the second a third, and so on till the summit of the dune is reached. The branches are cut of equal length, somewhere between 3 metres, or 3-50— or 10 and 12 feet. The first line of branches being formed, a second is laid down, and a third, the one to the right, and the other to the left, in such a way that the branches intercross. And to fix the whole, there is laid on the ends of the branches a pine pole of about 8 centimetres, 3 or 4 inches in circumference, which is fixed in the ground at the end with small hooks of wood. If any part of the dune be firm, then this covering is dispensed with. The expense of covering is great, but this need not be grudged, as the drift sands, once covered with pines, produce vigorous forests, which in a few years furnish wood and resins in abundance. And thus have these drift sands been arrested, and kept from carrying destruction to fields, and forests, and villages more remote, as may F 42 CULTURE OF THE MARITIME PINE. be seen to have happened near the little lake of L6ou, and at Vielle, a village of the Landes, where even the church disappeared under the sand borne thither by the wind. In accordance with this account is the following given by M. Bagneris, hispecteur des Forks, et Professeur a VEcole foresti^re de Nancy, who visited the plantations in 1873 : — " In the month of January last," says he in a supplement to a volume published by him, entitled, Manuel de Sylvicdture, " I made an excursion through the district of the Dunes, from Bayonne to Tremblade, accompanied by M. Nanquette, Director of the School of Forest Science, and my colleague, M. Broilliard. I can thus give an account of the means used for their fixation and reboisement. I also studied the treatment of the maritime pine as regards the collection of resinous products. " On the low and sandy shores which skirt the sea between the mouths of the Adour and the Gironde, every tide bears along a very fine sand. At low water this sand is conveyed inland by the wind, making constant encroachments and it is always succeeded by more, whence result moving heaps, sometimes 70 metres high (upwards of 230 feet), sloping gently on the side next the sea, and steep on that next the land. Sometimes these heaps take the form of continuous hills lying in straight lines with valleys between, sometimes they appear without any order. This depends on the coast line. The former arrangement is met with between the Adour and the Gironde, whilst at the Point de la Coubre the second form I found to prevail. "These moving sand hills are called Dunes. It is ascertained that their progress landward is at the average rate of 4*30 m. a year (15 feet), and that the quantity of sand thus transported is about 75 cubic metres to the running metre of the length of the Dune, (In- formation given by M. Dutemps du Gric, Conservateur at Bourdeaux). The valleys there called lettes are of variable size, the bottom is flat and usually marshy where the Dunes are bare, or dunes blanches as they are called in that country. " It may easily be imagined what an interest is taken in reclaiming and fixing these Dunes whose advance threatens to swallow up all, even menacing human habitations, which more than once it has been necessary to move inland from before them. In the first place the sand is temporarily arrested by means of clagonnages and stone, rooted plants, such as the goicrbet, the spurge, the fesgue grass. The maritime pine follows to fix it and make it valuable. This last is admirably suited for such local conditions as there prevail. It grows uaturaUj in mild climates, and its tap root is furnished with strong REPORT BY BAGNERI8. 43 lateral branches, which throw off throughout their length numerous secondary tap-roots. Along with these valuable properties it possesses the advantage of supplying valuable and abundant resinous products. " The maritime pine has long been used in the Dunes. The forest of Teste must be several centuries old. But it will only thrive quite close to the sea. After the works carried on by Bremontier, which were begun in 1787, it was planted quite up to the brink of the beach. I shall state how this is done. " Before putting in the seed a protecting barrier must be erected to prevent the sand from burying the seed and young trees. This barrier is nothing but an artificial Dune, called the dune littorale ; it is formed by erecting a palisade parallel to the shore, at about 100 metres from the high water mark. For this purpose planks are employed of about 1*60 metres in length, 3 centimetres in thickness, and from 12 to 15 centimetres broad ; a furrow, 40 centimetres deep, is dug in the sand, in which the planks are sunk to a depth of 20 centimetres, the lower ends being cut in a tapering form. In this way, when the furrow is filled up, the planks are buried to a depth of 60 centimetres, 1 metre being above ground. They do not touch each other, a space of 2 centimetres being left between. "The sand arrested by the palisade arranges itself in heaps sloping gently towards the sea; the interstices allow a certain quantity of sand to pass through, which increases the base, and consequently the solidity of the Dunes. When the palisades are almost covered, the planks are extracted by the help of a lever with claws, and the Dune goes on increasing. It should not increase too rapidly, because, if so, it might be destroyed by a wave. " The better to secure its base behind the palisade a barrier is formed of stakes, of 2*50 metres, between which flexible branches are interlaced. The stakes are driven in to a depth of 50 centimetres, and the clayonnages at first are only one metre high ; the height is increased as the Dune rises, and when it reaches the top of the stakes a new barrier is erected as the stakes cannot be removed as was done with the palisade. " The whole is then consolidated by plantations of gourhet, which is arranged in tufts of from 5 to 6 stems, with 50 centimetres between each. The gourhet has this advantage, that as the sand increases in depth, the stalks rise, and produce roots which form a perfect net- work; 300 bundles of gourhet of 10 kilogrammes each, besides 6 kilogrammes of seed are required per hectare. The seed is sown 44 CULTURE OF THE MARITIME PINE. broad cast ; the operation of planting, and the feet of the workmen assist in covering it. '* The palisade costs from 2*50 francs to 3 francs per mfetre, it lasts five years when made of pine which has not been injected. Its keeping up and removal cost about 50 centimes a year. The barrier costs about 30 centimes per running mfetre, and it should be renewed nearly every year. " If there be any danger of the littoral Dune being injured by the wind, other palisades should be erected, at a certain angle with the first, on the sand which has been dislodged. At present there is a well kept up dune littorale, more than 200 kilometres long, from the bar of the Adour to the mouth of the Gironde. " When once a shelter from the wind is provided rehoisement should be begun. This is done by scattering a mixture of the maritime pine, broom, whins, and gourhet. For example, in the operations carried on by the State, 10 kilogrammes of the seed of the maritime pine, 9 kilogrammes of broom, and 4 kilogrammes of gourhet seed are used per hectare. It is then covered by faggots of brushwood, broom, and whins. One man unties the bundles, two others spread them out, and a third places a spadeful of soil at every 50 centimetres to secure the covering which is absolutely necessary to prevent the seed being carried away, and especially to keep the sand in its place. For this purpose rushes are better than broom, because they furnish a better manure when decomposed. " The seed should be sown, and the covering put on, simultaneously. At the close of each day additional earth should be laid on the last laid brushwood to protect it from the wind. Care should also be taken to arrange it equally and close to the ground, so as to leave no air holes, for in a single night the labour of several days may be lost. " Pines, broom, and whins will grow together, and it is remarked that pines thrive best where the two last abound. When these are sparse much care must be taken in watching over the covering, as protection is necessary for four years. It should even be renewed, and this is one of the chief things to be done in maintaining the work. " After some years the rehoisement of the dune littorale may be pro- ceeded with, by erecting a wide palisade nearer the sea, but whether this be done or not, the dune littorcde must always be kept in good order, otherwise the works would be inevitably buried by the con- tinual advance of the sand. "Such is, in short, the kind of work to be done. It is often tedious, and, in certain circumstances, difficult. To consolidate and ACCOUNT GIVEN BY BOITEL, 45 plant with trees the Dune, will cost, at least, 500 francs per hectare. This outlay ceases, however, to appear exorbitant when we consider the protection which it provides. Almost the whole is laid out on the erection and keeping up of palisades, and chiefly in the ti'ansport from long distances, across moving sands of great depth, of the required planks and faggots of brushwood." And it is stated by him that one effect of the reboisement — or, as that word is scarcely applicable though the word employed, the growth of the pineries — has the effect of drying up the stagnant water in the lettes, " either," says Boitel, " by the evaporation con- nected with vegetation, or more likely by the formation of mould, by which the moisture is absorbed and retained, or by some unknown operation." Such artificial sowing as has been described may be necessary in taking in new ground, and it is practised elsewhere; but in the Landes natural reproduction is sufi&cient to maintain the pignadas. " The pine," says Boitel," produces cones with impricated scales. These scales, compactly arranged, varnished, and of bone-like consis- tence, form a covering for the seed which may seem to be indestruc- tible ; but by an organisation which calls forth manifested admira- tion of the Providence, the scales which man could scarcely break by artificial means open as if by enchantment when they attain a certain temperature. " The heat in dilating them, causing them to bend backward, separates them one from another, and in the new position thus taken they oflfer an easy exit to the winged seed which they had previously held imprisoned. "Let it be borne in mind that the cones remain attached to the tree beyond the period of their maturity, that they are persistent and pendent on their peduncle, or stalk, and it will be seen that they are in a position admirably adapted for favouring the escape of the seed, and this, yielding to its weight, detaches itself freely from the opened out scale, and immediately by its wings it comes under the disseminat- ing influence of the winds. " The seeds thus sown germinate under the shade of the old trees, and form a young repeuplement, or new generation of trees, to take the place of the old when they shall pass away ; and destined to be productive when the time shall come for the final and complete exploitation of the older trees reserved for this purpose. " These natural sowings are, so to speak, the only means of produo 46 CULTURE OF THE MARITIME PINE. ing the repeuplement of the pineries of Gascony required. The maritime pine finds in that land conditions so favourable to its development that it goes on reproducing itself indefinitely on the same ground, without any necessity for man to trouble himself about the sowing of fresh seeds. Often, in order that a sandy surface may cover itself spontaneously with young pines, it is enough to surround it with an enclosure, which shall keep out from the pasturage which it supplies cattle left without surveillance in the pineries." An illustration of the importance of this occurs in one of the earlier works by Darwin. It is stated, if my memory serves me right, that on a piece of waste land or heath a common having been enclosed, forth- with, to the surprise of many, there began to grow up vigorously seedling pines, though pines had never been grown there before. And, on examination, it was found that all around, growing amongst the grass, were decapitated seedling trees, which had sprung up from self-sown seed, but been broken over by cattle grazing there ; and apparently nothing more was required in order to the whole becoming a forest of pines than that this destructive operation should be prevented by a fence to exclude the cattle. When the pineries become fairly established on the Dunes in Gascony, or on fixed sands more inland, which belong to the tertiary formation, they require, as the trees increase in size, to be subjected to periodical thinnings, and in some cases to moderate pruning judiciously executed. " In thinning, attention is given to removing the worst of the trees, and to leave to the better trees the air, light, and space required for their perfect development. Pineries which are not thinned at the proper times suffer from this, as do crops overgrown by weec^ ' from neglect of hoeing suffer from these injurious plants. The be. sowings are those which are neither too sparse nor too dense; L ues which have much space for growth develope more in breadth inan in height; they present a dwarfed trunk, irregular and full of knots, and they are loaded with strong and vigorous crowns, conditions which are as unfavourable to the operation of tapping for resin as to the production of useful timber. If the plants remain too numerous and too close they famish one another, shoot up beyond what is desirable, and fall into an emaciated condition, in which they succumb to every injurious influence. The stems are slender ; and the crowns, weak and few in number, fall ofif of them- selves, leaving stumps, which disappear. But they recover them- ACCOUNT GIVEN BY BOITEL. 47 selves easily, and protect one another in the pineries which have been moderately thinned during the first twenty years of their growth. Beyond this general observation it is difficult to lay down precise rules in regard to the best means of executing thinnings. If germina- tion have produced many more seedlings than was expected, it will do good to remove, by hand, a certain number of these at the age of 3 or 4 years, or as soon as they ai'e seen to be injuring and starving one another ; on the contrary, in a sowing which has come up badly, and which does not sufficiently cover the ground, the first thinning should be deferred till they have attained the age of 15 or 16 years. In ordinary circumstances pines require to be thinned when they have reached the age of 7 or 8 years. At this age the expense of the operation may be covered by the produce in faggots and charcoal wood. But in every case it is less the value of the produce than the future of the pines which should determine the time at which this first operation is to take place. That man would ill understand his own interests, and would imperil the continued existence of, and the revenue to be derived from, a young crop of seedling pine, who did not clear it of diseased and dying plants, on the ground that the expense of the work would not be entirely covered by the sale of the produce of the first thinning. " The subsequent thinnings, eclaircies, as they are technically called in France, are determined by the kind of products which it is desired to obtain, regard being had to the nature of the soil and the state of the markets. In Sologne, for example, where the maritime pine does not grow well above 25 years, but where it furnishes faggots, for which there is a ready sale in Paris and Orleans, it is subjected to periodical moderate thinnings, carried out much as are the fellings of the coppice wood of deciduous trees. On a deep and firm sand where the maritime pine may form a timber forest fit for tapping, for resin, and for the production of workable timber, the earlier thinnings ought to be somewhat more energetic, in order that they may favour more especially the trees destined to form the standing wood. " In any case there is a risk of disappointment if there be a lack of prudence and moderation in the management of these successive thinnings. The maritime pine is a tree which, especially in youth, is very sensitive to cold winds, to hail, and to coups de soleil ; it suffers greatly when, by excessive clearing or thinning, it is exposed suddenly and extensively to the air and the heat of which it has been deprived. " Growu up piuea of a slender trunk, terminating in a heavy and 48 ACCOUNT GIVEN BY BOITEL. bulky head, succumb easily to the action of strong winds, if there be removed, all at once, neighbouring trees which had served to shelter and protect them. " The space which should be allotted to pines depends on their age, the vigour of their vegetation, and the nature of the products which it is desired they should yield. " Delamarre, in Normandy, allows the following spaces round the trees : 1st eclaircie at the age of 7 years, ... 0'33 metres. 2nd „ „ 8 „ ... -66 to 1 metre. 3rd „ „ 12 „ ... 1-33 metres. 4th „ „ 16 „ ... 1-66 „ 5th „ „ 20 „ ... 2- 6th „ „ 24 „ ... 2-33 „ 7th „ „ 28 „ ... 2-66 „ A mfetre is equal to nearly 40 inches. " In Gascony pines destined for tapping for resin are allowed a space all round them. At 20 years of age, ... ... 3 mfetres. „ 25 „ ... ... 4 „ „ 40 „ 5-50 „ „ 35 to 60 years of age, ... ... 7 „ " Timber woods of pines submitted to a definitive tapping contain about 200 trees to the hectare of nearly 2| acres." Magageov pruning, in its application to the maritime pine, consists in removing one or more couronnes or tiers of branches, beginning with the lowest. Although the maritime pine appears to support amputation better than do most other resin yielding trees, " I have always observed," says Boitel, " that the removal of a certain number of couronnes was hurtful to the vigour and the health of the trees. The leaves play an important part among the nutritive organs ; and if pruning do more harm to resinous trees than to broad leaved trees, which put forth new buds on the old wood, this must without doubt be attributable in a great measure to this — that the growing trees do not produce in place of the amputated branches young shoots, the leaves of which might discharge the functions of those which have disappeared by the operation of pruning. Pruning has, moveover, the inconvenience of leaving in the trunks running sores, which are healed with difficulty, and are the occasion of a pretty considerable loss of sap. ACCOUNT GIVEN BY BOITEL. 49 " It is remarked that the pines most loaded with branches and with leaves are those which give the greatest bulk of wood and the most abundant crops of resin. Notwithstanding this, pruning, objection- able in theory, becomes useful in certain peculiar cases. If there be seedlings with too much space around them, shooting out more in circumference than in height, and loading themselves with heavy and vigorous lateral couronnes, which absorb the greater part of the sap, then there is removed gradually the lower branches in order to concentrate the sap upon the stem, which is the part of the tree which it is of most importance to cause to increase in size and in length. As for sowings which are sufficiently stocked, instead of employing pruning to force the trees to shoot upwards, it is now ad- vantageous to get the same result by moderating the thinning, and leaving on the ground as many trees as may be necessary to induce development in height, and one knows not how sufficiently to blame proprietors who, giving no attention to their seedlings for eight or ten years, all at once subject the reserved trees to a vigorous thiiming, accompanied by an excessive Uaqage or prun- ing. This great mutilation, joined to a too immediate action of air and light, occasions a state of disease, from the injurious effects of which the pinery suffers throughout the whole period of its growth. '' Elagage is also proper on grown up pines, the lower couronnes of which, enfeebled by age, finally die and fall, leaving long stumps, which, in decaying, produce in the wood perforations which diminish much its value. This serious inconvenience is avoided by prunino- away at a proper time languishing and dying boughs ; and, in place of cutting them off close to the stem, leaving a stump 5 to 6 centi- mHres, or 2 and 2^ inches long. " Such spikes, hardened by the action of resin which accumulates in them, embody themselves without difficulty in the trunks, and produce no other inconvenience than that of obstructing the tools in the working up of the wood. Spikes in parts of the trunk destined to be tapped for resin should not be above half-an-inch in length ; otherwise, they arrest and blunt the hatchet of the resinier when he comes to make gashes where they are. The good of attending to this is experienced in the pineries of Gascony. " At Belle-Isle M. Trochu prefers, on the contrary, pruning close to the trunk, and leaving no spike, executed in the beginning of winter as being the method most favourable to the production of planks without knots and without holes, o 50 CULTURE OF THE MARITIME PINE. " Both Eclaircies, or thinnings, and Elagages, or prunings, are deli- cate operations, which should only be entrusted to conscientious and skilled workmen. The woodman who is engaged on piece work works without other consideration than how he can increase the number of his faggots and of his carts of charcoal, and it is to be feared that in his precipitation he might sacrifice trees which in every respect deserve to be preserved." CHAPTER VI. Exploitation op the Pine Plantations op Gascony. In the exploitation of forests there are two methods of procedure which have come down to us from times preceding these, in which the practical application of science to the management of forests has led to a more complicated, but more advantageous n^ethod, being adopted. In the one, single trees are cut down here and there, as required, leaving the others standing; in the other, extended areas are successively brought under the axe, and completely cleared. To the former method of procedure in France the designation Jardinage is given. " Exploitation by Jardinage," says Boitel, " appears to me to be that most used by the inhabitants of the Landes. In the tapping for resin, and in the felling of trees, they give less attention to the tout ensemble of the pinery than to the special <;ondition of the individual tree ; on the same ground are seen very often numerous distinct generations of trees : some young, and good for removal in thinning the wood ; others full grown, and regularly tapped ; and others, in pine, more aged, and disappearing in proportion as they become less fit for yielding resin, and better adapted to yield workable timber or fire-wood. In these pineries it is by the natural spreading of the woods that the ground finds itself constantly clothed with trees, and it is the same in the pineries of Corsica and Spain." But a more important feature of the pineries than the felling of the trees, is the collecting and manufacture of the resinous sap which they yield. Full details of the various operations connected with this are given by M. Eloi Samanos, Alemhre de la Societe d'agriculture des Landes, in his volume entitled " Traiti de la culture du Fin Maritime." The following more succinct account of these is given by M. Bagneris in his account of these plantations already cited. "It seems to be well-known," writes M. Bagneris, " that resinage is not remunerative except where the maritime pine is indigenous, which is only in mild and warm climates. This tree is found in abundance on the ocean seaboard between the mouths of the Adour and the Gironde. To the north of the latter, between Royan and Rochefort 52 EXPLOITATJON IN GASCONY. it is less vigorous, produces less resin, and is of a smaller size ; and the woods are not so thickly planted. Farther north, and especially in the basin of the Loire, where, as I think, foolishly it has been extensively introduced, it is not in its element. It does not reproduce itself naturally, it is short lived, its wood loses all its good qualities, and it is not possible to tap it with advantage. "Resin never abounds unless the trees have plenty of room, are vigorous, and have thick foliage ; it is thus a good plan to thin plantations at the age of from six to eight years. Till the age of twenty, the thinnings should be repeated every five or six years, so as to leave at that period no more than 600 or 700 trees per hectare. Those intended for felling should now be tapped. This is why 200 or 250 trees to be felled are now marked beforehand. When the plantation is thirty yearsold, only 250 or 300 should be left per hectare. This number is further reduced to 200 or even 150, which remain till nearly seventy or eighty years of age, when the pinery should be renewed, that is to say, if resinous products are not the chief object. " This renewal may be effected either by means of the self-sown plants which have sprung up in later years, or by artificial planting. According to M. Eloi Samanos, this is usually done by seed in the Landes. A.s to the mode, he advises lines from 4 to 6 metres distant from each other to be marked out, according as the trees are to be placed ; this should be deeply trenched, either by the mattock or plough, for a breadth of 60 centimetres ; 6 kilogrammes of seed should be allowed per hectare, which should be covered in by a slight harrowing. "While the early thinnings are going on, before beginning the gemmage or tapping, the lower branches are lopped, so as to leave a bare trunk of at least 5 metres high ; this is to hinder the formation of dead branches which interfere with the flow of the resin. The incisions can be made more easily and regularly in the layers of wood covering these old wounds. Experience has proved the benefit of this, but, on lopping branches close to the stem, care should be taken not to enlarge the wound unnecessarily. It should always be remembered that a tree never has too many leaves, and therefore too many branches should never be lopped at once. " It may easily be supposed that in thinning the young plantations and in lopping the lower branches, the soil is left without sufficient shelter. The sparse foliage of the pine adds to the evil. But there immediately appears a thick vegetation of grass, whins, heath, broom, thorns, &c. ; this is a very valuable source of litter and manure. But COLLECTION OF RESIN, 53 the forest does not profit thereby. Under the name of ioutrage, this brushwood vegetation is collected and sold at 50 centimes per cart- load, containing about two cubic metres. One hectare may produce from 5 to 12 cart-loads. " It is evidently a loss to the forest that the vegetable mould should not be allowed to accumulate, but it clears paths for the resiniers, and diminishes the danger from the fires, which desolate the country in the summer months. This danger is so great that at certain distances large trenches are dug from 10 to 20 metres broad, which are kept open for five years. In new plantations, and especially in the Dunes, these are made at every 1,000 metres distant, so as to enclose squares containing 100 hectares. " There are two methods of tapping, le gemmage d, vie and le gemmage ct, mort. In both the qxiarres are opened thus : after having cut away part of the bark, it is pierced as far as the wood ; at about ten centimetres from the foot of the tree an incision is made with a habchat, a kind of hatchet, the head of which is slightly hollowed out, and the handle is bent to the right. Once or twice a week the workman scarifies the wound, and increases its height by one centimetre. In the forests under the forest regime, the height of 4 metres, 14 centimetres, should never be exceeded. The regulations also stipulate that thQ-quarres should never exceed 12 centimetres in size, or one centimetre in depth. " Trees to be gemme ct vie, should have only one incision made at a time, and it will tend to prolong the life of the tree that that should be only 8 centimetres in size. The same incision is kept open for five years, and is raised vertically, the first year 55 centimetres, the three following, 64, the fifth, 67 centimetres. When the five years are expired, another incision is made in the same way, and so on, till the time when the tree is gemme h mort, previous to being felled. The gemmage a vie begins when the tree is one metre in cir- cumference. According to M. Lamarque it is good, especially at the beginning, to tap for four years and then to allow the tree to repose for one. The old incisions soon heal up, and after a certain time others may be opened above them, on the protuberances of bark which have formed, and which are called ourles. " Here and there old pines may be found with a great number of qnarres. It frequently happens that the old incisions are exposed owing to a want of adherence in the ourles. The latter shrink and causes swelling, so that the foot of the tree resembles a spindle. 54 EXPLOITATION IN GASOONT. One would think it was going to give way under the weight of its branches. " In private woods the incisions are sometimes 4 or 5 metres long, and 2 or 3 are opened at once on the old trees. This is a mistake, because, if more resin is obtained for the moment, the longevity of the tree is materially diminished. '' As has been said, gemmage ci mort is practised on old trees which are to be felled, and upon those which are to be removed, so as to give more room to the others. With the latter, it is done so soon as they can bear a qtmrre, which is when they measure from 50 to 60 centimetres round, this they usually do at about twenty years of age. The quarres are opened as in the gemmage d, vie, only they are en- larged more rapidly, and several are made on the tree at once. It usually takes three or four years to gemmer d, mort, or to bleed them to death. " When a quarre is opened or scarified the sap is seen in the form of drops on the exposed wood ; some runs down the wound, the rest solidifies and forms a crust, this is the Galipot. In former times the gemme was allowed to run down to the foot of the tree, where it was collected in a little trough cut in a root or hollowed in the ground. A great deal was lost, especially during the first year, as much of it was absorbed by the sand. Now small earthen pots are hung on the tree, and are gradually raised so as to be on a level with the incision. To direct the gemme into the pot there is a little zinc spout slightly attached to the tree ; the pot is kept in its place between this spout and a nail fixed below it on which it rests. To prevent any loss the pot may be covered by a piece of wood. The resinier or resin collector examines the pots when he scarifies the wound, and he empties them when full. The Galipot is scraped off" once or twice in the course of the year. " The use of pots and spouts is known as the system of M. Hughes. The outlay at first is greater, but the gemme is purer and in larger quantities, the diff'erence being as four to three, so says M. Samanos. It is much employed in the Dunes, at Cape Breton, at Mimizan, at Biscarosse, at La Teste. It is less usual in Dax, and still less so at Mont de Marsan. The gemmage is there inferior, because, to prevent loss by absorption in the ground, the workmen lead the gemme from several quarres into the same trough. Now to do this they ai'e obliged to cut spouts in the foot of the tree which pierce the wood almost completely round the tree, and this causes a rapid decay. Gemmage COLLECTION OP RESIN. 55 is only performed between the 1st March and 15th October, but the bark may be begun to be removed from the 10th January. A pine gemme d, vie yields about three litres, or quarts of gemme when at its best, that is to say when its diameter is a least forty centimetres. It may also be alleged that taking into account the decreasing num- ber of trees a hectare yields nearly a cask of 340 litres of resin yearly, whatever the age of the trees may be. It is more difficult to reckon the yield of the gemmage ct mort. But it may be admitted that 200 to 250 trees of 20 centimetres in diameter yield about a harrique or hogshead yearly, and that for three years. At Biscarosse I have seen in a wood belonging to M. Marcellus, a pine 4 metres in circumference, and with a bare trunk 11 metres high, on which were 4 active quarres, which produced yearly from 7 to 8 litres of resin. " The price of resin varies considerably. It is sometimes as low as 40 francs per harrique or hogshead, which is very little. During the American war it rose to 290 francs. "At present (1873) raw resin brings 120 francs per barrique sA Mont de Marsan, where it is manufactured. The resinier is paid at so much per harrique. His wages vary from 30 to 35 francs, which represents an average day's wage of from 4 to 5 francs. " I have visited several manufactories at Mont de Marsan, in one of which essence of turpentine is distilled. It is done thus : the raw resin is put into a large reservoir ; but as it always contains much foreign matter, according to the greater or less care taken in collecting it, earth, chips, bits of bark, leaves, &c. To separate these the raw resin is heated in coppers, taking care that the temperature does not rise so high as to disengage the essence. It is then filtered through rye straw and received in a trough in a state in which it is called terebenthine. From this trough it passes into an alembic by a valve which opens when necessary. During the distillation a thread of water is introduced by means of a pipe, and this becoming vaporised, it conveys the essence of turpentine along with it through the room, where both are received, in a liquid state, in a bucket, and separation is eflPected by decantation. " What remains in the Alembic is made into resin, dry pitch, and yellow resin. It runs off through an opening below it to a pipe which leads it to a trough. The resin is obtained by filtering it through a very fine brass sieve placed ever a box. Dry pitch is nothing but the residuum, which is at once run into moulds made in fine sand. It is formed into bricks of from 45 to 90 kilogrammes in weight. To 56 EXPLOITATION IN GASCONY, obtain yellow resin the residue is washed up warm with a tenth of water, and is also run into sand moulds. " All these products are useful. The essence is used in maiiing varnish, in painting, in polishing, and in cleaning furniture, &c. It is also used in medicine. Solid resin is used in making paper, soap, stearine candles, torches, and sealing wax, and it is also used in caulking vessels. " The residue of the first filtration of the raw resin is burned in furnaces constructed for the purpose, the products being pitch and tar. "One harrique of resin will produce 100 kilogrammes of essence of turpentine which at present is worth 125 fi'ancs. The other products cover the expense of manufacture, and yield a small profit. Dry pitch sells at 18 francs the 100 kilogrammes. The same weight of yellow resin fetches 20 francs. In another manufactory in the same town, by exposing the dry pitch to intense heat, a double decomposition is effected, and by different processes there are produced ethereal oils for making vai'nish ; fixed oils, which are used for lamps, for greasing the iron-work of carriages, and for injecting wood, and in making printers' ink. " All these products conjointly constitute the principal value of the maritime pine. But where there are means for removing it, the product of timber becomes important. There are different opinions as to the respective qualities of timber which has been gemnie or tapped, and not genime. In pines which have been gemme the current of resin, owing to the evaporation of the essence, always leaves a good deal of concrete resin in the tissues, which increases their durability. The annual growth decreases in thickness; but data are awanting for making comparisons, as pines are rarely found which have not been tapped, and these have generally been left to serve as boundary lines between properties. They grow to a great size, but they are seldom felled till they begin to decay. " One thing is certain, that the portion of the trunk which contains the incisions is too much broken up to be useful for the saw pit, but it furnishes very valuable and desirable vine poles ; it is quite gorged with resin, which ensures their preservation. It will also make staves for casks to hold solid resinous matter. But the upper part of the tree is always free from breaks in the continuity. At Cape Breton I have seen planks seven feet long by seven inches broad, and five lines in thickness. In reducing these measurements to the metrical system it will be seen that 100 of MANUFACTURE OF CHARCOAL. 57 these planks are equivalent to 2 cubic mfetres. They are sold at 70 francs per hundred. "Railway sleepers can also be made. When injected they are worth 2 francs 10 cents each, delivered at the railway station. One may judge of the importance of this when we remember that the Southern French Railway and those of the north of Spain are laid on pine sleepers. " To conclude, charcoal for forges is also made from the maritime pine. The cubic mfetre of this charcoal weighs from 200 to 220 kilogrammes, and in the forest it brings from 18 to 20 francs." In regard to the manufacture of charcoal, which occupies an important place in the exploitation of pine forests, M. Boitel reports: " Branches and very young trees are not saleable as fire-wood, but may be profitably converted into charcoal. In certain localities, where the roads are bad, and the centres of population are at a distance, the manufacture of charcoal is the only way of profitably employing wood, which, if in the form of cotrets or faggots, would cost a great deal for transport. " Usually pieces of wood of from 4 to 5 centimetres in diameter are made into charcoal. Smaller ones are made into bourrees, small faggots ; larger, into cotrets or bois de service. "The first fellings, which are from six to ten years old, furnish wood for charcoal and bourrees. When the pines are older, charcoal is only made from the branches and upper parts of the stem. " The best pieces f n- making charcoal are straight, not very thick, and sufiiciently dry. They should not be more than from 075 metres to 0-80 metres in length. The crooked branches are cut into two or three pieces, the lateral twigs are cut off close, and the ends are round and smoothly cut. Twigs hinder the wood being properly arranged, and when the ends are ragged there is a good deal of charcoal lost. Green and dead wood are avoided. The first yields very little charcoal, the second only ashes, which may ignite the furnace after the workman believes it to have been completely extinguished — a great inconvenience, which spoils a great deal of charcoal and occasions conflagrations. The maritime pine is fit for the furnace six months after being felled. " Spring and autumn are the best seasons for making charcoal. In summer it is dangerous to make it when there is no water. When possible, the charcoal maker should always have plenty of this at hand. H 58 EXPLOiTATIOiS OF THE MARITIME PINE. " In choosing a site for a furnace, the position of the timber to be used should be considered. A central position is best, so as to diminish the expense of land carriage. The ground is first levelled, and all heath and shrubs removed to prevent the chance of fire. The maritime pine is easily injured by the heat and smoke of a furnace, and it is best to place the kiln either outside the forest or else in the centre of a considerable clearing, as dead trees become a nursery of insects destructive to trees. " Where old sites are conveniently situated, it is a good plan to make choice of these. '' When a new furnace is made the first bed should be laid on a layer of horizontal branches. This is called a plancher, a platform or floor. " The size of the furnace varies according as the charcoal is for domestic or for other uses. "For kitchen use, experts recommend that 15 or 18 steres or cubic meters of wood should be burned at a time, and 30 or 35 when it is to be used in forges. Small furnaces occasion less waste, but sometimes they are apt to fail. " The site of the furnace being prepai'ed, a large post is placed vertically in the centre, the wood to be carbonised is placed round it after its being surrounded by twigs and dry wood which will ignite easily ; the faggota are placed on end, but inclining gently ; the first layer being made, a second, third, and fourth are added. In doing this the largest and greenest pieces are used for the lowest and most central part of the furnace, because there the fire burns most fiercely. The small dry pieces are placed on the outside and top of the mass. The faggots should be pressed closely together, and the interstices filled with twigs. If several kinds of wood are used at once, the hardest should be placed in the centre. "The cone completed, the central post is withdrawn, and this leaves a chimney in the centre, the whole is then covered with leaves, twigs, earth, and moss, more or less mixed with sand. This layer of earth should be 5 or 6 centimetres thick. Fire is then set to the lower part of the chimney, which remains open a certain time so that the mass may be ignited. The chief fire is thus in the middle of the chimney, and the workman takes care to feed it with wood when a vacancy is produced. Whenever the mass is sufiiciently ignited, the opening is stopped, the moment for doing this is regulated by the colour of the smoke, which, white at first, becomes blue and transparent when the flames acquire strength. The entrance and MANUFACTURE OF CHARCOAL. 59 exit of air must be regulated so that the heat may not be too great or too low. When too low, the charcoal is of inferior quality ; when too high, there is great waste, and the yield of charcoal is small. " The skill of a chai-coal maker is now seen in ascertaining what progress the fire makes in the interior, in such a way that it can be moderated in some places and increased in others. It is by the smoke and cracks on the surface that this can be judged of. The fire is moderated by stopping the openings, or increased by making others. " The bad eSect of currents of wind is prevented by pallisades, or bourrees, arranged like a wall, or by a simple clayonnage of branches. " The best constituted charcoal furnace is the one which, remaining uniform and homogeneous throughout the operation, sinks and breaks in regularly, allowing the smoke to escape in the same quantities from all the openings disposed round the furnace. " The fire extends from above to below, and from the centre to the circumference. At the end of 36 hours, in furnaces of the usual size, the whole covering becomes incandescent. This is the time of the ' grand feu.'' When this point is reached, M. Thomais says, that a good charcoal burner will make it blaze furiously, and then put it out dexterously. This, when done at the right time, produces a great deal of charcoal. But to prevent failure, the furnaces should be sheltered from currents of air, otherwise there is a chance of considerable loss. " After the violent blaze, the charcoal making may be considered finished. The fire is moderated by degrees by making openings which allow the air to pass, and by replacing the warm dry earth of the covering by earth which is cold and damp. The fire is extinguished in five or six hours ; but another day is required before the charcoal becomes cool and is fit to be carried away. *' To obtain a good yield of charcoal one must guard against raising the temperature too much at the beginning of the operation. The first part of the time is spent not in carbonising the wood, but in getting rid of the moisture. If the faggots are strongly heated before the water is dispelled, the latter being decomposed, two sorts of gas are created, which, combining with the charcoal, issue from the furnace in the form of carbonic acid, and carbonic oxide, and carburetted hydrogen. From thence results a real loss of carbon, which in this case is consumed in the same way as in our kitchen stoves. The water decomposed by the fire acts on the incandescent charcoal with more force than would the atmospheric air. 60 EXPLOITATION OF THE MARITIME PINE. " Well burned charcoal may be known by its hardness, and the sound it emits when struck. If nothing is lost in the furnace, 42 kilogrammes of charcoal are yielded by 100 kilogrammes of wood, but even in the most favourable cases this is never done. The most perfect operation does not yield more than 25 per 100. By the usual methods, only 15 or 20 per 100 are obtained. " In Sologne the usual cord of charcoal is of the following dimen- sions : — Height, ... ... 30 inches, or 0*82 metres. Breadth, ... ... 30 „ or 0-82 „ Length, ... ... 16 feet, or 5-33 „ Cubic measurement of a cord of charcoal, 3 sUres, 58, or 3'58 cub. „ " According to the success of the operation, a cord of charcoal pro- duces from 4 or 4^, to 5 bags, containing 230 litres each. The stere of dry pine weighs, 250 kilogrammes. The cord of the same, ... 895 „ The hectolitre of dry pine charcoal, 19 „ The bag, ... ... 43 „ ** The yield of 4 bags per cord is equivalent to 18 per 100 metres weight. The yield of 6 bags per cord is equivalent to that of 24 per 100. "Pine charcoal sells in the market at from 5 to 6 francs, oak charcoal from 10 to 12 francs. To give the charcoal burner an interest in the operation, his wages are regulated by the supply of charcoal he gets — 45 cents per bag. Some proprietors who have confidence in their workmen, in place of paying by the bag, give them 2 francs for every cord of wood which is carbonised. Pine charcoal is lighter and of less value than that of the oak ; the last weighs a quarter more, about 25 kilogrammes per hectolitre. " The difi'erent kinds of charcoal are distinguished with difficulty. Merchants often fraudulently mix them. " In Sologne, when pine charcoal is worth from 1*75 to 2"25 francs per bag, that of the oak is worth from 3 to 4 francs. " Some years ago there was established at Sologne a manufactory where the pine was carbonised in air-tight vases. The volatile products were condensed, and produced by distillation tar and pyroligneous acid. Besides these articles, which are usually lost, the yield of charcoal was much greater. The death of the proprietor put an end to this interesting manufacture. " There is in Sologne an encumbering kind of forest produce which it is difficult to get rid of. I refer to the bourree, a so^^ o MANUFACTURE OP CHARCOAL. 61 faggot bound by a single cord, exclusively composed of fragments from the saw-mill, or the clearings of the woods. In the Landes there are bourrees of a peculiar kind, formed of heath, broom, and whins. Whatever it is made of the hourree is from 1 metre to 1'33 metres in length, and from O'SO to 0-85 metres in circumference. Sologne furnishes a great quantity of these bourrees, which are not needed for fuel, except when within reach of the great centres of population. They rarely pay the cost of being carried farther than 12 or 16 kilometres. " When they are not sold to the poorer classes for fire-wood it is necessary to get rid of them in such a way as to reimburse the proprietor for their collection. Rather than make an article which costs from 1 franc to 2 francs per hundred, and which it is diflScult to sell, he would prefer to leave the twigs to rot on the spot so as to produce a sort of compost for the trees. In this case he should copy the Gascoyne farmer, who litters his cattle with the smaller twigs, which act as absorbents. " In Sologne this is not the custom, and the bourrees are used in the manufacture of bricks, tiles, and lime. The manufacturers buy them at from 2 francs to 2 francs 50 cents the hundred, which leaves the proprietor a clear gain of 50 cents. The making of bourrees is a good employment for the idle season. " Unfortunately, brick kilns are not able to use all the bourrees supplied by making cotrets, or faggots, of pine, and it would be im- possible to sell all if they could not be converted into other articles made use of in various manufactories. " For several years the botirrees have been burned in air-tight vases ; petite braise, or charcoal cinders, is produced, and a more powdery sort of charcoal called charcoal dust. The experiment leaves nothing to be desired, for the bourrees are carbonised so perfectly that with care they may be withdrawn from the furnace in the same shape in which they were put in. Pine needles, leaves of heath, are perfectly carbonised, undergoing no physical change except in the colour, which changes from grey to black. Twigs of a certain size furnish braise, which is used in the same way as ordinary charcoal, but this article is of secondary importance beside the charcoal dust, which is the chief product. This is used in many manufactories. M. Popelin- Ducart uses it for the preparation of the cylindrical charcoal, known as Charbon de Paris. " Such is the power of science. Bourrees, which would not repay the cost of transport to warm the inhabitants of Sologne, are, 62 EXPLOITATION OF THE MARITIME PINE. after a chemical change, able to rival the ordinary charcoal in the furnaces and kitchens of Paris. This new article has to make its way against the prejudices of servants, but it may be hoped that at length it will be justly appreciated. " Charcoal dust is used largely in the manufacture of artificial manures. It is known that carbon disinfects and solidifies the material. It is used for this purpose in several important towns. It is to be wished that this process of disinfection of drainage were more general. If it were so, what great services would be rendered to agriculture and the public health ! In the first place, it opens a market for charcoal dust, which it is difficult to dispose of at present ; and it preserves, for the benefit of agriculture, a great quantity of useful substances, which in towns are wasted, while at the sametime the air is vitiated and the public health endangered. " Of two almost worthless articles, the botcrrees of Sologne and the drainage of large towns, is thus composed a powerful manure, each hectolitre of which represents at least a hectolitre of wheat. When viewing the numerous advantages of such a manufacture, one is surprised that there has not been established long ago an interchange betweeu Sologne and Paris of charcoal and disinfected and solidified sewage. What could be better than the carbonised heath being saturated in Paris with fertilising nature, and again restoring in Sologne fertility to the sterile soil which had produced it ! " If Sologne exchanged charcoal dust for disinfected drainage, the Landes which only require manure to be productive, would be cleared as if by enchantment, and would soon be covered with rich harvests. " The improvement in the healthiness of the country which follows the progress of agriculture and this marvellous result, would both be attained by the use of fertilising substances which would otherwise be a powerful cause of disease. " It would be a bold thing to say that such an end can be attained without difiiculty. In the first place, there must first be invented a simple and easy way of making charcoal dust. " When the dust is made, negotiations must be entered into with municipalities. Finally, to extend the sale, the resistance and prejudices of farmers must be subdued ; but these men have been so often deceived by pretended artificial manures, that they stand aloof from any new substance," There are given, by M. Boitel, the following details of the manu- facture of charcoal dust : MANUFACTURE OP CHARCOAL DUST. 63 "At the Imperial Castle of La Motte-Beuvron, Sologne, the carbonisation of hourrees is carried on in a brick oven placed in a central position in relation to the Forests or the Landes which are to yield the material, and special regard is had to the roads as it is desirable the oven should be near the best roads. Water also is required to extinguish the charcoal when drawn from the oven. It should therefore be of easy access. " In such ovens or kilns the upper aperture of the oven, into which the hourrees are thrown, should be easily reached, and also the lower opening, from which the carbon is withdrawn. This double condition is attained by placing them where there are two surfaces with unequal levels. The upper opening on a level with the higher surface, while the lower is also on a level with the ground. This ai-rangement is to be seen in many lime kilns. The earliest kilns were not made in this way. The upper opening was above the ground by the whole height of the kiln. The workman could not throw in the howTees at once, but was obliged to carry them up a scaffolding. This additional labour increased the expense. " This inconvenience is prevented by erecting kilns of the kind described : In default of a suitable slope, the kiln may be placed on the ground, piling up earth to the half of its height and forming two inclined planes, one leading to the upper opening, the other leading down to the inferior one. Care should be taken to prevent rain from collecting in the oven. " The hourrees are collected in isolated heaps in the neighbourhood of the oven. It is considered that these should not be massed together for fear of their taking fire ; and that they should as much as possible be sheltered from rain. Wet hoitrrSes are difficult to carbonise, and yield less powder, especially if they have been exposed to damp for any length of time. " The workman throws in the hourrees either by hand or with a wooden fork. Thirty hourrees are enough to fill a kiln. It is lighted by the lateral opening ; immediately it ignites this opening is carefully stopped with clay so as to exclude the air. The upper opening is left half open, from which issues a thick white smoke chiefly formed of vapour. So long as the smoke continues white, the workman throws no more hourrees, but whenever it loses a blueish tinge he hastens to feed it up, as this is a certain indication of an advanced degree of carbonisation. •' He continues to work all day without withdrawing the charcoal, and before leaving at night he puts in a fresh supply of boxmxes. 64 EXPLOITATION OF THE MARITIME PINE. At this time he covers up the upper opening entirely, but without hindering altogether the entrance of air and the issue of smoke : small apertures being indispensable. On the other hand, much air must not be admitted during the night, as then the moisture in the wood is entirely evaporated, and the charcoal powder may be converted into ashes. "The carbonisation is completely finished when the workman returns to his kiln on the following morning. Although the kiln has not been hermetically sealed during the night there is but a slight loss of charcoal ; the upper part only being affected by the air which is moveover surcharged with carbonic acid. "The workman now hastens to withdraw the charcoal, and to extinguish it as completely as possible. " By the lateral opening, he, with a little iron rake, draws out 2 hectolitres on to the inclined plane ; he then shuts the opening instantly, and extinguishes the burning powder by watering it with a gardener's watering pan. He applies one litre of water to the hectolitre of powder ; this quantity is not enough to extinguish it completely, but it is known that the powder is of better quality when subjected to roulage, instead of employing an operation to be immediately described, than it would be if more water were employed. The workman then takes a wooden rake and spreads the charcoal over an extent of about ten mi^tres. The charcoal is extinguished all the sooner by coming in contact with the cold earth, and an atmosphere composed of carbonic acid and steam. By this roulage the powder is exposed to the air in thin layers. The workman being careful to extinguish any sparks of fire. " This operation is long and hurtful to the workman, he breathes a dry powder which incites him to drink, and injures his lungs. The workmen who drink abundantly of the bad water of the country often fall victims to fever, "A workman spends three hours in extinguishing by roulage 20 hectolitres of powder. " The kiln of the Couscaudiere consumes in a summer day, when supplied by two workmen, from 350 to 360 bourrees, and when supplied by only one workman, 260 or 280 ; 360 bourrees yield from 18 to 22 hectolitres of powder, which contain braise in the proportion of 6 to 15. " This braise is separated from the powder by an iron sieve, the interstices being 2 centimetres across. The yield of braise varies according to the composition of the bourrees. The oak yields more than the birch, and the latter more than the maritime pine. MANUFACTURE OF CHARCOAL POWDER. 65 "As to the yield of powder, pine hourrees take the highest place. Careful carboaisation also affects the yield, a certain quantity being converted into ashes if the admission of air is not properly regulated. " To prevent the necessity of continual superintendence, the work- man is paid according to the yield. At La Motte-Beuvron he gets 15 centimes per hectolitre of powder. " 100 hourrees may be carbonised at the following cost : — Price of 100 hourrees, ... 2 francs cents. Carriage, ... ... 1 » „ Cost of manufacturing 6 hectolitres of powder, ... ... ,, 90 „ Total, 3 francs 90 cents. "From these 100 hourrees are obtained 6 hectolitres of powder, which is worth on the spot 50 cents the hectolitre, or 4 francs for 6 hectolitres. The net profit is 60 centimes per 100 hourrees. In this calculation I do not include the kiln, which costs very little, and lasts for a number of years. If the work be done by proprietors, it will be seen that their hourrees will bring them 2 fi'ancs 60 cents per 100. " The expense of manufacture, at present 15 cents per hectolitre, would be very much diminished if several kilns were made at the same place. Whilst the hourrees are burning, the workman has a good deal of spare time. When he has the care of two kilns he can feed one while the hourrSes are burning in the other. He can roll and extinguish the powder from one while attending to the fire in the other. But it must be kept in mind that a collection of kilns in one place increases the expense of carriage. If the roads be bad the kilns should be isolated, and built at equal distances. The expense of manufacture would be greater, but this would be largely compensated by the reduction in the expense of carriage. A kiln costs little, especially to proprietors who make their own brick and lime. " The tools required by the charcoal burner are simple in the extreme, " 1st, a wooden fork to put the hourrees in the oven ; 2nd, a long- handled iron rake to draw out the charcoal ; 3rd, two gardener's zinc watering-pans ; 4th, a wooden rake ; 5th, a wire sieve ; 6th, a half hectolitre measure ; 7th, a large square shovel of sheet iron bent up at the side, each side measuring 0'38 metres, with a wooden handle 0'80 metres in length. I QO EXPLOITATION OF THE MxlRITIME PINE. " Of all these tools the only one requiring improvement is the sieve, or riddle. It is of a rectangular shape, the longest side measures 1 mfetre, the shorter 65 centimetres, 4 pieces of wood about 25 centi- metres high form the frame. The net- work meshes are 2 centimetres in diameter, and are strengthened by transverse pieces of wood. It is fixed to a post by a hook and a double handle, which serves for putting in motion. It is with this sieve that the hraise and the charcoal powder are separated. " These two articles vary according to the composition of the botirrees." In the Industrial Museum of Edinburgh, and it may be in other similar institutions situated elsewhere, there have been exhibited specimens of the products of the Landes, before and after having been reclaimed from the conditions of wastes of moving sand, and specimens of the implements employed in collecting the resinous products of the trees. They were presented by M. Leopold Javal, Deputy of the French Empire. From a statement accompanying the specimens referred to, it appeared that the operations cai-ried out on the ground where they were obtained were conducted by planting seedlings to the leeward of the older plantations, in intersecting narrow belts, and sheltering these with hurdles till they had taken root and begun to grow. This they soon did, and, thriving well in such situations, they very soon became strong enough to withstand the wind, and form live fences enclosing squares of considerable extent. These enclosures were then sown with rape, mustard, and other rapid-growing crops, advantage being taken of wet weather to do this. When the seed produced by these had been collected, the remainder of the plant was ploughed in to produce vegetable mould, and the process was repeated until sufficient vegetable mould to support grain and other more valuable crops had been produced. There were exhibited specimens of the sand, and of a bog iron ore found about three feet below the surface, known as alios, with specimens of the products of the land before cultivation. These con- sisted chiefly of the common brake (Pteris aquilina) ; heather, or ling (calluna vulgaris), which was used there, as elsewhere, for making brooms ; the tree heath (erica arhorea), a heath indigenous in the south of Europe, and there found with stems measuring about an inch in diameter ; and the furze, or whin (ulex euroiKea). Of products raised by cultivation there were exhibited white maize, EOONOMIO PRODUCTS OF THE LANDES. 67 yellow maize, millet, little millet, buckwheat, rye, oats, wheat, and tobacco. There were exhibited sections of the cork tree (qtiercus siiber) ; of the black oak (Q. nigra), a native of North America ; of the holly leaved oak (Q. gramtmtia), which is indigenous in France ; and of the cluster pine (pinus pinaster), or Spardenny, of which the maritime pine (P. maritima) is conjectured to be a variety ; there were exhibited specimens of this cut into railway sleepers, railway fencing, drain pipes, hop poles, shingle for roofing, and pavement for streets, stables, and footpaths ; all of these had been infiltrated with blue vitriol (sulphate of copper) by the process of Bouchard, recommended as a prevention of rot and decay ; and there were exhibited specimens of the following resinous products of the trees : Soft resin, collected in covered vessels ; gallipot, or white resin, obtained by scraping the trees ; barras, a coai'se resin ; sun turpen- tine, prepared by exposing soft resin to the action of the solar rays, and used in the manufacture of perfumery and of varnishes ; bala turpentine, similar to the sun turpentine, but of inferior quality ; Venice turpentine, which oozes through the joints of casks filled with soft resin ; spirits of turpentine ; rectified spirits of turpentine ; resin, residuum of the distillation of rough turpentine or resin ; tar, a product of the distillation of rough turpentine, and of the destructive distillation of wood ; empyreumatic oil, obtained in the distillation of resin ; lubricating grease, a mixture of resin and vegetable oils ; and torches of resin used chiefly in Bretagne. Of implements there were exhibited a common hatchet, a hatchet for making the broad shallow vertical grove in the bark and outer concentric circles of the trunk, to allow of the escape of the resinous sap, and for making the cut into which a zinc spout for collectiuo- that sap is fixed : the edge was, an arc of a circle about 3J inches broad, and the head and handle formed an angle of about 135°; a course earthenware vessel in which the resinous sap is now generally collected : it would hold about f pints, and was shaped like an earthenware milk pan, or coarse flowerpot of equal width and depth ; a shovel for detaching gallipot and digging holes : it was like a hoe in shape, but solid ; a second of the same of about 2 inches in breadth ; a scraper for the same purpose, of the same breadth, but bent round like a crook to scrape downwards ; a ladder made of the side of a young tree, with the edge cut into projecting angular steps. The resins and the cereal products, exclusive of the fire-wood and timber, were said to suffice to cover the expense of management and to supply a satisfactory return for the capital invested in the 68 EXPLOITATION OP THE MARITIME PINE. enterprise, and of the reclaimed land brought under annual culture. And as regards the charcoal manufactured, it is remarked by M. Boitel : " This would evidently be a source of possible wealth if the forests were easily accessible, but they are not so as yet at least in the Dunes, and will not be so until the newly planted trees arrive at a valuable age. " Good roads are being made at present, and in future the maritime pine may be cultivated for the sake of its timber as well as for its resin. " The culture of the maritime pine has conferred invaluable benefits. A considerable extent of low lying marshy land has been brought in, once a focus of pestilence which decimated the population. It has made it healthy and productive, and has introduced industry and comfort into districts which seemed doomed to misery. The maritime pine has also arrested the advance of the Dunes and pre- vented them from overwhelming houses and arable land. Its importance must increase. In the department of the Landes alone, the extent already planted is more than 500,000 hectares. In the Gironde there is almost as much, and very soon barren wastes and sandy dunes will be things of the past." CHAPTER VII. Sylviculture ox the Landes of La Solognb. Besides the Landes of Gascony and the Landes of the Gironde which are near the coast, we meet with Landes in inland situations in France, arid regions, supporting but a sparse population, being covered with heaths, and whins, and brooms, and other plants, which take possession of waste and uncultivated lands, and yield little nutriment for the support of man. Such are the Landes of La Sologue, of which mention has been made in connection with details given of the mauufactui-e of charcoal ; such also are the Landes of Le Brenne, and of Le Limousin — with solitudes broken only by the visits of poor shepherds tending or searching for their sheep, contrasting strangely with the animation and bustle prevailing in districts adjacent. In these we meet with another phase of sand dunes and drifting sands, and of the culture of the maritime pine. There, as in many other places elsewhere, the growth of the maritime pine is less luxuriant than it is in the district to which our attention has hitherto been given. In the Landes of the Gironde the maritime pine propagates itself by natural reproduction by self-sown seeds. There, all conditions are peculiarly favourable to its growth. It is otherwise in the Depart- ment of Maine and in La Sologne, In Sologne it is very rarely the case that a pinery is reproduced by self-sown seed. In the first place the trees never attain to great age, and they never furnish aught but a small quantity of seed. In the second place a rejoeuplement, when it does make its appearance, soon perishes under a dense covering of timber trees, which deprives it of air and light. In fine, young saplings, which may have withstood the injurious effects of too dense a shade, become oft-times the prey of flocks of sheep, which the people have the bad custom to lead into pineries, from which they should be strictly excluded. Of the Landes of La Sologne and of La Brenne, it has been remarked that they are less known than are those of Gascony, because they do not lie upon the old great lines of communication. 70 SYLVICULTURE IN LA SOLOGNE, They were once covered with a forest 1,200,000 acres in extent, but this having been cleared away, they have relapsed into what was their earlier condition, a barren sand waste, diversified by marsh land, and marshes in abundance. In writing of the " Desert World," M, Mangin, or his translator into Enghsh, introducing his subject, says, " To those whose imaginations have been kindled by glowing pictures of the African Sahara and the Arabian wilderness, it will be, perhaps, a matter of surprise to learn that even fertile and civilised Europe includes within her boundaries regions which are scarcely less cheerless or desolate, though happily of far inferior extent. " In France, so richly cultivated, so laborious, and so blessed by genial Nature as she is, there are, nevertheless, a few districts where her sons may wholly forget — nay, almost disbelieve in the existence of — her cities stirring with ' the hum. of men,' her vineyards and her gardens, her grassy pastures, her prolific meadows, her well ordered highways, and those ' iron roads ' which are the incessant channels of such restless energy, movement, and vigorous life." And after describing mountain solitudes in the gigantic ranges of the Jura, the Vosges, and the Cevennes ; the first an outlying spur of the great Alpine system, and situated on the border of Switzerland ; the second separating the valley of the Ehine from that of the Moselle ; the last separating the valley of the Loire from that of the basin of the Rhone, he goes on to reckon among the uncultivated regions of France, the marshes of the Bresse of Forez, and, with others, those of the Sologne. The Landes or heaths of the Sologne appear as a desert surrounded by a magnificent girdle of cultivated land, fully developed in the fertile valleys of the Loire ond the Cher. And, as is the case in Gascony, the heath is surrounded on all sides by valleys, vineyards, and gardens, in the highest state of cultivation. While in Corsica, another sandy desert, the orange, the olive, and the chesnut adorn spots surrounded with maquis, veritable heaths, with this, as the only difference between them and the heaths of the Sologne, that under that southern climate the whins and the meagre heaths are replaced by the arbutus, the myrtle, arborescent heaths, cistuses, and lentisques. In all of the places mentioned, in Sologne, in Brenne, and in Gascony, it is not rare to see farms of from 1,500 to 2,000 hectares, in round numbers, 4,000 and 5,000 aci-es, with only from 150 to 200 PREPARATION OP THE SOIL, 71 hectares under cultivation ; and in Corsica nine-tentlis of the island are covered by the maquis, or heaths. In Gascony, to one who would urge the destruction of the heath, the ag-riculturist of Chalosse, or of Beam would reply — N'o heath, no maize ; exactly, as elsewhere, one would say — No dung, no wheat. And in that climate it is impossible to carry out a rational and profitable cultur-e excepting on the bases of two hectares of heath for one under culture. And there, by students of agricultural economy, it is deemed proper to seek the improvement of the poorer land by rearing trees upon it, instead of attempting to introduce at once the appliances of what is known as high farming. But even for woods the land here requires preparation, and the preparation which is found to be most appropriate is the culture of certain cereals, alternating with a growth of the maritime pine, without which it would be hazardous to attempt the growth of the Scots fir, the Corsican pine, and the Norway fir, and the oak, and the birch, all of which have been cultivated here with the best results. But the land improver must wait many years before he can say whether the land will bear the other coniferae ; and the oak, and other broad-leaved trees, it is alleged grow but slowly and require shelter. And even when the time has come to attempt the growth of such, it is not uncommon to grow a mixture of the maritime pine with the other coniferae, the oak, the birch, and the chesnut ; as, should the others fail, it at least will grow ; and if all succeed it is easy to sacrifice any one kind for the promotion of the growth of the others ; and in any case it will give shelter to those which might suffer from frost, and it will yield marketable products, while the oak and the birch are still too young to be subjected to exploitation. In Sologne we have a well-defined geological district, about 440,000 hectares, or above a million of acres in extent. The superficial strata have been designated by geologists specifically as the Sands and Glays of the Sologne, a formation reckoned amono-lthe upper layers of the middle range of the tertiary period. It may be represented, says Boitel in his volume entitled " Mis^' en valeur des Terres Pauvres par le Pin Maritime," as a vast calcareous basin, filled by alternate deposits of sand and of clay. This basin, the wall of which crops out at a great many points alono- the circumference of La Sologne, presents naturally different depths at different localities. In two borings, within yards of each other, at Savigny (Loiret) 72 SYLVICULTURE IN LA SOLOGNE, we have in one a depth of 270 feet, and the other only 226| feet ; and a third at Vannes (Loiret), we have only 168 feet. And owing to accidental disturbances, and to the general inclination of the surface from east to west, one and another of the layers of which the deposit consists appear on the surface with a very great variation in breadth, giving rise to superficial ground of silicious sand, of clay, and of those elements associated in different proportions ; and the sub-soil, which may be considered the true soil of the trees, presents modifications not less important in character and in depth. All the layers which appear have, as a common character, that they are poor in lime and in fertilizing substances. " In Sologne," says Boitel, " the lack of lime, the natural sterility of the country, the ignorance of those who exploit its products, the want of capital, the deficiency of labour, the undivided state of the property, whether held by communes or by individuals, and the strik- ing ruin of some inexperienced innovators, are the main obstacles which have retarded the utilisation and improvement of the greater part of the uncultivated land." Following out the natural division of the layers into sandy, clayey, and mixed lands, he says of these : " Sandy silicious soil is formed of sand, more or less coarse, and more or less white ; it is light and easily worked. Damp does not make it cohere, or change it into a thick oily paste. If it lies on an impermeable clay bed, without any fall, it becomes, in winter, saturated with water, and almost inaccessible to animals, who would sink into it up to their chests. " But if there is a slight declivity it drains itself of its own accord, and is liable to become too diy in summer. Farmers sow it only with rye and buckwheat ; turnips and red clover also succeed pretty well. In farms where no hoisement, or planting with trees, has taken place for fifty years, it is often still arable. Old fashioned farmers prefer it, because it is easily worked, and because the eff"ect of manure soon becomes apparent on the buckwheat and rye. " Intelligent farmers, on the contrary, dislike it because of its rapid exhaustion, and because old manure can never be stored up in it, so as to yield a good return. Even supposing that lime could be had, it would be unsuitable for wheat and oats, it being poor in fertiliz- ing substances, and because these cereals would sufi'er from drought before coming to maturity. Farmers subject these sandy soils to a fallow of lengthened duration; it then becomes covered with a whitish hair-grass (aira canescens), with a species of woodruflf SOILS IN LA SOLOGNE. 73 (asperula cynanchica), and sheep's bit (jasione montana). After a repose of several years, a green compact moss follows, which is con- sidered an indication that it will now bear one or two crops of barley without manure. Isolated plantations of chestnuts also succeed when the ground is deep and damp enough, also the oak and birch, but the maritime pine is most suitable. All the sapinieres, or fir planta- tions, established in Sologne for the last twenty-five years have been planted in such ground. " Clay Soil. — In Sologne sandy silicious soil covers the greatest extent ; then comes clay, which is very diff"erent. When dry it contracts, cracks, and is difiicult to work. When wet it is impermeable, and forms an oily tough paste or clay, suitable for the manufacture of tiles and bricks. These should not be made either in very dry or very wet weather, but only at times of a certain degree of dampness. Such soil is less easy to work than is sand ; it requires stronger ploughs and more perfect implements. These considerations made old fashioned farmers exclude it from the list of arable soils. It is covered with oak woods and ponds, or is kept as pasture for sheep. " The white oak easily becomes fit for exploitation, either as coppice or as timber trees. If the clay is pure and compact the chhie rouvre, or red oak, the variety chiefly grown in France, is to be preferred. " Clay soil produces a stronger and richer vegetation. The smaller heaths being overtopped by the erica scoparia, vulgarly called hremaille, which obtains the height of 1*50 metres. The dwarf whin is also found (ulex nanus), some junipers and some grasses (molima coerulea, agrostis vulgaris, and danthonia decumhens). Clay soils, al- though more difficult to work, are more profitable than are sandy ones ; when drained, limed, and well manured, they are neither too hot nor too dry; the compost is not wasted, and it gives a good return. " At the same time where argilo-silicious soils, which are better for cultivation, are to be had, clay soils should be wooded. The mari- time pine will not thrive on it, the oak and pine should be chosen. "Soils Composed of Sand and Clay. — This class comprehends all soils composed of mixtures of sand and clay, but such are rare in Sologne, and this is unfortunate for its agricultural future. *' If in place of elementary soils, pure sand and pure clay, the soil in Sologne were like the average ground in France, the farmer would be more frequently successful. " The soils in Sologne are infinitely modified in composition ; and then also modified through their connection with subterranean 74 SYLVICULTURE IN LA SOLOGNE. springs. Before planting a firwood pinery it is necessary to ascertain if the soil and sub-soil are suitable to the maritime pine, as this tree pines in argilaceous, stiff, cold, and damp soils, and thrives in such as are deep, sandy, and well drained." M. Boitel supplies also the following information on the compara- tive extents of wooded and arable ground in La Sologne : " About 1836 the forests covered an extent of about 38,730 hectares, which included those belonging to the state, to communes, and to private individuals. Since that time much sandy unproductive arable land has been planted with maritime pines, and I am not far ft'om the truth in fixing the total extent so occupied in Sologne at 50,000 hectares. Forests thus cover one-eighth of the whole surface. The forest of Bruadan, lately uprooted, was famed for its size and for its beautiful oaks. The forests of Boulogne and Chambord take a high place. In the interior of Sologne may be mentioned those of Villette, Chaon, and many others lately planted with pines. The oldest forests are composed of white oak copse, growing under large timber of the same tree. These usually occupy a stiff clay. The pedunculated oak presents also a luxuriant appearance, reminding one of more fertile countries. The good success of deciduous trees proves that they have not so many requirements as herbaceous plants ; for, while the latter cannot procure nourishment, the former, on the contrary, appear to derive from the sub-soil and the atmosphere everything necessary for their welfare. " Such differences between these two classes of plants are often apparent. The marl so useful for crops seems positively hurtful to certain trees. The upper soil, exhausted by frequent cropping, appears equally favourable to the germination and the development of trees. The Solognese peasant says that sand is ripe for ti-ees when- ever barley refuses to grow. " Trees with deciduous leaves, the oak in particular, are certainly the greatest improvement to the landscape; and when under the shade of these magnificent specimens scattered here and there on the edges of the farms, one questions whether the soil should be called sterile. Every domain, and, it may be said, every farm, has one part of wood- land assigned to the proprietor. The oldest forests are coppices of oak and birch. The pedunculated or stalk-fruited oak occupies the argilo-silicious soil, whilst the oak with sessile acorns, is found on stiff clayey soil, where it succeeds as coppice better than any other tree. The new forests, planted within the last thirty years, are usually PREPARATION OP THE SOIL FOR SYLVICULTURE. 75 formed of maritime pines. Isolated portions often look neglected, because the bad habit prevails of pasturing cattle in oak-coppice woods. There are even proprietors who tolerate this abuse in les haux. Plantations of maritime pines are better protected, but care- less shepherds often allow their flocks to brouse on the young shoots. " It may be remarked that boisements, or plantations of trees, are gradually encroaching on the arable ground. It is more than thirty years since this invasion began. The soil, naturally poor in lime and fertilizing elements, is rapidly exhausted by the prevailing bad farm- ing. What can be done with such soil 1 Simply to sow three or four francs' worth of the seed of the maritime pine, and to wait for the growth of the young forest. Such an insignificant outlay preparing for a certain return being obtained from soil absolutely useless for agriculture. " These improvements often take place on land otherwise unproduc- tive, because it is the interest of the proprietors to do this. Subse- quently a portion is cleared and made arable, and when exhausted by fifteen or twenty years' culture, it is again planted with wood. In this way in sandy cantons the farmer, or small land-holder, succes- sively clearing and planting, becomes an important agent in re-converting the lands into forests." In regard to the formation of pine woods in La Sologne, M. Boitel supplies the following information : " Frejxiration of the Ground. — The extension of sylviculture, which would fall to be deprecated if it implied that the land planted with trees was land withdrawn from agriculture, comes to be desirable when it is carried out on laud fit for the growth of trees alone, and which has become so only after a few years of temporary cultivation. In Sologne nothing is more difficult than to convert a Lande at once into a forest. The most experienced men carefully avoid attempting to do so ; as when the soil of the Lande has been carefully prepared to receive the seed, it is at once covered by a vigorous vegetation of heath, broom, and gorse or whin, which never fail to choke the young trees. Immediate boisement, or plantation with trees, succeeds rarely, and only on very dry soils, where the heaths are stunted. Except in such rare conditions, it may be said the natural growth (heaths, broom, and gorse or whins) are stronger than the maritime pine, the oak, and the birch ; when the seedlings come into collision, victory accrues to the indigenous growth of the soil. Sologne, in this respect, is very different from Gascony, where the maritime pine, by natural 76 SYLVICULTURE IN LA SOLOaNE. sowing, invades the heaths when these are not under pasture ; and fur- ther, on the Dunes of Gascony broom is employed successfully to shelter the infant pines ! " Choice of Ground. — Either arable ground or Landes may be planted. The latter cannot undergo the operation at once without being subjected to cultivation for several years. " The arable laud employed must of course be of the worst kind. Sandy, permeable, light soil is generally destined to hoisement. Only special circumstances ever induce a proprietor to plant with trees all his property, whatever may be the nature of the soil ; but planting may have to be carried on at the same time on pure sand, and on sand which is more or less mixed with clay. " Before fixing on the trees to be used, the nature of the soil, and the requirements of convenience, must be consulted, and the selec- tion should be of whatever will yield the highest and most pei'manent annual return. " Boisement in Sologne is either permanent or temporary ; per- manent where it is in contemplation to farm a copse or a timber forest ; temporary, when intended to prepare the soil for agriculture ; and this may determine the choice of trees. " For temporary hoisement, trees which soon attain maturity should be chosen. The maritime pine, which in favourable circum- stances attains the age of eighty years, rarely lasts more than twenty- five in Sologne. After this age the bark is covered with lichens, the growth is feeble, and it is at a loss if the exploitation be delayed. The ground which is cleared will then yield excellent crops without further expense than that of the working of the ground — thanks to the organic remains with which it is enriched by the trees grown upon it. "In this way a rotation may be carried on according to the following formula : Maritime pine, ... ... 20 to 25 years, Idem, ... ... ... „ „ Rye and buckwheat, ... ... so long as rye and buckwheat continue to thrive without the addition of manure. "The soil when again exhausted, is again replenished with maritime pine, and so on continuously. " In this rotation the pine plays the part of a doubly productive fallow, because, besides its commercial value, it restores to the soil the elements which are required in agriculture. We cannot too much admire the marvellous property of trees whereby they collect TEMPORARY AND PERMANENT BOISEMENT, 77 and restore to the exhausted soil, the substances withdrawn from the air by their leaves [1] or from the subsoil by their roots. It supplies us with one of the main instances in agriculture in which time is of more value than money. With a great outlay in fertilizing a poor soil, the return may be uncertain or even ruinous to the cultivator. If, on the contrary, it be expended on hoisement, or plan- tation of trees, where time is money, you attain your end by improv- ing the fertility, and at the same time you produce the amelioration by a money return. It is only in the case of very good soil that time is here worth more than money. " Permiuient or definite boisement. — Temporary hoisement makes the poor soil of Sologne produce every year, pines, rye, and buckwheat. Permanent hoisement excludes agriculture, and the annual produce is exclusively that of the forest. This is obtained by mixing the oak, bii*ch, and chesnut, with the pine, the coppice regime of which trees follows the exploitation of the last named tree. In Sologne both systems have both advocates and assailants. Unfortunately, discus- sion will not decide the point, and we do not as yet possess sufficient data to enable us to do so. But if we look at the subject from a philan- thropic point of view, the first is to be preferred, because, instead of producing alone fire-wood and charcoal, it furnishes cereals, over and above, to a population at pi'esent obliged to have recourse to the im- portation of these from a distance. " Soiuings of pines along tvith other trees. — The maritime pine when grown by itself is treated as has been already detailed. When mixed with other trees there are no very important modifications of this. It acts as a shelter to coppice woods of oak, birch, and chestnut. These coppice woods continue growing while the pines remain, but they do not become really productive until after the exploitation of these. Instead of passing abruptly and completely from the culture of the pine wood, to that of the coppice woods of deciduous trees, there are sometimes left haliveaux, or standards, of maritime pines. In this way we have there a coppice of oak and birch under a timber forest of pines. This method is only to be adopted on soil which is very favourable to the pine. " For mixed hoisements it does not signify whether the soil is quite suited to the pine or not. The good of the trees which will per- manently occupy the soil is more to be consulted. In any case, where the sand is shallow, Scots firs should be preferred. " The trees to be mixed with pines should be, first, the red oak, on stiff clay ; second, the white oak, on argilo-silicious soils ; third, the 78 SYLVICULTURE IN LA SOLOGNE. birch, iu poor, damp, and deep sand ; fourth, the chestnut, on rich, damp, and deep sand. The oak is veiy hardy ; in poor soils it is the most productive. " To conclude, it is not always easy to apply the rules laid down, on account of the varieties of soil ; but to ensure success two kinds of deciduous trees should be associated with the pine — for example, the oak and birch. " Fine coppice woods of chestuut are rare in Sologne, which seems to prove that the soil is unsuitable. Nevertheless, solitary specimens of chesnut trees of great beauty occur, but only in the neighbourhood of the farms, where they have had the benefit of manure and culture. " The year in which the pines are sown may not always be a good year for acorns. In this case the latter may be pricked in later among the young pines. " When the pines and acoi'ns are sown at the same time, the acorns are first scattered in furrows, and when the ground is harrowed they are covered to the proper depth. The pine seed is then sown and covered by being slightly hari'owed. Chestnuts are sown like acorns. '' Birch seed is not sown in Sologne ; young plants, three years old, collected in the neighbourhood of the old trees, are preferred." M. Boitel goes on to say : " Having pointed out the trees to be employed on hoisements, we may now consider the respective merits of forests and agriculture as regards the general good. " It is impossible to bring a poor soil at once into cultivation, and it may be considered as proved beyond a doubt that rehoisement is the best way of improving land, and at the same time securing a speedy return. " In Sologne, agriculture can only be profitably carried on iu certain favoured spots where the soil, argilo-silicious or silicio- argillaceous, has been drained and manui-ed ; but it is evident that expensive improvements, in which the outlay exceeds the return, can only be carried out on a very small scale in Sologne. A farm of 100 to 150 hectares will only contain 20 or 30 hectares which have been treated in this way. " It is impossible to establish the relative proportion which ought to exist between agriculture and hoisement — local circumstances and the position of the proprietor diff"er so very much. " The most experienced men devote to hoisement, first, exhausted land which is usually sandy ; second, Landes exceptionally poor. " We have already said that these Landes cannot at once be 3 , j> 4 „ 50 » 2 , , 50 >j 9 -• > , 50 >j EXPENSE OF SOWING. 79 changed into forests ; but when grubbed out, and subjected to the action of black cattle during two or three years, they yield crops, which repay the expense of grubbing, and which destroy the weeds. " I have tried boisements on a large scale on the Imperial domains of Sologne. The following is the cost of sowing a hectare of exhausted land : 10 kilogrammes of maritime pine seed (winged) at 40 cents, ... 4 francs cents. 1 kilogramme of Scotch fir seed (winged) at 3 francs, 150 litres of acorns at 3 cents, 50 litres of chestnuts at 5 cents, Scattering the seed, ... Total, 16 francs 50 cents. "The expense of draining, levelling, enclosing, and weeding, varying according to locality, amounts, at the least, to 15 francs per hectare, so that the reboisement of a hectare will cost about 32 francs 50 cents, partly the seed, partly for hand labour. The expense of ploughing and harrowing must be added, but usually this is not great in these sandy soils. Land left in furrows only requires to be harrowed after the seed is scattered. " This system of boisement is perfect and permanent, and free from risk. " If the Scots fir does not germinate, which often happens, it should be replaced by the maritime pine, and vice versa. If resinous trees fail, the oak, birch, and chestnut will cover the ground sufiiciently. " Some boisements cost only 4 or 5 francs per hectare instead of 32 francs 50 cents, in which case the seed of the maritime pine is sown along with rye and buckwheat. The seed costs little, and the produce of the mixed culture pays for the ploughing and harrowing. This method has the drawback of risking all on a single tree, which may not succeed. On the other hand, it is to be supposed that the ground is not too far exhausted to be able to produce at least one other crop of rye and buckwheat ; this is not usually the state of a field abandoned by farmers or small land holders. " The young pineries, called here scqnnieres, are treated according to the method already described." In the reclaiming of these Landes of La Sologne, we still find the 80 SYLVICULTURE IN LA 80L0GNE. maritime pine playing an important part ; but it is a subordinate role. It is employed here not as the one important culture, but as a means of preparing the soil for the culture of some of the poorer of the cereals, or as a manure to other trees, for the growth of which it has to make way, having secured its purpose, and in doing so exhausted its growth. In this respect, as in others, the Landes of Gascony and the Landes of La Sologne differ greatly ; and thus a fuller study of these, more especially in particulars in which they differ from each other, may be desirable. CHAPTER VIII. Inland Sand-Wastes, and Sand-Wastes on the Coast. The diflFerent conditions of the mai-itime pine grown on the Landes of Gascony, and of that tree grown on the Landes of La Sologne, indicate that there must be some great difference in the conditions of the sand-wastes themselves ; and I deem it of much more importance to have this fact recognised by those who, without previous experience, may contemplate the reclaiming of sand-wastes by sylviculture, than to have the diiTerence referred to precisely specified. All sand-wastes are not alike : there are sand-wastes ; and there are sand-wastes ; and there are trees which will grow luxuriantly upon one, which upon another will pine away and die. Climate has to do with such results as well as soil. Sea air, and saline constituents of the soil, destructive to some trees, may be, like elements, life to others. The mobility of a drifting sand dune on the coast may be a condition of life to one tree, while the comparative fixity of an inland sand-waste maybe essential to the growth of another. Something has been gained by the discovery that even the maritime pine, which has produced such wonderful results on the Landes of Gascony and of the Gironde, will not grow everywhere, even on sand- wastes in France. And the teaching of this is, that in every case in which it is sought thus to arrest and utilize sand-wastes, the culture must be determined by a special acquaintance with the case. A previous study of the natural history of sand drifts and sand dunes might facilitate the acquisition of such an acquaintance with any one case as is referred to. But this comes not within the scope of this volume, which is limited to the single chapter of that subject indicated by its title. And it is the appeai'ance presented by planta- tions ovi drift sands, and by lands adjacent to the pine plantations in Gascony alone, which have as yet been detailed. Points of similarity and of difference between these sands and the sands of La Sologne have only come before us incidentally. With the fact before us, however, that there are differences in the con- ditions of sand-wastes, we may find it satisfactory to advance a little further in the study of these sand-wastes of France, less with a view of ascertaining the difference between the sand-wastes of the coast L 82 SAND-WASTES IN FRANCE. and those of the interior of France, than with a view to becoming acquainted more extensively with the less superficial conditions of these sand-wastes than those previously detailed, whether common to all or peculiar to certain localities- According to Herr Wessley, to whose work, entitled Der Utcropdische Flugsand unci Seine KulUir* I have already had occasion to refer, the "Landes" covering 270 German square miles (5,550 English square miles) of the province of Gascony, form the area of the basin of Bordeaux, a triangle bounded by the Atlantic, and formed by the land lying between the lower portion of the beds of the Garonne and of the Adour. On the coast are the " Landes Sauvages," or coast dunes, covering an area of 19 German square miles, (nearly 400 English square miles), which, through drifting, have extended to a breadth which is unusual, and thereby has it frequently happened that the river courses far inland have been stopped up, and thus, through their waters penetrating into the Kehlen, or bared grooves, and hollows amongst the dunes, which cover more than half the land, have these waters been converted into lagoons and marshes. The inland portion of the " Landes " forms a kind of plain from 250 to 300 feet above the level of the sea, an extensive sand heath covered with dunes, very much cut up, and of a composition so unfavourable to vegetation that in many parts it is throughout the year perfectly barren. It is only of late, as he says, that by extensive sylviculture, chiefly of the maritime pine, a considerable extent of forest has been produced, following mainly the water courses, and thereby a better produce from the land has been obtained. The superficial covering of these heaths is composed principally of a very poor sand, devoid alike of clay and lime from 1-9 to 2*5 feet in depth, resting on an impenetrable under stratum, from 11 to 15 inches in thickness, which consists of sand cemented by calcareous and vegetable matter and is almost identical with the so-called German " Ortstein." Under this stratum of ortstein again lies sand, and although in some places they have dug to a depth of 63 feet the lower extremity of this sand layer has not been reached. In the summer season there is neither spring nor brook to be seen in these Landes. In the winter, however, being so near the sea, there is a plentiful fall of rain ; and formerly, because of the little slope of * Vienna : Fraesy and Freck. 1873. RETENTION OF WATER, 83 the ground preventing a flowing off on any side, and the ortstein preventing its sinking into the ground, they were frequently flooded, and in this state they continued till the water was finally evaporated by the summer heat ; and then things went to the other extreme, namely, a drought, because the vapour of the subterranean water could not pass through the stratum of ortstein. But here and there, where the ortstein was awanting, or had been broken through, places might be seen which were not so water drenched ; on these grew wood very well, and showed that the barrenness was not attributable to the composition of the superficial layers. The level of the subterranean water is about 3f feet below the surface. Water for drinking brought from that level is yellowish in colour, and harsh to the taste ; it is only when brought from a depth of from 12 to 15 feet that the water begins to be drinkable. In the wet localities desci'ibed no oak can grow, for during the season of spring the whole heat is required for the evaporation of the water lodged there, and the oaks then expand their buds, and if these retain vitality at all it is only in the end of May, when the excess of moisture has disappeared, that they can burst forth, and then the delicate buds are exposed to the summer heat, and they succumb to the scorching sun of July. The maritime pine has also its buds ; and the period of its vege- tation is also reduced by about two months by the stagnant waters ; and by the ground ever passing through the alternation between exces- sive drought and excessive moisture, this tree also suffers in its growth, and on spots which do not become dry until the middle of summer it does not grow at all. The importance of effects produced by the ortstein, of which men- tion has previously been made, under its local designation, alios, calls for some additional information being given in regard to it. In writing of the Water Supply in South Africa, I have had occa- sion to refer to an impermeable layer in the sands of Namaqualand and other districts operating as does the ortstein here. There travellers, when driven to extremity for water, have found, on hollowing out a basin in the sand, that at a little depth they reached a layer of other matter ; and after a time, more or less protracted, water collected in this basin, draining thither from and through the permeable sand, and retained there by the impermeable stratum, often not thicker than a penny, formed probably of clay, lime, and other matter washed down from the superincumbent sand. It is impermeable to water ; 84 SAND-WASTES OP FRANCE. but great care has to be taken not to fracture it, as whenever this happens the water is lost, draining off to a lower depth. In the Landes the stratum of impermeable matter spoken of by Herr Wessley, and there known as alios, contains iron in its composi- tion ; it has been spoken of as bog-iron-ore, and has been mentioned (ante p. %Q) under this name among the products of the Landes exhibited by M. Leopold Javal. The origin of this has been discussed by M. Faye, Director-General of the Administration of Forests in France, in a paper which appeared in the translation of the Academic des sciences, from a notice of which, in the Athenceum, it appears that M. Faye was engaged to level a portion of the Landes between the lakes on the coast and the basin of A.rcachon, and made use of the opportunity to study the peculiarities of the soil. According to this notice : " At about three feet below the surface of the Landes, there lies every- where an impermeable stratum called alios, a stony substance of a brown colour, variable in thickness, which is nowhere great, and covering an indefinite bed of sand, identical with that which lies above it. This invisible waterproof stratum has always had a great influence on the health of the inhabitants of the country. Retaining the pro- ducts of vegetable decomposition from the upper soil, where there was scarcely any slope, the alios has for centuries fixed intermittent fever in and around the Landes ; but reclamation has driven away the fever, and the alios seems now to have no other eff'ect than that of forcing the roots of the marine pines to grow horizontally instead of vertically. The sand of the Landes is white, intermixed with a few black grains, containing peroxide of iron and oxide of manganesia. Washed, first by the water of the ocean, and afterwards by rain for centuries, it holds no soluble matter, and the alios, which is of a dark reddish brown colour, sufficiently compact to require a pick-axe to break it up, is a stratum of the same sand cemented together by some organic and slightly ferruginous substance. In the summer a hole made in the soil down to the alios fills gradually by lateral infiltration with yellowish water not fit for drinking ; but if the alios is pierced an abundant supply of perfectly limpid water is obtained. " The question is — How is this alios formed 1 It is evident that it was produced in situ, and the presence of the organic matter already mentioned leads to the supposition that the latter plays some part in the formation of this peculiar stratum. " The alios is found everywhere in the Landes except in the marshes, on the banks of ponds, and in the downs, even when the latter, FORMATION OP THE ALIOS, 85 protected by old forests, have never been swept by the winds for centuries. Soundings, and the knowledge of these exceptions, led M, Faye to the discovery of the mode in which the alios was formed. In winter and early spring the nearly level surface of the Landes is covered with rain-water, but during summer the level of this water descends by evaporation, to the depth of one or two mfetres, a level which also corresponds with that of the ponds which border the chain of downs. If now we take into consideration the decomposition of vegetable matter which takes place in the water, and the deposit which must be produced at the lower level, it is easy to see why an agglomeration of sand and organic matter should take place at the depth already mentioned. This operation being repeated annually during many centuries, an increasing stratum of alios is naturally formed, which doubtless continues to grow at the present moment. " It is not surprising then that no alios is to be found in the marshes which are always under water, nor in the downs which are not inundated, like the Landes, by a periodical sheet of water carried off regularly by evaporation, the rain as it falls being carried away by the slopes to the sea. " But Whence come the traces of ferruginous matter which aid in the agglomeration of the alios and in giving it its red tint 1 It was shown long ago that the decomposition of roots and other vegetable matter brings the peroxide of iron contained in the soil into a state of inferior oxidation, and renders it liable to be attacked by the weak acids resulting from vegetable decay; more recently, M. Daubree attributed the formation of the limonitic iron of the Swedish lakes to this chemical action, showing that iron thus rendered soluble over great areas is collected together by springs and rivulets, re-assumes its primitive oxidation, when the waters come in contact with the air, and is then deposited in the form of slime, and forms mineral strata of great richness. The same effect, but produced on the spot, would account for the small quantity of iron found in the alios. Vegetable decay has, in fact, produced in places the identical efiFect on the blackish portions of the sand of the Landes ; where a fall in the level has caused a great accumulation of water there has been a concen- tration of iron, and in past times a certain number of furnaces worked up the iron, which is now exhausted. " M. Faye, having explained the origin of alios, showed what eflfect an impermeable subsoil has on the salubrity of a district ; the escape of the water is stopped, the subsoil becomes a centre of putrefaction and infection, and endemic malaria devastates the country. In the 86 SAND-WASTES OP FRANCE. Landes the evil has been remedied by cutting rather deep drains to carry oflf the water, and the roots of fern and other plants, which partly perish every year, have been replaced by those of the maritime pine. Thus the contamination of the air by the subsoil has been stopped, and with it the intermittent fevers which had given to the inhabitants a peculiar character of debility. M. Faye, after much observation, arrives at what he believes to be a principle, namely, that wherever an impermeable subsoil is found at a depth of two or three feet from the surface there will always be intermittent fever if the soil be contaminated by vegetable putridity, and fevers of a typhoidal character if animal decomposition be present. As to the remedy, it consists evidently either in draining, as adopted in the Landes, or in the removal of the vegetable or animal decomposition." But of this stratum. Marsh says : " The alios, which, from its colour and consistence, was supposed to be a ferruginous formation, appears from recent observations to contain little iron, and to owe most of its peculiar properties to vegetable elements carried down into the soil by the percolation of rain-water. See Revue des Eaux et Forets, for 1870, p. 301." Whatever the source of the material and the process of its forma- tion, the effects of its presence on the moisture of the sand-wastes and on vegetation there is great. And from what has been advanced it appears that, in so far as moisture is concerned, dunes and sand plains are not always so devoid of water as they seem, and as the common expression Dry Sand would suggest. Marsh, in connection with a remark made by himself, in which he says in regard to sand hillocks : " it is observed that from capillary attraction, evaporation from lower strata, and retention of rain-water, they are always moist a little below the surface," cites in a foot-note the following observations : " Dunes are always full of water, from the action of capillary attraction. Upon the summits one seldom needs to dig more than a foot to find the sand moist ; and in the depressions fresh water is met with near the surface. Forchhammer in Leonhard und Broun for 1841, p. 5. " On the other hand, Andresen, who has very carefully investi- gated this as well as all other dune phenomena, maintains that the humidity of the sand ridges cannot be derived from capillary attraction. He found by experiment that a heap of drift sand was not moistened to a greater height than eight and a half inches, after ABSORPTION OP WATER. 87 standing with its base a whole night in water. He states the mean minimum of water contained by the sand of the dunes one foot below the surface, after a long drought, at two per cent. ; the maximum, after a rainy month, at four per cent. At greater depths the quantity is larger. The hygroscopicity of the sand of the coast of Jutland he found to be 33 per cent., by measure, or 21 '5 by weight. The annual precipitation on that coast is 27 inches, and, as the evaporation is about the same, he argues that rain-water does not penetrate far beneath the surface of the dunes, and concludes that their humidity can be explained only by the evaporation from below. Om Klit formationen, pp. 106-110. " In the dunes of Algeria water is so abundant that wells are constantly dug in them at high points on their surface. They are sunk to the depth of three or four metres only, and the water rises to the height of a m^tre in them. Laurent. Memoire sur le Sahara, pp. 11, 12, 13. " The same writer observes (p. 14), that the hollows on the dunes are planted with palms which find moisture enough a little below the surface. It would hence seem that the proposal to fix the dunes which are supposed to threaten the Suez Canal, by planting the maritime pine and other trees upon them, is not altogether so absurd as it has been thought to be by some of those distinguished philan- thropists of other nations who were distressed with fears that French capitalists would lose the money they had invested in that great undertaking. " Ponds of water are often found in the depressions between the sand hills of the dune chains in the North American desert." I have had occasion, in the volume on " Reboisement in France," to refer to certain experiments by Thurmann, in which cubes of difl^erent minerals, thoroughly dried, weighing each 100 grammes, were im- mersed in water for five minutes. He states that these gave the follow- ing results : — Liassic triassic, compact Jurassic, liassic triassic, and oolithic limestones, granite, serpentine, basalt, dolerites, trachytes, &c., gave a mean absorption of 0-50 grammes of water. Similar mine- rals, including gneiss and compact marl schist somewhat disinteg- rated and changed, gave a mean absorption of 1-50 grammes; lime- stone still further decomposed, ferruginous oolites of Mt. Jura, liassic schists and grits from the Vosges, and eruptive rocks perceptibly changed, a mean absorption of 4 grammes ; variegated grits, green coloured grits, calcareous chalks, gravelly clay, and sands, 7 grammes ; and clays, Oxford marls, and kaolin, an absorption of from 10 to 30 grammes. 88 SAND-WASTES OP FRANCE. These observations, I there stated, Marchand considered indi- cative of the absorption of water being proportional to the state of sub-division of the material composing the rock ; and this effect he resolved into their hygroscopicity and their capillarity — the former, the power of each molecule of the rock to retain around it a layer of moisture difficult to withdraw — the latter, the property possessed by many molecules of earth, to retain, in interstices by which they are separated, small globules of water. From experiments and observations cited by Wessley, it appears that, of all the constituents of soil, sand manifests the least capa- bility of absorbing water into its composition. According to experiments by Schuebler, recorded in his Agriadtur- Chemie (1830), a cubic metre of the following substance contained of water the quantities stated : Kilogrammes. Quartz sand, 499 Pure grey clay, 875 Fine carbonate of lime, 808 Humid acid, 935 Field earth, 745 Garden earth, 821 The size of the grains of sand has an influence, and the capability of absorbing moisture is increased with the fineness of the grains, — but much more by the admixture of clay and lime, and most of all by the addition of humid acid. Pure quartz sand has no power of attracting moisture from the atmosphere, but it gains this power by the admixture of other sub- stances ; and the operation is promoted by the reduction of the size of the grains. According to statements in Heyer's Forstliche Bodenhunde, founded on investigations by Schuebler, 5 grammes of the following sub- stances spread out over 360 square centimetres, attracted from the air in 72 hours the affixed number of centi-grammes ; and the pro- portions would have been the same whatever weight had been taken : Pure quartz sand, ... ... ... 0"0 Pure grey clay, ... ... ... 24"5 Powdered carbonate of lime, ... ... 17"5 Humid acid, ... ... ... 60* Field earth, ... ... ... 11-6 Garden earth, ... ... ... 26* Weight. In volume. •25 •50 •70 •87 •85 •81 1-90 •94 •52 •75 •89 •82 MOISTURE OF SAND, 89 Again we find the effect intensified most of all by the admixture of humus, the operation of which is some three-fold that of clay and lime. Sand again is desiccated more rapidly than the other sub- stances mentioned. According to Schuebler, of 100 parts of absorbed water, reduced to the extent of 90 parts by exposure to a temperature of 15°, these substances yielded it up in the following times stated : In one hour. lu four hours. Pure quartz sand, 4-07 88-4 Pure clay, 11-28 31-9 Powdered lime, 12-83 28- Humid acid. 17-55 20-5 Field earth, 11-25 32- Garden earth. U-82 24-3 Further, it has been found by experiments by Kerner, that the finer the sand the longer does it retain moisture. And the observa- tions cited show, that while this property is increased by an admixture of clay or lime, it is increased most of all by an admixture of humus. The rainfall sinks quickly into porous sand. When rain falls slowly we find no puddles ; the rain is drawn off to feed subterranean waters, while, when it falls in deluges, it falls faster than it can sink, and, instead of flowing away over the surface, it flows away, carrying the sand with it, and often depositing this on ground at a lower level, to its utter devastation. The coarser the sand the more quickly is it permeated by water. Kerner, in experiments, found the time to vary with this from two to twenty minutes. With sand soil manured for agriculture it is otherwise, Grouven found, on experiments with turnip ground of diluvial sand, that in two hours 72 grammes of water dropped through an 8-inch layer, but he found the quantity in five other specimens to range from 15 to 62 grammes only ; while in five others it was doubled, ranging from 117 to 119 grammes; while in four other specimens it was fourfold as much, ranging from 261 to 286. The capillary attraction manifested by sand is remarkable. It not only operates quickly, but more quickly from below upward than water sinks from above downward when it falls in quantity. According to Meister, quoted by Mayer in his AgricuUur-Chemie^ 1871, the ascent of water by capillary attraction in different sub- stances was as follows : M 90 SAND-WASTES OP PBANOB. In i an hour. In 2i hours. In 2H hours. Clayey soil, 34 115 200 Humus, 40 114 177 Garden ground, 29 98 161 Quartz sand. 44 97 117 Peaty soil, 27 57 114 Sandy soil, 45 66 90 Chalky soil. 6 54 70 In consequence of this, it is remarked by Wessley, the level of the subterranean water stands high in drift sand layers ; and standing or running waters can with ease diffuse themselves sideways in sand layers. The power of absorbing nutritive elements of vegetation is possessed by sand in a degree remarkably limited in comparison with the degree in which it is possessed by other soil. According to experiments by Grouven, 1,000 grammes of pressed northern diluvial sand, field soil absorbed : Of potash, ... ... ... 24-1 Of ammonia, ... ... ... 18"6 Of phosphoric acid, ... ... 6*4 And the same quantity of loamy northern diluvial sand, field soil absorbed : Of potash, ... ... ... 22-5 Of ammonia, ... ... ... 21'5 Of phosphoric acid, ... ... 21*5 While 22 samples of turnip field soil of different kinds absorbed : Of potash, ... ... from 66 to 137 Of ammonia, ... ... from 35 to 134 Of phosphoric acid, ... from 32 to 135 The power of absorbing ammonia from the atmosphere is, we see, possessed in the lowest degree by sand. Clay, mergel, and humus surpass all other soil in this. It is the same with the power of absorbing carbonic atmosphere from the air possessed by all of these substances in a wet state ; this is least of all in sand, but it exists in the greatest degree in humus. This power of the sand increases with the fineness of its particles ; it may be observed to be proportional to the minute sub-division of the bodies operated on, and this property may be intensified in the sand by the admixture with it of the other substances mentioned. COMPOSITION OF SAND. 91 The size of the grains of sand is very different in different places. The largest grains measure about a cubic millimetre, but the averages in diffei-ent drift sands vary from 0'02 millimetres to 0-47. The coarsest sands in Europe are those of the Northern Binnen Sands; those of the strand are disproportionately finer; in sand basins the particles are finest in the direction in which the diluvial waters found their exit ; the sand is finer in dunes than in the blown out hollows between them; and in an extensive sand-waste the particles are finer at the extremity towards which the wind blows than at that by which it comes. The size of the particles has an influence, we have seen, not only on the degree to which it is liable to drift, but in the degree in which it may manifest many properties important to soil, amongst others, those of retaining moisture, one which is absolutely necessary to vegetation. In accordance with what has been advanced is the testimony of Clav6 : "Composed of pure sand resting on an impermeable stratum called alios, the soil of the Landes was for centuries," writes Clav6,* " considered incapable of cultivation. Parched in summer, drowned in winter, it produced only ferns, rushes, and heath, and scarcely furnished pasturage for a few half starved flocks. To crown its miseries, this plain was continually threatened by the encroachments of the dunes, vast ridges of sand thrown up by the waves, for a distance of more than fifty leagues along the coast, and continually renewed, were driven inland by the west wind ; and as they rolled over the plain they buried the soil and the hamlets, overcame all resistance, and advanced with fearful regularity. The whole province seemed doomed to certain destruction when Bremontier invented his method of fixing the dunes by plantations of the maritime pine." The mobility of the sand is also most effectually arrested and prevented by moisture, and it is only renewed as desiccation takes place. It may have been remarked that the sand on the sea-shore does not begin to drift so long as it is moist — that it only does so when it has become thoroughly dry ; and that it ceases so soon as it is again moistened, whether by rain or by the rising tide. But what is mainly contemplated here is simply to show how it comes to pass * Etudes Forestieres, p. 250, See also Reclus. La Terre, I,, 105-106. 92 SAND-WASTES OF FRANCE. that vegetation can be extended over sand-wastes — even moisture existing there. The alios is met with in the sands of the Landes of the Gironde, at a depth of about three feet below the surface. It is often about a foot in thickness, and underneath this is sand of unknown depth. Diggings have been made to a depth of upwards of 60 feet without reaching other material. In the winter season these Landes are covered with water which has no fall, and cannot sink through this layer ; but in summer neither pool nor moisture is to be seen, the water having been evaporated, and the layer preventing an ascent of moisture from below. But, as has been intimated, there are spots where this stratum is awanting or has been broken, and on these grow bushes and trees, the ground neither being drenched in winter nor altogether devoid of moisture in summer. Both in connection with notices of the drift sands of the Landes on the coast, and of the sand-wastes of La Sologue, mention has been made of peat lands and of marshes. These are found on sand-wastes in so many lands that the existence of them in such lands appears to be the rule, and the absence of them the exception. Suffice it here to state that a sand ridge may pi'event escape of the waters by flow, and a stratum of alios or ortstein, or clay, or other impervious substance, may prevent escape by percolation. From the treatise by Herr Wessley entitled, Der Europaische Flugsand und seine Kultur already cited, much information may be gathered in regard to the composition and condition of the sand- wastes of Europe. In regard to the general appearance and composition of the drift sands of Europe, he says that in all places they consist in a vastly preponderating degree of fine somewhat rounded grains of quartz, with which only a small percentage of other materials are com- mingled. The admixture consists primarily of felspar, which in old sand has for the most part experienced the disintegrating and decomposing efi'ects of weathering, of lime, mostly fragments of shells ; of mica ; of magnetic, or Titanian ironstone ; and finally, of difierent other minerals, hornblend, augite, hypersthen, basalt, and carbon. The separate grains are more or less covered with a fine mould, on which depends next the fertility of the drift sands. For this depends in general on an admixture of products of the weathering just spoken of, or on those which the sand, the natural vegetation SPECIFIC GRAVITY OF SAND. 93 and watering, or the culture, produces or attracts, of appropriate nutriment of plants. The drift sand, strictly speaking, though variegated by a sprinkling of somewhat rare grains of darker coloured substances, is a mass of a light colour. Amongst the lightest coloured is the washed out sand of the north, whicli is of a gi'eyish white. Amongst the darkest is the drift sand of the Bannat in Hungary, covered with a strong mould containing iron, which is of a yellowish light brown. In a wet state all drift sands are of a dark hue. So far as the surface is acquiring or has acquired a covering of vegetation of some years standing, it appears of a dai'ker colour, varying with the kind of plant, with the richness of the vegetation in humus, and with the age of this, varying, for example, from a light grey brown to a black brown hue. Many drift sands have also an admixture of a coarser form of sand, which on sea strand dunes is as large as pearls, and in inland situations goes indefinitely beyond this : round pieces, even to the size of blocks ; concretions of lime of the most varied forms ; shells of snails and of mussels ; cemented clods ; and the whole layer is hardened like stone. These larger sized materials are altogether absent in the wind-raised dunes. Such is the European drift sand in general. In individual cases, however, the character varies with the district, the origin and the thickness of the layer, and the transformations occasioned by geological changes, by vegetation, &c. He reports the specific gravity of the different constituents, which, with the exception of the humus, which, on the authority of experi- ments by Schueblei*, recorded in his Agricultur-Chemie, he gives as 1-370, ranges from 2-468 to 2-722; and he shows that the differences between 1-370 and 2-468 of specific gravity in sands, may be attri- buted to varying quantities of humus or products of vegetable decay in their composition. As the result of numerous detailed experiments cited in an appendix embracing the composition of sands existing in numerous parts of Germany and Austria, he gives the specific gravity of the sands of North Germany as 2-5-2-9 ; average, 2-7 ; of the sands of Hungary, as 2-1-2-65 ; average, 2-5 : attributing the greater weight of the former to the smaller quantity of lime, and the greater quantity of iron-ore, and mica in their composition. And, for comparison, he gives, on the authority of M. Schuebler, the specific gravity of arable land generally as 2-401, and of garden ground as 2-332 ; and on the authority of Hauer, that of the celebrated fields of Banat as 1-8-2-5 ; average, 1-18. 94 SAND-WASTES OF FRANCE. The coherence of sands of varied composition, as determined by Schuebler and others, give the following result : " Taking perfectly dry, pure quartz sand as zero, a mixture of 4 per cent, of water gives it so much consistency that it may be pressed in the hand and cease to be driven of the wind ; and this latter result follows an admixture of 4 per cent, of clay or 16 per cent, of lime, or 10 per cent, of humus. But what is thus gained by an admixture of humus, clay or lime, is lost by its being frozen in a moist state, on its being thawed, a peculiarity which it shares with all soils. This, if it be so, may be attributable to the affinity of these sub- stances for moisture, of which sand has little or none, leading to their absorbing all the free moisture, and leaving the quartzose sand dry and free to be blown away. The commixture of lime and of clay with sand, so beneficial to the latter, has also this bad effect when it is considerable — that after heavy rains, followed by rapid desiccation, sometimes there is left on the surface of the sand a crust detrimental to vegetation. Pure sand does not shrink in bulk in drying. The following table, prepared in accordance with observations re- ceived by Schuebler, will make apparent the difference between pure sand and other earthy matters : Pure sand loses in bulk in drying. Fine carbonate of lime, Pure clay, Humid acid, ... Field earth, ... Garden earth. The latter numbers are indicative of there being contained in these bodies, as found on sandy regions, an admixture of humus or of clay. Reference has been made to the effect of moisture in arresting and in preventing the drifting of sand. In view of the effect of heat in desiccating sand, and also in view of the eflfect of temperature on vegetation, the degree in which the properties of absorbing and of transmitting heat are possessed by sand deserve consideration. The following results of experiments by Schuebler show the com- parative capability of becoming heated possessed by sand. In the month of August, with an atmospheric temperature in the shade of from 22° to 25° R., 81° to 88° Fahr., the temperature of the following substances exposed to the bright sunshine were, according to the scale of Reaumeur : 0] per cent. 5 18-3 20 12 15 Wet. Dry. 37-2 44-7 37-4 44-6 39-7 47-4 36-9 44-2 37-5 45-2 of becoming he TEMPERATURE OF 8A.ND. 95 Quartz sand, pure yellowish grey in colour, Pure clay, yellowish grey, Humid acid, brownish black, Field earth, grey, Garden earth, blackish grey. This table shows, first, that the power < possessed by pure sand may be appreciably increased by an admix- ture of humus, apparently in consequence of the dark colour of this substance. The dry sand becomes heated some 21°, and the wet 13° R., 79° and 61° Fahr. above the temperature of the atmosphere; and while the sand is a bad conductor of heat, the heat does not penetrate to a great depth ; much more is communicated by conduc- tion and radiation to the superincumbent stratum of air, Kerner found on still warmer days than these on which Schuebler experi- mented that the temperature of drift-sand at Pesth half an inch below the superficial stratum was only 40° odds, and at three inches deep only 25° odds. The faculty of retaining heat, or, in other words, the rapidity with which it is discharged, is something different _from the capability of absorbing it, and the result of experiment by Schuebler, shows that representing the time required for cooling by lime as 100, the time required by other substances compared with it was as follows : Quartz sand, ... ... ... 96 Pure clay, ... ... ... ... 67 Fine carbonate of lime, ... ... 61 Humid acid,... ... ... ... 49 Field earth, ... ... ... ... 70 Garden earth, ... ... ... 65 After sunset the temperature of the superficial layers of the drift sand sinks very rapidly. Kerner saw on a broiling day in June, on the drift sand at Pesth, a thermometer sunk half an inch deep, which at sunshine showed 35|^, within three hours had sunk to 16*^, from 112^^ to 68^ Fahr. The most superficial layer of the Hungarian drift sand shows the extraordinary great variation of temperature of from 40° to 45° R., 122° to 133^^ Fahr. But at the depth of only three inches the variation is only 25*^, or 88^ Fahr., and at four inches, at which depth the temperature in winter does not sink below the freezing point, the variation of temperature does not exceed 20'^, 77° Fahr. But at the depth of three fathoms the annual variation does not 96 8 AND- WASTES OP FRANCE. amount to |° or 1^ Fahr,, and at that depth, at the elevation of about 300 feet above the sea level, the temperature is almost stationary at 10° K, or 541'* Fahr. By directing our attention to the sand drifts of Sologne, and the sand drifts of the Landes of Gascony, we find we have had two different phases of sand drifts brought under our consideration ; and as these two phases of these are to be met with again and again, sometimes in the same countries elsewhere, or the one and the other of them presenting themselves in lands which are far apart, the opportunity may be taken, before proceeding further, to consider at some length an important point in which they differ. Of the two forms of sand deposit thus brought under considera- tion, " The one," to quote Marsh, " is that of dune or shifting hillock upon the coast ; the other that of bai'ren plain in the interior. The coast dunes are composed of sand washed up from the depths of the sea by the waves, and heaped in more or less rounded knolls and undulating ridges by the winds. The sand with which many plains are covered appears sometimes to have been deposited upon them while they were yet submerged beneath the sea ; sometimes to have been drifted from the sea coast and scattered over them by wind currents ; sometimes to have been washed upon them by running water. In these latter cases, the deposit, though in itself considerable, is comparatively narrow in extent, and irregular in distribution, while in the former it is often evenly spread over a very wide surface. " In all great bodies of either sort, the silicious grains are the principal constituent, though, when not resulting from the disintegra- tion of silicious rocks and still remaining in place, they are generally accompanied with a greater or less admixture of other mineral particles, and of animal and vegetable remains; and they are also usually somewhat changed in consistence by the ever varying conditions of temperature and moisture to which they have been exposed since their deposit. Unless the proportion of these latter ingredients is so large as to create a considerable adhesiveness in the mass, in which case it can no longer properly be called sand, it is infertile, and, if not charged with water, it is partially agglutinated by iron, lime, or other cement, or confined by alluvion resting upon it. It is much inclined to drift, whenever by any chance the vegetable network which in most cases thinly clothes it, and at the same time confines it, is broken. " Human industry has not only fixed the flying dunes by plan- tations ; but by mixing clay and other tenacious earths with the TERTIARY SANDS. 9T superficial stratum of extensive sand plains, and by the application of fertilizing substances, it has made them abundantly productive of vegetable life." From the information supplied, it appears that many inland expanses of sand di'ifts may be considered a resuscitation of sand deposits, which may have been quiescent for ages, fixed naturally by a similar mantle of vegetation to that by which man is artificially arresting and utilizing the same sand drifts or others situated elsewhere. With sand drifts on the sea coast it is to a great extent otherwise, though in some, even of these, there may be seen a resuscitation of sand previously partially fixed by vegetation in some of the earlier stages of the operation whereby extensive regions of sand dunes have for ages been confined. Several of these are spoken of as belonging to the Tertiary forma tion, in explanation of which term it may be stated : Geologists, in classifying the stratified layers of mineral substances covering the granite, consider that those of gneiss, and schist, and clay slates, were first deposited, and these are described by them as primary formations. Following these in order, and in many cases superimposed on them, are sandy slates, Silurian limestones, and what is Jinown as the old red sandstone. These are described by them as transition formations. They are followed by mountain lime- stone, coal beds, magnesian limestone, new red sandstone, shell lime- stone, lias limestone, oolite limestone, chalk beds, and green sand ; and these are designated secondary formations. Above these are found blue and plastic clays, marls, and limestones, sands, and calcareous grits ; and these are spoken of as tertiary formations ; and above this, indicative of a later deposit, are diluvial clay deposited from seas or lakes, and boulders, alluvial clay deposited by rivers, and sand and gravel ; and overlying these, the vegetable soil resulting from the decomposition of vegetable mould, and the admixture of the products with the superficial mineral layer. From this it appears that the sand now spoken of is supposed to have been deposited in times long past. An account has been given, cited from Boitel, of the way in which, on the Landes of La Sologne, heaths on these old sands are planted with the maritime pine. In other inland situations we find these sands of the tertiary formation throughout extensive districts covered with forests of trees of other kinds, varying according to conditions and circumstances — such, for example, is the famous forest N 98 BAND-WASTES OP PRANOB. of Fontainbleau, visited constantly by many of the visitors to Paris. The forest of Fontainbleau covers an area of about 64 square miles. But it by no means corresponds with the idea generally entertained of a forest ; it is anything but an old, shado\^y, leafy, and almost impervious forest. To quote the description given of it by Mangin : " Despite its enormous trees, its rudely broken surface, its stags and roebucks, reserved for imperial sport ; despite its few adders and problematical vipers, it is now little better than a rendezvous for amateur artists and listless idlers. Its well-kept avenues resound with rapid wheels, and you can scarcely stir a step without finding the associations of the place interrupted by the stalls of vendors of cakes, or the apparatus of itinerant gamblers — a profanation to be regretted, for the forest exhibits many landscapes of surpassing interest in the rocks of Franchart, the glens of Apremont, and, above all, that Sahara in miniature, the sands of Arbonue." An article by M. Clav6 in the Revue des Deux Mondes for May, 1863, on La Foret de Fontainhlemo, contains much valuable and interesting information in regard to this forest, and in regard to matters connected with it. " Oaks," says he, " mingled with birches in due proportion, may arrive at the age of five or six hundred years in full vigour, and they attain dimensions which I have never seen surpassed ; when, however, they are wholly unmixed with other trees they begin to decay, and die at the top at the age of forty or fifty years, like men old before their time, weary of the world, and long- ing to quit it. This has been observed in most of the oak planta- tions of which I have spoken, and they have not been able to attain to full growth. When the vegetation was perceived to languish, they were cut, in the hope that the new shoots would succeed better than the original trees ; and, in fact, they appeared to be recovering for the first few years. But the shoots were attacked with the same decay, and the operation had to be renewed at shorter and shorter intervals, until at last it was found necessary to treat as coppice-woods plantations originally designed for the full grown system. Nor was this all : the soil, periodically bared by those cuttings, became im- poverished, and less suited to the growth of the oak. ... It was then proposed to introduce the pine, and plant with it the vacancies and glades. ... By this means the forest was saved from the ruin which threatened it, and now more than 10,000 acres of pines from fifteen to thirty years old are disseminated at various points, sometimes intermixed with broad-leaved trees, sometimes forming groves by themselves." INDIGENOUS FORESTS. Vr) The soil of the forest of Fontainbleau is composed almost entirely of sand, interspersed with ledges of rock. The sand forms ninety- eight per cent, of the earth, and it is almost without water ; it would be a drifting desert but for the trees growing and artifically propa- gated upon it. In reference to such superficial sand formations, the following remarks are made by Wessley : *' It is scarcely to be supposed that all inland sand drifts have been lying exposed, and drifted about since anti-diluvian times. On the contrary, we find almost everywhere that diluvial sands, by a slow but ever advancing natural process, become gradually covered with herbage, and ultimately with bush or forest, whereby they become so fixed as to be unmoved by the wind. And this process goes on all the more rapidly if man do not disturb it — if he do not promote it. " And what has been eff'ected thus in pre-historic times, is both denser and more during that what has been effected in later years : as the soil of that is richer in humus than is any planted by the hand of man. And these oldest plant-bearing sands may be described, as we sometimes describe nations, as the aboriginal vegetation of the ground on which they are found." Such seems to be the case with the oak forest of Fontainbleau. Other forests growing indigenously on sands of the tertiary formation might be cited ; but it is considered that one case of such is sufficient to show that forests may be produced and grow permanently on sands, and to give some idea of appearances pro- duced by these. What was at one time in the world's history, the natural state of these lands of La Sologne, a country more or less covered with forest trees, is what sylviculture is seeking to reproduce there, and to pro- duce artificially on the Landes of Gascony and elsewhere ; and what has been efiected by self-sown seed may be efi"ected again by artificial culture, if the natural history of the trees employed be known. We have seen the good efi'ect with which this has been done in Belgium, and on the Landes of the Gironde and of Gascony ; and with what similar efi'ect it has been done on the Landes of La Sologne. By Jules Clav6, a student of forest science of world-wide fame, it is stated in a paper in the Bevue des Deux Mondes for March, 1866, that the district of Sologne, flat and marshy as it is, was salubrious until its forests were felled. It then became pestilential, but of late years its healthfulness has been restored with its forest plantations. CHAPTER IX. Natural History and General Culture op the Sootoh Fir in France. Op the trees spoken of as cultivated on the sand-wastes of France, the principal are the maritime pine (pt/ms maritima), and the Scotch fir (pinus sylvestris), the former on the new dunes and drift sands of the coast, the latter on the more consolidated old sand-wastes of the tertiary formation in the interior of the country. Besides these have been mentioned several varieties of the oak, the birch, and the chestnut, as grown on spots of greater or lesser extent within these sand-wastes ; and in other countries a much greater variety of trees are raised upon sands and sandy soil. But it is the pine plantations alone of which this volume treats. Mention has also been made of the modern system of forest management having been adopted in France ; the Fachwerke Methode of Hartig and Cotta, known in France as La methode des co7n2mrtiments, whereby are secured in combination a sustained production of material by the forest, a progressive improvement of the state of the forest, and a natural reproduction of it from self-sown seed. As this method of forest management, now practised generally on the continent of Europe, and of late years inti'oduced into the management of forests in the Indian Empire, differs entirely from the system known as Jardinage, followed in some of our colonies, and in what are called policies in Britain, and from the method a tire et aire, previously practised in France, resembling in some respects the method adopted with plantations of coniferous trees in Scotland, the following details are given in view of its application to the different species of pine trees grown on the sand -wastes of France. And on the assumption that it may be more acceptable to my readers, as well as in more perfect keeping with all besides advanced in the volume, that I should give the natural history of the trees mentioned as this is given in France than as it is given elsewhere, I shall follow this course. Of the Pinus SyliKstris, the Pin Sylvestre of France, M M., Lorentz, and Parade, wrote in a volume entitled, Cours Hementaire de culture DESCRIPTION OF THE TREE. 101 des Bois cree a VEcole Forestiere de Nancy. " This tree, the Pi7ms sylvestris, of Linnseus, is known under numerous names — the wild pine, the pine of the north, of Riga, of Hagenau, and of Geneva, the pinasse, &c., and it is one of which the red pine or Scotch pine is only a variety, recognisable by its shorter leaves, by its cones being smaller and grouped in whorls, and by the reddish tinge of its young shoots. It constitutes the principal tree in a great many forests of considerable extent in which it is found mixed with the oak and birch. '^Climate, Situation, and Exposure. — The temperate climates are those in which it manifests greatest vigour of growth ; but cold coun- tries are not inimical to it, for in the north of Europe, in Russia more especially, and in Sweden, it acquires most valuable qualities and dimensions, and by itself alone covers great extents of country. It grows on the plain as well as on slopes ; but high elevations do not suit it. In these situations the snow and hoar-frost accumulate in great quantities on its leaves, and that to a greater degree than on the other resinous trees of cold countries, whereby often branches are torn oflF, and sometimes the trunk itself is broken, " It succeeds on all exposures, not exclusive of the full south, when it is undertaken to replenish wide spaces, or deteriorated forests with a south exposure. It is a tree greatly in demand, not only because it is satisfied with a poor and dry soil, but because the you.ng plants better sustain the sun's heat than do those of the other coniferae." But they remark that in saying this they are only speaking of the more temperate districts of France ; that the departments in the south of France have other trees which grow there, such as the maritime pine, and the Alleppo pine ; and that it is probable that the pm sylvestre would succeed ill there unless at elevations at which the beat is less intense. It is mentioned that in the Pyrenees it is found at an altitude of 1,200 metres. " Terrain, or Soil. — It demands a deep light soil, it is found even on sand entirely devoid of cohesion, and the wood produced on such ground is of better quality than is that grown on more substantial soil ; compact earths are unfriendly to it ; and, although it does succeed on marls, its growth on these is much inferior to what it is on silicious ground. " It is sometimes found on moist and turfy spots ', but its vegetation there is in a languishing condition, and it there presents itself ordinarily in so peculiar an aspect that it has been taken for a totally different species of tree. " Flowering and Fructification. — The flowers are monoeceous ; they appear in April or in May, according to the temperature. 102 NATURAL HISTORY OP SCOTCH FIR. " The strobile or cone remains very small during the first year of its appearance. In the following spring it begins to enlarge, and it attains its full development towards the end of summer. It is ripe in the beginning of November ; but it does not open its scales to allow the seed to escape until the spring following, so it requires in all at least eighteen months to ripen, or about two years to mature and drop the seed. " The first warmth of the spring acts on the cones ; the scales open without detaching themselves from the axis, and thus they allow the seed to escape ; this is small and winged. " The tree attains its complete fertility towards the fortieth year of its age ; the fruit appears about every two or three years. " Young Plants. — These are very robust from their first appearance; but they do not stand a protracted shade. In general they may be reared without shelter ; but on ground which is very dry, or with a complete southern exposure, it would be beneficial to have them shaded during the first year of their growth, " Leafage. — The leaves are somewhat long ; but as they rarely re- main on the tree above three years, it follows that it creates only a lightish shade. " Roots. — These are strong and disposed to bury themselves. When the soil permits the tap-root descends a mfetre or more, although a less depth can suffice to ensure the tree a pretty fine vegetation. In ground which is moist, or poor, or deficient in depth, the tap-root disappears almost entirely, and the lateral roots run along the surface and manifest a disposition, as do some other coniferae, to introduce and fix themselves in the fissures of rocks ; but this super- ficial growth of the roots is not so favourable to the growth of the tree. " Growth and Longevity. — The vegetation is very rapid from the first years of its growth ; when the soil is adapted to it, it lengthens sometimes in its youth a mkre or more per annum. It lives for 200 years, and attains to a height of 33 metres and more, with a diameter of from 1 m^tre to 1 mfetre 20 centimetres at the base." I have met with few trees more extensively difi'used over Europe than is this. I have met with it in different countries under different names, but the tree was the same, and the botanical designation everywhere the same. The specific sameness of varieties or sub- varieties presenting very different appearances, has been demonstrated by M. de Yilmorin, on property belonging to him at Barres, in the l'eOOLB PORBSTIBRB DBS BARRB8. 103 department of the Loiret, which is now maintained by the Govern- ment as L'Ecole Forestiere des Barres. This, strictly speaking, is a Forest School ; while that at Nancy, strictly speaking, is a School of Forestry. The designation Ecole Forestiere, or Forest School, was given to the establishment apparently in contradistinction, on the one hand, to Nursery, a designation borrowed from domestic life ; and in contra- distinction, on- the other hand, to a plantation or forest, it being a collection of trees raised from seed obtained from forests, or from nurserymen and seedsmen of note, and reared with a view to the study of their habits, their identity, and their diflferences. The design of M. de Vilmorin and the results of his operation we learn from himself. He died in March, 1862, a venerable man, full of years and of honour, — Memhre de la Societe Impenale et Gentrale d^ Agriculture de France, and Correspondent de VInstitut. The Bureau de la Societe d' Agriculttire, in collecting documents, of which they might avail themselves in preparing a historical notice of their honoured colleague, learned that he had written a history of his experiments, and procured from his family a copy of this docu- ment, with permission to publish it in their memoirs. In the introduction to this record, which related exclusively to this establishment, which was only one of many experiments and related researches with which his valuable life was occupied, he says : — " The work or treatise, of which this is but the first part, has for its object to report collected observations made during a long course of years on the trees composing the collection forestiere, which I have made on my estate of Barres. Studies of this kind have at this day a much greater interest for France than they ever have had before. " The forests which, in a former day covered a great part of her territory, are, if not entirely destroyed, at least so much reduced that the products are far below her actual requirements. " For a long time now France has been dependent on the foreigner for a considerable portion of the timber requisite for the maintenance of her navy, and more especially for wood suitable for masts. Throughout nearly the whole of the last century masts for the navy were only to be found in the Baltic ports, and chiefly in Riga, and now that timber of very great dimensions fit for this purpose is only to be obtained at great price, we find it necessary to draw a great portion of our supplies from the United States. 104 NATURAL HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR. " This condition of things is not only a heavy burden on the treasury, but it may become matter of grave concern in case of eventualities against which it is necessary to provide. " France, by the siugle fact of her geographical position, with her two hundred leagues of coast on two seas, with her colonies, and Algeria, and her distant commerce to protect in all parts of the world, cannot avoid being a maritime power of the first order — it is one of the necessaries of her existence. She can no more relieve her- self of an imposing naval force than of an army. " But for the construction and maintenance of numerous vessels of war, it is needful that she be able to find on her own soil the needed timber. " Those portions of the soil which have been conquered from the forest by agriculture cannot be recovered. But France still possesses considerable resources besides these. For instance, a large extent of the mountains have been despoiled of forests ; the re-covering of these with trees is acknowledged by every one to be an urgent and indispensable measure ; besides, there are hundreds of thousands of hectares in one district of the west and of the south central France which have continued hitherto in a state approaching utter unproductiveness, which are capable of bearing beautiful timber forests of resinous trees. It is on these lands, and by the employ- ment for the purpose of resinous trees, and more particularly of pines, that we must operate to restore our forests. And it is at this point especially that a knowledge of the difierent species of pines, and of their principal varieties, becomes important ; we may, indeed, according as we employ one or other of these, create on the same soil forests of the poorest or of the greatest value. " This holds true especially of the Pinus Sylvestris. " In the greater part of the woods of resinous trees formed on a pretty large scale in Maine, in some parts of Brittany, and more recently in Sologne, it is to the Pinus Maritima that a preference has been given, because its growth is rapid, successful culture is easily ensured, and the seed is abundant and cheap ; but, as is known to all foresters, the Pinus Sylvestris is capable of furnishing products infinitely superior in quality, in dimensions, and in value to those ■which can be obtained from the Pinus Maritima. And in connection with this subject there is a question which it is very important should be resolved, it is that relating to the relation of the Riga pine and the varieties of the Pinus Sylvestris. The comparative culture, on the same land, of trees, of which it is desired to determine the L'^COLB FORBSTIBRB DBS BARRES, 105 identity or the difference, is what I have undertaken and carried into execution, as may be seen by statistical details relative to these species. '* I have brought together, in clumps more or less extensive, according to their importance, the pwiz^s sylvestris of every variety indicated by authors, and all those which, by whatever name known, it appeared to me might prove useful in this collection. In regard to the Riga pine, I have not been confined to a solitary lot : independent of seeds which I procured from the north, from sources the most certain, wherever I had knowledge of old plantations in France, known or presumed to have had the same origin, I have managed to obtain seeds or plants which, added to the lots introduced, directly furnished the means of studying further the question. " These plantations have had for their special object the solution of numerous questions of botany and of forest economy, of which some are of great importance to France. " Commenced thirty years ago, and with this view, and augmented every year since, they form now perhaps one of the most interesting and most useful collections of this kind in any country. They com- prise, amongst other species, an assemblage of more than thirty lots of the pinus sylvestris, obtained from as many diflferent quarters and sources, for the study of the varieties of the species, and more particularly of the mast pines, or Riga pine, of absolutely certain origin, planted to admit of comparison with other varieties of the pinus sylvestris, by means of which might be cleared away the doubts which have hitherto existed in regard to this tree, so im- portant for naval architecture ; an ecole of pinus mugho, pinus 2nimilio, and innus uncinata, a necessary complement to the other in view of forest study ; all the pines of the series of the Laricios, trees of great interest in sylviculture, but trees in regard to which there exists at this time in books great confusion. The clumps of this series constitute one of the most beautiful portions of the plan- tations at Barres ; one variety hitherto little known, the Laricio of Calabria, commands attention by its great vigour and beauty, as does also the Pine of the Pyrenees, a very beautiful tree of recent intro- duction ; a plantation of Cedar of Lebanon, growing rustically among the pines, is thriving well ; a collection of the forest oaks of South America, amongst which the most important, such as the Quercitron, the Red Oak, &c., have established themselves in massive plots; plantations of American Nuts, of Bouleazc d, Canot, of the Alnus CordifoUa, and of other exotic trees, the qualities of which and their O 106 NATURAL HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR. vegetation on the soil of France cannot yet be known, from the limited numbers under cultivation ; plantations of various oaks, particularly schools of oaks of Europe and of Asia, amongst which are worthy of note, Quercus Fastigiata, Cerris, Tauzi, Aegilops or Velani, in the avenues and borders ; some new and remarkable poplars, &c. " These plantations, if not complete, at least very extensive, will furnish to the man of science and to the practical man great means of study. The opinion, on this subject, of foresters and of dis- tinguished agrinomes who have visited them have almost made it obligatory to publish the results I have obtained ; and, having to some extent anticipated this, I fulfil the duty now with the more satisfaction, seeing that my conviction has always been in accordance with that which has been expressed to me. To make plantations of this sort fulfil the design of them, or to have the chance of doing so, supposing they should exist their full terms, it is necessary that the lots of which they are composed should be found with ease and with certainty when those who have created them shall be no more : for this every necessary arrangement has been made." As has been stated, the one principal object aimed at by M. Vilmorin in the establishment of this Experimental Forest was to determine the varieties of the j9i?i?is s^lvestris and the properties of each, with their adaptation for culture in different districts of France ; but other trees received also a large share of his attention. I had the privilege of visiting the plantation and seeing it under the guidance of M. Henri Vilmorin, grandson of the founder, the honoured representative of three successive generations of noble-minded men, who distinguished themselves in this field of labour. Of the Scotch Fir (Pimis Sylvestris) there were rows of trees, raised from seed or seedlings received from difi'erent parts of the Continent and from Scotland, representing thirty varieties or sub-varieties of the tree ; and rows of other coniferae, representing the products of nearly a hundred different parcels of seeds or seedlings received from various parts of the world ; rows of oaks, representing the products of upwards of sixty different parcels of acorns and seedlings collected from all quarters ; and rows, or one or more single trees, representing upwards of a hundred and fifty other hard-wood trees. There were in all some two hundred and twenty-five different species and varieties of trees, and numerous specimens of some of these, selected, some for l'eCOLE FOBESTIERE DES BARRBS. 107 their worth, some for their renown, and some for purposes of com- parison and experiment ; and they were planted alone or in.^clumpa as might be necessary to bring oat their characteristic points. Since the death of M. Vilmorin, the founder, the portion of his estate containing the experimental forest has been purchased by the Government, that it may be maintained as a national establishment. Of the pinus sylvestris, M. Vilmorin reports : — " Of the different questions which I have proposed to myself to solve, by means of the Barres plantations, none is more important fi'om a practical point of view than that concerning the varieties of pinus sylvestris. " At the sametime there is not one on which more contradictory, and sometimes inexact, notions are to be found in books ; so I shall be obliged, before proceeding to the direct observations which I give, to enter into rather full preliminary observations in regard to it. It is an unhappy necessity, but circumstances render it inevitable. '* It being of importance that this should be well understood, I shall first speak of the pine and whence it comes. I shall then show the principal opinions advanced on this subject, stopping at those which, establishing errors essentially hurtful iu practice, demand dis- cussion ; then, lastly, I shall arrive at the special work which is the object of this memoir — viz., the examination of the collection which I have gathered together at Barres. " The pwms sylvestris, the most widely diffused of those which form the pine forests of Europe and the north of Asia, is at the same time one of the best and most useful. Robust, and somewhat indifferent in regard to soil, it succeeds in sands too damp, and in situations too much exposed to frost for the maritime pine, and, by a remarkable contrast, on lime and chalk soils, where the latter cannot live. " Its wood, strong and durable, at the same time light and elastic, is much used in civil and naval constructions, for it is principally it which furnishes the excellent pine masts of the north, of which no other pine offers the equivalent. " But with these remarkable qualities this tree has one peculiarity which tends to diminish its value, and which has created much con- fusion, in reports concerning it — viz., its being liable to change and vary to such a degree that perhaps nothing similar exists in any other species. " Thus, whilst in the forests of Russia aud Lithuania it attains the size of the largest firs, and furnishes admirable trunks, which sell in our ports and iu those of England for from 1,000 to 5,000 francs and 108 NATURAL HISTORY OP SCOTCH FIR. more. A large number of the trees which grow in Switzerland and Germany are middling trees, badly formed, often incapable of fur- nishing even a passable plank ; in short, having no resemblance in anything to those of which we have just spoken. This great diversity of the pimis sylvestris, noticed in the middle of the last century, has given place to questions and doubts regarding it on which opinions are still much divided. Some have thought that the pine or Scotch fir, as it was then called, did not form a single species as was pretty generally believed, but formed several which had been mistakenly united till then ; two or more have been described and named accordingly; others have explained this diversity in the species by the existence of varieties or races which are reproduced in suc- cessive generations. Others rejecting every distinction of this nature have maintained that the differences, however great they may be, which are to be seen in the pinus sylvestris are entirely owing to the soil, to the climate, and to the influence of exterior circumstances. These contrary opinions have been often reproduced for nearly a century, without deciding the question. It has even become more confused and complicated through the discussions, and it remains still almost entirely yet to be resolved. " As a fact, it is now almost generally admitted that the species is one, and that of this there are varieties. To every one is known, at least the names, Riga pine, Haguenau pine, and Scotch fir, &c., but if one seeks in books for the differences between these, they are not to be found ; there are also vague descriptions, or rather, what is worse, botanical descriptions which, under their precise and scientific form, are inexact and contradicted by the trees themselves, when one tries the application on a sufficient number of specimens which are unlike. Such an uncertainty is evidently troublesome and injurious on an essentially pi-actical subject. It is more so than ever now, when the condition of forests in France naturally entails that the culture of pines should be considerably increased, and that, on the other side, the ^>^?^MS sylvestris, more appreciated than formerly, begins to be associated with the maritime pine, or even to replace it in the construction of composition of woods of resinous trees. It ia then evidently necessary to arrive at some notions more precise than those which have existed till now in regard to it. " The English have advanced far before us in the culture of the pinus sylvestris. It is in England also that the remarkable diff'erences between the individuals of this species have been remarked. The first printed notice is to be found in a treatise on forest trees, l'^cole forestibre des barres, 109 published in 1760, by a great Scottish proprietor, the Earl of Haddington. " Here is what he says on the subject : *' ' Although I have been assured that there is only one species of Scotch fir, and that the differences which are to be found in the wood of these trees are due only to their age, and the soil in which they have grown, I am nevertheless convinced that it is otherwise, and here is the reason. When I ordered the pines planted by my father to be cut down because they were too near the house, several men still lived who remembered to have seen them reared. The seed had been sown in the same bed, removed to the nursery, and after- wards planted on the same day. Then I saw that when I cut the trees, I found that some had white and spongy wood, and others red hard wood, and they were examined within a few days of each other. This observation has had such an effect on me that I have ordered the cones to be only gathered fi'om the reddest trees.' " It is a very remarkable thing that the first observation which was made on this question has pointed out the solution, the truest, in my opinion at least, first as to the principle that natural varieties exist independant of the soil and climate, and then as to the practice, that in choosing between two varieties, the one good and the other bad, only the first should be chosen for reproduction. " One might say that these two ideas of the Earl of Haddington contain a complete theory and practice in connection with this great question of the spontaneous variation of species applied to the wants of man, and to the advancement of rural economy. In France, where the question was opened rather later than in England, it has been much more discussed : the botanists have interfered, and each has settled it in his own way. Bosc, in studying the piims sylvestris, thought he had discovered four very distinct types, which he has described as so many species : first, the x>i^^'^s sylvestris, properly so called ; second, the Scotch fir ; third, the Eiga pine, or pine suitable for masts; fourth, that of Geneva or Tartary. This opinion not having been adopted by any one, except in regard to the Scotch fir, I will not discuss it. But another opinion, which it is more necessary to combat, is that which places the piims sylvestr^is on the one side, and the pinus rubra of Miller on the other. It has been supported principally by M. Deslongchamps, and by M. de Candolle. With the authority which these two names give to it, especially that of M. de Candolle, or rather because of this, I feel that I must combat it, being convinced that it is an error. 110 NATURAL HISTORY OP SCOTCH FIR. " The first remark to be made is, that Miller never pretended in establishing his species, ^jm2«s rubra, to make any distinction from the pinus sybestris of the authors who preceded him ; it is only a new name, which, for some reason, he has given to this species. The sentences from Ray, from Bauhin, from Duhamel, which they quote as synonymous, leave no doubt as to this. Nevertheless, the 2^^''^^''^ rubra of Miller, by a singular error, has been regarded as a second species, made by him in the pwi^s sylvestris. This fact may be explained naturally enough by the following circumstances : At the same time that he established the 2)i>i'US sylvestris under the name piiius rubra, Miller almost beside it described another species under the name ^Ji/iws sylvestris, and among the numerous synonymes which he assigns to the latter is to be found 2^i>^us sylvestris, No. 471, Bauhin, wild pine of Geneva. For all readers, a little hasty in forming a judgment, and there is no lack of such even among botanists, there was here an indication, or even an evident proof that Miller had established two species in the pinus sylvestris. Now, when one reads the text even of the article relative to his No. 1, he sees that the latter is no other than the maritime pine, or pine of Bordeaux. In spite of the evidence of this fact, the contrary version has prevailed, and some botanists, having to treat of the pines, have adopted as distinct the two species, 2}i'>ius sylvestris and pinus rubra. This basis adopted, it was necessary to find characteristics for the latter ; now Miller did not furnish any, as with him the pinus rubra being identical with the ])inus sylvestris of all authors, he had applied to it the characteristics of the latter. " Hence have come distinctions which I will not call imaginary, for doubtless they ai'e applicable to individuals, but certainly not to all, nor do they possess the generality or the comprehensiveness of specific descriptions. " This may be judged of by the examination which I am going to make of the characteristics attributed to the P. rubra in the new Duhamel and in the French Flora. " Differences between P. sylvestris and P. rubra. — Let us quote the new Duhamel : " First, the wood of the first is rather reddish — no observations to make on this point. " Second, the leaves are in general of a more glaucous green. " There are in my plantation several lots of the P. rubra of the north, coming from diflferent provinces of Russia, and as well characterised as possible. Their leaves are plainly less glaucous than L'bOOLB FORESTIERE DBS BARRES. Ill those of the common P. sylvestris of France and of Germany, planted comparatively near them. " Third, their cones are almost always arranged in whorls of three, four, and five ; according to the same author, in the sylvestris they are often by twos. I have many times, in all the lots of sylvestris in the school, counted as many cones. " I have constantly found in all, however different they may be, some individuals with one, two, or three cones, very rarely with four; nay more, this variety is often to be found on the same tree, some branches bearing single cones, whilst on others they are grouped by twos or threes. I have also noticed that this varies decidedly on one tree in different years, apparently according to whether the flowering has taken place during favourable weather or not. This characteristic then is of no use whatever. " Fourth, the projecting part of the scales form a more decided pyramid in the P. rubra, and the lozenge formed by its base has its greatest diameter in the vertical direction. " In the P. sylvestris, on the contrary, the greatest diameter of the lozenge, according to the same author, is horizontal. " I have made, with a view to recognise the characteristics, nume- rous examinations of the cones coming from different trees belono-inf , to the two supposed species, and here is what I discovered — first, that the projection of the scales, though variable in both, formed a much less decided pyramid in the cones of the P. rubra than in those of the P. sylvestris, which is precisely the contrary of what the author says ; second, that in the same lot, either of P. sylvestris or of P. rtibra, and sometimes on the same tree, the greatest diameter was sometimes in a vertical and sometimes in a horizontal direction, so that this characteristic is useless as a means of specific verification. " Fifth, Bosc and De CandoUe give as characteristic to theiy Scotch fir, or P. rubra, that it has the young sprouts red. " Now the most freely planted lots of the red pine of the north in my school are, on the contrary, distinguished by the tender green of their sprouts in the spring. I have besides amongst my lots a con- siderable number of Scotch firs coming directly from Scotland. The trees in it are extremely varied in character. One finds among them types of all the P. sylvestris possible, except the specimens with red sprouts, which, far from being in the majority, are only met with as rare exceptions ; the great mass have green shoots. " Besides, if Miller had recognised this as a chai-acteristic of his P. rubra, he would have given it, and he says nothing of it. It is not 112 NATURAL HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR, then from this that the author must have taken this specific name. Apparently it was for him only a translation and introduction into botanical language of the name of the pine or red fir (red deal), under which it is generally known in the trade, and in the ports of England, and the Baltic, the wood of the P. sylvesti-is coming from Russia and Lithuania. The result of this description is that the P. rubra cannot be admitted as distinct and separate from the sylvestris." There follow details of the varieties of trees composing VEcole des Pins sylvestre, with the observations made. Of these details the following is a free translation in which I have deemed it expedient to alter in some places the order in which some of the trees are described, and to abbreviate or abridge in some cases the details given : " This collection is composed of all the specimens of the pinus sylvestris of different districts and countries I could procure. I sought especially that it should comprise those in regard to which doubts and discussions have arisen, and still more especially those which having received the names of varieties are more generally regarded as distinct. The Pin de mdture, or red pine of the north, and those of Hagenau, of Scotland, and of Geneva, have supplied in this respect the first foundation of the plantation; and the first of these (le 2)in de mdture), mast pines, the red pine of the north, those of Hagenau, of Scotland, and of Geneva, the basis of the plantation. The first of these (le pin de mdture) being the most important, is that in regard to which I have exerted myself to multiply as much as possible the means of studying. Through the assistance of my connections, and the obliging co-operation of many French and Russian amateurs, I have obtained from different provinces of Russia, and of Lithuania, celebrated for the production of these pines, seeds, the products of which are to be seen in the plantation. To these lots obtained thus direct from the localities have been added many others produced from plantations made in France, at previous times, the Russian origin of which was well established; and further, with a view to multiplying as much as possible the means of comparison, I have added specimens of the ;;m sylvestre from diff'erent parts of France. " The whole presents a collection of some thirty lots, but to prevent the formation of an exaggerated idea of these, it may be stated that they are not all equal in strength, age, or extent, nor are they in some other respects susceptible of exact comparison; they are on the contrary, unequal in the extreme. Some form masses more or l'^COLE FORESTIERB DBS BARRBS. 113 less considerable, while others consist only of some single trees ; their ages range from that of ten or twelve years to that of thirty years and upwards. This inconvenience is inevitable in a creation of a plantation of this kind. To reduce as much as possible the dis- advantages of this inequality, I shall take care to indicate in the details given of each lot the differences which may have an influence on the actual appreciation of their character." In regard to his practical classification of the varieties in I'Ecole, he says : " The differences, be it between individuals or between masses growing together, sufficiently marked to enable one to find on them the distinctions of varieties are of two kinds : those which relate to the appearance and conformation of the tree, and those which relate to the botanic characters furnished by one or more of these characteristics, or to the appearance and conformation of their organs, cones, flowers, leaves, &c. "Botanists who have taken up this question have in general given a preference to this last basis of classification. This, however, I have not adopted, and that for the following reason : Varieties founded on differences which are exclusively or principally botanical, may not be such when viewed from the stand-point of forest economy. Thus, for example, let a pin sylvestre have the summit of the scale formed in the manner of that of the P. mugho, or have three leaves in place of two in the sheathe of a cone more or less pro- jecting, bent as in a hook ; let the greater diameter of the losenge formed by the sides of the cones be horizontal or vertical ; let the side of the anthers in the male flowers be more or less projecting — that would be a curious variation, very interesting botanically in being a departure from the general character of the species ; but if, besides this, this tree and those reproduced from its seed did not present in their vegetation and in their physical qualities marked differences from those amongst which they were growing, the exis- tence of this variety would remain outside of every useful practical application ; it would be only an interesting fact of natural history. " It is altogether otherwise with distinctions founded on the bear- ing and conformation or habit of the trees. In these, differences represent qualities or defects, or rather they are, in reality, the one or other. Between a pine of an elongated trunk perfectly straight, with a regular head, and one with a crooked trunk, knotty, with head diffuse and spreading, there is all the difference between a very good tree and a bad one. P 114 NATURAL HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR. " This mode of determining varieties is then one in direct relation with the views of forest culture, and may contribute efficaciously to its good result. It is in this respect one, for our purpose, very much pre- ferable to that of which I have spoken as adopted by the botanist. But this is not its only advantage; instead of minute characteristics, often difficult to catch by the eye without the assistance of a lens, there are thus given characters of an order less recondite, call them even vulgar, if you will, but they are easily caught by anybody and everybody. And, in fine, another consideration in favour of the adoption of them is, that they are at least as constant as those of a nature more sti'ictly, and essentially scientific, or botanical. But by this remark I mean not to condemn these last." These reasons, says he, have led me to adopt the mode of classifi- cation described in comparing together, and grouping according to their analogies, the numerous lots constituting VEcole ; and proceed- ing to detail the classification of the pin sylvestre, in the collection formed and studied by him, he says : " The direction taken by the branches, according as this may be ascending or horizontal, has ever appeared to me to be the character- istic most generally connected with the good or bad quality of the trees, and I have adopted this as the basis of the classification of the lots. " From this have resulted two principal divisions — first, that of trees with ascending branches ; and second, that of trees with horizontal branches. " Then, some sub-divisions being still required to bring together trees presenting analogies of secondaiy importance, and to obtain groups less comprehensive, I have introduced three into the first and two into the second of these grand divisions, and these give the following five series or divisions : " I. Branches ascending corresponding to P. sylvestris var-ruhra. " A. Ascending, close, and pyramidal branches. " B. Ascending, scattered branches, with a regular crown. " C. Ascending, scattered branches, with an ir-regular crown, and the branches often qourmandes, or overgrown, as if feeding rapaciously on the sap of the tree. " 11. Branches horizontal corresponding to P. sylvestris var-vulgaris. " D. Horizontal branches in successive tiers or stages. " E. Horizontal branches, thick-set and regular." These five divisions correspond to local varieties generally recog- CLASSES OP PINES. 115 nised ; and he gives again the same divisons under the names of these as shorter and more precise : " Ascending branches. " A. Pin de Riga, 'pyramide-elance, elongated tapering pyramidal. " B. Pin de Riga, pyramide-elarge. " C. Pin d'Haguenau ; Pin d'Allemagne, irregular expanded pyramidal. ** Horizontal branches. " D. Pin de Geneve elanc4-etale, tapering, but straggling. " E, Pin de Geneve ramass6. Pin des Haictes Alpes, oil, de Brianc^on, thick-set and compact." Of the first of these types, the Pin de Riga pyramide elance, elongated tapering and pyramidal, he gives the following characters : " The trunk is very vertical, sustaining well its great size, often almost cylindrical through upwards of half its height. The branches, of moderate strength, manifestly of equal growth amongst themselves, form a series of regular and symmetrical crowns the tout ensemble^ of which, by its pyramidal form, recals the habit of the Italian poplar. The bark is of a decided reddish yellow, from 1 or 2 metres above the base." Under this type he places in his pinetum, pines raised from two different parcels of seed of the Riga pine, received by him from Russia, and a Witepsk pine, raised by him also from seed received from Riga. Of this he writes : " Of the different lots which I have received directly from Russia, the Riga pine, raised from seed furnished by M. Zigra, is that which offers the most complete type of the elongated tapering pyramidal variety. The mass presents the following characters : The trunk is in almost all perfectly vertical, sustaining well its great bulk, and it is often almost cylindrical throughout half its height or more, the crown is regular and symmetrical, composed of bi'auches somewhat strong, and of manifestly equal growth ; the general form recalling the habit of the Italian poplar. The bark is of a decided reddish yellow from about 1 or 2 metres from the ground, and scaling off; that of the base is not so good, and it is not so rent with cracks as is the case in the greater part of the other lots. "The shoots are more forward in spring than those of the Haguenau, and much more, to the extent even often of fifteen days, than those of the Geneva pine, the pine of Ard^che, and their analogies. It is of a pale green and in no way of a reddish hue, the leaf is not so glaucous, 116 NATURAL HISTORY OP SCOTCH FIR." not SO long, and not so straight as that of the Haguenau, and it stands more erect against the branches. " It is, on the contrary, longer and narrower than are those of the Geneva variety. " The cone is smaller and shorter than that of some others, more particularly than that of the Geneva pine and some of its analogies ; it is generally grey, and sometimes, but rarely, of a somewhat purplish hue. *•' The bud or young shoot varies in hue from yellowish to reddish- it is smaller and less resinous than it is in the greater part of the lots of the varieties having horizontal branches ; the colour of the male catkin varies from a yellowish hue to that of a pale red." Of Riga pines, raised from seed obtained from Riga through M. Helmond, he writes : " This is identical, or almost absolutely so, with those just described, with which I could with all propriety have united it, but I mention it apart, because it forms on the grounds separate very marked clumps of trees, of the same origin, but of different years' growth ; the proportion of trees with scattered branches, or even horizontal ones, is much greater than in those just described. I shall have occasion to revert to this fact of which the Russian series of pines presents other examples." In 1838 he writes : " M. Wagner, nurseryman and seedsman in Riga, sent to me some cones produced in four of the provinces of Russia known to furnish beautiful pine masts. Although the trees raised from them are few in number and younger by ten or fifteen years than my older Russian pines, I consider that I ought to classify them, provisionally at least, according to their actual appearance." And of one of these lots, that of the pine of Witepsk, he says : " By the regularity and the very decided ascending direction of its crowns, and by the tout ensemble of its characteristics, it belongs evidently to the section of the elongated tapering pyramidal varieties ; it will probably prove identical with the Riga pine first described. " Intermediate between this class and the second, are the Smolensk pine, the Wilna pine, the TschernigoS" pine, and the Volliynia pine from another province of Russia, Riga pines raised from seeds collected at Barres from trees raised from the first mentioned parcels of seeds received from Russia, and a pine tree raised from the seed of a pyramidal tree at Verrieres, near Paris, which, from its port or bearing, might be included in the first section, and from its bark in the second." EXPANDED PYRAMIDAL RIGA PINE. 117 The second division is described under the head of the expanded pyramidal Riga pine, of which he writes : " The principal characteristic by which this section differs from the preceding consists in this, that the branches, longer, stronger, and more separated from the trunk, form a more expanded pyramid. The trunks in the greater part of the lots of this series are larger at the same age than those of the elongated pyramids, and they are at least as high; but the proportion of trees perfectly straight and regular is less than in these. The colour of ' the bark is also less uniformly reddish. In fine, in the tout ensemble of their characters the natural grown trees are less elegant, less perfect in general in their proportions than those of the elongated pyramids, but more vigorous, and appeared destined to acquire greater dimensions ; it is amongst them more especially that we should find trunks of the exceptional dimensions, which serve for masts to vessels of the first rank. They present then, in this respect, as much interest as do those of the first section." The pine of Smolensk was raised from some of the cones ob- tained from M. Wagner. " This," says M. Vilmorin, " was dis- tinguished from the others thus obtained in having the direction taken by its bx-anches very much diversified. Of the nine individuals of which the lot consists, three have these horizontal, and very prolonged j of the six others, two are excellent types of the elongated pyramidal series, and four belong to the series of regular expanded pyramidal form. Notwithstanding these differences, all, with perhaps one or two exceptions, present thus far the essential characteristics of the best Pins du Nord, the trunk is clean and elongated, the crowns regular, the bark, in fine, is thin, delicate, and of a decided reddish colour. " The mixture of trees with horizontal branches," he adds, " o-iyes to the lot, limited in number though it be, a particular interest for subsequent study." Of the Wilna pine, raised also I suppose from the seeds supplied by M. Wagner, there were only seven specimens. " Their crowns '' writes M. Vilmorin, " are in general regular, but they are manifestly stronger, larger, and more clothed with leaves and branches than is the case with any which have been yet described. The base of the trunk is more clumsy and covered with a bark more brown and more cracked ; altogether, it is a very vigorous pine, but one which, if an opinion may be based on the observation of a number so- small will furnish a smaller proportion of perfectly regular trunks than will these already mentioned. 118 NATURAL HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR. " Its proper place should have been towards the end of section B, amongst those which constitute a connecting link between that section and the pines of Haguenau (section C, with crowns too ir- regular for comparison with one another), but I have thought that it would be better to keep together all the lots obtained directly from the Russian produce." The pine of Tschernigoff is another of these. The lot consists of 12 trees, generally good or very good. They come near to the Witepsk pine, and I had, says M. Vilmorin, in my first verifications placed them next in order amongst the elongated pyramidal pines, but their crowns, although remaining regular, having latterly assumed more strength and extension, the tree finds or would find now a more appropriate place amongst the expanded pyramidal shaped pines of which it may be taken as one of the good types. Of the pine of Volhynia, he writes : " Volhynia being one of the Russian provinces, which, according to information for which I am indebted to M. de la Roquette, furnishes the most beautiful pines for masts. I am delighted to have met personally with a proprietor from that country, M. Camille Petrowski, an enlightened and obliging amateur student of the pine, who has kindly sent to me seeds from the district. " The trees raised from these are by far the youngest of those raised from seed received directly from Russia. They have now been but ten years planted, but it may already be foreseen that they will be amongst the best in the collection. In the first years of their growth they presented so striking a resemblance to what had been the appearance of the Riga pines already described when they were of the same age, that I had then no doubt of their being of the same race ; but within the last two or three years they have begun to assume an aspect peculiar to themselves. From having an appear- ance of feebleness and suffering, which they presented at first, they have become extremely vigorous, their leaves have become greatly elongated ; their tint, which was of a pale green, has become on the branches of the year's growth of a decided glaucous shade ; and many, the first crowns of which had been very symmetrical, have produced of late years very vigorous feeders, gourmandes, and this to such an extent as to show a tendency to deform the trunk. " I attribute this change to this, that the roots must have passed through the bed of pot clay, which is very near the surface in this EXPANDED PYRAMIDAL PINE. 119 ground, and come to a sandy sub-soil, eminently favourable to their growth ; it may be also attributed to this, that, planted as they have been in a long row directly facing the south, this position may have helped to give to one portion of the branches an extraordinary development. Notwithstanding these unfavourable circumstances, the greater number have thus far preserved in their trunk, their crowns, and their bark, the characteristics of the best Pin dii Nord ; and in view of everything, while regretting much that they have not been planted in a 'close clump, I do not doubt that one portion of them at least may one day be the most beautiful joms sylvestres in the school. On the other hand, this lot will be all the more interesting to examine in their after growth — that it exists in sufficient extent to supply studies somewhat conclusive ; it comprises about 400 trees." Under this second head he classes a Riga pine raised from seed which had been sent to him by M. Noel, gardener of the Jardin hotaniqice de la marine, which had been gathered on a plantation at Guiparaz, near Brest, which again had been raised from seeds brought from the north in 1802 by an officer of marine ; a Riga pine raised from seeds brought originally from the north by the late M. Penna- nech, of Morlaix, with which he formed a plantation on his property at Bretagne ; a Riga pine from seed raised by M. Pousson, d'HoUande of Bergerae ; a Riga pine from seed raised by M. Batelat, of Vie ; and trees of P. sylvestris, raised from the seed of a tree in the garden of M, Picot-Lapeyrouse. Of Riga pines, raised from seeds yielded by trees grown from seed obtained from Russia, he writes : " When my Riga pines, raised from seed obtained directly from the forests, began to yield seeds, I caused these to be collected, with a view to ascertain whether the race would reproduce itself with its peculiar characteristics. The plants which have been thus produced, though they cannot be yet judged with certainty, have in general a decided analogous appearance to that of their parents. A certain number, however, presenting some defects in the trunk, or having their crowns too strong, I do not wish to place them in the first series, but would rather put them provisionally in the second series, which contains many lots which are still young, and upon which an approximate judgment only can be formed. Whatever may be the definite place of these, the mass promises thus far to be very good." The second series, Riga pines of expanded pyramidal outline, have the branches ascending and spreading, and the crown regular. 120 NATURAL HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR. Of the first of these, the Riga pine, from a plautatiou at Guiparaz, near Brest, of which there were in the school several clumps, he says : " Their trunk is in general very vertical and elongated, but the branches are perceptibly longer and stronger than are those of the first and second mentioned Riga pines, described as of elongated pyramidal outline. The crowns are, however, regular in the greater part of them. The red coloured bark begins a little higher than in the elongated pyramidal series. It is of a tint rather more pale, but sufficiently decided to show that the pine certainly belongs to the red pines of the north. It is, moreover, remarkable for its great vigour, and it constitutes in its tout ensemble one of the good samples of a variation from the elongated pyramidal type. The leaf is longer and more glaucous than those of the specimens referred to, and resembles somewhat those of the pine of Haguenau ; the cone also is more elongated and narrower in the upper half." The Riga pine, furnished by M. Pennanech, is like the last, a pine of Russian origin, raised by culture in Brittany, and resembles it in most particulars. It differs from it chiefly, that amongst the trees raised horizontal crowns are more numerous, and the bark is more uniformly and more decidedly red in hue, and it approximates that of the two first mentioned. During the first years of growth the lot of Riga pines had a marked resemblance to the Scotch fir, obtained from Aberdeen, which will be afterwards described. Amongst the variations seen in the lot, which are numerous, more particularly in regai'd to the direction of the branches, one meets here and there individuals which are perfect models of the elongated pyramidal type. Altogether, the mass is very good, not- withstanding the want of uniformity which has just been noticed. Of the Riga pine from Bergerae, he writes : " The sowings of Russian pines, made by M. Pousson, de Hollande, on his estate near Bergerae have been known long from the mention made of them by M. Delamarre, in his work entitled, Traite Fratique de la Culticre cles pins. His son has had the kindness to give me seeds gathered from the trees thus raised, and it is of trees produced from these that I write. These pines, planted in 1840, cannot yet be classed with certainty. They are very vigorous, too vigorous even, and belong probably to that variety of the Fins du JVord, which seed, through excess of strength, and tend to approximate this race to that of Haguenau. The proportion of regular specimens in that is at all "l'^cole forestiere des barres. 121 times, as at present, sensibly greater than in this. This lot, when it shall be older, it appears to me, is likely to approach nearly in its quality that of Gniparaz," Of the 2'^in sylvestre, supplied by M. Picot-Lapeyrouse, M. Vilmorin writes : " This lot, which does not consist of above a dozen of trees, though not numerous, deserves a somewhat detailed notice in consequence of the interest attaching to itself, and of the uncertainty attaching to its forest origin. " At a time when I was much occupied with researches on the genuine pimis tincinata of Raymond, I addressed myself amongst others to M. Ferrieres, chief gardener of the botanic garden at Toulouse. He replied that he could certainly procure it for me, seeing that in the garden of M. Picot-Lapeyrouse there was a tree of this species brought back by that botanist from one of his excursions in the Pyrenees, and which was producing cones. I accepted his offer, and he sent me some. These cones resembled in every respect those of the j3i/i?fs sylvestris ; but I sowed them, and, when the plants made apparent that there must have been a mistake somewhere, I planted a row of them in the school. The trees, which are now twenty-eight years of age, and about 15 metres (50 feet) in height, are very beautiful red pines of the north, and of the section expanded pyramidal. They resemble much the Riga pines of Guiparaz, to which they may be likened. " Notwithstanding the disappointment which they have occasioned to me, I have always felt a great interest in these trees, and that more especially fi'om the question to which their first origin haa given rise. It may be supposed that the tree in the garden of M. Picot-Lapeyrouse had been brought by him from the Pyrenees, as believed by M. Ferrieres, in which case it follows that on some place on these mountains there were pins sylvestres, in every respect like those of Russia, and belonging to the same race. If, on the contrary, the tree was produced fi'om a plant of the Fins du Novel, received by M. Lapeyrouse, it matters not whence, (he had, as director of the botanic garden, widely extended connections with establishments of the same nature, and with amateurs), the consequences which would follow would not be less important, namely these : that a pine of this race, planted and reared in the climate of Toulouse must have so preserved sufficiently its original character, that trees produced from it are at this day in the plantations at Barres bearing comparison with the good lots produced directly from Russia. Q 122 NATURAL HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR.. " These questions, it may be seen, touch closely upon practical applications, and so warrant my pausing to give these details. " It so happens that an accidental circumstaiice adds to the interest awakened by these pines. They are planted contiguous to a small clump of ''pines of Briangon, or of the High Alps, to which they present a most striking contrast. A glance at these two clumps planted on the same day would suffice to convince the most incredulous that there exist of the ^^i/i sylvestre well marked varieties, independent of the differences due to the effects of soil and of climate." Intermediate between this class and the third class he places a pin sylvestre from a plantation near Louvain, presumed to be of Russian origin. Of this he writes : " The seeds from which this lot was produced were sent to me by an amateur at Louvain, M. Stuppaert, as the produce of a veiy beautiful plantation, the produce of seeds brought from Russia. The character of the trees confirms the probability of the account. "Of two parcels sent to me at different times, one has produced trees which stand much too far apart, occasioned by numerous blanks, which are veritable Haguenaux, of a very strong trunk, but often deformed by enormous overgrown branches ; the other, sown where they grow, has, on the contrary, generally the trunks very straight and elongated, well proportioned, the crowns also large and strong, but symmetrical, and the bark fairly reddish ; in fine, the characters of those pins du Nord, which the excess of vigour renders very unequal, but which evidently belong fundamentally to the race ; and therefore the tree has found its place in this series." Intermediate between the same class, and the fourth class, he classes a Scotch fir, the seed of which was furnished by Mr James Reid, of Aberdeen ; and another, the seed of which was furnished by Mr W. Malcolm, and a p)in sylvestre, from the seed of a tree with semi-horizontal branches growing at Verrieres, near Paris. Of the first of these he writes : " The Scotch fir ought necessarily to make part of the collection of which I am here giving a report, since it is considered the type of the species, at least it is that which has furnished the common name under which for a long time it has been known, a name still much used, especially in England. I have accordingly obtained seeds and plants from Scotland. These have not by any means all l'eOOLE FORESTIEEE DES BARRES. 123 grown. The principal lot has been raised from seed furnished by Mr James Eeid, a highly esteemed nurseryman in Aberdeen. " Of all the lots of sylvestris in the school, this is perhaps the most difficult to class. It does not conform itself well to any of the divisions which I have established. It shows an intermixtui'e of elongated pyramidals, but these in but a small proportion, and of expanded pyra- midal, some regular, others with strong gourmandes crowns, and finally, of those of the race of Geneva, with horizontal branches ; the bark in a pretty great number of specimens is of a questionable red mixed with grey, a slightly preponderating proportion approach more to the expanded pyramidal type than the others, and those I class amongst the last lots of that division, in which I have been influenced by this, that notwithstanding the extreme diversity seen in them the Scotch firs have pretty generally the vertical trunks, and the crowns of these, though strong, are rarely deformed by gourmandes as in the Haguenau. In regard to quality this is upon the whole rather good than bad. " Such is the estimate as exact as I could form it of the principal lot of Scotch firs at Barres. I must however repeat what I have said elsewhere, and speaking only of those trees which I have under my eyes, I do not intend by any means to express an opinion in regard to all the pines on Scottish soil, nor even of those of the county of Aberdeen whence these were obtained." The Scotch firs, raised from seed furnished by M. Malcolm, and also lots, consisting one of the ordinary pines, and the other of the horizontal pine of Eui'ope, which he has classed here, were all too imperfect to wan-ant the expression of an opinion in regard to them. Of the trees raised from the seed of a pyramidal specimen grown at Verri^res, and of another lot which he has classed among the lots intermediate between the first section and the second connecting itself with the first by its habit, and with the second by its bark, he says : " These were planted with a special view to determine by experi- ment if the natural variation seen in individual trees would reproduce themselves in their descendants in proportions so considerable that there might be deduced from this useful applications in practice. It is generally so in nature, but all species do not comport themselves absolutely the same in this respect, and one cannot be assured in regard to how it will happen with each but by direct proof. " This I had in my power to try with two trees of very diflferent 124 NATURAL HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR. habits which I had under treatment in a garden at Verriferes near Paris ; the one forming a pyramid a little heavy and spi-eading, but going up well and regular ; the other, extending its branches horizontally in such a way as to leave the trunk bare between the crowns. I caused to be collected and sown separately the seeds of these two trees, and their produce, planted opposite each other, are now to be seen in the school. Both have preserved their original characters in a very marked degree. Two thirds and more of the individuals have the crowns ascending and pyramidal in the first lot, while they are horizontal and spreading in the second. This result being by much the most interesting aspect of the experi- ment, I shall enlarge but little on what concerns it beside. " The pyramidal pine, from Verrieres, presents generally good and promising trees, with a straight trunk and a regular crown; the bark is only one degree less marked than on excellent Rigas, which approximates it to the pine of Guiparaz, or perhaps still more to selected specimens of the Scotch fir, raised from seed supplied by Mr Reid." The third series, the German pine and the pine of Haguenau, is characterised by having the branches ascending and extended, the crowns irregular, and the branches often overgrown gourmandes. Of the typical tree of this series he writes : " Though more vigorous than those of the preceding series, the Haguenau pine is not so good as they. Its crown is too dense and too strong, often intermixed with overgrown branches, which tend to destroy the regu- larity of its trunk. It also frequently shows knees or defects which greatly diminish its value. " The bark is reddish in most specimens, but it is not so uniformly so as it is in the first section, or even as it is in the greater part of the lots in the second ; that of the base is more brown and more rent. " The leaf is longer, more glaucous, and less pressed against the twig than that of the elongated pyramidal section. The bud is less forward in spring by eight or ten days." Under this third head he classes a pine from the forest of Haguenau a^jwi sylvestre from Darmstadt, and a ^;Mii«s sylvestris maritima received also from Darmstadt. Of these he writes : " There are many clumps produced from seed obtained directly from Haguenau, some sown, others planted, from 1823 to 1831. l'eicole FORESTIERE DES BARRES. ' 125 *' The characteristic feature and the principal defect of the Haguenau pine consist in excess of vigour, and, above all, of a vigour ill distri- buted, which is carried often into the branches, to the detriment of the trunk. It is in this that it differs essentially from the true Riga pines. Its trunk is in general much less vertical and less regular, often crooked, warped, or abruptly falling off in size, in consequence of the enormous overgrown branches, which grow out to a great distance, and destroy all regularity in the tree. In one variety which is often met with the tree is more compact, and the general habit more regular ; but the crowns, much too strong, transform the summit into a pyramid excessively dense and bushy, in the middle of which the trunk is almost lost. On the other hand, the reddish colour of the bark is less uniform and less decided than in the good lots of the Riga pine ; it commences generally 1 or 2 metres higher ; pretty often indeed the bark throughout the whole body of the tree is grey, or much mixed with grey rather than reddish. That at the base of the trunk is more brown, more thick zoned, and more full of rents. " Such are in general the Haguenau pines in the school of Barres. And from this it may be seen that this variety is not identical with the mast pine of the north, as has been thought by Bosc, and many foresters with him; and that, on the other hand, notwithstanding its superiority in vigour and in rapidity of increase, it is much inferior to it in quality. ** Truth requires it should be stated that there are to be found in the mass of the Haguenaux some individual trees which constitute an exception to the rest, being quite regular in trunk and in crown, with a bark fairly red, and retaining, at the same time, the superiority of vigour belouging to the race. These may be compared to the best pines of the north of the series of strong crowns (those of the elongated pyramids). Also, when one shall come — if that happen — to create, by choice of individuals, the best possible races, certain varieties of these may present, at a pinch, very good points of departure from the characteristics of the most to lead to that result. " Independent of the differences which I have indicated above, the pine of Haguenau is distinguished from the Rigas, and from those more especially of the first series, by its having the leaf longer, more spreading from the branch, ordinarily a little curved or rounded off, of a more glaucous green about the shoot, and later in spring to the extent of about eight days. The bud is a little more coloured, 126 NATUBAL HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR. the cones of a less uniform grey, often of a slightly violet coloured tint, dull or reddish; but the characters, be they taken from the bads, be they taken from the cones, are not sufficiently marked, nor, above all, sufficiently constant to furnish good_,means of distinction — at least I have not found them such. " It is then essentially on those characteristics which I have given above that I have founded my separation of the Haguenau from the Eigas, and made it the type of the third series. "Of the pm sylvestre of Darmstadt some were sown in 1831 and others planted in 1838. They have the same faults and the same qualities as the preceding ; form disorderly and irregular ; trunk thickened and vigorous, but often knotty and deformed by gour- mandes ; the bark scarcely red, sometimes even grey, throughout the whole height. As in the Haguenau, so in this, there are individuals exempt from the faults of the mass, and promising for the future very fine and good trees, or which ai-e such already ; but these are few in number. " Of the pinus sylvestris var-montana, received also from Darm- stadt, a row was planted in 1833. " These, from their descent, and the greater part of their characters, it appears to me, cannot be classed otherwise than amongst the Haguenau, but in a rank below both of the preceding. " Although their crowns may be less goii,r mandes than theirs, their trunk is still more faulty — not so large in the first place, and very much bent in half and more of the trees, and the bark is grey or brown in almost all. This pine is one of those which show clearly that there exist local varieties and bad varieties of the pin sylvestre, which it is of importance to avoid in the formation of woods of this pine." Intermediate between this class and that which follows, he places a pin sylvestre from Champagne, of which he writes : " Two rows were sown in 1831. The seeds were given to me by M. le Vicomte Rinnard, one of the principal planters of pine forests on the chalk soils of Champagne, and were the produce of these plantations. The trees produced from them have not the character of the race, and cannot be classed in any one of the series which I have established. At first sight they look like a mixture of not very vigorous Haguenau pines and pines of I'Ardeche. Examined more closely, it is seen that the greater part are rather intermediate between the two. In regard l'^cole forestierb des barres. 127 to trunks, crowns, and bark, they are in general rather passable, or mediocre than good, or very good." The second grand division consists of those with horizontal branches,* among which we find the fourth section, designated the horizontal tapering, of which the type is the expanded elongated pine of Geneva, of which M. Vilmorin gives the following characteristics : '* The branches, spreading horizontally, sometimes even depressed ; generally very much elongated and flexuous ; united in regular cx'owns, which leave the trunk bare in the intervals between these. This is rarely very straight ; the curvations not so acute as on the Haguenau ; but, on the other hand, its grossessement is much less. " Tlie bark is tolerably red in some of the lots of this race, but more commonly grey^ or very much mixed with grey. " The leaf is larger and shorter than in all the preceding series. The bud in spring later by from eight days to a fortnight in ex- panding." Under the fourth head, the horizontal elongated but straggling Geneva pine : a section of the trees having horizontal branches, he classes — The Ard^che pine ; the Geneva pine ; the Tarare pine ; the pin sylvestre di(, Maine ; pines raised from the seed of a specimen, having straggling branches, growing at Verrieres ; a pin sylvestre, given as a Riga pine by M. Leblond, of Bordeaux ; and a pinus sangidnea, received from M. Barthude, of Toulouse. Of the three first mentioned he writes : " Though of different ages, the first sown or planted in numerous masses from 1823-1831, the second planted in mass in 1840, the last planted in row in 1833 and 1835, they have always appeared to me identical ; I include, there- fore, the whole in the same description. I give the preference to the Ardeche pine, because, being the eldest of the three, and by far the most numerous in the school, it best represents the series to which it belongs, and may therefore give of it the best idea. " The trunks in this race are in about half of them pretty straight and elongated, but too much swelling out and drawn out in rat-tail form. The other half present knees more or less decided, but less strongly so, than in the bad types of the Haguenau pine, and in the sylvestre of the High Alps previously described. The branches, excepting those of two or three of the higher crowns, are very generally horizontal, and ^Corresponding to the Pinus Sylvestris Vulgarit. 128 NATURAL HISTORY OP SCOTCH FIR. at times even declining, not very strong, very much elongated, and often flexuous ; those of the inferior stages almost naked, ramifying themselves in feeble twigs, which carry at their extremity little tufts of short and outspreading leaves, while those of the ascending branches are, on the contrary, very closely pressed towards the branch. The crowns, by I'eason of their being somewhat equal, are in regular stages, so that they show the trunk bare between them. " The bark is in general more grey than red, very often of an unde- termined shade between the two. That of the base is manifestly less thickened, less brown, and less rent than that of the Haguenau. In regai'd to enlargement, this pine is inferior to the Rigas raised from Russian seed, and much more so than some of the Rigas raised from French seed, but, above all, than those of the lot of Haguenaux, which, at the same age, have almost doable the magnitude ; and its increase in height is in a similar measure less than in all those named. It does not, in this respect, surpass any but its analogue the pine of Brianc^on, to be afterwards described. "A botanical character, somewhat constant in the pines of this series, is, that the leaf is shorter, broader, and firmer than in the others, and especially than in the Haguenau. Their bud in spring is behind that of these, and especially that of the Russian pine, by from eight days to a fortnight. " The exceptions to the general characters, which I have just noted, consist principally in the following : A small number of individuals are elongated pyramidal, and as regular as some of the best Riga pines first described ; others somewhat more numerous are expanded pyramidal, some regulai-, others with strong gourmandes branches. The individuals of these variations, almost including the last, have a pretty mai-ked advantage over the others in regard to increase in height, but more in regard to enlai'gement of trunk; the bark of these is not sensibly better than in the mass. There ai'e found here and there, but far separated, trees of which the bark is of a marked and uniform reddish tinge ; but this exception is not more frequent amongst the pyramidal than amongst the horizontal. " To sum up the whole, the Ardeche pine is, or at least appears for the present, inferior in every respect to the red pines of the North, both those raised from Russian, and those raised from French seed. It does not nearly equal in value the Scotch fir, so unequal as these are compared with the Haguenau ; this may be doubted, because it is exempt from the great defects of that race, but it has not the good qualities of that tree ; and, in view of the whole, the first appears to L'^COLE FORESTIERE DE8 BARRES. 129 me, In default of a better, preferable for most cases, and that more, especially when it is proposed to plant or sow the pin sylvestre in poor dry lands, whether sandy or chalk." Of the ;5m sylvestre du Maine, of which there is a clamp In four rows planted in 1830, he says : ** The pin sylvestre does not exist in Maine but as a cultivated tree, and the plantations of it which are there met with have necessarily diversified origins, and do not constitute a local race. But the desire of multiplying the points of comparison led me to plant one lot of them, for the seed producing, which I am indebted to the obliging disposition of M. V^tillard. " These pines belong to the race of Ardfeche and of Geneva, but they present a very large proportion of good, and of pretty good, trees, and the bark is more frequently of a pretty decided reddish grey. It is a good type of the race, apparently improved in Maine by eucoessive selection of individuals." Of the pin sylvestre, raised from the seed of a specimen with spreading branches, existing at Verri^res, of which there were four rows planted from 1832-1835, he says, in reference to the account given of his design in planting these, and others of a pyramidal form, that this also has produced many trees like the parent. Those of this lot have the decided characters of the Geneva pines ; the branches of almost all are horizontal, the bark grey, or very little reddish ; they are further pretty vigorous, and are of the number of those which promise to be the best of this series. Under the fifth head, the Thick-set horizontal pine, he classes a pine from Briangon, and a Scotch fir obtained from Mr. Lawson, of Edinburgh. Writing of the Briangon pine of the High Alps, of which he had planted three rows in 1826, he says : "The tree, which constitutes by itself the fifth section, was given to me by M. Faure (of Briangon), who had the kindness to get seed gathered for me, as being the Pinus suffix of the Brian gonuais. This should have been — if Duhamel be not misled in the application of the name — a P. muglio. But, be it a mistake of Duhamel, or of the men who had gathered the cones, the pines produced from this seed are true Sylvestres. On this point I have no regrets, for I am thus supplied in my collection, with the two extreme types (this and the elongated Riga pine), which exist In R 130 NATURAL HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR the species of pimis sylvestris, a comparison of wliich shows most manifestly the existence of local varieties and the necessity of dis- tinguishing them. A trunk, thick and knotty, and thick-set, covered with a bark, coarse and much cleft, brown in the lower part, and grey on the rest of the tree ; the crowns horizontal, very much drawn to- gether, lining the tree from its base, composed of strong branches often flexuous, which famish and at times annihilate the trunk, and the ensemhle of which forms an enlarged and diffused head ; such are, with about five or six exceptions, among the thirty individuals of which this lot is composed, the pins sylvestres of the High Alps. " It may be seen from this that they are amongst the lowest rank of the species to which they belong, and that in the formation of pine woods they should be avoided. But this exclusion ought not to extend to all possible cases ; there is one in which the Briangon pine may not only be useful, but better than all others of the species ; it may be so where plantations are formed on the brows of mountains, or on their plateaux exposed to the violence of winds. The little dis- position manifested by it to attain height, the thickness of its base, the strength of its lower branches, which are persistent for a length of years, almost carpeting the ground, make it more suitable than any other of the pwis sylvestres to hold on and grow in such situ- ations ; also when one is re-clothing mountains with woods, the Brian- 9on pine may be employed with great advantage conjointly with the Mugho — the former to garnish the middle region of the declivity, the Mugho for the higher zone — for these are the respective places which Nature has assigned them on the brows of mountains." In writing of the fivefold series, which he had formed, M. Vilmorin says : " These five divisions are not by any means equally good, or nearly BO. The first and the last (the elongated pyramidal Riga pine and the pine of Briangon) present the only two types absolutely distinct ; the others have characters much less decided. This could not be avoided, and pertains to the very nature of the species in which the individuals as well as the local masses differ — one may say indefinitely. And thus between the two opposite types which I have just named, the lots in the school form an unbroken chain, which binds together these two extremes. The sub-divisions, as I have said, were necessary, as may be seen indeed by the definition of the five series adopted. " The outline, such as I have been able to give it, does not yet suffice for a convenient classification of all the lots. A certain num- INSTRUCTIONS GIVEN IN SCHOOL OP FORESTRY. 131 ber present intermediate characters, but too ill-defined to allow of them being taken as typical forms, and thus to increase the number of divisions ; others have no characteristics of their own, but a mix- ture of many types, without a marked predominance of any. In these two cases I have placed these lots, under supplementary titles at the end of the series to which they most closely ap- proached. " In this mode of classification, the two extreme types, the elongated pyramidal Riga pine on the one part, and the Briangon on the other, are perfectly distinct ; a third and intermediate type, the Haguenau pine, although less characteristic, is yet sufficiently so to allow of my admitting it as such." The following are instructions given in the School of Forestry In regard to the exploitation of a forest of Scotch firs ; but there are employed several terms not in general use in speaking of the manage- ment of woods and forests in England, of which it may be well to give some explanation. One of these terms is revolution. This is applied to the time occupied in the complete reproduction of a forest in the state in which it may be at any one time, as, for example, from the sowing, or from the felling of one crop to the sowing or felling of a second. Fellings executed at diff'erent periods of the growth of the trees, with a view to the effecting of different objects have different designations given to them. Amongst these are the following : coupe cVensemencevient, a designation given to a thinning of the seedlings or saplings, and of trees left to give shade to seed in germination, and to seedlings in the early stages of their growth ; coupe secondaire, a designation given to a second thinning of the same kind executed seven years later ; and coupe definitive, a designation given to a third felling of the same kind, when all trees of the previous crop left growing to supply shade and shelter to the rising crop are felled, leaving of that crop only such as are destined for the production of seed by which the ground may again be sown, to which standards the designation Bcdiveaux Anglice, staddles, is given. There are other technical designations given to fellings or thinnings in other circumstances, with a view to the accomplishment of other objects ; but with these we do not here come in contact. There are, however, other terms which it may be well to explain, such as Bois hlanc, Morts-bois, and Gualis. The first designation ia applied to wood of little value, such as that of willows and poplars, etc., the second is applied to worthless brush- wood, or undergrowth, junipers, 132 NATURAL HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR. hazles, elders, cornels, etc. ; the last, to perches and poles, from which the lower branches have fallen through want of nourishment. To resume then our account of the instruction given in the School of Forestry at Nancy, in regard to the exploitation of a forest of Scotch fir. " In countries in which this tree, pimcs sylvestris, is very common, they do not allow it to become aged. In effect the annual increase of forest masses of this tree attains its maximum when it attains the age of 60, 70, or 80 years ; then, after maintaining this for some 20 years, it begins to diminish with the advance of age. When then, the primary object is to procure firewood, it is best to fix the revolution cycle, or crop, at from 80 to 90 years. And this may be worth attending to in countries in which this is the perdominating tree ; but even in such a case, parts of the forest should be submitted to a more protracted revolution to get useful timber of good quality. " In France, where timber is more scarce than firewood, the State cannot fail to profit by delaying the exploitation of the pine. At the period of its maximum increase, its wood ia not of the best quality. It is only at a later period of growth that the grain of the wood becomes compact, thatjt becomes charged with condensed resin, and thus acquires the elasticity and durability which makes it valuable in the construotiou of great works, and more especially for the navj. hi view of such cousideratious, it would be well to apply to it a revoluttoH of 120 years on lauds ou which its growth is active, and not to exploit it till it have attained the age of from 140 to 160 years in dry soil of sufficient depth, like the siliceous sands in which this tree delights, and acquires more especially the qualities which fit it for employment in great works. " It must however, be remarked, that protracted revolutions have this inconvenience, they compromise the fertility of the soil. After a time, in the course of this protracted cycle, the pine forest no longer constitutes a close mass, and it comes at an advanced age to be converted into something like a glade. It follows that in course of time it becomes covered with hurtful undergrowth, the wind disperses the bed of dead leaves, and at the termination of the cycle the ground finds itself sodden, dry, impoverished, and in circumstances moat favourable for the multiplication of very hurtful lepidopterous insects, the caterpillars of which only earth themselves in the driest soils. " When then a cycle of 120 years or upwards is decided on, not only should all deciduous broad-leaved woods, which naturally oome INSTRUCTIONS GIVEN IN SCHOOL OF FORESTRY. 133 up uuder the pines, be carefully preserved, but it may be well to introduce towards the middle of the cycle a subsidiary tree, designed to protect and to ameliorate the soil. The yoke elm, the beech, or the Norwegian pine, would prove well adapted for fulfilling this function. The last mentioned especially, placed in a second range, gives to the growth of the pine a magnificent upward growth. "Fellings preparatory for a succeeding cro]). — With a view to a natural resowing of the soil, it is not necessary that a deep shade be preserved, and, without disadvantage, the trees left standing may be so dispersed that the branches of them may be from 5 to 6 mfetres distant. " In selecting trees to be reserved, it is not the straightest and tallest which are to be preferred ; it is more advantageous to reserve those which are of a medium height and branching; such are ordinarily more fertile in seed, and they better resist the winds. In the actual state of the forests in France there is as yet little room for choice ; but it is expected that after a time, when the forests shall have felt the effect of regular management, there will be found not only on the outer skirt of the forest, but over the whole area, trees of a medium height loaded with branches. *' [n spacing out the trees to be reserved, precautions must be taken against the havoc of the winds, and the invi^sion of herbs or hurtful plants. The pine sends down a tap-root, and otherwise roots itself firmly : but, nevertheless, ou parts very mucli exposed to the wind, and where experience has proved that this tree with difficulty resists it, it may be well to leave a pretty dense reserve. The second in- convenience is frequent in pine forests, and on some grounds almost unavoidable. It may, however, be mitigated by not making the coitjje d'ensemencement, or first felling, excepting when assured of an early and abundant fructification, which, in the case of the pines, is pretty frequent, and may be foreseen eighteen months in advance. Further, in the autumn or the winter preceding the scattering of the seed, it may be well to proceed to the extraction of the stumps, and to till the ground in rays, or in narrow furrows, at the bottom of which it may be stopped, and shall find a mobile fresh earth favour- able to the germination of it and to the growth of the young plant. " In the majority of cases these labours will not be unremunerative for the stumps of pines, from the resin which can be extracted from them, are a more lucrative product than are those of other trees. " After the coupe d' ensemencement, when the replenishing is com- plete, and the young plants have attained to near the height of from 134 NATURAL HISTORY OP SCOTCH FIR. 16 to 24 centimetres, it maybe proper to proceed to the coupe de- finitive. It may be imagined that the vigorous nature of the young plant renders unnecessary the coupe secondaire, and that it is necessary to hasten the withdrawal of the covering which is altogether contrary to its requirements. " In despite of the prudential measures taken to re-produce a pine forest by self-sown seed, we are driven to acknowledge that it is extremely rare that we meet with complete and satisfactory replen- ishings in forests of this pine. To such an extent is this the case that many foresters are disposed to renounce coupes d'' eiisemencement ia pine forests — to make a clean sweep, and to have recourse to artificial sowings, which succeed readily and well. " In view of the general facts, it is necessary to say that this opinion is not without good foundation. Let the reserves from the coupe d^ensemencement be numerous or otherwise, let the coupe de- finitive be expedited or delayed, one often sees the best and most complete natural re-sowings come into jeopardy at the end of some years — diminish and disappear in places to such an extent as to give access to the mort bois and to the bois Mane, The cause of this it is rather difficult to ascertain. Some writers attribute it to insects, such as the worm of the Maybug, the Pissode note, and the Hylobe, which attack, the one the stems and the other the roots of the young pines. Mr. Berg thinks, with reason according to my judg- ment, that we must seek the cause or occasion of the evil in the superficial position of the roots of the old pines, the very abundant fibrous tufts of which cover and penetrate the soil in every way, and absorb thus in its entirety the nutritious moisture, being manifestly much more vigorous than the feeble rootlets of the young plants. " Accepting this opinion, one is led to conclude that natural replenishings have no chance of success excepting in ground pretty wet and pretty deep, in which the pine, advancing in age, may extend its roots to a lower depth than the layer in which the young plants throw out theirs during the early years of their growth. But it is well known that pine forests occupy in general the less fertile soils, and thus we can account for natural replenishings being rarely satis- factory and complete. " Were it not the important consideration of the expense of replen- ishing artificially through the purchase of seed, which is deai', and the expense of labour, and further, the risk run of not always pro- curing good seed when it is pu rchased, one would be led, from what INSTRUCTIONS GIVEN IN SCHOOL OP FORESTRY. 135 has been stated, to lay it down as a principle that the reproduction of this pine ought to be carried on by making a clean sweep of the trees, followed immediately by artificial sowing ; and that coupes d'ensemenceme7it ought only to be practised in exceptional circum- stances, as, for example, on ground on a declivity. Forest science counsels the former mode of procedure ; but financial considerations enforce most frequently the adoption of the latter." M. Nanquette states in a note that the most important forests of the pin sylvestre were formerly subjected to the mode cl tire et aire. Thus were they treated till 1820, when the system des compartiments was substituted for this, in so far as the principal fellings were con- cerned. In these fellings there were reserved a certain number of trees, with a view to securing a re-sowing of the ground, and in order to render more certain the natural reproduction. There is laid upon the purchaser the burden of pulling up bushes and mosses, and giving to the soil a slight tillage in alternate bands. "Such is, in few words, the treatment formerly given to those forests in which we find to-day woods produced by self-sown seed perfectly complete, and of all ages anterior to 1840. " The power of imposing works in connection with fellings having been suppressed, now well nigh forty years ago, they ceased to cultivate le 'parUrre of coiipes d' ensemencement. But soon they perceived that the fellings were not replenished, or were replenished badly — or at the least that they must wait too long a time before obtaining a sowing sufficiently complete, and at that time they adopted the plan of recovering them by artificial replenishings. " The easy execution, and the so to speak assured success of this operation on the one hand, and the unsuccessful issue of coupes d'ense- mencement on ground not prepared for them on the other hand gradually gave rise to the conviction that it was for the general interest to substitute in a general way artificial for the natural replenishing. But they were not long in discovering that the new mode of replenishing gave no better results than that it had super- seded, and, as it is much more costly, they returned quite naturally to the old practice of coiqjes d^ ensemencement, and the preparation of the ground for these fellings. " A very light tillage, a simple scraping of the moss which spreads over dry ground, the opening of strips or of furrows in the soil too strongly covered with herbage or bushes, suffices to ensure the natural replenishing of fellings with a little delay. 136 NATURAL HISTOHY OF SCOTCH FIR. " The replenishings thus obtained are not generally so thick and so good as can be obtained by hand sowing ; but they offer many important advantages which these do not : in point of fact, the young plants of the ^^mi sylvestre are very robust, and grow with rapidity in their first youth if they be rather sparsely sown ; their lower branches display themselves, the foot of the trunk becomes thick and strong, and by degrees the forest mass forms itself, and becomes so compact as to give a very complete replenishing before arriving at the state of gaulis. " The natural sowings, probably because they are less dense, escape almost entirely the grave evil of defoliation which generally comes upon artificial sowings, and often retards their development during many years. " Finally, in despite of the advantage which may be had from practising a great clearing amongst the saplings, the difficulty of carrying out this delicate operation on an extensive scale prevents recourse being had to it ; and the artificial sowings, too thick at the first, do not present more when they arrive at the state of gaulis than long weak stems, and often they have not a future because the young pines are liable to bend or break under the weight of snow or of hoar frost, on account of their branches being spread and their leaves long, and also it may be from the snow often falling in large flakes, and in great quantities at a time in the climate inhabited by this tree ; hence it may be concluded that they will stand only a very ' partial clearing. But this tree, after it has passed the stage of gaulis, sustains but badly a dense mass : branches which cross each other lose their leaves, and are not slow to perish ; the head of the tree, instead of developing, becomes lanky, narrow, and, when this ab- normal condition continues long, most of the tops become deformed, the trunks themselves contract diseases, and the whole mass becomes at times unfit to attain an advanced age or fine dimensions. To prevent this last and grave inconvenience, without at the same time exposing the young pine forest to being destroyed by the snow, the most certain method, the efficacy of which has been tested by ex- perience, consists in executing the first thinning, contrary to the general theory, while the wood is still in the state of thicket at the time when the lowermost branches begin to dry, and in carrying this out unsparingly. In point of fact, it may come to pass in this way that the produce so abundant in the first youth of a pine forest, may find itself restricted or at least diminished ; but this incon- venience will only be temporaiy, till the remaining stems, having 1N8TBU0TIONS GIVEN IN SCHOOL OP FORESTRY. 137 more room to extend their branches, in a short time give to the ground a thick cover, while, on the other hand, they form a fine conical head, such as ensures a good ultimate growth, and at the same time a stem more thick and short, and strong enough to bear up under the weight of the snow. *' The subsequent thinnings ought to succeed each other at moderate times apart, which will have effect of rendering them less productive ; but in their entirety they will yield more, and exercise on the vegetation of the stems, destined to grow to the completion of the cycle, the salutary influence for which such thinnings are " The wood of the pin sylvestre is used both in building and in manufactures, as balks, beams, boards, planks, staves, shingles, etc. When it has attained its maturity it is considered as solid and as durable as that of the oak. In ship carpentry and wooden bridge building it is used as flooring ; and it is almost the only tree of which masts are made. For this use it is obtained in France from the north of Europe. It is only in the higher regions of the principal mountain ranges, where the growth is slow, and the ligneous fibre very dense, that there is a hope of timber being produced of the degree of suppleness and elasticity required for masts. And attention is being given to the seeking out sheltered spots in these regions where the tree will be comparatively safe from snow-loads and hoar-frosts, with a view to the cultivation of forest masses destined to meet this important public requirement.* " The firewood furnished by this tree is very superior to what is supplied by some others of the coniferae ; and charcoal produced by it is in demand for forges. *' The pin sylvestre produces one portion of the pitch and tar made use of in the French navy. " It is the stumps and roots which yield most of this, which is abstracted by subjecting them in furnaces to a slow and gradual distillation. "The wood thus deprived of resinous matters is reduced to a charcoal which is used for various purposes. And there are in many countries very productive contract sales of the stumps of this tree, with the privilege to erect such furnaces. * A valuable memoir on this subject by MM. Bravais and Martina appeared in the second volume of the Annales Foreati^res, 1843, pp. 369-561. 138 NATUBAIi HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR. " In some localities marauders have a practice of cutting deeply notches in the trunk of the tree to remove some portions richly charged with resin which they recognise by a deep yellow colour, and by a strong odour which is exhaled. These portions cut into small pieces are very inflamable, and are sold in place of matches and fire quickeners. It is scarcely necessary to say that this practice is most prejudicial to the trees." The authorities of the Forest School of Nancy give the following instructions relative to the collection and preservation of the seeds ; " The collecting of the cones should take place from the month of November till that of March. When it is requisite to make great provision for sowings this should be done as soon as they have attained maturity ; in other cases it is preferable not to collect them until after the cold, as the nearer this action approaches to the period of natural dispersion of the seed, with the greater facility is this extracted. *' The extraction of the seed may be efi'ected either by solar or arti- ficial heat, but the former is preferable, -as thus are obtained seeds of a superior quality ; but the latter is more generally employed, as it is more expeditious and better admits of making collections in great quantities." Hartig, the father of Modern Forest Science in Germany, has given a description of the arrangements adopted in such cases, of which the following is a translation : " There is used an apartment in the lower storey of a stone building. There are placed in such an apartment one or more stoves, fitted up with grates that they may be heated by the combustion of emptied cones ; and there proceed from these stoves a circuit of pipes conveying heated air as in green-house, hot-house, or stove, that in every part the room may be heated to a sufficient temperature. In this hot-house there are constructed against the walls and in the centre scaffolding on which may be placed trays of wooden lattice work, or of wire work from 1 metre 66 centimetres, to 2 metres in length by 82 centimetres in breadth, in stages of about 16 centi- metres between. Under the lowest range of trays are placed drawers to receive the seed. " They then charge the trays with cones, and heat the stove to as high a temperature as a man conveniently can stand, (20° to 25° R.) ^0* to 90° Fahr." ; and Cotta, who followed Hartig, Kays that the DBSOBIPTION OP sAOHERIES. 139 temperature may be raised to 30°=100° Fahr,, or even 35''=112° Fahr., without injury to the germinative power of the seed. "This heat is maintained until the cones open, they are then stirred or shaken briskly in all the trays, commencing with the highest series, that the seeds may fall from tray to tray till they reach the drawers under the lowest tier. To facilitate this shaking of the trays, they have been made moveable on rollers in two grooves, so that, by pulling and pushing the tray, all the cones contained in it may be easily moved. " When all the cones have opened as extensively as possible they are withdrawn, and the seeds still remaining in them are collected. For this purpose they are placed in a vessel like a churn, in which there is a suitable opening by which the seeds may pass and be received into a vessel placed beneath. The cones are thus briskly agitated until they are completely emptied of seeds, and the empty cones are employed to feed the fire. " When solar heat is to be employed, the scaffolding is supported against the wall of a building on a southern exposure. On this the trays are disposed at such a height between that the sun's rays may fall on all, the highest and lowest alike. Under the lowest trays are drawers, provided with coverings of thick cloth, that if rain fall the seed may be easily covered and kept dry. " The whole apparatus is covered with a light roof, the slope of which is towards the north. " When there is a powerful sun and great heat the cones are shaken, commencing with the trays in the upper tiers, and proceeding in regular succession to those of the lowest row ; and the seeds are then collected in the drawer. At last, when it is considered that the cones have opened as much as possible, they are taken away and put in a churn such as has been described for the extraction of those seeds which may remain in them." MM. Parade, etc., say " that the apparatus employed in connection with solar heat has been practically perfected by attaching to each tray a moveable cover which is closed during the night, and when it rains, and can be opened to varying extents according to the heat of the sun. And that this cover may better reflect the sun's rays upon the cones, the lower surface is painted of a white colour or is varnished. " To these houses constructed for the drying of seeds, the designation Secher'ies is given in France. " The Forest Administration of Forests in France has in the forest 140 NATURAL HISTORY OP SCOTCH FIR. of Haguenau (Bas-Rhin) an establishment of this kind, which annually supplies seeds of the pine which are shed in the forests of the state. " When it is desired to divest the seeds of their wings, they moisten them, and after having put them into a sack, filling it only to the extent of one fourth, they rub it until the wings are detached. Then, after having spread them out in a well-aired place, to expedite their desiccation, they are cleaned completely by meaus of a winuow- ing fan. " Moistening the seed may be avoided, which it is preferable to do, by spreading out the sacks filled, as has been described, on a thrash- ing floor, and thrashing with a flail to beat the seed. " The divesting the seeds of wings is advantageous, as it facilitates transport by diminishing both bulk and weight ; and further, seed so treated sows better, and runs less risk of being dispersed by the wind. But, in general, the seeds which have not been subjected to this operation, especially such as are obtained in commerce, keep better than those which have been so treated. In the establishments, more especially those of Germany, where they prepare immense quantities of seed for sale, they sometimes put the seed into a heap after having well moistened it, and leave it there until, on the insertion of the hand, there is felt a slight heat, and then the wing may be detached with the greatest ease. It may readily be seen that such a process pre-disposes the seed for germination ; and if the sowing be delayed it may be found that there are a great many which have lost their power of germination. " The seed of this pine designed to be sown may be preserved for three or four years ; but when this is to be done it should not be divested of its wings. And it will be preserved still more certainly if it be left enclosed in the cones, and if these be not gathered till the end of winter. " Seed of the jiiniis sylvestris, when of good quality, is firm and well filled ; its smell on opening it is fresh and resinous. When crushed on the nail, the small kernel leaves there a greasy substance with an oleaginous smell. The seeds of the pine are black or white. " A greater number of empty ones are to be found amongst the latter than amongst the others. It may therefore be well, in purchasing seed, if the white be in excess, to test them with the more care. "Seed of the Scotch fir should weigh from 120 to 140 grammes per litre if winged ; and from 440 to 500 grammes if divested of the wing." INSTRUCTIONS GIVEN IN SCHOOL OF FORESTRY. 141 In regard to the sowing of the seed, the following are the instructions given ; " The seed may be sown on alternate bands, of from 66 centimetres to a metre in breadth, or by placing a few seeds each in a shallow hole somewhat sheltered, but not much shelter is requisite. In southern slopes covered by heaths, on which the pine is often sown, it is necessary to adopt a particular precaution in preparing the soil, namely, to dig the bands or the holes to the layer of soil below the blank soil found on the surface, and which is generally designated heath soil [peat ?] In sowing the seed on heath soil, which has no firmness, which is incapable of retaining moisture, and which, from its colour, absorbs heat in a high degree, the seeds almost always fail ; and frequently the heath soil contains an acid principle which makes germination completely abortive, " It is stated that this is acetic acid, and it has been proposed to neutralise it by employing ecohuage, or burning the turf, which, by the ashes which it produces, would accomplish this end. This operation may suffice to prepare for the culture of certain plants which require little moisture, and for the growth of such as return to the soil almost the whole of the mineral elements of their structure, in such a way as to mix with the layer of earth the mineralogical element of the soil. But for forest trees it would not be the same, for in abstracting from the ground one noxious principle, the ashes would add to the lightness of the soil already too great, and to its defective power of absorbing moisture from the air. " The seeds ought not to be covered to a greater depth than from 4 to 6 millimetres ; it may even suffice to mix them with the earth by means of a rake. Ordinarily the young plants appear at tlie end of from four to six weeks, when the sowing has taken place in spring, which is most advisable; but it also often happens when the seeds have been too deeply buried, or too much heated in the extraction, that they do not germinate till the second year. " In some parts of Germany, where the seeds of the pine are very abundant, they are accustomed to sow simply the cones in the bands, or in the holes prepared for this purpose ; then, as the heat of spring begins to act on the scales, they shake the cones roughly with a rake, to cause the seeds to fall out and to distribute them as equally as possible. This proceeding has first the advantage of saving the expense of extraction and divesting the seeds of wings ; in the second place, the seeds are generally of the best quality ; and the cones which cover the soil may give some protection to the sprouting plants. But, on the other hand, a portion of the seeds are lost, for they can never 142 NATURAL HISTORY OF SCOTCH FIR. succeed in getting all out from the cones ; they are not so equally spread over the ground ; and the cones are more cumbersome for transport. " The quantity of seed to be employed for a partial sowing per hectare are : Winged seeds, ... ... 12 to 14 kilogrammes. Seeds divested of wings, ... 9 to 11 „ Cones, ... ... ... 18 to 20 hectolitres." CHAPTER X. Natural History and General Culture of the Maritime Pine IN France. Sect. I. — Commendation hestotved 07i the Maritime Pine. The success which has followed the endeavours of M. Bremontier to arrest and utilise the dunes and sand-drifts of the landes of Gascony, by planting them with the pinus maritima, has led to the name of this pine being closely associated with thoughts of these landes, not only there, but in lands far remote, in which attention has been given to the subject. The growth of the maritime pine in France is not confined to Gascony, but is carried out elsewhere as a temporary application of sylviculture to prepare the soil for agriculture, or for the intro- duction of trees better adapted to the climate, or to the wants of the inhabitants of the country adjacent, or more remote. In some of the districts in which this is done the trees do not attain so great an age and size as they do on the landes of the Gironde and adjacent dunes. This is the case on La Sologne, in the district of the Loire and the Cher, where they generally have to be felled after a growth of twenty years, at which age the trees may supply supports for tele- graphic wires, and wood which may be applied to similar uses ; but it is chiefly as firewood that the produce can command a sale, and in such districts special attention has been given to the conversion of these products into fuel. M. Boitel says of the maritime pine : " The rapid growth of this evergreen tree has made it a favourite with foresters. What other tree becomes productive at seven or eight years of age, and even then exhibits a strength and beauty which completely changes the aspect of the country by changing desert ground into a forest ! " Add to these advantages that it thrives in light poor soil unfit for any other purpose, and we can easily comprehend how much it is prized. " The forester of the Landes or of Sologne exhibits with pride heaths turned into forests by the labour of his hands. So a desert 144 NATURAL HISTOKY OF MARITIME PINE. inhabited by a few wretched sheep has succeeded an immense timber forest, supplying in abundance timber, firewood, and resinous sub- stances. " Many are the villages which owe their foundation to the intro- duction of the maritime pine, before which there was a dearth of timber and of firewood for baking the bricks and tiles, which are indispensable for building purposes in a country devoid of means of transport. " I cannot enumerate here all the benefits to mankind rendered by this tree; let it suffice to briefly notice some of the chief uses of the tree. ** Immense sandy plains in Gascony, Orleanais, Touraine, and Maine have become profitable through its culture. " Certain cantons, formerly desert and uninhabited, owe their im- provement to the maritime pine, which furnishes materials in- dispensable for houses and workshops ; its timber and resin are useful for domestic purposes ; the baker needs firewood, the painter turpentine and varnish, and the sailor tar for ropes, timber and pitch for his vessels and boats ; and by this tree all these are supplied. " On the sea-shore the growth of the Bordeaux pine is the only means of arresting the invasion of the dunes, which, like an ocean of sand with moving waves, lays waste the fields and carries misery and desolation into important populous centres. " Its protecting shelter from the caustic action of the salt winds permits cultivation to be carried on in spots where this would other- wise be impossible, and it withstands tempests better than any other tree. " The maritime pine is met with all over France ; in fertile ground where it would be the reverse of profitable, it occupies an important place in landscape gardening. "To sum up, in cleared land it appears as the first symptom of civilisation and progress, and is connected with one of the most wonderful discoveries of the age, for with two of its relatives it shares the privilege of supporting the wires, which in a second convey human thought to the ends of the earth." In another connection he writes thus on the same theme : " The maritime pine is at home in Gascony, there it attains the largest size, and, provided that sheep are absent, it] multiplies indefinitely when once introduced. Sologne does not suit it nearly so well, it suffers from the inclemency of the climate and the badness BEMARK8 BY BOITEL. 145 of the soil. Without culture the pine would never have formed forests in that district, and it may be asserted that the plantation would soon disappear if they were not kept up artificially. This tree, which lives for a hundred years in the south of France, often in Sologne, reaches maturity at 25 or 30 years. This gi-eat difference naturally involves important modifications of its culture and ex- ploitation. " The inhabitant of the Landes who can count on the longevity of his pines, expects them to produce resin and timber, firewood being only a secondary consideration. " The Solognese, on the contrary, knowing that his pines are rarely large enough for timber, or to be subjected to regular ^emma^^e, values them chiefly as firewood, Cotrets hoiirrSes, charcoal, and charcoal powder are the most important productions in Sologne. Only here and there do some woods situated in deep moist soil furnish trees fit for the carpenter. " Of late years, quantities of telegraph poles are supplied by Sologne, for this purpose trees are required about the age of 20 or 25 years. " Although wood that has not been tapped appears to last a shorter time under water, not long ago some of the finest trees in Sologne were selected to form piles as the basis of a new bridge lately built at Mayenne. " I am led to conclude, from some recent experiments, that it would seem to be advantageous to tap the pines in Sologne, especially those which are to be felled. *' Gemmage should be practised in Sologne with prudence and circumspection. We must remember that the tree so far north generally lacks strength and vigour. "Too great a gemmage practised on feeble, sickly trees would certainly shorten their lives, and a loss of timber would result, for which the resin obtained would not be compensation. " Only trees on the point of being felled should be subjected to the process. As to others, they should be let alone to grow before it is attempted. " So soon as the trees appear strong enough to support the operation they should be carefully operated on, only one incision made on each tree, and this incision a small one, this being essential to the health of the tree." M. Samanos, in the introduction to his Traite de la Culture du Pin Maritime, says : " There has long been realised In the district of our 146 NATURAL HISTORY OF MARITIME PINE. landes the Importance of creating a plantation of the maritime pine ; and yet, for all that, it may be said that but a few yeara separate us from the time when the Landes of Gascony, veritable French Savannahs, presented to the eye of the saddened traveller ouly a picture of desolation and of death. Far as his eye could reach he could see only heart-sickening monotony and gloom ; and it seemed to him as if on this bare and naked land sterile Nature had cast her heavy curse. "While the whole of France elsewhere expanded herself under the rays of progress, the Landes remained there — always uncultivated and unproductive — always immersed in their unmeasured sadness — giving shade in the brilliant picture of the fruitful conquests of civilisation, and presenting to all men the great and gruesome spectacle of a fatal neglect ; for, as Viscount Izarn-Freissinet remarks, in his Coup d'oeil sur les Landes de Gascogne — ' parce que tout y etait d, faire, rien n^y a ete fait.'' Because everything in connection with it had to be done — nothing at all in connection with it has been done. " Such neglect and such abandonment of the land could not last always. There came at length the day when societies were formed for the clearing and cultivation of these lanies. But those who took the direction of the measures to be adopted were mainly imbued with notions essentially and exclusively agricultural. They wished to establish on a grand scale the culture of vegetables which the geological conditions of our sand-wastes could not support. They were foiled. Advancing with giant steps they landed themselves the more precipitately in ruin, and they were forced to stop, buried as they were under the weight of failure, so much the more over- whelming that it was unexpected. " Behold then once more our landes abandoned and uncultivated and alone in their immensity ; they seemed to be for the future doomed to everlasting sterility. " But if there had been a want of success it was the fault of man, not of the landes. To change all that, it was only necessary to act more wisely. This has been done, and now it has come about that the four hundred thousand hectares of these desolate landes have become four hundred thousand hectares of young and vigorous forests. Almost everywhere the plough has produced its furrows, and the hand of man has stocked these savage deserts with maritime pines, which will become for the country a fruitful source of wealth, and supply some day the wants of the whole of France. " Writings on the maritime pine were for a time quite the rage. CEITIQUE BY SAMANOS. 147 Societies being formed for the clearing and sowing of the landes it was needful to give instructioua to the shareholders or capitalists of these companiea, and show to them the great advantages which they might derive from this — to malce palpable to them the supposition which might engage them to lay out on uncultivated and arid lands money, of which the interest would be invested on their hopeful promises — to remove from their minds the unwarranted prejudices which seemed to exist against our landes, and to prevent their receiving the attention they deserved ; and it was necessary, in fine, for the success of the enterprises, that by descriptions, always exaggerated, our country should be shown to be another Louisiana, which should be exploited by another law. And this is what our economists have done. The question relating to the improvement of our landes was almost always treated of by men to whom a creative imagination supplemented the lowest modicum of knowledge in regard to the forest culture of our maritime pine ; and these, seizing with itching hand the pen dipped in vapouring exaggerations, extolled the sterile plains which they described,. and, by aid of subtile logic, they insinuated into the ideas of their readers ideas which had only for the greater part of the time absurd and incoherent foundations. With them our maritime pine was the veritable tree bearing apples of gold." To expose the fallaciousness of these writings he cites some passages, for which, says he, common sense alone may supply pitiless refutations. Delamarre thus writes (Trait'e de la culture des pins d, grandes dimensions ; page 306 ; third edition) : " The culture of pinea supplies the means of acquirino; wealth. As the proprietor of unculti- vated grounds, a hundred Parisian arpents for example (correspond- ing to thirty-four hectares) in extent, more or less unfit for every other crop, may, by a moderate advance of two or three thousand francs, and such attention as should be a work of pleasure, may flatter himself, not only to be reimbursed the outlay, capital, and interest in some ten, twelve, or fifteen years, but of obtaining from it from the first pretty considerable profits, and ultimately, in some fifty or sixty years from the commencement of the enterprise, a wealth to be reckoned by millions for himself, and perhaps as much for those whom, from the very nature of the undertaking, he will find he has associated with himself in the magnificent and honourable benefit which he has given ; for even in localities in which the price of wood does not exceed twenty sous per cubic foot, his personal benefit should exceed fifteen hundred thousand francs." 148 NATUEAL HISTORY OF MARITIME PINE. And again in the same work he writes, (page 289) : *< Thus one may say explicitly that in maritime pines the creator of woods is more than remunerated his advances, that he is even, in the benefits obtained dui-ing twelve years, reimbursed his first advances. I might even say that he is so within from eight to nine yeai-s ; for, in the examples I have given, the net produce of the two first thinnings executed, the one at seven years and the other at eight years from the sowing, has been three hundred francs, while at this moment the advances, capital, and interest, have not come to this amount." Such statements M. Samanos ridicules, and goes on to say: "J. L. Crinon, in his work bearing the title le Forestier praticien, (page 50) writes in these terms : ' I see amongst these, pines which would measure from ten to fourteen cubic decisteres, and which have not been planted more than from forty-five to fifty years. These trees on an average scarcely occupy twenty-five centiares of ground. If we estimate their value at forty francs each — they cannot be less than this in value — and, reckon that there are to be found four hundred of them in a hectare, we shall find that a hectare planted in pines will avail for seventeen thousand francs worth of wood, after from fifty to sixty years ! What is the kind of wood which ofi'ers like advantages to this ? ' " " Evidently," says M. Samanos, "it has not an equal ! " But he says it ironically, and goes on to say : " I might go on to cite a host of opinions by many authors, such as Emile B6res, Baudrillard, Ballet-Petit, etc, all marked by numerous errors. ** 'Although the value of these woods,' said, in 1826, M. Bilaudel to the shareholders, * varies according as the situation is more or less near to the cultivated lands, still, and that according to calculations in which there is nothing taken for granted, there is not even in the actual state of things any speculation in agriculture more sure and more probable than this is.' " All such statements M. Samanos condemns. I cite them as views which have been advanced, founded it may be upon isolated cases, but I cite them with the qualification of the critique by M. Samanos, whose treatise is valued highly by my correspondents in France. Sect. II. — General Gultui^e and Exploitation of the Maritime Pine. The maritime pine, so exclusively cultured on the landes of the Qironde, is nearly allied to the Spardenny, or cluster pine (Pinus INSTRUCTIONS GIVEN IN SCHOOL OF FORESTRY. 149 pinaster), grown at the Cape of Good Hope, and they have several characterstics in common. By some these trees are considered varieties of one species. Much valuable information in regard to the natural history and artificial culture of this tree is given in the volume just cited by M. Eloi Samanos, Membre de la Socidte d' Agriculture des Landes* But the treatment of the subject in that volume is complete in itself ; and I deem it more expedient to refer the student to this in its entirety than to cite passages apart from the connection in which they occur ; and I give here information I have gleaned from other sources. The following is the information embodied in the " Cours eUmeti- taire de Ctdture de Bois" at the School of Forestry at Nancy : " Le Pin Maritime, the maritime pine (Pimis maritima, Lamark) forms portions of considerable forests in the Landes in Provence, in Languedoc, and in Corsica. " Climate, Situation, and Exposure. — Although this tree belongs more especially to warm climates, it is nevertheless cultivated successfully in the western Departments of France ; but if it be exposed to frosts it does not live long, and the wood is worthless, its height and size are curtailed, and its usefulness is impaired. This is the case with sowings of it made at Fontainbleau, and in the suburbs or neighbourhood of Paris. There is no doubt that the maritime pine could not be acclimatised if planted farther north, as it is very sensitive to cold. " In a suitable temperature it thrives on plains, on hills, or even on mountains of medium height. Its tap-root and lateral roots give it a strong hold of the ground, and enable it to resist storms which make it so much the more useful on the sea-shore, where it is planted extensively. " Soil. — The maritime pine will grow on poor soil provided there be depth enough. It will even thrive very well on pure quartz sand, such as is brought down by rivers or heaped up on the sea-shore. Stiff and marshy soils are injurious to it. " Flower and Fruit. — The blossom is monosceous. It flowers in March and April in the South of France, and in May in more temperate regions. The seed is larger than that of the Scotch fir, and is furnished with a wing proportionate to its size ; it is ripe about the same time as that seed, and it also falls at the same season. * Traiie, de la Culture du Fin Maritime. 150 NATURAL HISTORY OP MARITIME PINE. " The fertility of this tree is extraordinary ; it bears fruit almost every year, beginning at the age of twelve or fifteen, sometimes earlier ; to ensure, however, the goodness of this, seed should always be collected from older trees. " Young Plants. — The maritime pine is hardy from the first ; and all prolonged shelter is hurtful. It is only on the burning dunes of Gascony, and in the warm exposures of the south of France, that shelter is needed for the first few years. " Foliage. — Although the leaves of the maritime pine are very long they only cast a feeble shade. They fall in the third year like those of the Scotch fir. " Boots. — This tree has a tap-root which buries itself deeply in the ground ; it has besides creeping roots which all along their length throw out loug tap-roots; this tendency, along with its rapid growth, makes it very suitable for binding the moving sand on the Dunes. *' Growth and Length of Life. — The maritime pine grows very rapidly and it attains a large size. In one district of the Dunes of Gascony, where the soil is deep and nutritious, several trees, from which the resin has not been extracted, are to be seen about from 27 to 30 metres in height by about 2, 3, and 4 in circumference, at the height of one metre above the ground. The size is well proportioned and the trees have a cylindrical form. They reach an age of 150, or 170, years without showing symptoms of decay. We may therefore believe that the maritime pine may reach an age of 200 in suitable soil. " Qualities and Uses. — The wood of the maritime pine is considered inferior to that of the Scotch fir and many other resinous trees. But it is not the less made use of for various structures. In dock-yards it is made into props and stays to support vessels during the process of building. It is also sold for vine props and planks. " The firewood and charcoal of this pine are of indiflferent quality. " We may, however, be deceived regarding the value of the mari- time pine. In order to the formation of an authoritative judgment, it ought above all things to be grown in suitable conditions of soil and climate, and to be treated according to the best methods of exploi- tation, besides which, it should be protected from pruning and the extraction of resin. " Now, in the department of the Gironde and of the landes, this extraction, called gemmage, and gemmer, has been carried on on the Dunes for several centuries ; and in districts elsewhere called landes, where the soil is usually poor and gemmage uafrequent, the maritime pine is exploited when very young, either for joiners' work, or for tre)- INSTRUCTIONS GIVEN IN SCHOOL OP FORESTRY. 151 Hcing vines. In both these cases it is therefore impossible to know accurately the qualities of this tree. " The process employed in order to extract the resinous juice of this tree will give an idea of the injury thus inflicted, Gemmage is usually begun when the tree is twenty-five years old, and goes on from April till September. The first thing is to remove a strip of bark from 12 to 16 centimetres in breadth, extending from the foot of the tree to a height of from 33 to 50 centimetres. The incision is deep enough to cut through the alburnum, for the resinous juice issues chiefly from the ligneous trunk, and from between the bark and the wood. Every week the wound is re-opened. These incisions in following years are carried upward to a height of from 4 to 5 metres. A new incision at the root of the same tree is then begun. It is parallel to the first, from which it is separated only by a width of from 5 to 6 centimetres ; it, as well as later incisions, extends to the same height. These incisions are carried all round the tree, and are called qiiarres. " This method of gemmage is the most gentle ; it is called gemmage d, vie. When it is wished to go to greater lengths two incisions are made simultaneously, one at the top the other at the foot, the first is called quarre haute, the second hasson. Sometimes incisions are made all round the tree at the same time. This operation is called gemmer d, mort, or ct pin, perdu. Up to the present time the maritime pine is chiefly cultivated for its resinous juice, which furnishes articles of undoubted value, consisting of turpentine, pitch, tar, and lamp-black. As a source of revenue there is no doubt that the present mode of exploitation is the most profitable, and is therefore quite justifiable. But in the departments of Gironde and the Landes they go further, and assert that the maritime pine, if it is to be of any use at all, ought to bo resine. It is even affirmed, despite of examples quoted to the contrary, that the extraction of the resin is indispensable for its prosperity and even its existence. " We may easily see that gemmage must interfere injuriously with the growth of the tree. Nature has not given it a resinous juice for nothing, and this juice, independent of the sap, seems, in combination with the latter, to promote nutrition and growth. As a proof of this when pines which have been gemme are felled, they exhibit very narrow annual layers, which bear witness to a retarded growth, whilst the opposite has been seen in pines which, without having been gemmi, have grown in precisely similar conditions ; but it has been ascertained that the timber of resinous trees is more solid, and has 152 NATURAL HISTORY OF MARITIME PINE. more resisting power, in proportion as the layers are close and compact. Further, gemmage promotes an active current of turpen- tine from the centre to the circumference, which leaves a considerable quantity of concrete resin behind in the wood tissues which it has traversed. It can thus be understood that gemmage, by retarding the growth, imparts at the same time to the wood qualities which it would only in a state of nature have acquired at a much greater age." In regard to semis, or sowings of the maritime pine, it is stated generally that these have to be conducted in every respect as are sowings of the p^7^^^s sylvestris, or Scotch fir; and the following details are given in regard to the pinus maritima : " Examination of the Seed. — The seed of this pine is much larger than that of the Scotch fir ; it is grey or brown upon one side, and shining bjack on the other ; otherwise it possesses the same character- istics as the seed of the Scotch fir. " Putting in the Seed. — All the various methods of cultivation with which we are acquainted are applicable to the maritime pine. The plough is usually employed for preparing the earth, and the harrow for covering the seed ; the seed being larger requires to be covered with a greater depth of earth. " The quantity of seed employed per hectare varies much. In Sologne, for example (as reported by M. A. Brongniart), for a full sowing, about 10 to 20 kilogrammes are used. The difference is owing doubtless to the quality of the seed, or it may be according as the trees are to be close together, or the reverse. We think that from 15 to 1 8 kilogrammes of seed with the wings on, and 12 to 14 kilogrammes of seed with the wings off, will be enough, bearing in mind that the seed of the maritime pine is usually of very good quality. For partial sowings these quantities should be diminished by one third. " The maritime pine has been cultivated much more extensively lately in several districts in the west and centre of France on account of the peculiar products of this tree. But it is more especially in the Landes and in the La Gironde that it is of chief importance. It is well known that in these departments along the sea-shore from the mouth of the Gironde to that of the Adour, there extends a district called the Dunes of the Gulf of Gascony, which occupies an area of about 240 kilometres in length, by an average breadth of 5 kilometres. The soil of this district, composed exclusively of a very fine quartzose saud deposited on the strand by the waves, becomes so light when INSTRUOriONS aiVEI^ IN SCHOOL OP FORESTRY. 163 dry that the winds carry it to a great distance. The smallest obstacle, such as a little hillocli of soil, a tree, some tufts of broom, or of bent grass (arundo arenaria) are enough to stop the sand ; it then accumulates much faster and forms larger heaps than when deposited by the waves, as the winds blow for a long time in the same direction. Such is the origin of the Dunes, of which the height and form vary like the conditions which have created them. Some are to be found from 20 to 30 and even 50 or 100 metres in height. " It is by a mixed system of wicker-work barriers and reboisement with maritime pines that the ini'oads of the sand which threatened the neighbouring communes have been nearly everywhere arrested ; and it is one of the triumphs of the Corps des Fonts et Ghaussees, to whom the Government entrusted this great and important work, and who have not only completed the undertaking, but they have by degrees improved and simplified the work and operations required, and have thus brought it within the power of any one to carry on similar work elsewhere." To render intelligible to those who are unacquainted with the more advanced system of forest management followed on the Continent of Europe, the additional statements to be made, it may be well for me to state, that it differs considerably from the arboriculture which is generally practised in Britain, and from the Jardinage, and Sartage, practised in British Colonies and in the United States of America, and to supply here the following information in regard to it ; and to repeat in substance what I have already said in speaking of the culture of the Scotch fir : In the general management of forests on the Continent, in accord- ance with the most advanced forest science, three things are aimed at, and so far as practicable each is sought to be attained without detriment to either of the others : the sustained production, natural reproduction, and progressive amelioration of the forest. In prosecu- tion of this there is determined, according as quantity, quality, or pecuniary profit may be mainly sought, at what age the trees shall mostly be felled. This in French is spoken of as the exploitability of the woods. But before this age is attained there are several successive thinnings executed, each with a special object, in accordance with which it has a specific designation. The wood being the product of natural reproduction, or self-sown seed, there is often required a thinning out of the seedlings . This is known as the cou,pe d'ensemencement. There may be required one or more successive thinnings as the Ii54 NATURAL HISTORY OP MARITIME PINE. growth of the tree advances. These are known as coupes d^Mneliora- tion. There are subsequently thinnings executed to leave sufficient ground cleai'ed and open for the reception of seed cast from, the trees left standing. These are designated coxipes de regeneration. After which follows the final felling, or coiop definitive, in which only trees required to give shade to the young seedlings, etc., are left standing. But there are exceptional cases, in which artificial sowing is deemed preferable. In these cases coupes de regeneration are not necessary, and the coupe definitive takes the form of a clean sweep, known in technical phrase as la coupe cb hlanc Hoc. In regard to the treatment of the maritime pine, the instruc- tions given at Nancy are in several points founded on those given in regard to the exploitation of the Scotch fir. In these instructions we meet with the two terms coupes de regenera- tion and coupie d^ amelioration, in addition to the similar designations formerly explained. The former of these designations is applied to all the fellings or thinnings to which the forest may be subjected in the course of its reproduction ; and the latter is applied to fellings or thinnings carried out with a view to the improvement of the forest in any way. The corresponding instructions given in regard to the treatment of the maritime pine are these : " Exploitahility. — To ascertain what size this tree may attain, and at what period its exploitahility should be fixed, it must first be cultivated without any injury being done to its growth, for until we gain light from experience we can only judge by analogy. " Trees which grow rapidly when young generally attain their maximum development sooner than do others. This is particularly true of the maritime pine. Nevertheless, in the south, where the climate is favourable, it continues to increase in size for a long time, and on this account it ought not to be exploited for 100 or 120 years, according to the nature of the soil, that the timber may acquire the desired solidity for building and other purposes. " Of course, in adopting this revolution, gemmage is not permissible. " Coupes de regeneration. — The maritime pine never having as yet been subjected to systematic culture, the method to be followed is uncertain. But from the nature of the seed, the constitution of the young plant, and the arrangement of the roots, we may conclude that it ought to be exploited in the same way as the Scotch fir. At the same time, at the coupe d'e7isemencement there may be left fewer plants as this pine is better able to resist the wind. Indeed, the seed is a INSTRUCTIONS GIVEN IN SCHOOL OF FORESTRY. 155 little larger and heavier than that of the Scotch fir, but the mem- braneous wing is also larger, which favours its dispersion to a distance. The secondary coupe will be unnecessary, on account of the hardy constitution of the young plant and the extreme rapidity of its growth, which lead us to believe that the coupe definitive should follow the coupe d^ensemencement as soon as possible, that is to say, in the year after the repeiiplejnent, or within two years at the latest. " Coupes d'amelioration. — What we have said on this head regarding the Scotch fir, equally applies to the maritime pine. The first thinning should be expedited on account of the rapidity of its growth, and the intervals between those which follow should be abridged. " The rules we have laid down for the exploitation are only applicable when the trees are not subjected to gemmage. When trees are to be gemme these rules should be modified. For, on the one hand this operation diminishes the growth and shortens the life of the tree, and on the other it is not timber, but resin which becomes the chief product of the forest. The first circumstance renders much shorter revolutions necessary ; the other, that the thinnings should be made at very short intervals, according to a method practised in the south of France, of which an account has been given. " It being evidently the interest of the proprietor to hasten the period of gemmage as much as possible, it is of great consequence to promote the growth of the stem and summit in every way. For this end the young trees are thinned for the first time, at the age of seven, and afterwards the operation is repeated every six years until they are twenty-five years old, at which age they are supposed to have attained a suitable size. In these operations the pines are isolated by degrees. After the two first fellings the mass, although thinned, should still be preserved so as to promote the development of height ; but after the third the number of trunks is reduced to 700 or 800 per hectare j and after the fourth only 500 remain; five years later these are again reduced to 400. The 100 trees doomed to fall in the fifth thinning are gemmes cb mort, between the fourth and that, the others are gemmes d, vie. " These 400 pines remain standing from thirty to sixty years, and are gemmes every five years. At the expiry of sixty years, 100 trees are marked to be gemmes cb mort, and are then cut down, while the 300 still remaining stand until the final coupe at the end of seventy or eighty years, sometimes of one hundred years, according to the state of the timber and the quality of the soil. " We have already described how coupes de regeneration should be 156 NATURAL HISTORY OP MARITIME PINE. made. But it is believed that usually la coupe ct blanc etoc, followed by artificial sowing, will be preferred. Indeed, in both systems the plough is indispensable, for, on account of the great distance between the pines, the ground cannot fail to be covered with all sorts of bushes and weeds ; besides, the seed of the maritime pine costs very little and is easily gathered and winnowed, the quality is almost always good, and the sowings succeed well ; everything tends to make the artificial way the preferable." Both in the treatise by M. Eloi Samanos,* and In that by M. Am^d6 Boitel,t are given details in regard to the culture and exploitation of the maritime pine in Gascony, and in regard to the general culture of it elsewhere, additional to what has been given in this volume, inclusive of what relates to the gemmage or collection of the resinous sap, and the distillation and manufacture of the difierent products yielded by it, * TraiU de la Culture du Pin Maritime. fMise en valeur dea Terres Pauvrespar le Pin Maritime. CHAPTER XI. Diseases and Injurious Influences to which the Maritime Pine 13 Subject. Sect. I. — Choking hy an Over-growth of Local Vegetation. Besides failures in the culture of the maritime pine, attributable to bad seed, and to unsuitable soil, it often succumbs to other injurious influences, which operate, not always singly and alone, but in com- bination, and one preparing the way for another. It suffers from cold, from hail, from snow, and from wind. When the tap-root comes upon a subterranean sheet of water, a layer of compact clay, or rocks somewhat coherent and continuous, it becomes covered with mosses and lichens, and it languishes, and dies ; and yet subterranean aridity is not less opposed to its healthy growth. In Sologne, where the natural shrubs are destructive to young seedlings, the precaution is taken of sowing the seed on newly cleared land ; and recourse is had to some of the usages of husbandry, and the growth of annual crops, eflfective in themselves or their culture In cleaning the land, to destroy the noxious plants which might defile the ground to be converted into pineries. M. Vilmorin has recorded that in his experience the couch grass, and some other of the grasses, such as the agrostis stolonifera, marsh bent grass, the holcits mollis, creeping soft grass, the agrostis vulgaris, fine bent grass, and many species of festuca, or fesque grass, may so take possession of the ground as to prove destructive to the young produce of sowings of pine trees ; and in Sologne the growth of hromus, or brome grass, starves and kills the seedlings of the mari- time pine, while in Gascony the broom is sown with this pine to shelter and protect it in infancy against the sunshine and the sea breezes ; but there the seedling pines are stifled by a vigorous growth of heaths, such as the erica cinerea, the fine leaved heath, and calluna vulgaris, the ling or heather of Scotland. Sect. II. — Destructive ravages hy Birds, and Squirrels, and Insects. Many birds, remarks Boitel, are destructive or injurious by eat- 158 INJURIES TO MARITIME PINE. ing up seed not completely covered ; and the squirrels which abound in pine woods gnaw the cones and destroy the seed while it is yet on the tree. But these do also still greater damage, by eating away the bark near the sprout, whereby not only is the growth arrested, but the stem enfeebled at this point is often broken across by the wind. But, contrary to what occurs in Sologue and some other districts in which the tree is of feeble growth, and the ravages of the squirrel are most detrimental, in some places on the coast, where the growth is luxuriant, the finest trees are found on places where the squirrel abounds. This is attributed to their destroying the cones which are so abundant as to enfeeble trees by their production, and these being destroyed, the vigour, which otherwise might have gone out in pro- vision for reproduction, is directed to the self-development of the tree. Sheep also are destructive to young seedlings, by browsing on the sprout and the more tender buds; this is the work of a few seconds, but the seedling, deprived of the sprout on the main shoot, remains ever after irregular in its growth, stunted and bushy. But the most destructive effects are found to be connected with the appearance of certain insects on the trees. It is open to question, however, whether these insects be the cause or the effect of the evil done, or whether, as I think not unlikely, judging from what I have seen in similar cases, with other insects and other trees, their increase be not a result of disease, and the cause or occasion of death. Under the ravages of insects sometimes whole forests suffer, and the entire destruction of all the woods in a province seems imminent, while man is powerless to arrest the evil; and the maritime pine, like other trees, is subject to such damage. M. Perris, of Mont-de-Marsan, in the Landes, an eminent French entomologist, who for years found occupation in observing the habits and transformations of insects which there prey upon this tree, so early as 1864 had recorded in the Annales de la Societe entomologique of France, that upwards of 120 species of insects live upon it parasitically. Certain of these insects attack the leaves or the terminal buds of shoots, and so produce physiological effects, which enfeeble the tree, and induce a state of disease. Amongst these are the caterpillars of the Bomhyx pityocampa, of the Tortrix hiioliana, and of the Hylurgus piniim-da. Others attack the wood, and betake themselves to the wood and the bark. Amongst these are the Tomicus stenographus, laricis and hidens, the Melanophila tarda, and the Fissodes notaUis. It is alleged to be indisputable that the former class attack trees in a RAVAGES BY INSECTS. 159 state of health ; it is in regard to some, if not all, of the latter class alone, that there is any question. " Authors," says M. Ferris,* " seem generally disposed to admit that insects, the larvae of which are developed in the trees, while they are yet growing, are the primary cause of the death of these. There has thus been attributed to the Pissodes notatus the loss of an immense quantity of pines, which covered, in 1835, 190 hectares of the forest of Rouvray. " The Marquis of Chambray, in his beautiful work on the resinous trees, speaks of an insect of the gemts Bostriche, which, when it in- creases in great quantities, can destroy entire forests of the maritime pine. We read in the Histoire de V administration en France, par A.nthelme Costaz, t. I., p. 248, that in the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries the pine forests of Germany were so ravaged by the scolyte that the Hanoverian province of the Hartz feared a total loss of fuel, and was delivered from the fear mainly by the effects of several cold and wet winters, which caused the insects to perish in great numbers. " As for myself," says he, " I cannot admit that these insects are the primary cause of the death of the trees which they attack, and in fifteen years, during which I have, without intermission, studied their habits in one of the best wooded countries in France, I have observed a sufficiency of facts to justify me in expressing my opinion, which is, that insects in general (not including those which attach themselves solely to the foliage, as miners, etc.) do not attack those trees which are in good health, but they only address themselves to those whose health and functions have suffered, from some cause or other ;" and he subsequently expresses it as his painful conviction, that lignivorous insects are only to be dreaded by sickly trees. They are like some mosses and lichens which only attach themselves to enfeebled trees, while healthy, well-growing trees, preserve a smooth bark, and repulse these vegetable parasites. '' In the department of the Landes," says he, '5" where we reckon the pine trees by millions, I have never witnessed, and tradition has not preserved the recollection of a single case of these forest razzias which have afSicted other countries. Now the pine is exposed to a crowd of enemies, and the number of individuals of the most injurious of these is incalculable, and yet it is but seldom the case that one of those trees perishes, and I have still to find one which has been actually killed • Annal Soc. Ent. France, 2mo Series, X, 513. 160 INJURIES TO THE MARITIME PINE, by insects. This comes about, according to my views, from this ; the maritime pine being there in its true home, it there developes itself with vigour, then lives in good health, and thus braves the innumerable enemies which surround it. " But let the pines become sickly through the effect of a hail storm, or of an insect having destroyed the leaves or the bud, and when, in consequence of the sickliness affecting the roots and spreading itself from one to another, this may invade the whole forest, if by a circular ditch the contagion be not arrested, then those lignivorous insects, divining the morbid condition of these sick trees, even while no external indication betrays the existence of the evil, throw themselves in mass upon their victims, and finish them off in a few weeks. ... " The insects most destructive to the maritime pine," writes M. Perris, " are first the Bomhijx pytiocampa, the caterpillar of which devours the leaves of this tree, and may, if it multiply beyond measure, occasion such physiological derangements that there may result a disease, the cousequence of which, through the ravages of the xylophages, or woodeaters, shall be fatal ; second, the tomicus steno- grajohus, laricis and hidens, the melanophila tarda, and the pissodes notatus, which destroy with great rapidity every so diseased tree. " There has been recommended, as precautionary measures against these last mentioned insects, the destruction of all dead woods, the removal of stumps, the working up, or at least the removal of the bark of all felled trees, the placing in different parts of the forests attractive trees to allure the matured insects to lay their eggs there^ and then destroying the larvae ; but how can it be effected that these measures shall be carried out simultaneously, that is to say, by everybody at the same time, throughout the whole extent of a department, with many conterminous departments'? Moreover, would the results be very appreciable, when there are in the higher and almost inaccessible parts of trees so many dead or diseased branches 1 And, furthermore, in practice it is impossible to carry out a really successful raid upon the insects ; and this is indisputable with those who are acquainted with the management and exploitation of our forests, with the inadequacy of our agricultural population, and the indifference which, born of abundance and security, ignores all proceedings which involve trouble, " With regard to the chenille processio/iaire, the local name given to the larvae of the Bombyx, which passes the winter in numerous com- munities in large nets of silk attached to the branches, it may be DESTRUCTION OF THE CHENILLE PROCESSION AIRE. 161 said that it might be easy to master it. The legislative arrange- ments, which relate to the destruction of other larvae, might with all propriety be extended to this ; and as there are four months during which the work might be carried on, there appears to be no reason why it might not be effected. But, it is well it should be known that the greater proportion of the nests are situated on the extremities of the upper branches of high trees, where it would be almost always impossible to reach them, and always dangerous to make an attempt to do so ; it must also be told, that in order to get these nests it is necessary to cut down the branches which bear them, and that if each branch have one of them, as may be seen, it would be as well to fell the tree at oace, as to subject it to the deadly operation of cutting off all its branches. " We are then obliged to let things take their course, and to leave it to the birds, to the numerous parasites, and to meteorological phenomena, to bring, and to maintain within proper limits, the multi- plication of devastating insects. " There have been some years in which the vast forests of pines, in the department of the Landes, have been invaded by the chenille processionaire in numbers so prodigious that every branch and almost every twig had its nest of these. Before winter a great portion of the leaves had been devoured, and in spring the larvae coming out of their winter's torpor, finished by browsing on the rest ; so that in the month of March one might have said that a fire had swept over the whole. " These ravages, which nothing could be done to prevent, were continued two years, and caused many trees to perish. The people were in a state of excitement ; and for my own part I did not hesitate to declare that if this went on for two or three years longer, this would probably be the case with the greatest number of our pines, the enfeebled condition of which would be followed by organic derangements sufficiently grave to attract the hostriches, the buprestes, the innumerable liguivorous insects always ready to throw them- selves upon diseased trees, and the attacks of which are a signal of death. " So, as I have said, this condition of things continued two years. In the third year, what was our astonishment to see that there was scarcely a nest upon the trees ! The Chenilles had, so to speak, disappeared. The titmice, the magpies, the cuckoos, and other birds had doubtless destroyed great numbers, and doubtless some millions had become the prey of carniverous and parasitic insects ; but, in X. 162 INJURIES TO MARITIME PINE. reckoning up all the partial destructions of them, we would be far from accounting for what had happened : some general plague must have fallen upon this innumerable race of devastators, and the following is my conjecture : " In the month of May the Chenilles processionaires bury them- selves in the ground, there to be transformed into the chrysalis state ; but they bury themselves at but little depth, in order that the butterfly may experience no great difficulty .in taking its flight. The process of organic metamorphosis which takes place in the chrysalis, requires, as is known, that the insects be protected against too great aridity ; now the months of May and .June in that year were remarkable for very intense heat and unbroken drought ; the sandy soil of the pine woods became desiccated to a great depth ; it was broiling hot, and the chrysalises, being unable to develope in that medium, became almost all abortive. Birth was given to few butter- flies ; and thence it followed there were few chenilles. Two circum- stances appear to me to justify fully this explanation : these are, first, in woods which were somewhat colder than others, and on margins adjacent to moist places, in the following year there were found nests in pretty great numbers ; second, since then, two other years, 1848 and 1849, have been marked by an aridity which was, so to speak, exceptional ; and one result of this was, in the winter 1849-1850, great distances might be traversed without finding a single nest. In 1851 they ceased to be so rare, and I remember I prognosticated that this would be the case, in consequence of some rains which fell in June and July, 1850. " Thus a drought has sufficed to put an end to disquieting devasta- tions, against which man had no remedy, and to-day (1851), the number of chenilles processionaires is reduced to one of no great magnitude ; they are, moreover, surrounded by so many enemies that they have for a long time ceased to be redoubtable. " Apart from drought or other meteorological accident, the chenilles processionaires might have found, as has happened with other species, in their excessive multiplication itself the cause of ruin and mortality. The number might have been so great that food would have failed them before their complete development, and then they would have perished of hunger before transformation." Such were the views advanced by M. Perris, Vice-President of the Societe d' Agriculture des Laudes, and distinguished as an entomologist who had given special attention to the insects living on the maritime pine. DESTRUCTION OF TREES FOLLOWING CHARCOAL BURNING. 163 According to the views of M. Ferris, ia the destruction of many of the trees, they were enfeebled by the destruction of leaves and leaf- buds ; they were thus brought into an abnormal condition, and then, having become food atti-active to lignivorous insects, they died in consequence of their ravages. And when other means than the primary ravages of the leaf devouring insects produce like effects to those thus produced by them, like consequences may follow. Sect. III. — Destructive Consequences following the Effects of Charcoal Burning. Professor Bagneris remarks in regard to a disease to be found in certain plantations : " Frequently a pine is seen to wither and die, and the disease then seems to spread in a circular form, the diameter of which gradually increases. I have not been able to find out the cause. In Sologne origins more or less imaginary were assigned to this. May not this disease be caused by a fungus attacking the woody tissue 1 The form it assumes would lead one to suppose so, and the curative means employed strengthens the belief. In the Landes, a trench of 0'70 metres in depth is dug all round the place attacked, and the circle of disease spreads no farther." The following observations throw additional light upon the phenomenon, and seem to reveal the origin of the evil ; if they do not determine also the question raised as to the possibility of a fungoid growth contributing towards the destructive result : " In the district of Orleans", says M. Boitel, " the maritime pine does not present that vigorous production which in the south it owes to a soil and a climate which are pai'tioularly favourable to it. The sands of the Sologne are often deficient in depth, and when thence it comes to passthat the tap-root of the maritime pine comes uponabedof tenacious and impermeable clay, the tree begins to languish, and its trunk and branches become covered with mosses and lichens. A good many pine woods find themselves in this condition when only fifteen years old. The trees stand out against the evil till they reach the age of twenty or five and twenty years ; but beyond that they become stationaiy, and if they do not necessitate exploitation they are liable to be invaded and destroyed by insects which become developed in innumerable swarms in the bark and the wood. " It has often fallen to my lot to ascertain and verify ravages thus 164 INJURIES OP MARITIME PINE. committed in the pineries of the Sologne, and more especially in the imperial domains, the forests of which have been under my direction for some time. In the Grillaire, an imperial domain in the vicinity of Motte-Beuvron, the lignivorous insects have carried out their ravages in the middle of an immense forest of pines from twenty to twenty- five years of age. The ravages had taken place simultaneously on a great number of points which served as centres to lacunes in the forest, the extent of which went on augmenting year by year in circular zones concentric with the primal circle; and in the radii of these concentric circles the trees were more diseased in proportion to their proximity to the centre. " At the centre the trees had fallen and strewed the ground with heaps of their debris ; farther away they remained standing, but dried up in all their parts ; finally, at the extreme points of the circumference the leaves and the buds were beginning to get yellow, which announced the invasion of the insects ; and the presence of these it was not difficult to ascertain otherwise, on examining between the wood and the bai*k, where the wood was literally ploughed up by numerous galleries which the myriads of lignivorous insects had dug and inhabited. In the middle of these gaps, where not a maritime pine was left standing, there were to be seen here and there some Scotch firs, pimis sylvestris, which, respected by the insects, mani- fested an astonishing vigour alongside of the languishing condition of the maritime pine. " This fact," says he, " corroborates the opinion of M. Perris, who does not admit that lignivorous insects attack the trees in a healthy state. I accept willingly this opinion, supported besides, as it is, by numerous observations conscientiously made ; and I think, with the distinguished entomologist of Mont-de-Marsan, that the pineries of La Sologne would be spared by these insects if the pines found themselves in circumstances more favourable to their develop- ment. " In the Grillaire the circular lacunes ravaged by the insects pre- sent often an area of several hectares. The entire forest would have disappeared under the destructive action of these parasites if measures had not been taken to exploit them at once, and to forward the pro- duce to Paris. " It is noteworthy that there is found generally in the centre of each lacune charcoal debris, which marks the site of an old charcoal furnace. The pine is very sensible to the efi"ects of fire and of smoke. In the forest of Villette (Loiret) the maritime pines are dead, from DESTRUCTION OF TREES FOLLOWING CHARCOAL BURNING. 165 having been exposed to the smoke of a brick kiln, from which they were distant about 50 metres. " Invariably, when there is established a charcoal kiln in the middle of a pinery, there are seen many circular ranges of pines, which, through the effect of the fire and of the smoke, become diseased, and they are not slow to dry up and perish. " These diseased and languishing pines become the cradle of lignivorous insects which invade the forest throughout its extent, if after having completed the work of destruction on the first trees in which they were developed, they find themselves in the middle of a miserable pinery, covered with mosses and lichens, the diseased con- dition of which is so favourable to the propagation of these parasites. " Sometimes, however, the ravages of the lignivorous insects manifest themselves notwithstanding that there are no charcoal furnaces there, or these are far distant. In these exceptional cases, in Sologne, the primary cause of the disease of the pineries can be attributed only to the humidity or to the unfavourable nature of the soil. " After the enfeebling influence which reduces the trees to an impoverished condition, comes that of the vegetable parasites, which carry on farther the enfeebling of the trees ; then come the insects which seize possession of a prey incapable of offering any resistance. According to some observations which I have made, it seems to me that the lignivorous insects occasionally allow themselves to precede those which betake themselves to the leaves, and buds, and young shoots. If this be the case, one may be struck with the harmony which ranges among the causes which tend to destroy a vegetable from the time that it is in other than the normal conditions of development. First, the soil produces its effect, then follow the parasitic vegetables, and then the lignivorous insects, which, in arrest- ing the circulation of the sap, bring the final cou}:) to the vegetable attacked in its every part. " There come into operation in Sologne yet other causes to favour the invasion of the pineries by insects at the periods of the first thinnings. Great negligence is manifested in the operations carried on with a view to giving to the pine the air and light favourable to its development. " Pines growing too densely in their infancy famish one another, the more vigorous destroy the more feeble, which become thus the food of the insects ; at a later period, in the expectation that the expense of the thinning will be covered by the faggots obtained, or by the 166 INJURIES TO MARITIME PINE. manufacture of charcoal, there are carried on simultaneously and vigorously thinning and pruning, which give to the pine in super- abundance the air and the light of which up to that time it had been deprived. Is it astonishing that trees so ill-treated and mis-managed should experience a physiological disturbance which renders them diseased and accessible to the numerous insects, which, after having multiplied in the faggot, the cords of charcoal, and the twigs with which the ground remains strewed, find later on subjects perfectly prepared to receive them 1 " In all the circumstances of the case, the proprietors would find it for their interest in every way to secure to the trees that vigour and that health which defends them so well against the attacks of insects. They would ensure thus the duration of their pineries, and not expose them to premature decimation, which compels them to exploit them at an age at which it would be advantageous to maintain their con- servation. " Independently of these indirect evils occasioned to proprietors by insects, it is necessary to reciion also amongst the damages done by them those dead trees which rot upon the place, which can no longer serve for the making of charcoal, and it would be reckoned fraud to introduce that dead wood in the making up of the faggots, which, to possess the combustible qualities sought for by bakers, should be composed exclusively of living wood." He goes on to say : " The forester has an interest in making him- self well acquainted with the parasitic insects most hurtful to the pine, and in appreciating correctly the ravages committed by them, and the causes which tend to augment or to diminish these. The study of these will show to him that it is useful to give to the pines those periodical attentions which will ensure their vigour and success- ful growth j and as soon as a devastating insect may appear on his pinery, he will know what redoubtable enemy he will have to combat, and what are the urgent measures imposed upon him with a view to the restriction and diminution of damages very prejudicial to his interests." And he speaks in high terms of the work by M. Ferris as supplying requisite instructions. Amongst other specimens of the products of the Landes. under the system of sylviculture adopted, exhibited in the Industrial Museum in Edinburgh, were specimens of wood cut up into galleries by the Bomb y X 2')ytiocampa, -Awdi other lignivorous insects, and specimens of the same restored to healthy growth by a process devised by Dr. DESTEUCTIVE RAVAGES BY THE MOLE. 167 Roberts, with specimens of wood treated by M. Courval for similar defects. Sect. IV. — Destructive Ravages occasioned hy the Mole. Another source of trouble in such plantations of the maritime pine is the subterranean galleries created by the mole. In regard to this M. Boitel writes : " The mole is to be found everywhere in sand or clay, in dry or damp soil. Its operation seems to be measured by the opposition which the ground makes to its efforts. In light sandy ground it makes very long galleries ; it makes shorter ones where the clay is tenacious. It does not, however, dislike the latter kind of ground ; on the contrary, it prefers it, either on account of the solidity which it confers on the galleries, or on account of the abundance of earth worms in it. Although it can swim, and can easily protect its retreat from water, it does not inhabit low wet places, unless it finds some elevated spot in the midst of the surrounding moisture, such as the edge of a dituh, where it can construct a healthy and convenient nest. It delights in the soil of oases, sometimes found on the edge of bogs, which abound in earth worms. In general it does not care for bare exposed places; it prefers spots sheltered by walls, bushes, or trees. It seems to know instinctively that it is safe whei-e its runs are hidden by vegetation. Moles hidden in the banks of ditches are hopeless to catch. It is easier to catch ten in a field than one under a hedge, or on the wooded banks of a ditch. " The mole is remarkably watchful and active. Its hearing is very acute, although its ears are hardly visible amidst its fur. It ig frightened by the least noise. The mole-catcher, or the dog that wishes to capture it, must walk very gently else it will instantly dis- appear. It sees perfectly with eyes no larger than the head of a pin. It does not fear water, and can swim in order to reach a desired point. This explains how gardens surrounded with water are not exempt from its ravages. It is a solitary animal when adult. It is said that the female drives away the male from her nest. Moles only pair at one season, when two may sometimes be caught in the same trap. The female takes care of her brood for some time. With these exceptions the mole is eminently solitary. I have tried in vain to induce two moles of different sexes to li\e in a box filled with earth. They fought continually, and there was no peace until one was killed and partly eaten. The male wars against every in- 168 INJURIES TO MARITIME PINE. truder, and fights to the death with other moles, also with weasels and field mice. It is uncommon that both combatants survive. The weasel ever falls a victim. "Besides the runs and ordinary mole-hills, moles make large heaps of earth, under which are a kind of special nest, measuring from O'lo metres, to 0'20 metres across. " These are made of the leaves of trees, dry grass, and the green leaves of cereals or other plants within their reach. When they can make a selection they prefer the withered leaves of the oak. They do not, as some say, pull down grass by the roots. They always put out their snouts to collect materials for their nests. They are wise enough to bring their materials from a distance for fear of discovering their retreat, especially when they cut down green corn. It is perfectly proved that everything required for their nests is brought from above ground, and that roots of plants are never made use of. " What is called impropei'ly the mole's nest is only a warm and comfortable retreat, where it lives permanently and habitually. The males have their nests as well as the females. This habitation is the central point of all its operations, it is the spot most frequently visited. The mole reaches it by all kinds of runs, both horizontal and vertical ; it contains its food magazines abundantly supplied with pieces of earth-worms still in life, so as to preserve them for a longer time. This animal, so active and strong in scraping, is never long without visiting its nest, it sleeps and eats there generally. It is often found warm when uncovered by the mattock. The most able mole-catchers have never surprised the mole in its nest. At the first sound they disappear in their deepest and best concealed runs. The nest is often renewed without the position being much changed. Under the same heap of earth may be found three or even four nests of different ages. The same mole has sometimes several central dwellings which it occupies irregularly so as to escape the snares of its enemies. The heap which conceals the nest is always larger than the usual mole heap, they are 0-50 metres in height, nearly 1 m^tre across. " The nest is not always under one of these large heaps which are so easily seen. Sometimes it is placed under an adjoining ordinary sized hill. The female usually makes use of this ruse so as to conceal her young. Nests placed under very large hills are what mole-catchers call false or male's nests. " The experienced mole-catcher can easily distinguish the nest of the female, because, not being so strong, they cannot throw up so DESTRUCTION OP MOLES. 169 much earth, and their mole-hills are smaller and flatter. The mole- hills furnish valuable indications. An experienced man can divine the sex of the animals from the appearance of the mole-hills ; amongst the numerous runs they can fix on the chief road between two im- portant centres, and the mole can hardly escape a trap placed where it must be passed a thousand times in a day. From these indications, the mole-catcher can deal with the females and young ones so as to suit his own interest, which he never fails to do when he is paid at so much per head. The female has in the year two litters of four or five each. Young moles produced in spring have a litter before the end of the first year. The first litter is produced in the month of April, and it is of great consequence to catch them at that time, as one mother caught means four or five less on the estate. The real nests can be easily detected, as we have said above. " I will now point out the best way of getting rid of them. Only a man trained specially will do any good ; others will not pursue the moles with the order, regularity, and intelligence necessary. The good mole-catcher knows the habits and instincts of the animal, and that preliminary knowledge will suggest modes of destruction which would escape any other person. " I am acquainted with one skilful mole-catcher ; three times a year he comes from Normandy to work on some of the important estates in Sologne. From his zeal and activity, he seems born for the trade. He undertakes to destroy the moles at so much per head, or so much per hectare. If he receives 25 centimes a head (the usual price), he cares more for the number of his victims that for doing his work thoroughly. He tries to catch males rather than females, who are the hope of the future. On this point I may relate what happened to one of my neighbours with the mole-catcher in question. The first time he was employed, it was fixed that he should receive 25 centimes per mole. At the end of two days he brought eighty-nine moles, of which seventy-two were males. It was evident that the females had been spared. It is better to make arrangements by the quantity of ground. In Sologne 1 franc 50 centimes are given per hectare without food. " The skilful mole-catcher, when visiting his traps, keeps an attentive eye on the mole-hills and runs. Whenever he sees a mole disturbing the ground, he approaches slowly, with one stamp he inter- cepts the new run in such a way as to cut off all retreat, and one blow of the mattock secures his victim. The mattock is also used in getting Y 170 INJURIES TO MARITIME PINE. at the nests with young ones ; and it is used for sounding the earth and finding out runs." Sect. V. — Destructive Ravages hy Forest Fires. M. Eloi Samanos, in his volume entitled Traitd de la Culture du Pin Maritime, to which reference has been made, remarks : " One of the greatest scourges to which a pine-wood plantation is exposed is beyond contradiction that of fire ; it reaches a height with such facility, and spreads with such fearful rapidity. " There is preserved in our district (apparently that of Cape Breton) the memory of a fire which devastated our forests, on an extent of from five and twenty to thirty kilometres; such occurrences may well sufifice to create a most reasonable fear in proprietors, and to urge upon them the adoption of the greatest measures of precaution. " Such occurrences are almost always occasioned by workmen who light fires in the forest without seeing to these being completely extinguished ; they may also be occasioned by storms falling upon a forest, as happened in the imperial domain of Solferiuo. " One precautionary measure against fire, adopted by some care- ful foresters, consists in separating resinous woods by planting broad bands of deciduous trees between them. " This has been carried out by the intelligent engineer, M, Crouzet, in the imperial domains of Solferino, under his direction, in which he has plantations of deciduous trees dividing the woods of maritime pines. By this means the fury of the fire at least is diminished, and it becomes easy to circumscribe and confine its ravages. "Besides this, t^^cvo is omp mf^ans employed in our district to combat conflagrations, known under the name of contre-feu. It is this : when the inhabitants have been congregated on the scene of the disaster, and they judge the extinction of the fire by direct means impossible, they go in the direction in which the fire is advancing, and at some distance from it, having armed themselves with well clothed pine branches, they form in line, and burning there the thorns, heaths, or other dry woods between them and the fire they prevent this fire from spreading in the different directions and smother it ; and this being done, the conflagration, on advancing to that place, finds no food for its continuation, and often dies out." To rely entirely on such means, M. Samanos considers inexpedient, and he says : " Plantations of deciduous trees ought also to be em- DESTRUCTION BY FOREST FIRES. 171 ployed amongst the precautions taken for the conservation of forests, and it is impossible to do too much to make known and to introduce such a measure." In accordance with this account of the contre-feu is the following statement by M. Bartro, in an article on the maritime pine in the Adour, a joarnal of Bayonne : " Resin-yielding- forests are extremely combustible. Their soil is strewed with ferns, with brooms, and with dried leaves ; it is covered with trunks of trees, which distil resin, drops of which are seen every- where ; a single spark, or the wadding of a gun, may suffice to set the country on fire. When this misfortune happens the tocsin is sounded in the adjacent communes. The population arm themselves with shovels and hatchets ; they march under the leadership of the mayors, who direct the operations and compose a guard, the duty of which is to work themselves and to prevent desertion by the other workers. They note the wind under which the conflagration spreads, and regulate their procedui-e accordingly. By this combination of labours the fire finds itself encircled by the population of the diff'erent communes, who proceed to extinguish it, and, unless the wind be very strong, and carry the burning flakes behind the workers, in which case they are veiy much exposed to be themselves surrounded by the fire, they find it pretty easy to master it, and that they do thus : " The workers, one after another, furnish themselves with green and branching boughs ; they take their place at what is deemed a proper distance in line in front of the advancing fire ; they set fire to the ferns and other combustibles in front of them, w^hich they extinguish, as they progressively advance toward the fire, by smiting them with their green branches, and covering them with earth by means of their shovels. This is what is called making a contre-feu When the fire comes it finds no food, and it is forced to go out. This is the only means of which use is made to stop the conflagration in forests of resinous trees." Boitel, in reference to this, compares it to the horaoepathio treat- ment of disease by physicians acting on the principle — Like cures Like — it is fire extinguished by fire, and he goes on to say : " Forest fires would be less common if the police were less negli- gent ; if herdsmen, shepherds, resin-collectors, and woodmen did not take pleasure in lighting fires in the heart of the pignadas, or pine 172 INJURIES TO MARITIME PINE, forests, for the most trivial objects, the embers of which they keep constantly glowing to supply them with fire for their pipes, for their ineture, a preparation of Indian corn, and to broil their salt fish and their sardines, culinary operations which ought to be attended to before leaving their homes. These fires in the open air are left burning on ground covered with combustible matter while the work- men go about their work. Is it surprising then that there should be so many fires % " Insurance companies bring themselves with difficulty to insure pignadas ; moreover, they cannot do otherwise than require a high premium, which the greater part of proprietors will not agree to pay. " The provident cultivator, who wishes to protect his forests against a general conflagration, takes the prudent precaution to interpose in his forest masses cultivated clearings sufficiently large to form a barrier which cannot be overleapt by the destructive scourge. This preventative costs less than the premium of insurance. " Forest fires occasion more damage in young pineries than in those w .' '\ arein a state of decadence; for the old trunks are not con- sumed bv the fire, and they have lost nothing of their fitness to yield wood for carpentry work, and the employment of them in this way affords some indemnity to the proprietor ; it is otherwise with young pineries, which the fire destroys without giving any compensation."